diff options
| -rw-r--r-- | .gitattributes | 3 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-8.txt | 8567 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-8.zip | bin | 0 -> 190017 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h.zip | bin | 0 -> 570730 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/16747-h.htm | 8871 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/01.jpg | bin | 0 -> 27151 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/02.jpg | bin | 0 -> 24193 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/02large.jpg | bin | 0 -> 70071 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/03.jpg | bin | 0 -> 22135 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/04.jpg | bin | 0 -> 17429 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/05.jpg | bin | 0 -> 28837 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/06a.jpg | bin | 0 -> 22732 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/06b.jpg | bin | 0 -> 24586 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/07.jpg | bin | 0 -> 22538 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/08.jpg | bin | 0 -> 22086 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/08large.jpg | bin | 0 -> 65220 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747-h/images/09.jpg | bin | 0 -> 24368 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747.txt | 8567 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 16747.zip | bin | 0 -> 189774 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | LICENSE.txt | 11 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | README.md | 2 |
21 files changed, 26021 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6833f05 --- /dev/null +++ b/.gitattributes @@ -0,0 +1,3 @@ +* text=auto +*.txt text +*.md text diff --git a/16747-8.txt b/16747-8.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..31fd656 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-8.txt @@ -0,0 +1,8567 @@ +Project Gutenberg's A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs, by George M. Wrong + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + +Title: A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs + The Story of a Hundred Years, 1761-1861 + +Author: George M. Wrong + +Release Date: September 25, 2005 [EBook #16747] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1 + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CANADIAN MANOR AND ITS SEIGNEURS *** + + + + +Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Taavi Kalju and the Online +Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net. +Produced from page scans provided by Internet +Archive/Toronto Collection. + + + + + + + +[Illustration: COLONEL JOHN NAIRNE] + + + + +A CANADIAN MANOR +AND ITS SEIGNEURS + +THE STORY OF A HUNDRED YEARS +1761-1861 + + +BY + +GEORGE M. WRONG, M.A. +PROFESSOR OF HISTORY IN THE UNIVERSITY OF TORONTO + + +WITH ILLUSTRATIONS + + +TORONTO +THE BRYANT PRESS, LIMITED +1908 + + +COPYRIGHT, CANADA, 1908 +BY GEORGE M. WRONG + + + + +PREFACE + + +In spite of many pleasant summers spent at Murray Bay one had never +thought of it as having a history. The place and its people seemed +simple, untutored, new. Some of the other summer residents talked +complacently even of having discovered it. They had heard of Murray Bay +as beautiful and had gone to explore this unknown country. When this +bold feat was performed there was abundant recompense. Valley, mountain, +river and stream united to make Murray Bay delightful. The little summer +community grew. At first visitors lived in the few primitive hotels or +in cottages at Pointe au Pic, vacated for the time being by their +owners, who found temporary lodgings somewhere,--not infrequently in +their own out-buildings. The cottages left something to be desired, and, +gradually, the visitors bought land and built houses for themselves: +to-day dozens of them dot the western shore of Murray Bay. In due time +appeared tennis courts; then a golf links. Murray Bay had become, alas, +almost fashionable. + +It still seemed to have no past. True, near the village church, a +fair-sized house stood, embowered in trees, with a fine view out over +the bay and the wide St. Lawrence. A high fence shut in a beautiful old +garden, with a few great trees: as one drove past one got a glimpse of +shady walks and old-fashioned flowers. The extensive out-buildings near +this manor house, stables, carriage-house, dairy, showed that the +establishment was fairly large. There were sleek cattle in the farm +yard. On one of the out-buildings was a small belfry, with a bell to +summon the work-people from afar to meals, and this seemed like the +olden times when the seigneur fed his labourers under his own roof. On +making a formal call at the manor house one noted that some of the rooms +were of fine proportions and that a good many old portraits and +miniatures hung on the walls. This all spoke of a past; and yet of it +one asked little and knew nothing. + +Just across the bay stood another manor house; of stone, too, in this +case not concealed by a covering of wood. Thick walls crowned by a +mansard roof spoke of a respectable age. This manor house, also looked +out on the bay and across the St. Lawrence. One knew that it was named +Mount Murray Manor, while that on the right bank of the river Murray was +called Murray Bay Manor. It was said vaguely that a Colonel Fraser had +dwelt at Mount Murray and a Colonel Nairne at Murray Bay; but all that +one heard was loose tradition and there were no Nairnes or Frasers of +whom one might ask questions. One could see that, in both places, +something like an old world dignity of life had in the past been kept +up. + +Making a call at the Murray Bay Manor House, I was told one day of a +manuscript volume in which the first seigneur had copied some of his +letters. I begged to be allowed to spend an afternoon or two in looking +through it. I went and went again. To me the book was absorbing. It told +the story of the first people of British origin who went to settle at +Malbaie, which they named Murray Bay, just after the British conquest; +of the career of a soldier brother of Colonel Nairne who died in India +not long after Plassey; of campaigns fought by Colonel Nairne during the +period of the American Revolution; of his plans and hopes as the ruler +of the little community where he settled. When I had read the book +through, I asked if there was not something more. Yes, there were some +old letters, preserved in a lumber room at the top of the house. These +I was allowed to see. This task, too, was of great interest and I spent +the better part of a summer holiday reading, analyzing, and copying +letters. Some of them told of the schoolboy days, in Edinburgh, of the +old Colonel's son and heir, the second seigneur, of this son's life at +Gibraltar at the time when Trafalgar was fought, of his return to +Canada, of campaigns in the war of 1812. Then there were touching +letters from others to tell how he fell at the battle of Crysler's Farm. +So intimate were the letters that one experienced again the hopes and +fears of more than a century ago. In time, out of the dimness in which +all had been shrouded, Murray Bay's history became clear. Of course one +had to seek some information elsewhere, especially in attempting an +analysis of French Canadian village life. But the story told in this +volume is based chiefly on the papers read during that holiday. Not only +did they enable one to reconstruct the story of a spot made almost +sacred by the joys of many a delightful summer; they furnished, besides, +an outline of the tragic history of a Canadian family. Here at Murray +Bay, a century and a half ago, a brave and distinguished British officer +secured a great estate and made his home. In his letters we read almost +from day to day of his plans. He had a strong heart and a deep faith. He +reared a large family and built not merely for himself but for his +posterity. And yet, just one hundred years after he began his work at +Murray Bay, the last of his descendants was laid in the grave and the +family became extinct. It is the fashion of our modern fiction to end +the tale in sorrow not in joy. Perhaps the fashion has a more real basis +in fact than we like to think. At any rate this true story of the +seigneur of Murray Bay ends with the closed record of his family history +on a granite monument in Quebec. There is no one living for whom the +tale has the special interest that attaches to one's ancestors. + +I have received help from many but my deepest obligation is to Mr. E.J. +Duggan, the present seigneur of Murray Bay, for his great kindness in +permitting me to use the letters and papers in the Manor House. I owe +much to the Right Honourable Sir Charles Fitzpatrick, who has taught me, +in many holiday outings, most of what appreciation I have learned for +French Canadian village life, and has corrected errors into which I +should otherwise have fallen. So also have Mr. W.H. Blake, K.C., of +Toronto, a good authority on all that concerns life at Murray Bay, and +M. J.-Edmond Roy, Assistant Archivist at Ottawa, whose "Histoire de la +Seigneurie de Lauzon" and many other works relating to the Province of +Quebec entitle him to the rank of its foremost historical scholar. To +another authority on the seigniorial system in Canada, Professor W. +Bennett Munro, of Harvard University, I am much indebted for information +readily given. My colleagues Professor W.J. Alexander, Ph.D., of +University College, and Professor Pelham Edgar, Ph.D., of Victoria +College, Toronto, have given me the benefit of their discriminating +criticism. Dr. A.G. Doughty, C.M.G., Dominion Archivist, and the Rev. +Abbé A.E. Gosselin of Laval University, have responded with unfailing +courtesy to my numerous calls upon them, and Mr. John Fraser Reeve, the +great-grandson of Colonel Malcolm Fraser, who figures so prominently in +the story, has given me invaluable information about the Fraser family. +Dr. J.M. Harper and M. P.-B. Casgrain, of Quebec, and Mr. A.C. +Casselman, of Toronto, have also aided me on some difficult points. To +the Honourable Edward Blake, K.C., of Toronto, I am indebted for +reproductions of some of his paintings of scenes at Murray Bay, and to +the Honourable Dudley Murray, of London, England, for a photograph of +the portrait of General Murray preserved in the General's family. + +Toronto, _July, 1908_. + + + + +CONTENTS + + PAGE + +CHAPTER I + +THE FOUNDING OF MALBAIE + +The situation of Malbaie.--The physical features of +Malbaie.--Jacques Cartier at Malbaie.--Champlain at +Malbaie.--The first seigneur of Malbaie.--A new policy for +settling Canada.--The Sieur de Comporté, seigneur of +Malbaie, sentenced to death in France.--His career in +Canada.--His plans for Malbaie.--Hazeur, Seigneur of +Malbaie.--Malbaie becomes a King's Post.--A Jesuit's +description of Malbaie in 1750.--The burning of Malbaie by +the British in 1759. 1 + + +CHAPTER II + +THE TWO HIGHLAND SEIGNEURS AT MALBAIE + +Pitt's use of Highlanders in the Seven Years' War.--The +origin of Fraser's Highlanders.--The career of Lord +Lovat.--Lovat's son Simon Fraser and other Frasers at +Quebec.--Malcolm Fraser and John Nairne future seigneurs of +Malbaie.--The Highlanders and Wolfe's victory.--The +Highlanders in the winter of 1759-60.--Malcolm Fraser on +Murray's defeat in April, 1760.--The return of Canadian +seigneurs to France.--General Murray buys Canadian +seigniories.--Nairne and Fraser at Malbaie.--Their grants +from Murray. 22 + + +CHAPTER III + +JOHN NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + +Colonel Nairne's portrait.--His letters.--The first Scottish +settlers at Malbaie.--Nairne's finance.--His tasks.--The +curé's work.--The Scottish settlers and their French +wives.--The Church and Education.--Nairne's efforts to make +Malbaie Protestant.--His war on idleness.--The character of +the habitant.--Fishing at Malbaie.--Trade at +Malbaie.--Farming at Malbaie.--Nairne's marriage,--Career +and death in India of Robert Nairne.--The Quebec Act and its +consequences for the habitant. 40 + + +CHAPTER IV + +JOHN NAIRNE IN THE AMERICAN REVOLUTION + +Nairne's work among the French Canadians.--He becomes Major +of the Royal Highland Emigrants.--Arnold's march through the +wilderness to Quebec.--Quebec during the Siege, +1775-76.--The habitants and the Americans.--Montgomery's +plans.--The assault on December 31st, 1775.--Malcolm Fraser +gives the alarm in Quebec.--Montgomery's death.--Arnold's +attack.--Nairne's heroism.--Arnold's failure.--The American +fire-ship.--The arrival of a British fleet.--The retreat of +the Americans.--Nairne's later service in the War.--Isle aux +Noix and Carleton Island.--Sir John Johnson and the +desolation of New York.--Nairne and the American prisoners +at Murray Bay.--Their escape and capture.--Nairne and the +Loyalists.--The end of the War.--Nairne's retirement to +Murray Bay. 62 + + +CHAPTER V + +THE LAST DAYS OF JOHN NAIRNE + +Nairne's careful education of his children.--His son John +enters the army.--Nairne's counsels to his son.--John Nairne +goes to India.--His death.--Nairne's declining years.--His +activities at Murray Bay.--His income.--His daughter +Christine and Quebec society.--The isolation of Murray Bay +in Winter.--Signals across the river.--Nairne's +reading.--His notes about current events.--The fear of a +French invasion of England.--Thoughts of flight from +Scotland to Murray Bay.--Nairne's last letter, April 20th, +1802.--His death and burial at Quebec. 93 + + +CHAPTER VI + +THOMAS NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + +His education in Scotland.--His winning character.--He +enters the army.--Malcolm Fraser's counsels to a young +soldier.--Thomas Nairne's life at Gibraltar.--His desire to +retire from the army.--His return to Canada in 1810-11.--His +life at Quebec.--His summer at Murray Bay, 1811.--His +resolve to remain in the Army.--Beginning of the War of +1812.--Captain Nairne on Lake Ontario.--Quebec Society and +the proposed flight from danger to Murray Bay.--Anxiety at +Murray Bay.--The progress of the War.--An American attack on +Kingston.--Captain Nairne on the Niagara frontier.--Naval +War on Lake Ontario.--Nairne's description of a naval +engagement.--Sense of impending disaster at Murray Bay.--The +American advance on Montreal by the St. Lawrence.--Nairne's +regiment a part of the opposing British force.--The Battle +of Crysler's Farm.--Nairne's death.--His body taken to +Quebec.--The grief of the family at Murray Bay.--The +funeral. 124 + + +CHAPTER VII + +A FRENCH CANADIAN VILLAGE + +Life at Murray Bay after Captain Nairne's death.--Letters +from Europe.--Death of Malcolm Fraser.--Death of Colonel +Nairne's widow and children.--His grandson John Nairne, +seigneur.--Village Life.--The Church's Influence.--The +Habitant's tenacity.--His cottage.--His labours.--His +amusements.--The Church's missionary work in the +Village.--The powers of the bishop.--His visitations.--The +organization of the Parish.--The powers of the +_fabrique_.--Lay control of Church finance.--The curés' +tithe.--The best intellects enter the Church.--A native +Canadian clergy.--The curé's social life.--The Church and +Temperance Reform.--The diligence of the curés.--The +habitant's taste for the supernatural.--The belief in +goblins.--Prayer in the family.--The habitant as voter.--The +office of Churchwarden.--The Church's influence in +elections.--The seigneur's position.--The habitant's +obligations to him.--Rent day and New Year's Day.--The +seigneur's social rank.--The growth of discontent in the +villages.--The evils of Seigniorial Tenure.--Agitation +against the system.--Its abolition in 1854.--The last of the +Nairnes.--The Nairne tomb in Quebec. 168 + + +CHAPTER VIII + +THE COMING OF THE PLEASURE SEEKERS + +Pleasure seeking at Murray Bay.--A fisherman's experience in +1830.--New visitors.--Fishing in a mountain lake.--Camp +life.--The Upper Murray.--Canoeing.--Running the +rapids.--Walks and drives.--Golf.--A rainy day.--The +habitant and his visitors. 222 + + +AUTHORITIES 243 + + +APPENDICES + + +APPENDIX A (p. 31) The Journal of Malcolm Fraser, + First Seigneur of Mount Murray, + Malbaie. 249 + +APPENDIX B (p. 38) Title Deed of the Seigniory of + Murray Bay, granted to Captain + John Nairne. 271 + +APPENDIX C (p. 78) The Siege of Quebec in 1775-76. + Colonel Nairne's Narrative. 273 + +APPENDIX D (p. 98) Memorandum of Colonel Nairne, + 5th April, 1795, for his son + John Nairne in regard to + military duty. 277 + +APPENDIX E (p. 104) The "Porpoise" (Beluga or + White Whale) Fishery on the + St. Lawrence. 279 + +APPENDIX F (p. 122) The Prayer of Colonel Nairne. 286 + +APPENDIX G (p. 144) The Curés of Malbaie. 287 + + +INDEX 291 + + + + +LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS + + +COLONEL JOHN NAIRNE Frontispiece +(From the Oil Painting in the Manor House at Murray Bay.) + PAGE + +CAP À L'AIGLE FROM THE WEST SHORE OF MURRAY BAY 6 +(From the Water Colour by the late L.R. O'Brien, in the +possession of the Hon. Edward Blake, K.C.) + +VIEW ACROSS MURRAY BAY FROM THE CAP À L'AIGLE SHORE 21 +(From an Oil Painting by E. Wyly Grier, in the possession of +the Hon. Edward Blake.) + +GENERAL JAMES MURRAY 35 +(From an Oil Painting preserved in the General's Family.) + +THE MANOR HOUSE AT MURRAY BAY 74 +(From amateur photographs.) + +VIEW FROM POINTE AU PIC UP MURRAY BAY 102 +(From a Water Colour by the late L.R. O'Brien in the +possession of the Hon. Edward Blake.) + +THE GOLF LINKS AT MURRAY BAY 237 +(From a Photograph by W. Notman and Son, Montreal.) + + +MAPS + +THE ST. LAWRENCE FROM QUEBEC TO MURRAY BAY 1 + +SKETCH MAP OF LAKE ONTARIO AND THE RIVER ST. LAWRENCE TO +ILLUSTRATE THE WAR OF 1812-14 148 + + + + +[Illustration: THE ST. LAWRENCE FROM QUEBEC TO MURRAY BAY] + + + + +A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs + + + + +CHAPTER I + +THE FOUNDING OF MALBAIE + + The situation of Malbaie.--The physical features of + Malbaie.--Jacques Cartier at Malbaie.--Champlain at Malbaie.--The + first seigneur of Malbaie.--A new policy for settling Canada.--The + Sieur de Comporté, seigneur of Malbaie, sentenced to death in + France.--His career in Canada.--His plans for Malbaie.--Hazeur, + Seigneur of Malbaie.--Malbaie becomes a King's Post.--A Jesuit's + description of Malbaie in 1750.--The burning of Malbaie by the + British in 1759. + + +If one is not in too great a hurry it is wise to take the steamer--not +the train--at Quebec and travel by it the eighty miles down the St. +Lawrence to Malbaie, or Murray Bay, as the English call it, somewhat +arrogantly rejecting the old French name used since the pioneer days of +Champlain. This means an early morning start and six or seven hours--the +steamers are not swift--on that great river. Only less than a mile apart +are its rugged banks at Quebec but, even then, they seem to contract the +mighty torrent of water flowing between them. Once past Quebec the river +broadens into a great basin, across which we see the head of the +beautiful Island of Orleans. We skirt, on the south side, the twenty +miles of the island's well wooded shore, dotted with the cottages of +the habitants, stretched irregularly along the winding road. Church +spires rise at intervals; the people are Catholic to a man. Once past +this island we begin to note changes. Hardly any longer is the St. +Lawrence a river; rather is it now an inlet of the sea; the water has +become salt; the air is fresher. So wide apart are the river's shores +that the cottages far away to the south seem only white specks. + +Hugging the north shore closely we draw in under towering Cap Tourmente, +fir-clad, rising nearly two thousand feet above us; a mighty obstacle it +has always been to communication by land on this side of the river. Soon +comes a great cleft in the mountains, and before us is Baie St. Paul, +opening up a wide vista to the interior. We are getting into the Malbaie +country for Isle aux Coudres, an island some six miles long, opposite +Baie St. Paul, was formerly linked with Malbaie under one missionary +priest. The north shore continues high and rugged. After passing Les +Eboulements, a picturesque village, far above us on the mountain side, +we round Cap aux Oies, in English, unromantically, Goose Cape, and, far +in front, lies a great headland, sloping down to the river in bold +curves. On this side of the headland we can see nestling in under the +cliff what, in the distance, seems only a tiny quay. It is the wharf of +Malbaie. The open water beyond it, stretching across to Cap à l'Aigle, +marks the mouth of the bay. The great river, now twelve miles broad, +with a surging tide, rising sometimes eighteen or twenty feet, has the +strength and majesty almost of Old Ocean himself. + +As we land we see nothing striking. There is just a long wharf with some +cottages clustered at the foot of the cliff. But when we have ascended +the short stretch of winding road that leads over the barrier of cliff +we discover the real beauties of Malbaie. Before us lies the bay's +semi-circle--perhaps five miles in extent; stretching far inland is a +broad valley, with sides sloping up to rounded fir-clad mountain tops. +It is the break in the mountains and the views up the valley that give +the place its peculiar beauty. When the tide is out the bay itself is +only a great stretch of brown sand, with many scattered boulders, and +gleaming silver pools of water. Looking down upon it, one sees a small +river winding across the waste of sand and rocks. It has risen in the +far upland three thousand feet above this level and has made an arduous +downward way, now by narrow gorges, more rarely across open spaces, +where it crawls lazily in the summer sunlight:--_les eaux mortes_, the +French Canadians call such stretches. It bursts at length through the +last barrier of mountains, a stream forty or fifty yards wide, and flows +noisily, for some ten miles, in successive rapids, down this valley, +here at last to mingle its brown waters with the ice-cold, steel-tinted, +St. Lawrence. + +When the tide is in, the bay becomes a shallow arm of the great +river,--the sea, we call it. The French are better off than we; they +have the word "_fleuve_" for the St. Lawrence;--other streams are +"_rivières_." Almost daily, at high water, one may watch small schooners +which carry on the St. Lawrence trade head up the bay. They work in +close to shore, drop their anchors and wait for the tide to go out. It +leaves them high and dry, and tilted sometimes at an angle which +suggests that everything within must be topsy-turvy, until the vessel is +afloat again. With a strong wind blowing from the north-east the bay is +likely to be, at high tide, an extremely lively place for the mariner; a +fact which helps perhaps to explain the sinister French name of Malbaie. +The huge waves, coming with a sweep of many miles up the broad St. +Lawrence, hurl themselves on the west shore with surprising vehemence, +and work destruction to anything not well afloat in deep water, or +beyond the highest of high water marks. At such a time how many a +hapless small craft, left incautiously too near the shore, has been +hammered to pieces between waves and rocks! + +Tired wayfarers surveying this remote and lovely scene have fancied +themselves pioneers in something like a new world. In reality, here is +the oldest of old worlds, in which pigmy man is not even of yesterday, +but only of to-day. This majestic river, the mountains clothed in +perennial green, the blue and purple tints so delicate and transient as +the light changes, have occupied this scene for thousands of centuries. +No other part of our mother earth is more ancient. The Laurentian +Mountains reared their heads, it may be, long before life appeared +anywhere on this peopled earth; no fossil is found in all their huge +mass. In some mighty eruption of fire their strata have been strangely +twisted. Since then sea and river, frost and ice, have held high +carnival. Huge boulders, alien in formation to the rocks about them, +have been dropped high up on the mountain sides by mighty glaciers, and +lie to-day, a source of unfailing wonder to the unlearned as to how they +came to be there. + +Man appeared at last upon the scene; the Indian, and then, long after, +the European. In 1535, Jacques Cartier, the first European, as far as we +know, to ascend the St. Lawrence, creeping slowly from the Saguenay up +towards the Indian village of Stadacona, on the spot where now is +Quebec, must have noted the wide gap in the mountains which makes the +Malbaie valley. Not far from Malbaie, he saw the so-called "porpoises," +or white whales, (beluga, French, _marsouin_) that still disport +themselves in great numbers in these waters, come puffing to the surface +and writhe their whole length into view like miniature sea-serpents. +They have heads, Cartier says, with no very great accuracy, "of the +style of a greyhound," they are of spotless white and are found, he was +told (incorrectly) only here in all the world. He anchored at Isle aux +Coudres where he saw "an incalculable number of huge turtles." He +admired its great and fair trees, now gone, alas, and gave the island +its name--"the Isle of Hazel Nuts"--which we still use. For long years +after Cartier, Malbaie remained a resort of its native savages only. +Perhaps an occasional trader came to give these primitive people, in +exchange for their valuable furs, European commodities, generally of +little worth. In time the Europeans learned the great value of this +trade and of the land which offered it. So France determined to colonize +Canada and in 1608, when Champlain founded a tiny colony at Quebec, the +most Christian King had announced a resolution to hold the country. Ere +long Malbaie was to have a European owner. + +[Illustration: CAP À L'AIGLE FROM THE WEST SHORE OF MURRAY BAY + +"A great headland sloping down to the river in bold curves."] + +As Champlain went up from Tadousac to make his settlement of Quebec he +noted Malbaie as sufficiently spacious. But its many rocks, he thought, +made it unnavigable, except for the canoes of the Indians, whose light +craft of bark can surmount all kinds of difficulties. Perhaps Champlain +is a little severe on Malbaie which, when one knows how, is navigable +enough for coasting schooners, but his observations are natural for a +passing traveller. In the years after Quebec was founded no more can be +said of Malbaie than that it was on the route from Tadousac to Quebec +and must have been visited by many a vessel passing up to New France's +small capital on the edge of the wilderness. In the summer of 1629 the +occasional savages who haunted Malbaie might have seen an unwonted +spectacle. Three English ships, under Lewis Kirke, had passed up the +river and to him, Champlain, with a half-starved force of only sixteen +men, had been obliged to surrender Quebec. Kirke was taking his captives +down to Tadousac when, opposite Malbaie, he met a French ship coming to +the rescue. A tremendous cannonade followed, the first those ancient +hills had heard. It ended in disaster to France, and Kirke sailed on to +Tadousac with the French ship as a prize. + +When peace came France began more seriously the task of settling Canada. +Though inevitably Malbaie would soon be colonized, it was still very +difficult of access. A wide stretch of mountain and forest separated it +from Quebec; not for nearly two hundred years after Champlain's time was +a road built across this barrier. Moreover France's first years of rule +in Canada are marked by conspicuous failure in colonizing work. The +trading Company--the Company of New France or of "One Hundred +Associates"--to which the country was handed over in 1633, thought of +the fur trade, of fisheries, of profits--of anything rather than +settlement, and never lived up to its promises to bring in colonists. +It made huge grants of land with a very light heart. In 1653 a grant was +made of the seigniory of Malbaie to Jean Bourdon, Surveyor-General of +the Colony. But Bourdon seems not to have thought it worth while to make +any attempt to settle his seigniory and, apparently for lack of +settlement, the grant lapsed. Even the Company of New France treasured +some idea that would-be land owners in a colony had duties to perform. + +After thirty years France at length grew tired of the incompetence of +the Company and in 1663 made a radical change. The great Colbert was +already the guiding spirit in France and colonial plans he made his +special care. Louis XIV too was already dreaming of a great over-sea +Empire. The first step was to take over from the trading Company the +direct government of the colony. The next was to get the right men to do +the work in New France. An excellent start was made when, in 1665, Jean +Talon was sent out to Canada as Intendant. He had a genius for +organization. Though in rank below the Governor he, with the title of +Intendant, did the real work of ruling; the Governor discharged its +ceremonial functions. Talon had a policy. He wished to colonize, to +develop industry, to promote agriculture. In his capacious brain new and +progressive ideas were working. He brought in soldiers who became +settlers, among them the first real seigneur of Malbaie. An adequate +military force, the Carignan regiment, came out from France to awe into +submission the aggressive Iroquois, who long had made Montreal, and even +Quebec itself, unsafe by their sudden and blood-thirsty attacks. +Travelling by canoe and batteau the regiment went from Quebec up the +whole length of the St. Lawrence, landed on the south shore of Lake +Ontario, and marched into the Iroquois country. With amazement and +terror, those arrogant savages saw winding along their forest paths the +glittering array of France. Some of their villages were laid low by +fire. The French regiment had accomplished its task; with no spirit left +the Iroquois made peace. + +A good many officers of the Carignan regiment, with but slender +prospects in France, decided to stay in Canada and to this day their +names--Chambly, Verchères, Longueuil, Sorel, Berthier and others are +conspicuous in the geography of the Province of Quebec. Malbaie was +granted to a soldier of fortune, the Sieur de Comporté, who came to +Canada at this time, but apparently was not an officer of the Carignan +Regiment. His outlook at Malbaie cannot have been considered promising, +for Pierre Boucher, who in 1664 published an interesting account of New +France, declared the whole region between Baie St. Paul and the Saguenay +to be so rugged and mountainous as to make it unfit for civilized +habitation. But Philippe Gaultier, Sieur de Comporté, was of the right +material to be a good colonist. Born in 1641 he was twenty-four years of +age when he came to Canada. Already he had had some stirring adventures, +one of which might well have proved grimly fatal had he not found a +refuge across the sea. Comporté, then serving as a volunteer in a +Company of Infantry led by his uncle, La Fouille, was involved in one of +the bloody brawls of the time that Richelieu had made such stern efforts +to suppress. The Company was in garrison at La Motte-Saint-Heray in +Poitou. On July 9th, 1665, one of its members, Lanoraye, came in with +the tale of an insult offered to the company by a civilian in the town. +Lanoraye had been marching through the streets with a drum beating, in +order to secure recruits, when one Bonneau, the local judge, attacked +him, and took away the drum. Lanoraye rushed to arouse his fellow +soldiers. When Comporté and half a dozen other hot-heads had listened to +his tale, they cried with one voice, "Let us go and demand the drum. He +must give it up." So at eight or nine o'clock at night they set out to +look for Bonneau. They came upon him unexpectedly in the streets of the +town. He was accompanied by seven or eight persons with whom he had +supped and all were armed with swords, pistols or other weapons. When +Lanoraye demanded the drum, Bonneau was defiant and told him to go away +or he should chastise him. The inevitable fight followed. Comporté, +whose own account we have, says that it lasted some time and the results +were fatal. Comporté declares that he himself struck no blows but the +fact remains that two of Bonneau's party were so severely wounded that +they died. Comporté and the rest of the Company soon went to Canada. In +their absence he and others were sentenced to death. + +In Canada he appears to have behaved himself. In France a simple +volunteer, in New France he became an important citizen. Talon trusted +him and made him Quarter-Master-General. In 1672 Comporté received an +enormous grant of land stretching along the St. Lawrence from Cap aux +Oies to Cap à l'Aigle, a distance of some eighteen miles, including +Malbaie and a good deal more. About the same time he married Marie +Bazire, daughter of one of the chief merchants in the colony, by whom he +had a numerous family. So eminently respectable was he that we find him +churchwarden at Quebec. In time he retired from trade, in which he had +engaged, and became a judge of the newly established Court of the +Prévôté at Quebec. This was not doing badly for a man under sentence of +death. But over him still hung this affair in France and, in 1680, he +petitioned the King to have the sentence annulled. For this petition he +secured the support of the families of the men killed in the quarrel +fifteen years earlier. In 1681 Louis XIV's pardon was registered with +solemn ceremonial at Quebec, and at last Comporté was no longer an +outlaw. + +He had plans to settle his great fief. Working in his brain no doubt +were dreams of a feudal domain, of a seigniorial chateau looking out +across the great river, of respectful tenants paying annual dues to +their lord in labour, kind, and money, of a parish church in which over +the seigniorial pew should be displayed his coat of arms. But if these +pictures inspired his fancy and cheered his spirit, they were never to +become realities. In 1687 he was, apparently, in need of money, and he +resolved to sell two-thirds of his interest in the seigniory of Malbaie. +The price was a pitiful 1000 livres, or some $200, and the purchasers +were François Hazeur, Pierre Soumande and Louis Marchand of Quebec, who +were henceforth to get two-thirds of the profits of the seigniory. Then, +in 1687, still young--he was only forty-six--Comporté died, as did also +his wife, leaving a young family apparently but ill provided for. His +name still survives at Malbaie. The portion of the village on the left +bank of the river above the bridge is called Comporté, and a lovely +little lake, nestling on the top of a mountain beyond the Grand Fond, +and unsurpassed for the excellence of its trout fishing, is called Lac à +Comporté; it may be that well-nigh two and a half centuries ago the +first seigneur of Malbaie followed an Indian trail to this lake and wet +a line in its brown and rippling waters. + +Comporté and his partners in the seigniory had planned great things. +They had begun the erection of a mill, an enterprise which Comporté's +heirs could not continue. So the guardian of the children determined to +sell at auction their third of the seigniory. The sale apparently took +place in Quebec in October, 1688. We have the record of the bids made. +Hazeur began with 410 livres; one Riverin offered 430 livres; after a +few other bids Hazeur raised his to 480 livres; then Riverin offered 490 +and finally the property was sold to Hazeur for 500 livres. Malbaie was +cheap enough; one third of a property more than one hundred and fifty +square miles in extent sold for about $100! In 1700 for a sum of 10,000 +livres ($2,000) Hazeur bought out all other interests in the seigniory +and became its sole owner. Its value had greatly improved in 22 years. + +Of Hazeur we know but little. He was a leading merchant at Quebec and +was interested in the fishing for "porpoises" or white whales. When he +died in 1708 he left money to the Seminary at Quebec on condition that +from this endowment, forever, two boys should be educated; for the +intervening two centuries the condition has been faithfully observed; +one knows not how many youths owe their start in life to the gift of +the former seigneur of Malbaie. There, however, no memory or tradition +of him survives. In his time some land was cleared. The saw mill and a +grist mill, begun by Comporté, were completed and stood, it seems, near +the mouth of the little river now known as the Fraser but then as the +Ruisseau à la Chute. Civilization had made at Malbaie an inroad on the +forest and was struggling to advance. + +On Hazeur's death in 1708 his two sons, both of them priests, inherited +Malbaie. Meanwhile the government developed a policy for the region. It +resolved to set aside, as a reserve, a vast domain stretching from the +Mingan seigniory below Tadousac westward to Les Eboulements, and +extending northward to Hudson Bay. The wealth of forest, lake, and +river, in this tract furnished abundant promise for the fur and other +trade of which the government was to have here a complete monopoly. +Malbaie was necessary to round out the territory and so the heirs of +Hazeur were invited to sell back the seigniory to the government. The +sale was completed in October, 1724, when the government of New France, +acting through M. Begon, the Intendant, for a sum of 20,000 livres +(about $4,000) found itself possessed of Malbaie "as if it had never +been granted," of a saw mill and a grist mill, of houses, stables and +barns, gardens and farm implements, grain, furniture, live stock, +cleared land, cut wood and all other products of human industry there +in evidence.[1] + +Within the reserve, in addition to Malbaie, were a number of trading +posts--Tadousac, Chicoutimi, Lake St. John, Mistassini, &c. In this +great tract the government expected to reap large profits from its +monopoly of trade with the Indians. Some of the fertile land was to be +used for farms which should produce food supplies for the posts. The +Intendant had sanguine hopes that the profit from trade and agriculture +would aid appreciably in meeting the expense of government. It was, we +may be well assured, an expectation never realized. + +We get a glimpse of Malbaie in 1750 as a King's post. There were two +farms, one called La Malbaie, the other La Comporté. The two farmers +were both in the King's service and, in the absence of other diversions, +quarrelled ceaselessly. The region, wrote the Jesuit Father Claude +Godefroi Coquart, who was sent, in 1750, to inspect the posts, is the +finest in the world. He reported, in particular, that the farm of +Malbaie had good soil, excellent facilities for raising cattle, and +other advantages. Only a very little land had been cleared, just enough +wheat being raised to supply the needs of the farmer and his assistants. +The place should be made more productive, M. Coquart goes on to say, and +the present farmer, Joseph Dufour, is just the man to do it. He is able +and intelligent and if only--and here we come to the inherent defect in +trying to do such pioneer work by paid officials who had no final +responsibility--he were offered better pay the farm could be made to +produce good results. The old quarrel with the farmer at La Comporté had +been settled; now the farmer of Malbaie was the superior officer, +rivalry had ceased, and all was peace. + +Coquart gives an estimate of the farming operations at Malbaie which is +of special interest as showing that, if the old régime in Canada did not +produce good results, it was not for lack of criticism. Better cattle +should be raised, he says; at Malbaie one does not see oxen as fine as +those at Beaupré, near Quebec, or on the south shore. The pigs too are +extremely small, the very fattest hardly weighing 180 pounds; in +contrast, at La Petite Rivière, above Baie St. Paul, the pigs are huge; +one could have good breeds without great expense; it costs no more to +feed them and [a truism] there would be more pork! Of sheep too hardly +fifty are kept at Malbaie through the winter; there should be two or +three hundred. From the two farms come yearly only thirty or forty pairs +of chickens. + +Father Coquart's census is as rigorous and unsparing of detail as the +Doomsday Book of William the Conqueror. He tells exactly what the +Malbaie farm can produce in a year; the record for the year of grace +1750 is "4 or 6 oxen; 25 sheep, 2 or 3 cows, 1200 pounds of pork, 1400 +to 1500 pounds of butter, one barrel of lard,"--certainly not much to +help a paternal government. The salmon fishery should be developed, says +Coquart. Now the farmers get their own supply and nothing more. Nets +should be used and great quantities of salmon might be salted down in +good seasons. Happily, conditions are mending. The previous farmer had +let things go to rack and ruin but now one sees neither thistles nor +black wheat; all the fences are in place. Joseph Dufour has a special +talent for making things profitable. If he can be induced to continue +his services, it will be a benefit to his employer. But he is not +contented. Last year he could not make it pay and wished to leave. +Nearly all his wages are used in the support of his family. He has three +grown-up daughters who help in carrying on the establishment, and a boy +for the stables. The best paid of these gets only 50 livres (about $10) +a year; she should get at least 80 livres, M. Coquart thinks. Dufour has +on the farm eight sheep of his own but even of these the King takes the +wool, and actually the farmer has had to pay for what wool his family +used. Surely he should be allowed to keep at least half the wool of his +own sheep! If it was the policy of the Crown to grant lands along the +river of Malbaie there are many people who would like those fertile +areas, but there is danger that they would trade with the Indians which +should be strictly forbidden. So runs M. Coquart's report. It was +rendered to one of the greatest rascals in New France, the Intendant +Bigot, but he was a rascal who did his official tasks with some +considerable degree of thoroughness and insight. He knew what were the +conditions at Malbaie even if he did not mend them. + +After 1750 the curtain falls again upon Malbaie and we see nothing +until, a few years later, the desolation of war has come, war that was +to bring to Canada, and, with it, to Malbaie, new masters of British +blood. After long mutterings the war broke out openly in 1756. In those +days the farmer at Malbaie who looked out, as we look out, upon the +mighty river would see great ships passing up and down. Some of them +differed from the merchant ships to which his eye was accustomed. They +stood high in the water. Ships came near the north shore in those days +and he could see grim black openings in their sides which meant cannon. +Already Britain had almost driven France from the sea and these French +ships, which ascended the St. Lawrence, were few. Then, in 1759, +happened what had been long-expected and talked about. Signal fires +blazed at night on both sides of the St. Lawrence to give the alarm, +when not French, but British ships, sailed up the river, a huge fleet. +They stopped at Tadousac and then slowly and cautiously filed past +Malbaie. On a summer day the crowd of white sails scattered on the +surface of the river made an animated scene. In wonder our farmer and +his helpers watched the ships silently advance to their goal. There were +39 men-of-war, 10 auxiliaries, 70 transports and a multitude of smaller +craft carrying some 27,000 men; it was the mightiest array Britain had +ever sent across the ocean. New France was doomed. + +The French fought bravely a campaign really hopeless. Montcalm massed +his chief force at Quebec and there awaited attack. In vain had he +appealed to France for further help; he was left unaided to struggle +with a foe who had command of the sea, whose fleet could pass up and +down before Quebec with the tide and keep the French guards for twenty +miles in constant nervous tension as to where a landing might be made. +Wolfe carried on his work relentlessly. He warned the Canadians that he +would ravage their villages if they did not remain neutral. Neutral it +was almost impossible for them to be for the French urged them in the +other direction. With stern rigour, Wolfe meted out to them his +punishment. He sent parties to burn houses and destroy crops and Malbaie +was not spared. On August 15th, 1759, Captain Gorham reported to Wolfe +that with 300 men, one half of them Rangers from the English colonies, +the other half Highlanders, he had devastated the north shore of the St. +Lawrence. The soldiers did their work thoroughly. From Baie St. Paul, +the last considerable village east of Quebec, they went on thirty miles +to Malbaie where they destroyed almost all of the houses. We do not know +whether the competent Dufour was still the farmer at Malbaie. But all +the fine pictures of better cattle, better pigs and sheep, better +farming, better fishing, ended with the applying of the British +soldiers' torch to the wooden buildings: much of the settlement went up +in smoke. Some of the cattle, pigs and sheep found their way perhaps to +Wolfe's commissariat. But a good many were left and no doubt they are +the ancestors of many of the cattle, sheep and pigs we see at Malbaie +still. This first visit of Americans and Highlanders to Malbaie has its +special interest. A few years later Highlanders came again, not to +destroy but to settle, and to become the ancestors of families that to +this day show their Highland origin in their names and in their +faces, but never a trace of it in their speech or in their customs.[2] +The Americans were longer in coming back. But, after more than a hundred +years they, too, were to come again, not to destroy but in a very +literal sense to build; their many charming cottages now stretch along +the shore of the Bay that looks across to Cap à l'Aigle. + +[Illustration: VIEW ACROSS MURRAY BAY FROM THE CAP À L'AIGLE SHORE + +(The farther point: Cap aux Oies, the nearer Pointe au Pic)] + +[Footnote 1: Exact information in regard to the brothers Hazeur, who +have a place in this story merely because they held the seigniory of +Malbaie, may be found in articles by Mgr. H. Têtu, in the _Bulletin des +Recherches Historiques_ (Lévis, Quebec) for August, 1907, and the +following numbers. They were the Canon Joseph Thierry Hazeur, born in +1680, and Pierre Hazeur de L'Orme, born in 1682, both apparently at +Quebec. The younger brother took the name de L'Orme from his mother's +family. He was for many years the representative in France of the +Chapter of the Cathedral at Quebec, which held, from the Pope and the +King, four or five abbeys in France. His copious letters published by +Mgr. Têtu illustrate with some vividness details of the ecclesiastical +life of the time. For several years after the British conquest of Canada +the Quebec Chapter continued to receive the revenues of the Abbey of +Meaubec. The elder Hazeur, less able than his brother, was Curé at Point +aux Trembles. An invalid, he spent his later years chiefly in Quebec.] + +[Footnote 2: Malcolm Fraser, an officer in the 78th Highlanders and +afterwards first seigneur of Mount Murray, one of the two seigniories +into which Malbaie was divided, was sent out on these ravaging +expeditions. Years after, some of Fraser's neighbours of French origin +rallied him on his capacity for devastation as shown at this time. See +Fraser's _Journal_, Appendix A, p. 253, and the _Mémoires_ of Philippe +Aubert de Gaspé, 1866, Ch. II.] + + + + +CHAPTER II + +THE TWO HIGHLAND SEIGNEURS AT MALBAIE + + Pitt's use of the Highlanders in the Seven Years' War.--The origin + of Fraser's Highlanders.--The career of Lord Lovat.--Lovat's son + Simon Fraser and other Frasers at Quebec.--Malcolm Fraser and John + Nairne, future seigneurs at Malbaie.--The Highlanders and Wolfe's + victory.--The Highlanders in the winter of 1759-60.--Malcolm Fraser + on Murray's defeat in April, 1760.--The return of Canadian + seigneurs to France.--General Murray buys Canadian + seigniories.--Nairne and Fraser at Malbaie.--Their grants from + Murray. + + +The great British fleet which has passed up beyond Malbaie to Quebec is +important for our tale. It carried men who have since become world +famous; not only Wolfe but Jervis, afterward Lord St. Vincent, Cook, the +great navigator, Guy Carleton, who saved Canada for Britain during the +American Revolution, and many others of lesser though still considerable +fame. But for Malbaie the most interesting men in that great array were +those connected with the 78th, or Fraser's, Highlanders. On the decks of +the British ships were hundreds of these brawny, bare-legged and kilted +sons of the north, speaking their native Gaelic, and on occasion +harangued by their officers in that tongue. A few years earlier many of +them had served under Prince Charles Stuart to overthrow, if possible, +King George II, and the house of Hanover; now they were fighting for +that King against their old allies the French. Unreal in truth had been +the rising in behalf of the Stuarts. Scotland had no grievances: she did +not wish to dissolve the union with England, and if the tyranny of any +royal house troubled her it was that of the Stuarts, alien from most +Scots in both religious and political thought. But when, in 1745, some +of the chieftains called out their clansmen, loyalty made these heed the +summons, though half-heartedly. The same devotion was now given to the +house of Hanover. Years earlier Duncan Forbes of Culloden, one of the +noblest and wisest Scots of his age, had urged Walpole to call the +Highlanders to fight Britain's battles. The hint was not then taken but +later, Pitt, the greatest war minister Britain has ever had, revived +Forbes's plan. Some Highland regiments were formed. The Highland dress +that had been proscribed after Culloden as the brand of treason was now +given its place in Britain's battle array: ever since it has played +there its creditable part. Wolfe called his Highland companions in arms +the most manly lot of officers he had ever seen. + +The Highland regiment that came with Wolfe to Quebec was known as +Fraser's Highlanders because recruited chiefly from that ancient and +powerful Scottish clan. In the rising of 1745 the Frasers had supported +the Stuart cause and they suffered when that cause was lost. In 1747 +the head of the clan, Simon Fraser, Lord Lovat, an old man of 80, +perished on the scaffold for his treason. The details of Lovat's career +are amazing. In one aspect he was a wild, half barbarous Highland +chieftain, in another one of the polished gentlemen and courtiers of his +time. He was devoured by the ambition to be the most powerful man in +Scotland. In that age others, more reputable than Fraser, found it wise +to stand well with both royal houses, but he surpassed them all in +tortuous treachery. In the rising of 1715 he was on the Whig side; in +1745 he was forced at last to come out openly for the Stuarts. For +neither side did he really care: he was merely serving his own ends. +Considering his deeds it is a wonder that he so long escaped the +scaffold. When he was a young man a certain Baroness Lovat stood in the +way of his own claims to be the heir to the title of Lovat; so he +offered to marry this lady's daughter and thus end the dispute. When his +advances were refused he determined to use force and seized Lady Lovat's +residence, Castle Dounie, only to find that the young lady had been +spirited away. He resolved on the spot to marry her mother who was in +the castle. She was a widow of thirty-four, he a man of thirty, so the +disparity of age was not great. Stories of what happened vary, but it is +said that in the dead of night a clergyman was brought to Lady Lovat's +chamber and she was forced to go through the form of marriage, the +bag-pipes playing in the next room to drown her cries. The lady was +connected with the great house of Atholl who warred on Fraser with fire +and sword. Outlawed, he escaped to the Continent to survive for half a +century of intrigue and treason. + +Though profligate, cruel, treacherous and avaricious, so smooth was +Lovat's address, so profound his knowledge of Scotland, and so strong +his hold upon his own clansmen, that he always remained a man to be +reckoned with. Since he served on the Hanoverian side in 1715 George I +granted a pardon for his many offences; for his treason in 1745 George +II let him go to the block. His last days in London were like those of a +dying saint. He wrote to his son Simon Fraser, who led Fraser's +Highlanders at Quebec in 1759, a beautiful spiritual letter. To the +Major of the Tower he said he was going to Heaven where, he added, "very +few Majors go." He was gay on his last morning:--"I hope to be in heaven +by one o'clock or I should not be so merry now,"--and expressed his pity +for those who "must continue to crawl a little longer in this evil +world." He took what he called an eternal farewell from some of those +about him: "we shall not meet again in the same place; I am sure of +that." He practised kneeling at the block so that he might do it with +dignity on the scaffold. A great crowd assembled to witness his +execution and a platform fell killing several people. "The more +mischief, the better sport," said Lord Lovat grimly, but he wondered +that so many should come to see the taking off of his "old grey head." +He carefully felt the edge of the executioner's axe to make sure that it +was sharp. + +No doubt there was a touch of madness in Lord Lovat but the Fraser clan +was devoted to him. By his treason all his honours and estates were +forfeited. At the time his heir, Simon Fraser, only twenty-one years +old, was a prisoner in the Castle of Edinburgh, attainted for high +treason. But so good was his conduct that in 1750 he received a pardon. +Then, a penniless man, he was called to the Scottish Bar. But another +career was in store for him. Some years later when Pitt formed his +design to use the Highlanders in the Seven Years' War he made Simon +Fraser Colonel of a battalion, to be raised on the forfeited estates of +his family and from the clan of which he was head. Success was +instantaneous. Within a few weeks Fraser was at the head of some 1500 +men. They wore the Highland dress, with a sporran of badger's or otter's +skin and carried musket and broadsword; some of them wore a dirk at +their own cost. Among the officers were no less than five Simon +Frasers,[3] three or four each of Alexander Frasers and John Frasers, +and a good many other Frasers, among them a young Ensign, Malcolm +Fraser, destined to rule one of the seigniories at Malbaie for more than +half a century. Other Scottish names also appear, Macnabs, Chisholms, +Macleans, and among them John Nairne who, like Malcolm Fraser, spent the +best part of his life at Malbaie. + +The head of the Nairne clan, a John Nairne, third Baron Nairne, had +fought for the Stuarts in 1745. He died an exile in France. Of how close +kin to him was the young Highland Officer, John Nairne, who settled +later at Malbaie, we do not know. His family was of course Jacobite. In +"Waverley" Sir Walter Scott mentions a Miss Nairne with whom he says he +was acquainted, and this lady appears to have been one of the sisters of +Captain John Nairne. In 1745, as the Highland army rushed into +Edinburgh, Miss Nairne was standing with some ladies on a balcony, when +a shot, discharged by accident from a Highlander's musket, grazed her +forehead. "Thank God," she said, "that the accident happened to me whose +principles are known; had it befallen a Whig [the name then identified +with the anti-Jacobite party] they would have said it was done on +purpose."[4] At Murray Bay there is still a miniature portrait of Prince +Charlie given it is said by himself to Miss Nairne. + +Before fighting under Wolfe John Nairne had followed the Dutch flag. +Just before the rising of 1745, when a youth of only 17, he, like a +great many others of his countrymen, is found serving in the well known +"Scots Brigade"; many years later at Malbaie, he tells in his letters, +of old companions in this service with well known Scottish names--Bruce, +Maclean, Seton, Hepburn, Campbell, Dunbar, Dundass, Graham, and so on. +In the pay of Holland Nairne remained for some nine years. He made, he +says, "long voyages" possibly to the Dutch possessions in the far East. +But he was glad of the chance to serve his own land which came when +Britain, embarked upon the Seven Years' War, was anxious to recall her +banished sons and to find soldiers, Scots or of any other nationality, +who would fight her battles. So John Nairne left the Dutch service to +join the 78th Highlanders and henceforth his loyalty to the house of +Hanover was never questioned. From the first, since Scotland offered +only a poor prospect of a career, Nairne may have thought of remaining +in the new world when the war should end. The Highlander of that day, +like the Irishman, found better chances abroad than at home. Unlike +Nairne, Malcolm Fraser, a younger man, had not seen foreign service. The +two met for the first time when, in 1757, they both joined the 78th +Highlanders. Soon they became fast friends and for nearly half a century +they were to live in the closest relations. + +Fraser's Highlanders had landed at Halifax in Nova Scotia in June, 1757. +Their dress seemed unsuited to both the severe winters and the hot +summers of North America and a change of costume was proposed; but +officers and men protested vehemently and no change was made. During the +campaigns in America the Highlanders boasted, not with entire truth as +we shall see, that they with their bare legs enjoyed better health than +those who wore breeches and warm clothing. At Louisbourg they did well. +At Quebec a Highland officer's knowledge of French proved a great boon. +When, in the darkness of the momentous morning of September 13th, 1759, +Wolfe's boats were drifting down with the tide close to the north shore +near Quebec, intending to land and scale the heights at what is now +Wolfe's Cove, a French sentry called out sharply from the bank, "_Qui +vive?_" A Highland officer, who had served in Holland, was able to reply +"_France!_" without betraying his nationality. + +"_A quel régiment?_" demanded the sentry. + +"_De la reine_," answered the Highlander, giving the name of a +well-known French regiment commanded by Bougainville; and then he added +in a low voice, "_Ne faites pas de bruit; ce sont les vivres_"--for a +convoy with provisions was expected by the French. The Highlanders were +at the forefront in the stiff climb up the heights which proved to be +Wolfe's master stroke. Malcolm Fraser has left his own account of that +morning's work. The troops, he says, had been in the boats since nine +o'clock on the previous night. At about twelve they had set out with a +falling tide and they landed just as day was breaking. The light +infantry struggled up the hill first, the French meanwhile firing on the +boats, killing and wounding some of the occupants; but "the main body of +our army soon got to the upper ground, after climbing a hill or rather a +precipice, of about three hundred yards, very steep and covered with +wood and brush." By ten the army was drawn up in order of battle,--"in a +masterly manner," John Nairne said later,--on the Plains of Abraham, the +bag-pipes of the Highlanders screaming a wild defiance to the foe. Then +followed that brief death grapple, fatal to the leader on each side. +Fraser and his Highlanders, we are told, rushed at the enemy with their +broadswords in such irresistible fury that they were driven with a +prodigious slaughter into the town. The Highlanders suffered as much +after the battle as in it, for General Murray led them to reconnoitre in +the direction of the General Hospital and a good many were shot by the +French from bushes and from houses in the suburbs of St. Louis and St. +John. To the French the Highlanders seemed especially ferocious, +possibly owing to the wild music of their pipes, their waving tartans, +their terrible broadswords, and perhaps, also, their partially naked +bodies. They were indeed christened "the savages of Europe." + +Not many days after Wolfe's victory the Highlanders marched into Quebec +with the victorious army. The French garrison was sent away to Europe, +the British fleet itself soon followed, and the conquerors, with General +Murray in command, settled down to face for the first time the rigours +of a winter at Quebec. The Highlanders suffered terribly. One suspects +that, in spite of their protests, the Highland costume was ill-suited to +meet the severity of the climate; and, in any case, the army was +ill-fed, ill-housed, and overworked. Malcolm Fraser kept a journal,[5] +but Nairne, the other future seigneur at Malbaie, the most methodical of +men, was less ready with the pen and appears to have made no chronicle +of those slow but momentous days. The bitter weather was the dread +enemy. Fraser tells how men on duty lost fingers and toes and some were +even deprived of speech and sensation in a few minutes through "the +incredible severity of the frost.... Our regiment in particular is in a +pitiful situation having no breeches. Nothing but the last necessity +obliged any man to go out of doors." Colonel Simon Fraser is, he adds, +doing his best to provide trousers. Pitying nuns observed the need and +soon busied themselves knitting long hose for the poor strangers. The +scurvy carried off a good many. In April, 1760, of 894 men in Fraser's +Highlanders not fewer than 580 were on the sick list and it was a wan +and woe-begone host that set itself grimly to the task of meeting the +assault on Quebec for which the French under Lévis had been preparing +throughout the winter. + +When it came on April 28th, 1760, the Highlanders were not wanting. +Instead of fighting behind Quebec's crazy walls Murray marched his men +out to the Plains of Abraham to meet the enemy in the open. On ground +half covered by snow, with here and there deep pools of water from the +heavy rain of the previous day, the two armies grappled in what was +sometimes a hand to hand conflict. Of the British one-third had come +from the hospital to take their places in the ranks. The proportion of +the Highlanders who did this was even greater; half of them rose on that +day from sick beds. It proved a dark day for Britain. Murray was +defeated, losing about one-third of his army on the field. Four of the +Highland officers were killed, twenty-three were wounded, among them +Colonel Simon Fraser himself. Malcolm Fraser was dangerously wounded; +but he tells us gleefully that within twenty days he was entirely cured. +Nairne seems to have gone through the fight without a hurt. It was +surely by a strange turn of fortune that men, some of whom fought +against George II in '45 and had been condemned as traitors, should +fifteen years later shed their blood like water for the same sovereign. +Malcolm Fraser was disposed to be critical of Murray's tactics. He ought +to have stood like a wall on the rising ground near Quebec, says Fraser; +but "his passion for glory getting the better of his reason he ordered +the army to march out and attack the enemy ... in a situation the most +desired by them and [that] ought to be avoided by us as the Canadians +and Savages could be used against us to the greatest advantage in their +beloved ... element, woods." Nearly half a century later when Malcolm +Fraser was giving advice to a young officer, Nairne's son, he advised +him not to be too critical of the actions of his superiors. The +confident young diarist of 1760 had meanwhile learned reserve. But he +was not alone among the Highlanders in his criticism of Murray. A Murray +led at Culloden in April, 1746, as at Quebec in April, 1760. Lieutenant +Charles Stewart was wounded in both battles; as he lay in Quebec +surrounded by brother officers he said, "From April battles and Murray +generals, Good Lord deliver me." It is to General Murray's credit that, +when the remark was repeated to him, he called on his subordinate to +express the hope for better luck next time. + +A little later Quebec was saved by the arrival of a British fleet and +the French fell back on Montreal. Murray followed them but the +Highlanders remained in garrison at Quebec, apparently because, with +half the officers and men invalided, they could make but a poor muster +for active campaigning. It thus happened that Nairne and Fraser did not +share the glory of being present at the fall of Montreal. There, on a +September day in 1760, the Governor of Canada, the Marquis de Vaudreuil, +handed over to General Amherst, the Commander-in-Chief in America of the +armies of Great Britain, the vast territory which he had ruled. It was +not certain, albeit the great Pitt was resolved what to do, that, when +the war ended, the country would not be handed back to France. The +French officers professed, indeed, to believe that a peace was imminent +by which France should save what she held in America. Meanwhile, +however, they and their regiments were to be sent to France. The few +residents at Malbaie whom Captain Gorham had spared, looking out across +the river in October, 1760, saw it dotted with the white sails of many +ships outward bound. Though they floated the British flag, their decks +were crowded with the soldiers of France now carried home by the +triumphant conqueror. + +But more than the soldiers went back to France. Rather than live under +the sway of the British, many civilians also left Canada, among them +some of the seigneurs of Canadian manors. Land was cheap in Canada and +it is not to be wondered at that young British officers, seeking their +fortune, should have thought of settling in the country. A hundred +years earlier French officers of the Carignan Regiment had abandoned +their military careers to become Canadian seigneurs. In the end John +Nairne and Malcolm Fraser took up this project most warmly and in their +plan to get land they had the support of their commanding officer, +General Murray. Murrays, Nairnes and Frasers had all fought on the +Jacobite side in 1745; and we know how the Scots hold together. + +[Illustration: GENERAL JAMES MURRAY] + +James Murray, son of a Scottish peer, Lord Elibank, was himself still a +young man of only a little more than thirty,--a high-spirited, brave, +generous and impulsive officer. His family played some considerable part +in the life of the time and they were always suspected of Jacobite +leanings. Murray's brother, Lord Elibank, was a leader among the +Scottish wits of his day. Dr. Johnson's famous quip against the Scots +when he defined oatmeal as a food in England for horses and in Scotland +for men was met by Elibank's neat retort: "And where will you find such +horses and such men?" Another brother, Alexander, was a forerunner of +John Wilkes the radical; the cry of "Murray and Liberty" was heard in +London long before that of "Wilkes and Liberty." A third brother, George +became an admiral. General James Murray sometimes described himself as a +soldier of fortune. He was certainly not rich. Yet now when many of the +Canadian seigneurs sold their manors, in some way Murray was able to +purchase half a dozen of these vast estates. He bought that of Lauzon +opposite Quebec on which now stands the town of Levis and half a dozen +villages. He bought St. Jean and Sans-Bruit (now Belmont), near Quebec, +Rivière du Loup and Madawaska, on the lower St. Lawrence, and Foucault +on Lake Champlain. + +To Nairne and Fraser, brave young Scots, who had done good service, +Murray was specially attracted. Nairne, though only a lieutenant, till +1761, when he purchased a captaincy, was his junior by but a few years; +Lieutenant Malcolm Fraser was three years younger than Nairne. The young +men were seeking their fortunes but since they had very little money to +buy estates, as Murray did, they could not expect to get land in the +more settled parts of the country. For them Malbaie was a promising +field and in September, 1761, they went down to have a look at it. The +property was vested in the government, for which Murray could act. It +was not wholly untrodden wilderness, for some land was cleared and a +good deal of live stock still remained. The houses too had not been +entirely destroyed by Gorham's men. The war had not yet ended. It was +still uncertain whether Britain would hold Canada. But, for the moment, +there was little to do. It was possible that in Canada further +opportunities of military service would not be wanting. As seigneurs in +Canada the young officers would retain rank as gentlemen and would not +sink to the social level of mere cultivators of the soil. The experience +too of founding settlements in the Canadian wilderness had +compensations. Good sport was always to be had. They could pay at least +annual visits to Quebec for a few weeks, and were, perhaps, hardly more +remote from the cultivated world than some of the chieftains in their +own Scottish Highlands. + +The survey of Malbaie must have proved satisfactory. It is true, as the +young officers said, that there was an over-abundance of "mountains and +morasses," with good land scattered only here and there. But in their +formal proposals to Murray they made this fact the plea for the grant of +a larger area. Nairne apparently had greater resources than Fraser and, +being now a captain, was his senior in rank. He asked for the more +important tract lying west of the little river at Malbaie and stretching +to the seigniory of Les Eboulements, Fraser for that lying east of the +river and stretching some eighteen miles along the St. Lawrence to the +Rivière Noire. The grants were to extend for three leagues into the +interior. They were to be held under seigniorial tenure but Nairne asked +for 3000 acres of freehold and Fraser for 2000. They thus close their +petition to Murray: "This [request], if his Excellency is pleased to +grant, will make the proposers extremely happy, and they shall forever +retain the most grateful remembrance of his bounty; and [they] hope his +Excellency will be pleased in the grant to allow them to give the lands +to be granted such a name as may perpetuate their sense of his great +kindness to them." They got what they asked for. It may indeed be +doubted whether Murray had any right to allot huge areas of land in a +country which had not yet been ceded finally to Great Britain, but any +defects of title in this respect were corrected long after by new grants +under the great seal. As it was, Murray wrote on a sheet of ordinary +foolscap, still preserved at Murray Bay, a brief deed of the land[6] +and, behold, the two young officers have become landed proprietors! To +their request for permission to use Murray's name, in grateful +remembrance of his kindness, he also assented. Nairne's seigniory was to +be called Murray's Bay and Fraser's Mount Murray. The grants were made +because "it is a national advantage and tends to promote the cultivation +of lands within the province to encourage His Majesty's natural-born +subjects settling within the same"; and the consideration was "the +faithful services" rendered by the two officers. + +A good deal of stock and farm implements remained at Malbaie and this +the new proprietors arranged to buy, giving in payment their promissory +notes, Nairne's for £85, 6s. 8d., currency and Fraser, who got only +one-third, his for £42, 13s. 4d. They seem to have had a good deal for +their money. There were a score and a half or so of cattle, four or five +horses, (one of them twenty-two years old), twenty sheep, fourteen pigs, +besides chickens and other living creatures. In addition there were +waggons and other farm appliances, most of them probably old and of +little use, though they must have helped to tide over the first +difficult days when everything would have to be provided. + +On getting his grant Nairne retired from the army on half pay, but +Fraser remained on active service for many years still. Thus Nairne was +the more continuously resident at Murray Bay and in its development he +played the greater part. Fraser's interests were divided, not only +between Murray Bay and the army, but also between Murray Bay and another +seigniory which he secured on the south side of the river at Rivière du +Loup and known as Fraserville. For us therefore the interest at Murray +Bay now centres chiefly in Nairne and his family. + +[Footnote 3: The name Simon Fraser appears with credit more than once in +Canadian history. It was a Simon Fraser who crossed the Rocky Mountains +and first followed for its whole course the Fraser River named after +him.] + +[Footnote 4: Waverley, Chapter II.] + +[Footnote 5: See Appendix A., p. 249. "Journal of Malcolm Fraser, First +Seigneur of Mount Murray, Malbaie."] + +[Footnote 6: See copy of the grant in Appendix B., p. 271.] + + + + +CHAPTER III + +JOHN NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + + Colonel Nairne's portrait.--His letters.--The first Scottish + settlers at Malbaie.--Nairne's finance.--His tasks.--The curé's + work.--The Scottish settlers and their French wives.--The Church + and Education.--Nairne's efforts to make Malbaie Protestant.--His + war on idleness.--The character of the habitant.--Fishing at + Malbaie.--Trade at Malbaie.--Farming at Malbaie.--Nairne's + marriage.--Career and death in India of Robert Nairne.--The Quebec + Act and its consequences for the habitant. + + +In the dining room of the Manor House at Murray Bay Nairne's portrait +still hangs. It was painted, probably in Scotland, when he was an old +man, by an artist, to me unknown. The face is refined, showing +kindliness and gentleness in the lines of the mouth, and revealing the +"friendly honest man" that he aspired to be. His nose is big and in +spite of the prevailing gentleness of demeanour the thin lips, pressed +together, indicate some vigour of character. He has the watery eye of +old age and this takes away somewhat from the impression of energy. It +is not a clever face but honest, rather sad, and unmistakeably Scottish +in type. Nairne wears the red coat of the British officer and a wig in +the fashion of the time. The portrait might be one of a frequenter of +court functions in London rather than that of a hardy pioneer at Murray +Bay, who had carried on a stern battle with the wilderness. + +Nairne was a good letter writer. To his kin in Scotland he sent from the +beginning voluminous annual epistles. They are not such as we now write, +hurriedly scratched off in a few minutes. With abundant time at his +disposal Nairne could write what must have occupied many days. When +written, the letters were sometimes copied in a book almost as large as +an office ledger. It is well that this was done, for in this book is +preserved almost the sole record of the life at Murray Bay of a century +and a half ago. The pages are still fresh and the handwriting, while not +that of one much accustomed to use the pen, is clear and vigorous. The +zeal for copying letters was intermittent. There are gaps, covering many +years. Then, for a time, not only the letters sent, but those received, +are copied into the book. In the long winter evenings there was not much +to do. Malcolm Fraser, it is true, lived just across the river at the +neighbouring manor house. But Malcolm was more usually away than not. +Besides, as one grows older, there is no place like one's own fireside +of a winter evening. So our good seigneur read and dozed and wrote and +we are grateful that he has told us so much about past days. + +Nairne's first visit to Malbaie was, as we have seen, in the autumn of +1761, when he took possession of his seigniory. Not until the following +year was the formal grant made by Murray. Long afterwards, in 1798, +writing to a friend, Hepburn, in Scotland, Nairne recalled his arrival +at his future home. "I came here first in 1761 with five soldiers [alas, +we do not know their names!] and procured some Canadian servants. One +small house contained us all for several years and [we] were separated +from every other people for about eighteen miles without any road." He +contrasts this with what he sees about him at the time of writing--a +parish with more than five hundred inhabitants, with one hundred men +capable of bearing arms, grist mills, fisheries, good houses and barns, +fertile fields, a priest, a chapel, and so on. The five soldiers of whom +Nairne speaks were no doubt men of the 78th Highlanders and ancestors of +a goodly portion of the population of Malbaie at the present time. +Perhaps some of them had fought at Culloden; certainly all fought at +Louisbourg and Quebec. + +In the first days at Murray Bay Nairne was in debt. In 1761, probably to +purchase his captaincy, he had incurred a considerable obligation to his +friend General Murray; where Murray got £400 to lend him is a mystery, +for he was himself always pressed for funds. With everything to do at +Murray Bay, mills to be built, roads to be opened, a manor house to be +constructed, it was not easy to get together any money; for years the +debt hung like a mill-stone round Nairne's neck. But he had always a +certain, if small, revenue in his half pay and, in time, he acquired, +chiefly by inheritance, what was, for that period in Canada, a +considerable fortune. In 1766, when Nairne was in Scotland, General +Murray, who had himself just arrived from Canada, wrote urgently to ask +for payment. Murray owed to a Mr. Ross £8,000 and could not borrow one +shilling in England on his estates in Canada; so he said "delay will be +a very terrible disappointment to me." But this disappointment he had to +bear. In 1770 the debt was still unpaid and may have remained so for +some years longer. Happily the friendship between the former comrades +was not impaired by their financial relations. Murray promised to put +Nairne in the way of being "very comfortable and easy" in Canada, if he +would follow his advice, but nothing came of his offer. For some years +after 1761 Nairne thought of returning to Scotland, whither ties of kin +drew him strongly. But his father's death in 1766 or 1767 helped to +weaken these ties. In any case Scotland offered no career and he must do +something to pay the debt to Murray and to provide for himself. + +Nairne's chief task as seigneur was to put settlers on his huge tract. +The seigneur, indeed, discharged functions similar to those of a modern +colonization company, but with differences that in some respects favour +the older system. Now-a-days the occupier buys the land and the +colonization company gets the best possible price for what it has to +sell; it can hold for a rise in value and, if it likes, can refuse to +sell at all. Nairne had no such powers. Under the law, if a reputable +person applied for land, he must let him have it. Settlers required no +capital to buy their land, and, as long as they paid their merely +nominal rent, they could not be disturbed in their holdings. The rent +amounted to about one cent an acre, and some twenty cents or a live +capon for each of the two or three arpents of frontage which a farm +would have. The rent charge was uniform and depended not upon the +quality of the land or upon the individual seigneur but upon what was +usual in the district; moreover, under the French law, no matter how +valuable the land became, the rent could not be increased and, though so +trifling, it was rarely required until the settler's farm had begun to +be productive. Sometimes in a single year Nairne would put as many as +twenty brawny young fellows on his land to hew out homes for themselves. +Each of them got a tract of about one hundred acres and, as the annual +rental received for a dozen farms would be hardly more than twenty +dollars, the seigneur reaped no great profit from his tenants. It was +only when a tenant sold a holding, that the seigneur secured any +considerable sum. To him then went one-twelfth of the price. The other +chief source of profit, as settlement increased, was from the +seigneur's mill. To it all the occupiers of his land must bring their +grain and pay a fixed charge for its grinding. In scattered settlements +the mill brought little profit and was a source of expense rather than +of income. But, as population increased, this "_droit de banalité_" +became valuable. The mill at Malbaie was, in time, very prosperous. + +In Canada the seigneur was not the oppressor of his people but rather +their watchful guardian. He planned roads and other improvements, +checked abuses, and enforced justice. At his side stood, usually, the +priest. The moment a parish was established a curé was entitled to the +tithe; near every manor house, the village church was sure to spring up. +Even when, as at Malbaie, the priest and the seigneur were not of the +same faith they were often fast friends. Nairne's relations were good +with the neighbouring curé, when, at length, Malbaie had a resident +priest. Each village would thus usually have at least two men of some +culture working together for its spiritual and temporal interests. Both +remained in touch with the outside world; the priest with his bishop at +Quebec, the seigneur with the representative there of the sovereign. +Upon each change of governor Nairne was required to appear at Quebec to +render fealty and homage. With head uncovered and wearing neither sword +nor spur he must kneel before the governor, and take oath on the +Gospels to be faithful to the king, to be party to nothing against his +interests, to perform all the duties required by the terms of his +holding, and, especially, to appear in arms to defend the province if +attacked. We find Nairne excused by General Haldimand in 1781 from +discharging this ceremony, but only because he was away on active +service. + +When Nairne settled at Murray Bay he was unmarried and so, no doubt, +were the soldiers he brought with him. Only after five or six years did +he himself find a wife but we may be sure that his men did not wait so +long. What more natural than that they should marry the French Canadian +servants of whom Nairne speaks? A visitor at Murray Bay is struck with +names like McNicol, Harvey, Blackburn, McLean, and one or two others +that have a decidedly North British ring. Some, if not all, are names of +one or other of the half dozen soldiers who settled at Murray Bay in +Nairne's time. There was no disbanding there of a regiment, as tradition +has it. In time the 78th Highlanders were disbanded, but certainly not +at Murray Bay, and, though hundreds of them remained in Canada, only a +few individual soldiers came to Nairne's settlement. Already when he +arrived French Canadians were there and from the first the community was +prevailingly French and Catholic. In 1784 when joined with Les +Eboulements and Isle aux Coudres under a single priest Malbaie already +had 65 communicants. As likely as not some even of the Highlanders were +Catholics. In any case their children became such and spoke French, the +tongue of their mothers; even Nairne's own children spoke only French +until they went to Quebec to school. + +When, from time to time, a missionary priest visited the place he +baptized children of Catholic and Protestant alike, including even the +children of the Protestant family in the manor house. The only religious +services that the people ever shared in were those of the Roman Catholic +Church. Nairne would have wished it otherwise. He held sturdy Protestant +views, and wished to bring in Protestant settlers. On one or more of his +visits to Scotland he made efforts to induce Scots to move to Canada. +But he met with no great success. A Scottish friend, Gilchrist, who had +visited Nairne at Murray Bay, writes, in 1775, to express hope that he +will not encourage French settlers who will rob him, who have +"disingenuous, lying, cheating, detestable dispositions," and are the +"banes of society." He adds, "I am glad you give me reason to believe +you are to carry over some industrious honest people from hence with +you. I am convinced 'twere easy by introducing a few such [to bring +about that] the dupes to the most foolish and absurd religion now in the +world might be warmed out and your quiet as well as interest established +from Point au Pique to the Lake."[7] The Roman Catholic faith had more +vitality than Nairne's correspondent supposed. It was Protestantism that +should in time be "warmed out" of Murray Bay. + +To prevent this Nairne did what he could; for a long time he entertained +hopes not only that the Protestants at Murray Bay might be held to their +faith but also that the Roman Catholics would be led into the Protestant +fold. His chief complaint against the Roman Catholic Church was in +regard to education. There was woeful ignorance. Nairne was in command +of the local militia and he found that officers of militia, and even a +neighbouring seigneur, could not read. When Roman Catholic services were +held at Murray Bay, as they were regularly before he died, the tongue +was one that the people did not understand. At the services there was +nothing "but a few lighted candles, in defyance of the sun, and the +priest singing and reading Latin or Greek.... None of us understands a +word." He complains of "the greatest deficiency in preaching sentiments +of morality and virtue." Indeed, very few of the priests could preach or +say anything in public beyond the Latin mass. Nairne tried to secure +better means of educating his people. Probably earlier also, but +certainly in 1791, he was writing to the Anglican Bishop of Quebec to +help him to do something. He lives, he says, in "the most Northerly and, +I believe, the poorest parish on the Continent of America." The people +cannot read and have no literary amusement. Their idle days they spend +in drunkenness and debauchery and he wishes something done for them. Ten +years later Nairne is returning to the charge. There are five Protestant +families in the neighbourhood. They cannot even be baptized except by +the curé. They cannot get any Protestant instruction; so the Protestant +children are reared Roman Catholics. Nairne wished to have a Protestant +clergyman established at Murray Bay; he could make that place his +headquarters and carry on missionary work in the neighbouring parishes. +But the five Protestant families at Murray Bay soon became three, for +Nairne says, in 1801, that his and Colonel Fraser's families and one +other man, an Englishman, are the only remaining Protestants. He and +Fraser, he adds, are growing old and, in any case, it was doubtful +whether the Englishman would attend service. + +Yet Nairne still begged for a Protestant missionary. He desired most of +all a free school. The teacher should be, he says, French but able also +to preach in English; there was now no school at Murray Bay; a free +school and a church system which would release the people from paying +tithes could work wonders and, probably, most of the people would soon +become Protestants. Knowing the tenacity with which the French +Canadians have clung to their faith, it seems hardly likely that +Nairne's dreams would have been realized. At any rate nothing was done. +At that time there were hardly more than a dozen Anglican clergymen in +all Canada and the Bishop of Quebec had no one to spare to look after +the few scattered sheep at Murray Bay. On the other hand the rival +Church did not forget her own. Long before the British conquest +occasional services had been held at Malbaie and these were continued, +with some regularity, until a resident priest came in 1797. The visiting +priests worked hard. They were, Nairne says, "industrious in private to +confess the people, especially the women, which branch of their duty is +deemed most sacred and necessary." Against this tremendous power of the +confessional, Protestantism had nothing that could be called an opposing +influence. When a Protestant died he might not, of course, be buried in +the Roman Catholic burial ground. For these outcast dead Nairne set +aside a plot near his own house, where, still, under a little clump of +trees, their bones lie, neglected and forgotten. Not more than half a +dozen Protestants were ever buried there and this shows that even the +Protestant pioneers were few in number; hardly one of their children +remained outside the Roman Church. + +Nairne thought the Canadians not too prone to industry and he deplored +the multitude of religious holidays that gave an excuse for idleness. +In a year there were not less than forty, in addition to Sundays, and on +some of the holidays, such as that of the patron saint of the parish, +there were scenes of great disorder. Nairne wrote on the subject to the +Roman Catholic Bishop of Quebec asking him to take steps to ensure that +the people might come to think it not sinful but virtuous to work for +six days in the week. The Bishop promised consideration of the matter. +Already it had been under debate and in the end the Bishop gave orders +that labour might continue on most of the Church's festivals; that of +the patron saint of the parish was in time abolished. Nairne thus helped +to bring about a considerable industrial reform. But beyond this he +achieved little. + +The French Canadians, who occupied his vacant acres, have shown both a +marvellous tenacity for their own customs and also a fecundity that has +enabled people, numbering 60,000 at the time of the British conquest, to +multiply now to some 2,500,000, scattered over the United States and +Canada. To govern them has never been an easy problem. Nairne says that +the French officer, Bougainville, who had known the Canadians in many +campaigns, called them at Murray's table a brave and submissive people; +he thought they needed the strong hand of authority and added that he +was sure the British method of government would soon spoil them. Under +the French régime they had had no gleam of political liberty. For twenty +years before the conquest France had exacted from them the fullest +possible measure of military service. The British ended this and brought +liberty. Its growth is sometimes so rapid as to be noxious, and, no +doubt, some of those who came to Nairne's domain gave him much trouble. +"No people," Nairne said of them, "stand more in awe of punishment when +convinced that there is power to inflict it, as none are so easily +spoiled as to be mutinous by indulgences." Some of them showed striking +intelligence: in 1784 we find Nairne recommending for appointment as +Notary one Malteste (no doubt the well-known name Maltais is a later +form) as a "remarkable honest, well-behaved countryman with more +education than is commonly to be found with one in his station." The +dwellers at Malbaie were for the most part a quiet people entirely +untouched by the movements of the outside world. "Nothing here," wrote +Nairne in 1798, "is considered of importance but producing food to +satisfy craving Stomachs, which the people of this cold and healthy +country remarkably possess, and to feed numbers of children.... They +have no other ambition or consideration whatever but simply to procure +food and raiment for themselves and their numerous families." + +They had a very clear idea of their rights. Nairne's grant conferred +upon him those of fishing and hunting. But the inhabitants declared that +when land was once granted, the seigneur lost all control over the +adjoining waters. Nairne wished, for instance, to prohibit the spearing +of salmon at night by the Canadians, with the aid of torches or +lanterns. But they had never been hampered by such restrictions and, +when Nairne tried to check them, they said that they would not be +hindered. It was in vain that he said "I had rather have no power at all +and no seigneurie at all [than] not to be able to keep up the rights of +it." When, in 1797, he ordered one Joseph Villeneuve to cease the +"flambeau" fishing at night, the fellow "roared and bellowed" and set +him at defiance; no less than twenty companions joined him in the +fishing. They would acknowledge no law nor restraint and seem to have +had _force majeure_ on their side. It was not until long after that the +legislature at Quebec passed strict laws regulating the modes of +fishing. + +Whatever the limitations on the seigneur's authority he had the +undoubted right of control over fishing in rivers and lakes until the +adjacent lands were conceded to occupiers. It was important, therefore, +not to grant lands which carried with them the best fishing and Nairne's +ardent friend Gilchrist kept exhorting him from Scotland on this point. +"There is no place ... I would so willingly and happily pass life in," +he wrote, in 1775, "as in your Neighbourhood and often have I been +seized with the memory of your easy and uncontrolled way of rising, +lying, dancing, drinking, &c., at your habitation.... One hope ... I +wish to be well founded and that is that your Stewart, Factor or +Attorney, has not conceded any lands with the River in front from the +Rapides du Vieux Moulin. If otherwise, you have lost more than the +profits [which] all above Brassar's will yield in our lifetime. The +fishing in that part of the River is alone worth crossing the Atlantic." + +Over trade Nairne and Fraser tried to exercise some real control. Their +grants gave them no right to trade with the Indians and in reality no +authority over trade. But they were guardians of the law and took steps +to check traders from violating it. One Brassard, who lived up the +Murray River, seems to have been a frequent offender. It was easy to +debauch the Indians with drink and then to get their furs for very +little and the seigneurs needed always to be alert. In 1778 we find +Malcolm Fraser making with one Hugh Blackburn a bargain which outlines +what the seigneurs tried to do in regard to trade. Blackburn binds +himself in the sum of £200 to obey certain restrictions: he will not +attempt to debauch the Indians belonging to the King's Posts; in no +circumstances will he sell them liquor; nor will he sell liquor on +credit to anyone. He will obey the lawful orders of Nairne and Fraser +relative to the carrying on of his trade; he will pay his debts, and +will make others pay what they owe him, refusing them credit if accounts +are not paid within six months. In consideration of these pledges by +Blackburn Fraser guarantees his credit with the Quebec merchants. The +difficulty in regard to trade with the Indians settled itself by the +tragic remedy of their gradual extinction. In 1800 Nairne says that the +Micmacs, once a great nuisance, are now rarely seen. + +Nairne was a good farmer and his letters contain many references to +farming operations. At Murray Bay, he says, plowing goes on for seven +months in the year, from the middle of April to the middle of November. +But the Canadians do not plough well; they do not understand how to +preserve the crops when cut; and, on the whole, are backward in +agriculture. He himself preserved for a domain more land than he could +ever get cleared, for this clearing was heavy work. Some of the soil at +Murray Bay is very good. Gilchrist writes indeed to say that he has been +talking in Scotland about Nairne's land. "On my mentioning that you had +lime, without digging for it, it was acknowledged that you possessed all +the advantages possible and that anything might be done with ground such +as yours which is dry; and I verily believe would you thoroughly lime +your land you may keep it in crops as long as you please and have +prodigious returns." Good farming, he says, Nairne may have and he +should preserve good fishing; then Murray Bay will be perfect. "If I +have the pleasure of seeing your sisters, I'll represent Mal Bay as the +counterpart of Paradise before the fall." He adds some local +characterizations. "Catish will do for Eve, La Grange for Adam, and +Dufour for the Devil." + +Nairne was married in 1766 to Christiana Emery. Of her history I know +nothing, except that she was born in Edinburgh and married in Canada. +Soon after marriage Nairne paid a long visit to Scotland and there in +1767 the freedom of the borough of Sterling was conferred upon him. Mrs. +Nairne must have been considerably younger than her husband, for though +he lived to ripe old age, she survived him by twenty-six years, dying at +Murray Bay in 1828. Whether she brought any dowry I do not know; Nairne +certainly had had in mind the improvement of his position by marrying. +Nine children were born to them but three died in childhood of an +epidemic fever that broke out at Murray Bay in 1773 while Nairne was in +Scotland. A fourth child, Anne, died of consumption. Five children lived +to grow up--three daughters and two sons. + +Canada seemed so remote that it was not easy for Nairne to keep in touch +with his kin. The scattering of families, one of the penalties Imperial +Britain, with a world wide domain, imposes upon her sons, had taken +Nairne's brother Robert to India. At a time only ten years later than +Clive's great victory of Plassey, Britain's grasp on the country was, as +yet, by no means certain and India was amazingly remote; five years +usually elapsed between the sending of a letter to India from Canada and +the receipt of a reply! On January 5th, 1770, Robert Nairne writes from +Marlborough, India, acknowledging a letter from his brother John, only +recently received, dated April 21, 1767. The brothers discuss family +news and family plans, their old father's health, the desirability of +settling down at home in Scotland, the life each is living, remote from +that home. Though an officer, Robert engaged in trade and made some +money. "The Company's pay is hardly subsistence," he says, "and here we +have not, as on t'other side of India the spoils of plundered provinces +to grow fat on. I keep my health very well and if I want the +satisfaction, I am also free from many Anxietys, people are subject to +who are more in the glare of life." He was in a retired place, where +there were few people and perennial summer, with "no variety of seasons +nor of anything else." Time passes insensibly, he says; "in India years +are like months in Europe ... I write, read, walk and go in company the +same round nearly throughout the year. Here we have little company; yet +everyone wants to go to out settlements where they are quite alone. I +cannot account for it. Mal Bay is your out settlement. Do you like that +as well as Quebec?" + +Robert Nairne was something of a philosopher. "Have you ever so much +philosophy," he writes to the seigneur of Murray Bay in 1767, "as to +think everything that happens is for the best? I am so far of that mind +that content and discontent I think arises [_sic_] rather from the cast +of our own thoughts than from outward accidents and that there is nearly +an equal distribution of the means of happiness to all men, and that +they are the happiest that improve their means the most." He felt the +weariness of exile, the Scot's longing for his own land. "Certainly to a +person of a right tone of mind if there are enjoyments in life, it must +be in our own country amongst our friends and relations. With such +conditions the bare necessaries of life are better than riches without +them.... Death is but a limited absence and you and I are much in that +state with regard to our friends at home." + +It was not long before Robert Nairne's letters ceased altogether. In +1776, John Nairne received at Murray Bay the sad news that, in November +or December, 1774, his brother had been killed in a petty expedition +against some local tribesmen. A native chieftain had murdered, cooked +and eaten a rival who was friendly to the East India Company and Robert +Nairne with some natives, and only three Europeans, went up country, +through woods and bogs, to seize the offender. When there was fighting +his natives fled, and he was shot through the body. It was a pity, says +John Nairne's correspondent, Hepburn, to lose his life "in so silly a +manner." He would soon have been governor of Bencoolen and was in a way +to make "a great figure in life." Of his fortune of £6,000 John Nairne +received a part. Twenty-five years after his brother's death Nairne was +to get at Murray Bay similar news of the loss of his own son in distant +India. It has levied a heavy tribute of Britain's best blood. + +In 1774 Nairne again revisited Scotland. Though no politician, he must +have heard much about the Quebec Act, then before the Imperial +Parliament. The Governor of Canada, Sir Guy Carleton, after careful +consideration of the whole question, had reached the conclusion, not +belied by subsequent history, as far as the Province of Quebec is +concerned, that Canada would always be French and that, with some slight +modifications, the French system found there by Britain should be given +final and legal status under British supremacy. So the Quebec Act was +passed in 1774. While the British criminal law was introduced, the +French civil law, including the land system under which Nairne held +Murray Bay, was left unchanged. The Bill gave the Church the same +privileged position that it had enjoyed under Catholic sovereigns. The +tithe could be collected by legal process; taxation for church purposes +voted by the parochial authority called the _fabrique_ was as compulsory +as civil taxes, unless the person taxed declared that he was not a Roman +Catholic; and the whole ecclesiastical system of New France was +supported and encouraged. The Bill caused much irritation in Protestant +New England, which saw some malicious design in the establishment of +Roman Catholicism on its borders. The Continental Congress of 1775 +denounced the Quebec Act, and even the Declaration of Independence has +something to say about it. + +It is obvious that Nairne disliked the Bill. His irrepressible friend, +Gilchrist, wrote giving a picture of its probable dire social results, +upsetting all domestic relations between the two races. The Bill, says +Gilchrist, "is the most pernicious [that] could have been devised. Judge +of the Fêtes now that the fools have got the sanction of the British +Parliament to their beggaring principles. It is not clear that your +Protestant servants will [even] be allowed to work upon their [the Roman +Catholic] idle days. What would you and I think on being told by these +black rascals [the priests are meant of course] that our people, I mean +Protestants, durst not obey our orders without a dispensation from +them?" + +The social consequences of the Quebec Act did not prove as revolutionary +as Nairne's animated correspondent feared. Less than is usually supposed +did the habitant like it since it placed him again under the priest's +and the seigneur's authority, suspended since the British conquest. To +the English colonies it added one to other causes of friction that boded +trouble to the British Empire. In the previous year the people of Boston +had defied Britain, by throwing into their harbour cargoes of tea upon +which the owners proposed to pay a hated duty, levied by outside +authority. The Quebec Act brought a final rupture a step nearer and at +last there was open war. "The colonists have brought things to a crisis +now, indeed;" wrote Gilchrist; "the consequences must be dreadful to +them soon and I am afraid in the end to our country." To Great Britain +indeed disastrous they were to be and soon the seigneur of Murray Bay +was busy with his share in preparing for the conflict. + +[Footnote 7: The Lake is no doubt Lake Nairne, the present Grand Lac.] + + + + +CHAPTER IV + +JOHN NAIRNE IN THE AMERICAN REVOLUTION + + Nairne's work among the French Canadians.--He becomes Major of the + Royal Highland Emigrants.--Arnold's march through the wilderness to + Quebec.--Quebec during the Siege, 1775-76.--The habitants and the + Americans.--Montgomery's plans.--The assault on December 31st, + 1775.--Malcolm Fraser gives the alarm in Quebec.--Montgomery's + death.--Arnold's attack.--Nairne's heroism.--Arnold's failure.--The + American fire-ship.--The arrival of a British fleet.--The retreat + of the Americans.--Nairne's later service in the War.--Isle aux + Noix and Carleton Island.--Sir John Johnson and the desolation of + New York.--Nairne and the American prisoners at Murray Bay.--Their + escape and capture.--Nairne and the Loyalists.--The end of the + War.--Nairne's retirement to Murray Bay. + + +When war with the revolted colonies grew imminent, it was obvious that a +man of Nairne's experience in military matters would soon be needed. One +aim of the government was to keep the French Canadians quiet by +disarming their prejudices and impressing upon them their duty to George +III. From Quebec, on July 13th, 1775, Nairne was given instructions to +undertake this work for his district. Self-control and cool +persuasiveness fitted him for his task, he was told; his work would be +to visit all the parishes on the north shore, with the aim of winning +the loyal support of the French Canadians during the coming struggle. +Though fifteen years of tranquility under the mild British sway had made +the habitants prosperous and averse to war, it was still possible to get +from them useful military service, under the leadership of British +officers. Nairne was to tell them that the Americans would borrow their +dollars, take their provisions, pay for them only in worthless letters +of credit upon the Congress, and even make free with their lands. He was +to show, also, how bitterly the Protestant English colonies hated the +Roman Catholic faith of the Canadians. A British fleet, he was to add, +would soon arrive and, if the Canadians joined the revolt, the second +British conquest would be shorter and not quite so gentle as the first; +for "a fair and open enemy is a different thing from a rebel and a +traitor." + +Fifteen years earlier the Canadians had borne a heavy part in defending +their country against the British assailant; now they were to fight in +his interests. Whenever possible Nairne was to employ the same old +Captains of militia who had fought the battles of France against the +British; he was to make a roll of those fit to bear arms, and to report +the number of discharged soldiers in his district. To him were entrusted +commissions for Captains whom he might select; the inferior officers he +might also name. The Church aided his work as much as possible, the +Vicar-General sending to the priests instructions to this effect. + +On taking up his task Nairne found that at Murray Bay there were +thirty-two men between the ages of 16 and 55. When summoned to meet him +they were respectful, but showed fear of having to serve in the army and +pleaded that they were only a new settlement. Had there been, as is so +generally supposed, many disbanded soldiers among them we should have +had a different tale but, already, in 1775, most of the people at Murray +Bay were French. Neither they nor their neighbours showed any zeal for +the upholding of British rule in Canada. At Les Eboulements and Baie St. +Paul, whither Nairne went, the inhabitants were respectful, as at Murray +Bay, but also objected to military service. At Isle aux Coudres they +disregarded Nairne's summons to meet him, while at St. Anne de Beaupré +they made open manifestations of hostility. + +In the actual fighting, now imminent, Nairne was eager to take part, +and, on August 12th, he wrote to Sir Guy Carleton offering himself for +any service and applying for a vacant captaincy. On the 9th of September +he received an urgent summons to Quebec, and, from that time, for six or +seven years, he was engaged in the great fratricidal struggle. + +Again, in a time of crisis, Great Britain made special use of the +Highlanders. Many of those who had served during the conquest of Canada +had become settlers in the New World. Now at the call to arms some of +them--between one and two hundred--rallied again to fight Britain's +battles. They were formed into a regiment known as the Royal Highland +Emigrants. It was not a regular corps but was organized for this special +campaign only. Nairne's rank in the regular army was that of Captain; +now he was given the duty of Major, though this promotion was not yet +permanent. Malcolm Fraser served in the same corps as Captain and +Paymaster. The commanding officer, Colonel Allan McLean, was brave and +indefatigable and he and his Highlanders played a creditable part in the +work of saving Canada for Britain. + +When the American colonies saw that the war was inevitable they saw too +that Quebec was the key of the situation. Washington himself declared +that in favour of the holders of Quebec would the balance turn in the +great conflict. From the outset there was an eager desire to attack the +Canadian capital. Washington believed--with some truth, indeed,--that +its defences were ridiculous. He thought, too, that the Governor, Sir +Guy Carleton, had no money to buy even provisions, that the Canadians +were eager to throw off the yoke of Great Britain and to co-operate with +the revolted colonies, and that some even of the few regulars to be +found in Quebec would join the colonial army. To take Quebec seemed, +therefore, comparatively easy, and the task was undertaken by a man with +a sinister name for posterity as a traitor to the young republic, but a +vigorous and able officer,--Colonel Benedict Arnold. Wolfe's rôle Arnold +essayed to play and Wolfe's fame he fondly hoped would be his. + +A fundamental difference existed, however, between Arnold's task and +that of Wolfe. Wolfe's army had been carried to Quebec in ships; +Arnold's was to advance by land. He chose the shortest route to Quebec +from the New England seaboard. It lay through the untrodden wilderness +and its difficulties were terrible. Half of it was up the Kennebec river +along whose shallow upper reaches the men would have to drag their boats +on chill autumn days in water sometimes to their waists; then they must +take them over the steep watershed dividing the waters flowing northward +to the St. Lawrence from those flowing southward to the Atlantic. Even +when they embarked on the upper waters of the Chaudière, which flows +into the St. Lawrence near Quebec, the hardships were killing. The +numerous rapids and falls on that swift and turbulent river would wreck +their boats. At the time no fleet defended Quebec. If, instead of +advancing by this land route, the Americans had been able to bring, by +sea, an adequate force as Wolfe had done, the later history of Canada +might indeed have been different. + +Arnold set out in the middle of September with 1100 or 1200 men,--"the +very flower of the colonial youth" they have been called. Many were +hardy frontier men trained in Indian wars, who knew well the +difficulties of the wilderness. But now they were face to face with +something more difficult than they had ever before encountered. When one +Parson Emerson had committed the enterprise to the divine care in a +prayer that, tradition says, lasted for one hour and three-quarters, the +army began its struggle across the dreadful three hundred miles of +forest. The swollen rivers swept away much ammunition and food, until +upon the army settled down the horror of starvation. The boats proved to +be badly built; their crews were always wet and shivering. At night the +men had sometimes to gather on a narrow footing of dry land in the midst +of a swamp and huddled over a fire that at any moment rain might +extinguish. The cold became terrible. Many lay down by the trail to die. +When the journey was half over, Colonel Enos, deeming it useless to lead +the force farther amid such conditions, turned back. With him went some +hundreds of men; but Arnold held on grimly. He pushed ahead to get +succour for his starving force from the Canadian settlements near +Quebec. With a few boats and canoes his party committed themselves to +the Chaudière river. In two hours Arnold was swept down twenty miles, +steering as best he could through the rapids, and avoiding the rocks, in +the angry river. At one place all his boats and canoes were carried over +a fall and capsized, the occupants struggling to land. But this reckless +courage did wonders. By October 30th, after more than a month of +unspeakable hardship, Arnold had reached the borderland of civilization +in Canada, and was sending back provisions to his men. It is little +short of marvellous that at Point Levi on November 9th he could muster +six hundred men, five hundred of whom were fit for duty. + +The Canadians and Indians had been very friendly; without their aid the +greater part of Arnold's force would have perished. Even before Quebec +he was dependent on their kindly offices. Its defenders, among whom were +Nairne and Fraser, moved every boat to the north side of the St. +Lawrence; the frigate _Lizard_ and the sloop-of-war _Hunter_, pigmy +representatives at Quebec of Britain's might upon the sea, lay near +Wolfe's Cove ready to attack him if he tried to cross. But the Indians +brought canoes and on the night of November 13th, silently and +unobserved, they carried Arnold's force across the river almost under +the bows of the ships watching for them. The Americans landed where +Wolfe had landed sixteen years earlier. On the morning of the 14th, to +the surprise of Quebec's garrison, a body of Americans appeared on the +Plains of Abraham, not eight hundred yards from the walls, and gave +three loud huzzas. The British answered with three cheers and with the +more effective retort of cannon, loaded with grape and canister shot, +and the hardy pioneers of Arnold's attacking force retired. + +Quebec was not in a happy situation. Montreal had already fallen to the +Americans advancing by Lake Champlain, and to force the final surrender +of Canada General Montgomery was hurrying to join Arnold at Quebec. For +a time its defenders were uncertain whether Carleton himself, absent at +Montreal, had not fallen into the hands of the enemy. A miraculous +escape he indeed had. Leaving Montreal on a dark night, when the +Americans were already within the town, Carleton went in a skiff down +the river, both shores of which were already occupied by the enemy for +fifty miles below Montreal. At the narrows at Berthier their blazing +camp fires sent light far out over the surface of the water. Carleton's +party could hear the sentry's shout of "All's Well," and the barking of +dogs. But they let the boat float down with the current so that it might +look like drifting timber, and, when they could, impelled it silently +with their hands. At Three Rivers they thought themselves safe and +Carleton lay down in a house to sleep. But, while he was resting, some +American soldiers entered the house. His disguise as a peasant saved +him; he passed out unchecked. The skiff soon carried him to an armed +brig, the _Fell_, which lay at the foot of the Richelieu Rapids. He +hastened on to Quebec, which showed joy unspeakable when he arrived on +November 19th. Meanwhile Montgomery pursued his rival down the river and +on December 1st he joined Arnold before Quebec. + +Now the siege began in earnest. Carleton had 1800 men; Arnold and +Montgomery can hardly have had more than a thousand, and these were +badly equipped. For the Americans the prospects of success were, at no +time, very great, unless they could secure help from the Canadians. +This, indeed, was not wholly wanting. Montgomery's march along the north +shore of the St. Lawrence to Quebec was a veritable triumph. He promised +to the habitants liberty, freedom from heavy taxes, the abolition of the +seigneurs' rights and other good things. Some of the Canadians hoped +that, in joining the Americans, they were hastening the restoration of +France's power in Canada--an argument however of little weight with +many, who remembered grim days of hard service and starvation when, +without appreciation or reward, they had fought France's battle. The +habitants were, in truth, friendly enough to the Americans; but they +would not fight for them. The invaders tried to arouse the fear of the +peasantry by a tale that when the British caught sixty rebel Canadians, +they had hanged them over the ramparts of Quebec, without time even to +say "Lord, have mercy upon me," and had thrown their bodies to the dogs. +But this only made the habitants think it as well perhaps not to take +arms openly against such stern masters. The Church's weight was wholly +on the British side. Canadians who joined the rebel Americans died +without her last rites. Only one priest, M. de Lotbinière, a man, it is +said, of profligate character, espoused the cause of the invaders. For +doing so he was promised a bishopric: to see Puritan New Englanders +offering a bishopric in the Roman Catholic Church as a reward for +service, is not without its humour. + +As December wore on Montgomery grew eager to seize his prey. Carleton +sat unmoved behind his walls and allowed the enemy to invest the town. +He would hold no communication with the rebel army. When Montgomery sent +messengers to the gates, under a flag of truce, Carleton would not +receive them; the only message he would take, he said, would be an +appeal to the mercy of the King, against whom they were in rebellion. +Montgomery, too, showed for his foe lofty scorn, in words at least. On +December 15th in General Orders he spoke of "the wretched garrison" +posted behind the walls of Quebec, "consisting of sailors unacquainted +with the use of arms, of citizens incapable of the soldier's duty and +[a gibe at the corps in which Nairne served] a few miserable emigrants." +He went on to promise his troops that when they took Quebec "the effects +of the Governor, garrison, and of such as have been active in misleading +the inhabitants and distressing the friends of liberty" should be +equally divided among the victors. The opposing sides showed, in truth, +the bitterness and exasperation of family quarrels and abandoned the +usual courtesies of war. The Americans lay in wait to shoot sentries; +they fired on single persons walking on the ramparts. It was reported to +the British that Montgomery had said "he would dine in Quebec or in Hell +on Christmas"--gossip probably untrue, as a British diarist of the time +is fair enough to note, since it is not in accord with the dignity and +sobriety of Montgomery's character. + +He did what he could to make possible this Christmas festivity within +Quebec's walls. His men got together some five hundred scaling ladders. +Then heavy snow came and the defenders jeered at such preparations: "Can +they think it possible that they can approach the walls laden with +ladders, sinking to the middle every step in snow? Where shall we be +then? Shall we be looking on cross-armed?" The clear and inconceivably +cold weather was also one of Quebec's defences for, as one diarist puts +it, no man, after being exposed to it for ten minutes, could hold arms +in his half-frozen hands firmly enough to do any execution. But by +nothing short of death itself was Montgomery to be daunted; steadily he +made his plans to assault the town. + +Meanwhile Quebec was ready. Carleton ordered out of the town all who +could not assist to the best of their power in the defence. Some shammed +illness to escape their tasks. But this was the exception. Well-to-do +citizens worked zealously, took their share of sentry duty on the +bitterly cold nights, and submitted to the commands of officers in the +militia, their inferiors in education and fortune. On the loftiest point +of Cape Diamond Carleton erected a mast, thirty feet high, with a sentry +box at its top. From this he could command a bird's eye view of the +enemy's operations, to a point as distant as Ste. Foy Church. When one +of the besiegers asked a loyalist Canadian what the queer-looking object +on the pole really was he answered, "It is a wooden horse with a bundle +of hay before him." A second remark capped this one: "General Carleton +has said that he will not give up the town till the horse has ate all +the hay; and the General is a man of his word." + +Although Montgomery did not eat his Christmas dinner in Quebec a few +days later he was ready for an assault. The crisis came on the last day +of the year 1775. Early on that day, between four and five in the +morning, Captain Malcolm Fraser, in command of the main guard, was +going his rounds in Quebec when he saw a signal thrown by the enemy from +the heights outside the walls near Cape Diamond. Fraser knew at once +that it meant an attack. He sent word to the other guards in Quebec and +ordered the ringing of the alarm bell, and the drum-beat to arms. He +himself ran down St. Louis street, shouting to the guards to "Turn out" +as loudly and often as he could, and with such effect that he was heard +even by General Carleton, lodged at the Recollet convent. It was a +boisterous night and the elements themselves raged so fiercely that some +of the alarms were not heard. But, in time, all Quebec was aroused and +the guards stood at their posts. + +The alarm was completed when to its din was added the menacing sound of +cannon. The besiegers began to ply the town with shells, and those who +looked out over the ramparts could see in the darkness the flash of +guns. Soon began from behind ridges of snow, within eighty yards of the +walls of Cape Diamond, the patter of musketry. The Americans were +seeking to lead the defenders of Quebec to believe that an assault on +the walls of the Upper Town on the side of the Plains of Abraham was +imminent and to hold the defence to this point. In fact the real danger +was far away. + +[Illustration: THE MANOR HOUSE AT MURRAY BAY + +(The upper view from the West, the lower from the East)] + +Montgomery's was a hazardous plan. He had resolved to try to seize the +Lower Town first and then to get his troops into the Upper Town by +way of the steep Mountain Street, thus taking the defenders of the walls +in the rear. It was a desperate venture, depending for its success +largely upon the surprise of the garrison which Malcolm Fraser's +thorough-going alarm had prevented. Montgomery himself, with a force of +several hundred men, marched to the Lower Town from Wolfe's Cove along +the narrow path under the cliffs, a distance of nearly two miles, with +progress impeded by darkness, by heavy snow-drifts, and by blocks of ice +which the tide had strewn along the shore. His men struggled on in the +dark hoping to surprise the post which guarded the road below Cape +Diamond at a point called Près de Ville. Here were some fifty defenders +and the tale of what happened is soon told. The guardians of the post +were on the alert, for at it, too, Malcolm Fraser's warning had been +effective. As Montgomery bravely advanced, at the head of his men, there +was a flash and a roar in the darkness and the blinding snow storm, and, +a moment after, Montgomery lay dead in the snow with a bullet through +his head. Two or three other officers were struck down. The British +heard groans and then there was silence. As daylight came they saw hands +and arms protruding from the snow, but only slowly did they realize that +the chief of their foes was killed. + +Nairne was on duty elsewhere but he did not miss severe fighting. Arnold +was to advance on the Lower Town from the north-eastern suburb, St. +Roch's, to meet at the foot of Mountain Street Montgomery coming from +the west. At first he was more fortunate than Montgomery. When the +rocket from Cape Diamond went up he set out. The storm was frightful but +it served to conceal Arnold's force from Quebec's sentries. The +Americans passed under the height where stands the Hôtel Dieu. Here +Nairne was stationed with a small guard. They spied the Americans in the +darkness and kept up as effective a fire as the dim light permitted. But +the assailants were able to advance along the whole east side of Quebec +and to reach the entrance to the Sault au Matelot, a short and narrow +street opening into the steep Mountain Street, by which alone the Upper +Town could be reached. Here fortune favoured them for, apparently, in +spite of Fraser's alarm, they surprised the guard at the first barrier +by which the street was closed. The street itself they secured but when +they reached the second barrier at its farther end, commanding the road +to the Upper Town, it was well defended by an alert garrison. Arnold had +already been wounded and taken to the rear and Morgan, an intrepid +leader, was in command of the assailing force. Every moment he expected +that Montgomery would arrive to attack the second barrier on the Sault +au Matelot from the West as he attacked it from the East. But +Montgomery was dead and Morgan waited in vain. + +While the Americans were checked by the second barrier, Carleton was not +idle. There was an excellent chance to send a force out of the Palace +Gate near the Hôtel Dieu, by which the assailants had passed, and to +attack them in the rear. For this duty Colonel Caldwell was told off and +he took with him Nairne and his picket of about thirty men. The force +plodded through the deep snow in the tracks of the enemy who, about +daybreak, were astonished to find themselves shut in by British forces +at each end of the Sault au Matelot. A hand to hand fight followed. The +Americans took refuge in the houses of the street and it was the task of +the British to drive them out. In this Nairne distinguished himself. +"Major Nairne of the Royal Emigrants and M. Dambourges of the same corps +by their gallant behaviour attracted the attention of every body," +writes an English officer.[8] By ladders, taken from the enemy, they +mounted to a window of one of the houses, from which came a destructive +fire, and at the point of the bayonet drove the foe out by the door into +the street. In the end, to the number of more than four hundred, the +Americans were forced to surrender. The casualties included thirty +killed and forty-two wounded. By eight o'clock all was over. "It was +the first time I ever happened to be so closely engaged," Nairne wrote +to his sister on May 14th, 1776, "as we were obliged to push our +bayonets. It is certainly a disagreeable necessity to be obliged to put +one another to death, especially those speaking the same language and +dressed in the same manner with ourselves.... These mad people had a +large piece of white linen or paper upon their foreheads with the words +"Liberty or Death" wrote upon it." Nairne's account is modest enough. +One would not gather from it that his own conspicuous courage had +obtained general recognition.[9] + +Even with Montgomery killed, Arnold wounded, and quite one-quarter of +their force dead or captured, those grim men who wished "Liberty or +Death" had no thought of raising the siege. Ere long Arnold was again +active and, for four months longer, the Americans kept Carleton shut up +within Quebec. So deep lay the snow that to walk into the ditch from the +embrasures in the walls was easy; buried in the snow were the muzzles of +guns thirty feet from the bottom of the ditch. Sometimes Nairne was +actively engaged in scouting work. In February we find him leading a +party to take possession of the English burying ground in the suburbs; +on March 19th, he went out into the open from Cape Diamond to the +height overlooking the Anse de Mer. But nothing happened; a diarist +expresses, on April 21st, his contempt for the American attack by +writing: "Hitherto they have killed a boy, wounded a soldier, and broke +the leg of a turkey."[10] + +The assailants were, in truth, impotent before the masterly inactivity +of Carleton, who waited patiently behind his walls for the arrival in +the spring of a British fleet. Counting upon this expectancy the +Americans tried an old-time ruse. Between nine and ten o'clock in the +evening of May 3rd, with the moon shining brightly and the tide flowing +in and nearly high, a ship under full sail came into view from the +direction of the Island of Orleans. With the wind behind her she swung +in at a good rate of speed. Those who watched were, for a moment, sure +that the long expected rescue had come. But, as she bore down to the +_cul de sac_ where lay the shipping at Quebec, she made no response to +signals. At last, the British, after three vain efforts to draw a +response, warned her to reply or they should fire. When this threat was +carried out she was only some two hundred yards away. Then suddenly +flames burst out on the ship, followed by random explosions; a boat left +her side rowed very swiftly, and it was now apparent that she was sent +to burn, if possible, the British shipping. It must have been an +anxious moment when she was so near and heading straight for her prey. +But, showing a natural prudence, those who steered left her too soon +and, with no hand at the helm, her head came up quickly in the wind. By +this time all Quebec had been alarmed and, as attack from the landward +side was also expected, every man was soon at his post. The ship was a +striking sight as, with sails and rigging on fire, she drifted +helplessly before the town. When the tide turned she floated down, a +mass of fire, with explosions shaking her from time to time, to the +shallows off Beauport where she soon lay stranded, a blackened ruin of +half-burnt timbers. + +Quebec still waited for rescue, and not in vain. At day break, on the +6th of May, a frigate appeared round Point Levi. Again went forth the +cry of "A ship," "A ship." "The news," we are told, "soon reached every +pillow in town." Men half dressed rushed to the Grand Battery, which was +quickly crowded with spectators, who indulged in much shaking of hands, +and in the exchange of compliments, as the character of the ship became +clear. She was the British frigate _Surprise_, and, with much +difficulty, had forced her way, under full sail, through the great +fields of ice which still blocked the river. Following her closely were +the _Isis_ and a sloop the _Martin_. Quebec went wild with joy. But +there was still serious business on hand. The _Surprise_ brought a part +of the 29th regiment and a good many marines. They were landed at once. +Carleton lost not a moment and, by twelve o'clock of the same day, the +gates of Quebec were thrown open and he marched out to attack the +Americans. + +It was only a thin red line that stretched across the Plains of Abraham. +But the Americans dared not face it. The newly arrived ships might, they +feared, carry a force up the river and cut off retreat; so, after some +desultory skirmishing, the investing army fled. It was now commanded by +General Wooster, for Arnold had gone to Montreal. The flight soon became +a panic. Arms, clothes, food, private letters and papers were thrown +away. Nairne was in command of a portion of the Highland Emigrants, who +were the vanguard of the British pursuing force, and was among the first +to occupy the American batteries. On that very ground he had fought, +victorious in 1759, woefully beaten in 1760; now, a victor again, he +helped to drive back a force, some of whose members had been his +companions in those earlier campaigns. That night the relieved British +slept secure in Quebec, while the bedraggled American force was making +its distressful way towards Montreal. + +Though the American army soon withdrew from Montreal and from Canada, +the war was still to drag on for many weary years. Throughout the whole +of it Nairne remained on active service. In September, 1776, we find +him in command of the garrison at Montreal. In 1777 he was sent to +command the post at Isle aux Noix which guarded the route into Canada by +way of Lake Champlain. Here Fraser was serving under him as Captain; the +two friends were usually together throughout the war. At Isle aux Noix +Nairne remained until June, 1779. We get glimpses from his letters of +the defects in the service at this time. There were involuntary evils, +such as scurvy, caused by want of fresh meat and vegetables, but +relieved by drinking a decoction of hemlock spruce. Moral evils there +were too, such as gambling and drunkenness; in 1778 the commanding +officer gave warning that he had heard of losses at play, and that those +taking part in such practises would be excluded from promotion. + +The British officers showed sometimes a fool-hardy recklessness. On +March 9th, 1778, one Lieutenant Mackinnon, with forty-five volunteers, +set out from Pointe au Fer, near Isle aux Noix, to surprise an American +post at Parsons' House, no less than sixty miles distant, and in the +heart of the enemy's country. A few days later two of the volunteers +returned with news that the attack had wholly failed, that six of the +party were killed and six wounded, and that Lieutenant Mackinnon and +four others were missing. So reckless an attack was bad enough and, in +the General Orders, it was condemned as "a presumptuous disregard of +military discipline"; only vigilance and watchfulness were required of +the picket at Pointe au Fer, so that the enemy might not invade the +province. At the incident the Commander-in-Chief was very angry. "I +never saw the General in such a passion in my life," wrote an officer to +Nairne. Mackinnon had surrounded the house in the darkness and both he +and his men, as far as is known, had done their best. Though wounded and +for a time missing, in the end Mackinnon got back crippled to Isle aux +Noix. But he had failed, and whispers soon began that he showed +cowardice in the attack; an absurd charge, as Nairne said, for he had +given proof of rather too much, than of too little, courage. The +accusation gave Nairne infinite trouble. The subalterns in the Royal +Highland Emigrants refused to do duty with Mackinnon, and General +Haldimand, who succeeded Carleton in the summer of 1778, would not take +the matter seriously enough to grant a Court Martial, that Mackinnon +might clear himself. For quite a year and a half the affair dragged on. +In the end, at a Court of Enquiry, Mackinnon was acquitted. Haldimand +told Nairne to rebuke the officers sternly for combining to subvert +authority, for disrespect to their superiors, and for refusing, on the +basis of futile reports and hearsays, to serve with Mackinnon. "I much +mistake his character," wrote Nairne of Mackinnon, "if he can ... be +prevented from calling one or two of those gentlemen to a severe +account." + +A part of Nairne's duty was to watch the French Canadians and check +sedition. In spite of the failure of Arnold's expedition many of them +were still favourable to the American cause. They harboured deserters in +the remoter parishes, gave protection and assistance to rebels, and +threw as many difficulties as possible in the path of loyalists. Nairne +found two men issuing papers from a printing press to foment sedition +and sent them down to Quebec to stand their trial for treason. + +From Isle aux Noix Nairne was sent, in the summer of 1779, with fifty of +his Royal Highland Emigrants, to command at Carleton Island, near +Kingston where Lake Ontario flows into the St. Lawrence; some +thirty-five years later his only surviving son held a military command +at the same place. Here there was much to do in strengthening the +fortifications and in keeping up communications with Niagara and other +points in the interior. The situation was not without its +embarrassments. Prisoners were sent in from Niagara and he had no prison +in which to keep them. For want of fresh meat and vegetables there was +much sickness. But the Indians were his greatest trial. Through him came +their supplies and, to hold them at all, he had sometimes to serve out +the rum for which such savages are always greedy. On July 4th, Nairne +made a speech to these Mississaga Indians and said pretty plainly what +he thought of them. Against the American scouts they had proved no +defence; at night they fired off guns in the neighbouring woods and +created false alarms, which prevented Nairne's men from getting their +proper sleep. "My men work hard in the day," he said, "and I will have +them to sleep sound at night," and he warned the Indians that he would +fire upon them if their noise disturbed him further. The savages, he +wrote to Haldimand, are "almost unbearable, greedy and importunate." +They behaved more like rebels than friends and their talk ended always +in the demand for rum, "the cause of all bad behaviour in Indians." + +On the remoter frontiers the war was ruthless beyond measure. Sir John +Johnson devastated the Mohawk valley, in the present State of New York, +and some of his prisoners were received at Carleton Island. Of this +inglorious warfare Haldimand's secretary, Captain Matthews, wrote to +Nairne a little later [17th June, 1780], "You will have heard that Sir +John Johnson has executed the purpose of his enterprise without the loss +of a man, having destroyed upwards of an hundred dwelling houses, barns, +mills, stock, &c., and brought off 150 Loyalists, besides Women and +Children." The worst outrages came from the Indian allies, of whom +Nairne thought so badly. From Niagara, on March 1st, 1779, Captain John +MacDonnell wrote to Nairne of the terrible massacre at Cherry Valley, on +the New York frontier, which excited horror throughout the colonies, and +did much to inflame the hatred of the Americans for England. Not, +however, the English but the Indians were really guilty. "There has +nothing appeared," wrote Captain MacDonnell, "on the theatre of the war +of near so tragical or rather barbarous a hue; the reflection never +represents itself to my view but when accompanyed with the greatest +horrors; both Sexes, young and old Tomahawked, Speared and Scalped +indiscriminately in the most inhuman and cruel manner. But that there +was all possible care and precaution taken to prevent them is +undenyable. Captain Butler, who had command of the expedition, was +indefatigable in his endeavours and exertions to restrain and mitigate +the fury and ferocity of the savages often at the risk of the Tomahawk +being made use of against himself as well as the Indian officers.... Out +of a hundred and seventy scalps three-fourths were those of Women and +Children." Butler's name is still looked upon in the United States as +that of a fiend incarnate, but the testimony of his fellow officer seems +to free him from blame for the worst of the horrors. Both sides were +bitter, but Nairne himself never shows any vehemence of passion. In his +view the war was a painful necessity, to be fought to the end without +anger. + +Late in 1779, Nairne was recalled from Carleton Island. He reached +Montreal on the 5th of December, and, two days later, secured leave of +absence to look after his private affairs. At this time General +Haldimand had matured a plan to take advantage of the remote position of +Murray Bay to confine there some of his American prisoners. At Murray +Bay they seemed particularly safe. There was as yet no road over Cap +Tourmente; in any case to go in the direction of Quebec would mean +seizure sooner or later; to go in the opposite direction would be to +perish in the wilderness; and the only outlet was by water across a +wintry river some twelve miles broad. On the 26th of January, 1780, +Haldimand wrote to Nairne at Murray Bay that he was to erect buildings +for rebel and other prisoners, and that, to do the work, some men were +being sent down; he was to employ in addition as many of the inhabitants +as he might think necessary. + +Nairne stayed on at Murray Bay in 1780 much longer than the two months +for which he had originally asked. A part of his duty was to watch that +American colony, so different in station and situation from the many +Americans who now visit the spot. As yet there were no barracks in which +to confine the poor fellows, and the climate of Murray Bay is not too +hospitable in winter. Some kind of rough quarters must have been +prepared for the prisoners, in the winter of 1779-80, and they were kept +busy in helping to build the houses intended for their occupation. They +seemed contented. One of them Nairne kept about his person. He knew +where everything was placed and all the men were used, Nairne says, in +the best manner he could think of. But liberty is sweet and they longed +for their own land. So, early in May, 1780, when the ice was out of the +river and there was a chance to get away, eight of them made a dash for +liberty.[11] No doubt under cover of night, they stole a boat and put +out boldly into the great river across which, in so small a craft, few +ever venture, even in mild summer weather. Almost wonderful to relate, +they reached the south shore in safety. Nairne was uncertain whether +they had gone up, down, or across the river. He hurried to Tadousac, +crossed to Cacouna and then went up the south shore. At St. Roch he +found that the men, rowing a boat, had been seen to pass. On May 14th +this boat was found abandoned. On the 15th the men were seen on the +highway carrying their packs. We are almost sorry to learn that the poor +fellows were in the end captured and taken to Quebec. Nairne reported +the flight of these men on the 14th of May. Their example was contagious +for, on the 18th, while he was absent in their pursuit, four others +made off, found a small boat on the shore some nine miles from Malbaie, +and put out into the river, where their tiny craft was seen heading for +Kamouraska on the south shore. A few days later two others also escaped. +These had not courage to strike out into the river, and one of them was +caught at Baie St. Paul. Nairne offered a reward of four dollars for +each of the prisoners and probably all were taken. A sequel of the +incident was that a non-commissioned officer and eight men of the +Anhalt-Zerbst Regiment were sent to guard the remaining prisoners at +Murray Bay--a task apparently beyond Nairne's local militia. This guard +was, no doubt, composed of Germans; one wonders to what extent they +fraternized with the French Canadians. It is amusing to read that, when +one of them deserted, he was brought back by a habitant. + +In 1781 we find Nairne stationed at Verchères on the south side of the +St. Lawrence, nearly opposite Montreal. He was now in charge of the +expatriated Loyalists who had found refuge in that part of Canada. A +whole corps of them were billeted in the two parishes of Verchères and +Contrecoeur--the officers chiefly at Contrecoeur. They lived, of +course, in the cottages with the habitants. On December 16th, 1781, +Nairne writes to General Riedesel, a German officer who played a +conspicuous part on the British side in the Revolutionary war and was +now in command at Sorel, that the Canadians do not mind supplying +firewood for the loyalist officers but that they rather object to having +the same people quartered upon them for two years at a time. Though an +occasional officer had said that the Loyalists were not obedient, he +adds that they were quiet and orderly people. Some of them had large +families and must have crowded uncomfortably their involuntary hosts. +These colonial English living in the households of their old-time +enemies, the French Canadians, make a somewhat pathetic picture. We see +what domestic suffering the Revolutionary War involved. Some were very +old; one "genteel sort of woman," a widow, had four children, the +youngest but four months old; there was another whose husband had been +hanged at Saratoga as a spy. Very large sums passed through Nairne's +hands in behalf of the Loyalists. One account which he renders amounts +to about £20,000.[12] + +Nairne's regiment, the Royal Highland Emigrants, had been put upon the +permanent establishment in 1779. Sometimes he complained that his own +promotion was slow; not until the spring of 1783 was he given the rank +of Lieutenant-Colonel. Having reached this goal he intended, as soon as +he decently could, to sell out and retire. Late in 1782 we find him +again in command at Isle aux Noix and not sure but that he may at any +time be surprised by the Americans. It seems odd that, though Cornwallis +had already surrendered at Yorktown, and the war was really over, Nairne +was still hoping for final victory for Great Britain; on February 8th, +1783, he writes: "It is to be hoped that affairs will at last take a +favourable turn to Great Britain; her cause is really a just one." In +fact preliminary articles of the most disastrous peace Great Britain has +ever made had already been signed. + +Nairne was now anxious to go home. But even in June, 1783, he could not +get leave of absence from Isle aux Noix for even a fortnight. Conditions +were still unsettled. American traders were now pressing into Canada but +Nairne sent back any that he caught; the cessation of arms was, he said, +no warrant as yet for commercial intercourse and many suspicious +characters were about. The troops from Europe were returning home. +General Riedesel, about to leave for Germany, wrote from Sorel on July +6th, 1783, a warm letter of thanks to Nairne for the attention, +readiness, and punctuality of his services. Not long after, in the same +year, Nairne was at last free. He now sold his commission, receiving for +it £3,000. With the sale he renounced all claim to half-pay, pension, or +other consideration for past services and the sum he received was, +therefore, no very great final reward for his long services. There had +been some competition for this commission and its final disposal throws +some light on promotion in the army under the purchase system. General +Haldimand insisted that Captain Matthews, who appears to have been his +relative, should get it, since the General "must provide for his own +family." At this time Malcolm Fraser too thought of selling out but he +made difficulties about terms and the opportunity passed; Fraser was, +indeed, to live to see recruiting service in the war of 1812. When the +war was over, Nairne hurried to Murray Bay and to the country life in +which he delighted, and in his correspondence we soon find him +discussing not high questions of national defence but the qualities of +"a well-bred bull calf" and of an improved plough. "I have more +satisfaction," he says, perhaps with a touch of irony, "in a country +life and [in] cultivating a farm than even [in] being employed as first +major of the Quebec militia." Henceforth his heart is wholly at Murray +Bay and in his interests there. + +[Footnote 8: Diary of an English Officer. Proceedings of the Literary +and Historical Society of Quebec, 1871-72, p. 61.] + +[Footnote 9: See Appendix C., p. 273, for the text of his letter to his +sister describing the operations of the winter at Quebec. It is an able +review of the campaign.] + +[Footnote 10: Proceedings of the Literary and Historical Society of +Quebec, 7th Series, 1905, p. 75; "Blockade of Quebec," etc.] + +[Footnote 11: The men's names were Peter Ferris, Squir Ferris, Claudius +Brittle (Sr.), Claudius Brittle (Jr.), Nathan Smith, Marshal Smith, +Justice Sturdevant, John Ward.] + +[Footnote 12: The book in which Nairne kept the accounts, with the names +of the recipients of the king's bounty, is still at Murray Bay.] + + + + +CHAPTER V + +THE LAST DAYS OF JOHN NAIRNE + + Nairne's careful education of his children.--His son John enters + the army.--Nairne's counsels to his son.--John Nairne goes to + India.--His death.--Nairne's declining years.--His activities at + Murray Bay.--His income.--His daughter Christine and Quebec + society.--The isolation of Murray Bay in Winter.--Signals across + the river.--Nairne's reading.--His notes about current events.--The + fear of a French invasion of England.--Thoughts of flight from + Scotland to Murray Bay.--Nairne's last letter, April 20th, + 1802.--His death and burial at Quebec. + + +Colonel Nairne's life was troubled with many sorrows. In 1773, when he +was on a visit to Scotland, Malcolm Fraser had had the painful duty of +writing to tell him of the death of three of his infant children at +Murray Bay from a prevailing epidemic. His daughter, Anne, born in 1784, +was sent to Scotland to be educated. She contracted consumption and +after a prolonged illness died there in 1796. "This event gave me great +affliction," wrote Nairne, "she was always a most amiable child." There +now remained two sons and three daughters,[13] and Nairne may well have +been certain that his name would go down to an abundant posterity. One +of the chief interests of his life was their training and education. All +in turn were sent to Scotland for their chief schooling. The eldest son, +John, born in 1777, and his sister Christine, some three years older, +lived in Edinburgh with aunts who showed exhaustless kindness and +interest. Nairne was grateful, and writing from Malbaie on August 27th, +1791, he says: "[I] am glad of an opportunity, my dear Christine and +Jack, to remind you both in the strongest manner I am able of the +gratitude and assiduous Duty you owe to your Aunts and other Relations +for admitting you into their family and also for the attention they are +pleased to bestow on your education." Upon his children he imposes +indeed counsels of perfection not easy to fulfil; "Remember it's my +injunctions and absolute orders to you both to have always an obedient +temper to your superiors ... to receive every reprimand with submission +and attention as it can only be intended for your benefit in order to +give you a valuable character which of all things is the greatest +blessing both for this world and the next; besides you must consider +that you are never to indulge yourselves in any sort of indolence or +laziness but to rise early in the morning to be the more able to fulfil +your Duty.... As to you, Jack, I expect to see you a Gallant and +honourable fellow that will always scorn to tell the least lie in your +life. It was well done to answer Captain Fraser [Malcolm Fraser, a +Lieutenant in 1762, is still only a Captain in 1791!] with which he was +well pleased.... Both of you have I think improved in your writing which +gives me pleasure." He adds regretfully to Christine: "I cannot send you +a muff this year but perhaps I may do so next year." The letter closes +with a modest list of purchases to be sent out from Edinburgh for +Malbaie: "one piece of Calico for two gowns; one piece of calico for +children; three pieces of linen (for shirts), two of which coarse and +the other a little finer; one yard of cambrick; five yards of muslin +(for caps and Handkerchiefs); six yards of lace (for caps); twelve yards +of different ribbons, three pairs of worsted stockings and three pairs +of cotton stockings for myself." + +Jack was to follow a military career, and he entered the army when a +youth of sixteen or seventeen. His first active service was in the West +Indies, after war with revolutionary France broke out, and the dangers +of that climate gave his father some anxiety; all will be well, he +hopes, if Jack continues to take a certain "powder of the Jesuits' +Bark"; above all "the best rules are temperance and sobriety"; then "the +same gracious Power who protected me in many dangers through the course +of three Wars will also vouchsafe protection to you through this one." +In 1795, when Jack was only eighteen, his corps was back in England +and, through the influence of a distant relative, General Graeme, with +the Duke of York, Commander in Chief of the Army and all powerful in +days when promotion went avowedly by favour and purchase rather than by +merit, Jack secured a Lieutenancy in the 19th Regiment. His father was +delighted: "I wish you much joy with all my heart of your quick rise in +being at your age already a Lieutenant in an old Regiment whereas I was +past twenty-six years of age before I obtained a Lieutenancy in the +British service and that only in a young corps." At the time, with +Britain warring on the French Directory, service in Europe for Jack was +not unlikely, and was desired by Nairne. But in the end Jack's regiment +was ordered to India. Nairne was sorely disappointed, but writing to +Jack he laid down a great guiding principle: "we must suppose that +Providence orders everything aright and that, provided we are always +active and diligent in doing our duty, there is reason to be satisfied." +In view of what was to happen, his anxiety for the success of his son is +pathetic. He exhorts him in regard to every detail of conduct. He is to +avoid drink and gambling; to pay his accounts promptly; to be punctual +and scrupulously exact whenever duty or business is concerned. The +father is particularly anxious about his son's capacity to express +himself in good English and lays down the sound maxim that "writing a +correct and easy style is undoubtedly of all education the most +necessary and requisite." To acquire this he "ought to write and read a +great deal with intense labour, attention and application"; to write +several hours a day is not too much and to get time he must go to bed +early and rise early. It is wise to keep a grammar and dictionary always +at hand to correct possible errors. He should also translate from French +into English. The father himself undertakes the duty of the complete +letter writer, drawing up for Jack a model on which his letters may be +based. "In writing ordinary letters (as in conversation) a large scope +may be taken, as of News, all sorts of information, adventures, +descriptions, remarks, enquirys, compliments, &c., &c., but in a letter +upon business one is commonly confined only to what is necessary to be +said on the subject and to civilitys and politeness." Certainly Jack did +not lack admonition and when he does well his father writes that it +makes him "very happy." When in one letter Jack mentions the practise of +smoking his father is severe: "All our family have ever been temperate +not [practising] even the Debauchery of smoking tobacco, a nasty Dutch, +Damn'd custom, a forerunner of idleness and drunkenness; therefore Jack, +my lad, let us hear no more of your handling your Pipe, but handle well +your fuzee, your sword, your pen and your Books." + +Certainly the pictures sometimes drawn of the brutality, violent manners +and ignorance of the British officer at this period find no confirmation +in Nairne's monitions to his son, or in the account of his own military +experience which dates from the mid-eighteenth century. He says to Jack: +"Say your Prayers regularly to God Almighty and trust entirely to His +Will and Pleasure for your own preservation.... If you should happen to +be in an engagement attend to your men, encourage them to act with +spirit in such a manner as most effectually to destroy their +enemy's."[14] When Jack is a little too free in his demands for money +the Colonel, writing on Nov. 22nd, 1795, tells him of his own +experience: + + I have done wrong in having given you so much money since you went + into the Army which might have served you almost without any pay + from the King and which by the bye I can little afford. You + obtained it easily; for which reason I suppose you have spent it + easily: you have no right to expect more than I had at your age yet + you seem to regard twenty pounds as I would have done twenty + shillings. But you must now understand that twenty pounds is a + considerable sum to my circumstances they being straitened for the + Rank and the family which I have to support; therefore I have to + inform you that you are to draw no more Bills upon Mr. Ker nor upon + me without first obtaining his or my consent in writing for so + doing. It is no disgrace nor does it hurt the service (but quite + the contrary) for every officer and soldier to live within the + limits of the pay which Government has thought proper to allow + them. They are thereby more led to temperance, to improve + themselves by study, to mind their duty and how best to promote the + service of their country. I served sixteen years as a subaltern + officer in the army, made long sea voyages with the Regiment, + furnished myself with sea stores, camp equipage and every other + necessary equipments [and] my Father nor any Relation during that + time was never [put to] one farthing's expense upon my account. + Altho' I sometimes lost money in the Recruiting service I repayed + it by stoppages from my pay, was always present with the men + whether in camp or in Garrison and punctually attending on my Duty. + I endeavoured to be in a good mess for my Dinner, drank small Beer + or Water when it was good; when the Water was bad qualified it with + a mixture of Wine or Ginger or Milk or Vinegar but no grog or + smoking tobacco. I was always an enemy to suppers, never engaged + myself in the Evenings, but on particular occasions or to be + Complaisant to Strangers. Nor [did I] ask Company to see me when on + Guard; nor show a Vanity to treat people. By which means I had a + great deal of quiet and sober time to myself, to read and to write, + &c., &c., especially as I always rose early in the Mornings. You + may believe also that I was always far from being concerned in any + sort of Gaming so as to risk losing any of my money or to have a + desire to gain any from others. By such a Conduct I received more + favour and regard sometimes from my Commanding officers even than I + thought I was entitled to. + +These monitions to Jack were written while his father was in Scotland in +1795. There they separated, the father to return to Canada with +Christine whose schooldays were now ended, Jack to go with his regiment +to India. In parting from his son the father pronounced a solemn +benediction: "that God may preserve you and assist you in following +always that which is good and virtuous shall ever be my most earnest +prayer." They never met again. Jack continued to draw rather freely upon +his father for funds, and Nairne wrote to the Colonel of the regiment to +ask for information about the young man. Before an answer came Scottish +relatives learned in 1800 of Jack's fate and wrote of it to Murray Bay. +A friend of the family in India had noticed in the newspaper that some +one was promoted to John Nairne's place. This led to enquiry, when it +was found that he had died in August, 1799. Not until six months after +his death, and then only in reply to the enquiry as to Jack's demands +for money, did his commanding officer write the following letter to +Colonel Nairne: + + _Colonel Dalrymple to Colonel Nairne_ + + _From Columbo [India], 1st Feb., 1800._ + + I received your letter dated October, 1798, but a short time ago + but too late, had there been any occasion to have spoken to your + son upon the subject it contained for, Poor fellow, it is with pain + I'm to inform you of his death. He died upon the 7th of August, + 1799, in the Coimbalore country upon the return from the capture of + Seringapatam. Never did a young man die more regretted nor never + was an officer more beloved by his corps. He was an honour to his + profession. An involuntary tear starts in my eye on thus being + obliged to give you this painful information. + + The cause of his having drawn for so much money from Bombay was + unfortunately his ship parted from us and they did not join at + Columbo for some months, where I understand he had been induced to + play by some designing people. But I assure you, from the moment he + joined here, his life was exemplary for all young men. He was + beloved by every description of people. From the very sudden way he + took the field and the very expensive mode of campaigning in this + country he was in debt to the paymaster. He was not singular; they + were all in the same predicament. The first division of the prize + money which was one thousand ster. Pagodas, about your hundred + pounds, will only clear him with the Regiment. + +Long before this letter arrived the news was known at Murray Bay. +Malcolm Fraser, the tried family friend, writes on September 1st, 1800, +that he has just discharged the most painful task of telling the sad +news to Jack's sister and companion, Christine, who was visiting in +Quebec. In his grief Nairne gives an exceeding bitter cry, "Lord, help +me. I shall lose all my children before I go myself." His sister +Magdalen wrote from Edinburgh on March 17th, 1800, to offer comfort and +to hope that he bears the trial "with Christian fortitude, and that God +will reward him by sparing those that remain to be a blessing to him," +Nairne's sisters now had with them in Edinburgh the two remaining +children, Tom and Mary, called "Polly." John is gone but Tom is left, +says the fond aunt, and to console Nairne she tells of Tom's virtues: +"Never was father blessed with a more promising son than our little +Tom, and though I used to dread he was too faultless and too good to +live, I would now persuade myself he is intended by Providence to +compensate you for the losses you have sustained." On Tom now centred +the hopes of the Nairne family. + +[Illustration: VIEW FROM POINTE AU PIC UP MURRAY BAY] + +The sands of Nairne's own life were running out. As he looked around him +he could see much to make his heart content. He was never unmindful of +the singular beauty of the place. "I wish I could send you a landscape +of this place," he wrote to a friend, John Clark, in 1798; "Was you here +your pencil might be employed in drawing a beautiful one which this Bay +affords, as the views and different objects are remarkably various and +entertaining." This is, no doubt, a mild account of the beauties of a +very striking scene, but the 18th century had not developed our +appreciation for nature. Nairne tells of his delight in tramping through +the woods, and over the mountains, with a gun on his shoulder. The +increase of settlement, and the burning of the woods, had driven the +wild animals farther back into the wilderness, but partridges and water +fowl were still abundant. There was salmon fishing almost at his door +and "Lake Nairne," the present Grand Lac, had famous trout fishing. The +thick woods, which at his coming extended all round the bay, were now +cleared away. Much land had been enclosed and brought under cultivation +and to do this had been a laborious and expensive task. Now he had +three farms of his own, each with a hundred acres of arable land and +with proper buildings. There was also a smaller farm for hay and +pasture. "I have been employed lately," he writes in 1798, "making paths +into our woods and marking the trees in straight lines thro' tracts of +pretty good land in order to encourage the young men to take lots of +land." He tells how the successive ridges, representing, no doubt, +different water levels in remote ages, were numbered. In the highest, +Number 7, the lakes are all situated; the elevated land was generally +the best but as yet settlement was chiefly in Flats 1, 2, and 3. His +great aim had always been to get people on the land and he denounced +obstacles put in their way. "For God's sake let them pitch away, and if +they have not good titles give them better." The Manor House had become +a warm and comfortable residence well finished and well furnished. In +1801 Nairne wrote to his sister, with some natural exultation, that +where he had at first found an untrodden wilderness were now order, +neatness, good buildings, a garden and plenty of flowers, fruits and +humming birds. In the winter one might often say "O, it's cold," but +means of warming oneself were always available. His wife had proved +always a useful helper and was indeed a motherly, practical woman, +beloved by the people. These came to pay their compliments on the first +day of the year, when there was much drinking of whiskey and eating of +cakes, all costing a pretty penny. There were 100 young men in the +parish composing a complete company of militia. The children grew up so +fast that he could not distinguish the half of them. + +On the commercial side also Murray Bay was developing. In 1800 a man +came through the district buying up wheat at "9 livers a Bushel," but +since the population was increasing very rapidly, and the people were +accustomed to eat a great deal of bread, there was not much wheat for +export. The total exports of all commodities amounted in 1800 to +£1500:--oil, timber, grain, oxen and a few furs being the chief items. +Oil was the most important product; it came from the "porpoise" fishery. +What Nairne calls a porpoise, is really the beluga, a small white whale. +The fishery is an ancient industry on the St. Lawrence.[15] The creature +has become timid and is now not readily caught so that the industry +survives at only a few points. At Malbaie it has wholly ceased; but in +the summer of 1796 sixty-two porpoises were killed at "Pointe au Pique." +In the summer of 1800, which was hot and dry, no less than three hundred +were "catched." Malbaie must have had bustling activity on its shores +when such numbers of these huge creatures were taken in a single +season. We can picture the many fires necessary for boiling the blubber. +The oil of each beluga was worth £5 and the skin £1. Nairne's own share +in a single year from this source of revenue was £70, but even then the +industry was declining. + +We have Nairne's statement of income in 1798 and it indicates simple +living at Malbaie. We must remember that in addition, he had received a +number of bequests which brought in a considerable income and that he +had sold out of the army for £3000. Perhaps, too, 1798 was a bad year. + +"Porpoise" fishery £20 +Income from four farms at £20 each 80 +Profits from mills 20 + ----- + £120 + +The rent from the land granted to the habitants was scarcely worth +reckoning, as the people paid nothing until the land was productive, a +condition that could apparently be postponed indefinitely. Since under +the seigniorial tenure, the farmers must use the seigneur's grist mill, +Nairne had his mill in operation and Fraser was building one in 1798. +Nairne had also one or more mills for sawing timber. "I hope there are a +great many loggs brought and to be brought to your and my saw mills," +Fraser wrote in 1797, but an income of only £20 a year from the mills +does not indicate any extortionate exercise of seigniorial rights. + +Already some of the city people were beginning to find Murray Bay a +delightful place in which to spend the summer. In 1799 Nairne writes to +a friend, Richard Dobie, in Montreal, that it is the best place in the +world for the recovery of strength. "You shall drink the best of wheys +and breathe the purest sea air in the world and, although luxuries will +be wanting, our friendship and the best things the place can afford to +you, I know, will make ample amends:"--a simple standard of living that +subsequent generations would do well to remember. In 1801 the manor +house must have been the scene of some gaiety for there and at Malcolm +Fraser's were half a score of visitors. Christine, Nairne's second +daughter, who preferred Quebec to the paternal roof, had come home for a +visit and other visitors were the Hon. G. Taschereau and his son, Mr. +Usburn, Mr. Masson, Mrs. Langan and Mrs. Bleakley, Fraser's daughters, +described as "rich ladies from Montreal," the last with three children. +No doubt they drove and walked, rowed and fished, much as people from +New York and Baltimore and Boston and Toronto and Montreal do still on +the same scene, when they are not pursuing golf balls. The coming of +people with more luxurious habits made improvements necessary and also, +Nairne says, increased the expense of living--a complaint that +successive generations have continued with justice to make. + +With Tom and Mary Nairne absent at school in Edinburgh, the family at +Murray Bay during Nairne's last days consisted of but four persons--of +himself and his wife and the two daughters Magdalen and Christine. +Christine, a fashionable young lady, disliked Murray Bay as a place of +residence, tolerated Quebec, but preferred Scotland where she had been +educated. "Christine does not like to stay at Murray Bay and Madie her +sister does not like to stay anywhere else," wrote Nairne in 1800. In +the manner of the eighteenth century he was extremely anxious that his +children should be "genteel". Christine's Quebec friends pleased him. "I +saw her dance at a ball at the Lieutenant-Governor's and she seemed at +no loss for Genteel partners but does not prepare to find one for life. +I am well pleased with her and do not in the least grudge her so long as +she is esteemed by the best company in the place." It was not easy to +find at Quebec proper accommodation for unmarried young women living +away from home. Nairne writes in August, 1797, that he and Christine +each paid $1.00 a day in Quebec where they lodged, although they mostly +dined and drank tea abroad. "The town gentry of Quebec are vastly +hospitable Civil and well-bred but no such a thing as an invitation to +stay in any of their houses." At length a Mr. Stewart opened his doors. +He must, Nairne wrote, be paid tactfully for the accommodation he +furnishes. Things went better when later Miss Mabane, the daughter of a +high official of the Government, kept Christine with her at Quebec all +the winter of 1799-1800; no doubt Christine was pleased when Miss Mabane +would not allow her to go to Murray Bay even for the summer. Her elder +sister, Madie, appears to have been hoydenish and somewhat uncongenial +to a young lady so determined to be "genteel." + +In the winter time communication with the outside world was almost +entirely suspended. In case of emergency it was possible indeed to pass +on snow shoes by Cap Tourmente, over which there was still no road, and +so reach Quebec by the north shore. But this was a severe journey to be +undertaken only for grave cause. Partly frozen over, and often with +great floes of ice sweeping up and down with the tide, the river was +dangerous; the south shore, lying so well in sight, was really very +remote. Yet news passed across the river. On February 12th, 1797, +Malcolm Fraser, who was on the south shore, found some means of sending +a letter to Nairne. Anxious to get word in return he planned a signal. +He said that on March 6th he would go to Kamouraska, just opposite +Murray Bay, and build a fire. If Nairne answered by one fire Fraser +would be satisfied that nothing unusual had happened; if two fires were +made he would understand that there was serious news and would wish as +soon as possible to learn details. Signalling across the St. Lawrence +attained a much higher development than is found in Fraser's crude plan. +Philippe Aubert de Gaspé tells how the people on the south shore could +read what had happened on the north shore from Cap Tourmente to Malbaie. +On St. John's eve, December 26th, the season of Christmas festivities, +there was a general illumination. Looking then across the river to a +line of blazing fires the news was easily understood. "At Les +Eboulements eleven adults have died since the autumn, three of whom were +in one house, that of Dufour. All are well at the Tremblays; but at +Bonneau's some one is ill. At Belairs a child is dead,"--and so on. The +key is simple enough. The situation of the fire would indicate the +family to which it related. A fire lighted and kept burning for a long +time meant good news; when a fire burned with a half smothered flame it +meant sickness; the sudden extinguishing of the fire was a sign of +death; as many times as it was extinguished so many were the deaths; a +large blaze meant an adult, a small one a child. Before the days of post +and telegraph these signals were used winter and summer; so great an +obstacle to communication was the mighty tide of the St. Lawrence.[16] + +At all seasons but especially in winter the news that reached Malbaie +was of a very fragmentary character. With his kin in Scotland Nairne +exchanged only an annual letter but since each side took time and pains +to prepare it, the letter told more, probably, than would a year's bulk +of our hurried epistles. Newspapers were few and dear and only at +intervals did any come. Books too were scarce. Occasionally Nairne notes +those that he thought of buying--St. Simon's "Memoirs;" an account of +the Court of Louis XIV; "A Comparative View of the State and Facultys of +Man with those of the Animal World;" "Elegant Extracts or Useful and +Entertaining passages in prose," a companion volume to a similar one in +poetry, and so on. He writes gratefully, in 1799, to a friend in Quebec, +who had sent newspapers and sermons, both of which remotely different +classes of literature had furnished "great entertainment." From Europe +he is receiving the volumes of the new edition of the Encyclopædia +Britannica, still on the shelves at Murray Bay, and is thankful that +they were not captured by the French. "The older I grow the fonder I am +of reading and that book is a great resource." Our degenerate age gets +little "entertainment" out of sermons and usually keeps an encyclopædia +strictly for "reference"; obviously Nairne read it. + +The old soldier watched and commented upon developments which were the +fruit of seed he himself had helped to sow. He had fought to win Canada +for Britain; he had fought to crush the American Revolution. By 1800 he +sees how great Canada may become and is convinced that yielding +independence to the United States has not proved very injurious to Great +Britain. Though, in a short time, the United States was to secure the +great West by purchasing Louisiana from France, when Nairne died it had +not done so and in 1800 he could say that the United States "are small +in comparison of the whole of North America. They are bounded upon all +sides and will be filled up with people in no very great number of +years. Our share of North America is yet unknown in its extent. +Enterprising people in quest of furs travel for years towards the north +and towards the west through vast countries of good soil uninhabited as +yet ... [except] for hunting, and watered with innumerable lakes and +rivers, stored with fish, besides every other convenience for the use of +man, and certainly destined to be filled with people in some future +time. We have only [now] heard of one named Mackenzie[17] who is +reported to have been as far as the Southern Ocean (from Canada) across +this continent to the West." Long before Canada stretched from the +Atlantic to the Pacific Nairne was thus dreaming of what we now see. + +Of war, then raging, Nairne took a philosophic view. "War may be +necessary," he writes in 1798, "for some very Populous countrys as any +crop when too thick is the better of being thinned." But it occurred to +him that the problem of over-population in Europe might have been solved +in a less crude manner. "It is strange," he says, "that there should be +so much of the best part of the globe still unoccupied, where the foot +of man never trod, and in Europe such destruction of people. It is +however for some purpose we do not, as yet, comprehend." Those were the +days when Napoleon Bonaparte's star was rising and when, in defiance of +England, led by Pitt, he smote state after state which stood in the path +of his ambition. Nairne's friend and business agent James Ker, an +Edinburgh banker, was obviously no admirer of Pitt, for he writes on +July 20th, 1797, of the struggle with revolutionary France which, though +it was to endure for more than twenty years, had already, he thought, +lasted too long: + + After a four years' war undertaken for the attainment of objects + which were unattainable, in which we have been gradually deserted + by every one of our allies except Portugal, ... too weak to leave + us; and after a most shameless extravagance and Waste of the public + money which all feel severely by the imposition of new and + unthought of taxes, we have again sent an ambassador to France to + try to procure us Peace.... If our next crop be as bad as our two + last ones God knows what will become of us. If it were not for the + unexampled Bounty and Charity of the richer classes the Poor must + have literally starved, but we have been favoured with a very mild + winter. + +In 1798 when Napoleon led his forces to Egypt and disappeared from the +ken of Europe, Nairne hopes devoutly that "he has gone to the Devil, or, +which is much the same thing, among the Turks and Tartars where he and +his army may be destroyed." After Nelson succeeded in his attack on the +French fleet at the Battle of the Nile Nairne rejoices that his country +is supreme on the sea, "By ruling the waves she will rule the wealth of +the world not by plunder and conquest but by wisdom and commerce and +increasing riches everywhere to the happiness of mankind." On March +20th, 1801, when Austria had just made with France the Peace of +Lunéville, Ker writes again to Nairne: + + We live in the age of wonders, sudden changes and Revolutions. The + French have now completely turned the tables on us. They have + forced Austria to a disastrous peace and Russia, Prussia, Denmark + and Sweden from being our friends and Allies are now uniting with + our bitter foes for our destruction, so that from having almost all + Europe on our side against France we have now the contest to + support _alone_ against her _and almost all Europe_ and nothing + prevents the ambitious French Republic from being conquerors of the + world but our little Islands and our invincible fleets. + Notwithstanding all this we do not seem afraid of invasion and a + large fleet under Sir Hide Parker and Lord Nelson is preparing to + sail for the Baltic to bring the northern powers to a sense of + their duty, and to break in pieces the unnatural coalition with our + inveterate foes, the foes of Religion, Property, true Liberty, + which but for our strenuous efforts would soon nowhere exist on + this Globe. + +In spite of what Ker says as to no fear of invasion, such a fear grew +really very strong in 1801, and, for a brief period, it seemed as if +Murray Bay might become a refuge for Nairne's kindred in the distressed +mother land. One of his sisters writes in an undated letter: + + We are much obliged to you for the kind of reception you say we + should have met with at Mal Bay had we fled there from the French + and I do assure you ... it was for some time a very great comfort + and relief to think we had resources to trust to. I for one, I am + sure, was almost frightened out of my wits, for a visit from these + monsters, even the attempt, tho' they had been subdued after + landing, was fearsome. I suspect you might have had more of your + friends than your own family to have provided for. The Hepburns I + know turned their thoughts toward you and all of us determined to + work for our bread the best way we could. But you might have no + small addition to your settlers; some of us poor old creatures + would have settled heavy enough I fear upon yourself and family. It + is a fine place Mal Bay turned by your account. What a deal of + respectable company. I am glad of it on your account. A very great + piece of good fortune to get Col. Fraser so near; I wonder he does + not marry Maidy, but she will think him too old. I think Christine + may do a great deal worse than spend the summer if not more at Mal + Bay. You are most amazingly indulgent to her. I wish she would make + a grateful return by bestowing more of her company on her friends + at home in a situation it would appear so pleasant. But she is a + good kind-hearted Lassie after all and I suppose when she has got + her full swing of Quebec she will be very well pleased to return + home. + +A legislature now sat at Quebec, the result of the new Constitutional +Act passed in 1791, and Nairne might have become a member. Murray Bay +then formed a part of what, with little fitness, had been called by the +English conquerors the County of Northumberland, no doubt because it lay +in the far north of Canada as Northumberland lies in the far north of +England. Two members sat in the legislature for this county. "I never +had any idea of trying to be one of them," writes Nairne in 1800, "but +succeeded in procuring that honour for a friend Dr. Fisher, who resides +in Quebec. He is rich and much flattered with it and is ready on all +occasions to speak." + +To Nairne, contrary to a general impression, the climate of Canada did +not seem to grow milder as the land was cleared. In any case the blood +of old age runs less hotly. Formerly the winter had its delights of +hunting excursions but now, he writes, these are all over. "The passion +I had formerly for hunting and fishing and wandering through the woods +is abated.... What with the cold hand of old age my former Winter +excursions into the woods seem impossible and no more now of fishing +and hunting which formerly I esteemed so interesting a business." He +writes again: "My employment is more in the sedentary way than formerly +and what from calls in my own affairs and calls from people here in +theirs, accounts to settle, &c., [I have] ... plenty of occupation. +Besides being a Justice of the Peace and Colonel of Militia ... I employ +myself without doors in farming, gardening, clearing and manuring land." +If we may credit the words of Bishop Hubert of Quebec written just at +this time (in 1794) the new liberties gained by the habitants did not +make the seigneur's task easier. The good bishop makes sweeping charges +of general dishonesty; of attempts to defraud the church of her tithe +and the seigneurs of their dues; of bitter feuds between families and +innumerable law suits. In such conditions Nairne, as a justice of the +peace, would have his hands full. + +His end was drawing very near. One of his sisters died in 1798. This +brought sad thoughts but he wrote: "I am very thankful to have found in +the world connexions who have produced such regards and sympathys. Time +seems not to be going slowly now-a-days but running fast. I hope we are +to have other times and to know one another hereafter." "I must make +haste now," he wrote later, in 1801, "to finish all improvements here +that may be possible as I will soon be finished myself. Crushed already +under a load of years of 7 times 10 really I find the last 2 years ... +heavier than 20 before that time." "The scenes of this life," he had +written to his old friend and neighbour Malcolm Fraser "are continually +varying like the elements, sometimes cloudy, sometimes sun shine; [it] +never lasts long one way or the other till night soon comes and we must +then lie down and die. Therefore all is vanity and vexation of spirit, +but God will help us and most certainly some time or other bless and +reward the friendly honest man." + +His last letter to his Scottish relations was intended to be a farewell: + + _Colonel Nairne to his Sister Miss M. Nairne From Murray Bay, 20th + April, 1802._ + + My Dear Madie,-- + + I shall see our friends in the world of spirits probably before any + of you; whatever darkness we are in here I have always convinced + myself that we shall meet again in a better place hereafter. + + Although I have enjoyed good health till past 70 years of age, the + agues of Holland and sometimes excessive fatigue have probably + weakened parts of my inward machinery that they are now wore out + and must soon finish their functions. I can have no reason to + expect to live longer than our father; I am chiefly uneasy that the + event may occasion grief to my sisters, yet it ought to be less + felt my being at a distance; a poor affair to grieve when it must + be all your fates to follow. I am happy that Mr. Ker understands my + circumstances and my last will, and that he will be so good and so + able to assist in settling it properly; I wish to follow his ideas + therein in case of any difficulty, and I am likewise perfectly + satisfied with all Mr. Ker's accounts with me. I write this letter + to you to go by the first ship in case I should not be able to + write later; I do not expect to be able to write to Robie Hepburn + nor to Mr. Ker; nothing I can tell now from this country can + entertain them; my mind is taken up with nothing but the + Friendship, which they know.... So soon as the weather is warmer I + intend to go to Quebec in order to obtain the best advice: I shall + not personally be so conveniently situated there, as here. I am + able yet to go out as far as a bank before the Door and to walk + through the rooms; indeed the arrangements and conveniences of this + house with the attendance and attention I receive are all in the + best manner I can possibly desire; ... it's enough to say that were + you here I think you would approve of them. Industry and neatness + prevail and everything nesessary [is] foreseen and provided for. No + wonder my wife and I agree so well now these thirty-five years as + she happens to be equal in every moral attribute which I pretend + to.... We are in friendship with everybody, because we do justice + impartially and really without vanity have assisted many persons in + forming farms and providing for the support of familys; although + thereby not in the way of enriching ourselves it affords perhaps as + much Satisfaction. + + This place certainly thrives exceedingly; although we may by such + exertions be recommending ourselves to the Father of all things, + how poor they appear in my eyes having read lately the Newspapers. + Most unreasonable are some men in Parliament to find fault with the + ministry of Pitt and Dundass who have steered the Vessel of the + State so successfully through such dangerous times and threatening + appearances. Every Briton I think has reason to be proud of his + Country which is raised higher than ever before not only in + national Character but in its prospects of Commerce and Wealth by + the Peace [the brief Peace of Amiens signed in March, 1802]. What + prodigious honour and glory has been acquired and bestowed upon our + Army of Egypt, exertions indeed on the most conspicuous theatre of + the World and at the most conspicuous period of the world. We + formerly thought ourselves sort of heroes by conquering Louisbourg + and Quebec but nothing must be compared to that of Egypt.... The + French troops have fought much better under their Diacal + Republican government than under their King's and our troops not + only fight equally well as formerly, but our Generals and Officers + are much better writers; never have I read better wrote letters + than those describing these renown'd events. + + But pray allow me to sink into poetry to help to fill up this + paper; ... let me transcribe a letter in verse which is handed me + now by an old Soldier residing near us.[18] He received it from an + acquaintance of his who is only a private soldier in the 26th + Regiment. That Regt. is now gone home; ... should it be at + Edinburgh pray invite James Stevenson to a dram of Whiskey for my + sake; though I do not know the man we had served together in the + American War and he shows the idea the private men had of me and + how a man of a slender education (I believe from Glasgow) can make + verses. The Canadians here, I believe, have the same opinion though + they are very far from making verses upon any subject whatever; it + is much more useful here to cut down trees which they can do with + great dexterity. + + Quebec, 25th April, 1800. + + My worthy conty, gude Jock Warren, + Thou's still jocose and ay auld farren, + Gentle and kind, blythe, frank and free, + And always unco' gude to me. + And now thou's sold thy country ware + And towards hame mean to repair.[19] + Accept these lines although but weak + And read them for thy Comrade's sake. + May plenty still around thee smile + And God's great help thy foes beguile, + In Wisdom's path be sure to tread + And her fair daughter Virtue wed. + My compliments and love sincere + To all our friends both here and there, + But in particular to him + That's tall in body, long in limb, + Auld faithful Loyal, Johny Nairne, + Lang may he count you his ain bairne; + By his example still be sway'd; + Be his good precepts still obeyed; + Revere this good and worthy man + And always do the best you can. + This is my wish and expectation, + God granting you and me salvation. + We ance were young but now we're auld, + Oour blood from heat commences cauld, + A drop of whiskey warms the whole, + Renews the body, cheers the soul; + Observing still due moderation, + In order to prevent vexation, + Proceeding on with cautious care + Till Death with his grim face appear; + Then with a conscience, just and true + See Heaven's Glory, in your View. + + My neighbour, Mr. Fraser, tells me that by my looks and speaking he + cannot think me so ill as imagined. You will think the same by my + writing the above. My distemper is owing to Gravelly Ulcers and it + is a great chance at my time of life to recover, so [we] should be + prepared for the worst. + + It is a satisfaction to me to have been able to write this letter, + such as it is. My thoughts are every day and every night with my + sisters and [I] figure myself frequently at your fireside. Remember + I am not to write any more unless I get a great deal better. [I] + shall refer you to Christine to correspond and to tell you all you + would wish to know from this country. And now I have nothing but + Compts. and love to send to all my friends--to Robie Hepburn as my + oldest and nearest my heart--my blessings to his family, as to the + Kers and Congaltons. And once more to Anny you and Mary and Mrs. + Ker and my Polly and Tom. God bless you all. I am truly my dear + Madie with much affection, + + Yours for aye, + + JOHN NAIRNE. + +Nairne was not mistaken in his view that the end was near. He writes +about this time to his physician at Quebec (there was no practitioner at +Murray Bay) describing his symptoms and ends: "Now, dear Doctor, I dare +say you think some apologies necessary for my troubling you so +particularly with the complaints of an old man of 71, as his inward +machinery is probably wore out and irreparable." In a last vain hope +they took him to Quebec for medical care. But the machinery was, indeed, +"wore out," and at Quebec, on July 14th, 1802, he closed his eyes on a +world which, though it brought him labour and sorrow, he thought to be +very good. + +Among his own letters is preserved the printed invitation to his +funeral: + + Quebec, _Wednesday, 14th July, 1802._ + + Sir,-- + + The favour of your company is requested to attend the Funeral of + the late Colonel Nairne, from No. 1 Grison Street, on Cape Diamond, + to the place of interment, on Friday next at one o'clock in the + afternoon. + +All that was most worthy in Quebec attended to do honour to his memory. +He was buried in the Protestant cemetery; long after his body was +removed to Mount Hermon Cemetery, to lie beside his son and +grandson--the last of his race. + +Nairne played his part with high purpose and integrity. Among his papers +at Murray Bay is a prayer, intended apparently for daily use, in which +he asks that he may be vigilant in conduct and immovable in all good +purposes; that he may show courage in danger, patience in adversity, +humility in prosperity. He asks, too, to be made sensible "how little is +this world, how great [are] thy Heavens, and how long will be thy +blessed eternity." It is the prayer of a strong soul facing humbly and +reverently the tasks of life.[20] He would have wished to found a +community English speaking and Protestant. But the forces of nature were +against him. The few English speaking people who came in (and they were +but a few scattered individuals) for the most part married French +wives. The children held the faith and spoke the tongue which they +learned at their mothers' knees. It was the course of nature, and always +we are foolish to quarrel with nature. A granite monument marks the +resting place where the good old man sleeps in the cemetery at Quebec, +but some memorial might well stand at Murray Bay, that those who look +out upon the majestic river, the blue mountains, the smiling valley +should have before them a reminder of the "friendly, honest man" who, a +century and a half ago, began to win their heritage from the +wilderness.[21] + +[Footnote 13: It may be convenient to state at once the dates of the +births and deaths of each of these children: + +Magdalen (Madie) (Mrs. McNicol) born 1767 died 1839. +Christine Nairne " 1774 " 1817. +John Nairne " 1777 " 1799. +Mary (Polly) Nairne " 1782 " 1821. +Thomas Nairne " 1787 " 1813. +] + +[Footnote 14: See Appendix D., p. 277., for a formal memorandum drawn up +by Nairne for his son's guidance.] + +[Footnote 15: See Appendix E., p. 279. "The 'Porpoise' (Beluga or White +Whale) Fishery on the St. Lawrence."] + +[Footnote 16: "Les Anciens Canadiens," Chapter IV.] + +[Footnote 17: Sir Alexander Mackenzie who accomplished in 1793 what was +then the astonishing feat of crossing the Rocky Mountains to the Pacific +Ocean and whose book, "Voyages from Montreal on the River St. Lawrence, +through the Continent of North America, to the Frozen and Pacific +Oceans," first published in 1801, attracted general attention, including +even that of Napoleon Bonaparte.] + +[Footnote 18: John Warren, the ancestor of the numerous family at Murray +Bay of that name.] + +[Footnote 19: Warren, Nairne's neighbour, had been visiting Quebec +apparently for business reasons.] + +[Footnote 20: See Appendix F., p. 286, for this Prayer of Colonel +Nairne.] + +[Footnote 21: The inscription to be placed on Nairne's tomb was long a +subject of debate in the family. Two drafts remain at Murray Bay, both +copious in length, and neither like the inscription now to be found at +Mount Hermon Cemetery. (See p. 221.) In the taste of the time +inscriptions were expected to give a full account of the career of the +dead man. One of these inscriptions speaks of Nairne's "enjoying as a +reward of his services a gift of Land on the River St. Lawrence. He had +alike the merit and the happiness of converting a wild and uninhabited +desert into a flourishing colony of above 1000 inhabitants, who regarded +him as their Tender Friend and Patriarch. He died honoured with the +esteem of all who knew him." The other inscription mentions what, +otherwise, we should not have known, that Nairne received a wound on the +Plains of Abraham. It goes on in verse: + + "Though 'gainst the Foe a dauntless Front he reared, + Ne'er from his lips was aught assuming heard; + Modest, though brave; though firm, in manners mild, + Strong in resolve, though guileless as a child; + To honor true, in probity correct; + To falsehood [stern] and urgent to detect; + To party strange, to calumny a foe; + The good Samaritan to sons of woe; + At a late hour he heard the fatal call, + Obeyed and died, wept and deplored by all." +] + + + + +CHAPTER VI + +THOMAS NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + + His Education in Scotland.--His winning character.--He enters the + army.--Malcolm Fraser's counsels to a young soldier.--Thomas + Nairne's life at Gibraltar.--His desire to retire from the + army.--His return to Canada in 1810-11.--His life at Quebec.--His + summer at Murray Bay, 1811.--His resolve to remain in the + army.--Beginning of the War of 1812.--Captain Nairne on Lake + Ontario.--Quebec Society and the proposed flight from danger to + Murray Bay.--Anxiety at Murray Bay.--The progress of the War.--An + American attack on Kingston.--Captain Nairne on the Niagara + frontier.--Naval War on Lake Ontario.--Nairne's description of a + naval engagement.--Sense of impending disaster at Murray Bay.--The + American advance on Montreal by the St. Lawrence.--Nairne's + regiment a part of the opposing British force.--The Battle of + Crysler's Farm.--Nairne's death.--His body taken to Quebec.--The + grief of the family at Murray Bay.--The funeral. + + +At his father's death Thomas Nairne was the only surviving son. In 1791 +the father had written of this boy, born in 1787 and thus only four +years old: "Tom continues very stout but not easy to manage and [I] am +afraid it will be difficult to separate [him] from his mother. He does +not speak a word of English; neither do your sisters Mary (now called +Polly) or Anny speak any other language than French; but I intend to +send them all to Quebec next summer, where it's to be hoped they will +soon learn to understand a little English." So to Quebec Tom was sent to +begin his education. By 1798, when only eleven years old, he had gone to +the relatives in Scotland and Nairne's friend, Ker, writes of him: "I +think Tommie one of the sweetest tempered fine boys I ever saw and he +will, I doubt not, be the comfort and delight of you all." Polly was +there too--"a very good girl ... of great use to her Aunts to whom she +pays every attention." Tom, like his brother John, was carefully +instructed by his father. He must look after himself, dress, care for +his clothes, and keep clean, without troubling others. Especially must +he try to think clearly and speak distinctly--truly a sound beginning of +education. His brother's death in 1799 made him an important person, the +pride of his house. "There are many Tams now in this parish," wrote his +father in 1801, "even a part of it is named St. Thomas, all in +compliment to our Tom." At the time of his father's death in 1802, a boy +of fifteen, Tom was attending the Edinburgh High School. Before me lies +a coverless account book of octavo size in which are written by some +careful person, in clear round-hand, recipes, scraps of poetry, problems +in arithmetic and geometry, and among other things, "Tom's Expenses, +1796." A quarter at the High School costs 10/6, "Lattin books," 4/-, +school money is 3/-, a ferret 3d., and so on. His sister Polly's +expenses are entered in the same book and that young lady's outlay was +more formidable. Items for the milliner such as "making up a Bonnet. +3/6," (young ladies still wore bonnets) are frequent. Miss Polly spent +6/- on ear-rings. Once when she took a "Shaise" it cost her 2/-, while +"Chair Hire" is sometimes 1/6 and sometimes reduced to the modest +proportions of 9d. No doubt for her health's sake she bought for 1/- a +"Sacred Tincture" which, we may hope, did her good. + +Thomas Nairne was an attractive boy. He lived with his father's executor +and friend, James Ker, an Edinburgh banker, a wise, prudent, far-seeing, +man. Mr. Ker was married to Colonel Nairne's niece and he received Tom +as his own child. The boy was the inseparable companion of Ker's son +Alick. Tom won praises on all sides. An Aunt wrote seriously that she +had feared he was too good to live; and she comforted Nairne's grief at +his son John's death by the thought of what Tom will be to him. He is "a +happy chearful pleased little fellow always quiet at home"--but also +"happy and at home wherever he goes." So thoughtful, she adds, is he +that, entirely on his own motion, he deems it proper to write to his +mother; one of these letters is before me--beautifully written in a +large but well-formed schoolboy hand. "A very promising sweet young +man," was the renewed judgment of his business-like guardian upon Tom +in 1803, when he was a boy of only sixteen. By that time, it was thought +that Tom had exhausted the advantages of the Edinburgh High School. The +Edinburgh accent of the day did not suit the taste of his fastidious +guardian, who hoped that in an English school a better manner of speech +might be acquired. Tom's cousin and companion, Alick Ker, a boy a few +years older, was going to school at Durham and thither also went Tom. +The lads "are the greatest friends in the world," wrote his watchful +aunt; "Alick does not know how to exist without Tom but Tom is more +independent of Alick, for he is not so shy." In an aunt's, perhaps +partial, view Tom was quicker and showed more application than Alick. +"Tom advances with great deliberation in his height," she writes, which +was very convenient, for, since Alick was older, Tom came in for Alick's +out-grown clothes and this saved expense. + +When the boy's school days were drawing to an end his future course was +the topic of much discussion. Tom's father had wished him to study law, +though not to practice it: in Canada, he thought, there was no lucrative +opening for any one trained in the law unless he was made a judge. Old +Malcolm Fraser, Tom's adviser after his father's death, would have had +him, for safety's sake, adopt a civilian life; he was the last male of +his house and therefore ought not to be exposed to a soldier's dangers. +Tom's Edinburgh friends wished him to become a Writer to the Signet or, +at any rate, to learn something about business since, as a landed +proprietor, he must be a man of affairs. But the youth took the matter +in his own hands. For his father's character and career he had always a +great reverence; soldier's blood was in his veins, and nature had her +way. Tom became a soldier and, when the school days are ended, we find +the boy, not yet eighteen, Lieutenant in the 10th Regiment of Foot. +Fraser wrote to Tom protesting against what he had done and from Maldon +Barracks, in Essex, on April 5th, 1805, Tom answers his godfather's +objections. Perhaps to add solemnity to his argument the old man had +assumed the tone of a valetudinarian and Tom replies: "I would fain hope +you had no reason for saying you would soon follow my dear Father. I +hope God will spare you to us since he has thought proper to take my +Father to Himself. Your loss would be irreparable, I having no other +person to protect my mother and sisters as I have chosen a line of life +in which I may never have the fortune of being near them." In spite of +Fraser's appeal, Tom's resolution to remain in the army was unshaken. + +It was an amazing era in Europe and well may Fraser have feared for the +young Lieutenant's safety. While the boy was writing, Napoleon +Bonaparte, with the lustre fresh upon him of a recent gorgeous +coronation at Paris as Emperor of the French, was gathering at Boulogne +a great army and hundreds of small boats with which this army might, he +hoped, be thrown across into England within twenty-four hours. That +country was very nervous but, for some reason, Tom's regiment, instead +of being kept at home to meet the invader, was sent to Gibraltar. Here +he remained inactive while world-shaking events were happening, while +Trafalgar and Austerlitz and Jena were fought, and Pitt stricken with +"the noblest of all sorrows," grief for the seeming ruin of his country, +told those about him to "roll up the map of Europe," and died +heartbroken. Not unnaturally at such a time Gibraltar seemed dull; a +miserable place, Tom thought, a prison on a large scale. His friends +wrote him letters containing an abundance of good advice, all of which +he took with becoming modesty. A letter from Fraser of this character is +still excellent reading; his counsels to the young soldier have added +weight when we remember that the author was with Wolfe at Louisbourg and +Quebec and now, nearly fifty years later, was still active in the +militia forces of Canada. + + _Malcolm Fraser to Lieut. Thomas Nairne_ + + _From Murray Bay, 7th October, 1805._ + + My Dear Godson,-- + + I had the very great pleasure of receiving yours of the 5th April + last at this place on the 15th September and as your sister Miss + Christine has wrote you I must refer you to her for the news of + Murray Bay. She left this for Quebec a few days ago and every thing + continues to go well here and I hope will do so. Your mother + improves your estate daily and if she lives ten years I am + convinced that she will make it worth double what it was ten years + ago and if after a peace, when I hope you will have a company, you + can get exchanged into a Regiment serving in this Country without + losing rank, you will by that means have an opportunity of + examining your own affairs here and it will give the greatest + pleasure to your mother and other relations and friends within your + native country, and particularly to me, should I happen to live so + long. Christine has I suppose wrote that you are now an uncle, your + sister Madie having been delivered of a fine boy about two months + ago, and I have the pleasure to tell you that she and her husband + seem to be very happy and, tho' I did not at first approve of the + match, that I am now quite reconciled to it as are all her friends + here, as well as those in Scotland as far as I can learn. + + Now as to yourself: tho' I had some objections to your going into + the army so very young, yet now that you have become a soldier, I + hope you will continue to follow the military life with ardour and + Emulation as far as lays in your power and that you will endeavour + to employ your spare time in acquiring the various accomplishments + necessary to become a good officer. I would by no means advise you + to avoid such innocent pleasures and amusements as are suitable to + your age and rank. But I pray you beware of being led astray or + going into any excess. I am very glad to find that the army is now + in general much less addicted to (what was falsely called) the + pleasures of the bottle than in former times, but you may still + meet with temptations in that way which I hope you'll guard + against. Try to resemble your late worthy father in temperance and + moderation as well as in punctuality and exactness in doing your + duty with strict subordination to your superiors, particularly to + the commanding officer of your corps, as it is by his + recommendation, commonly, that those under his immediate command + may expect promotion. You must by all means avoid getting into any + parties or factions against him, which I have known sometimes to + have unfortunately happened to others; but there can be hardly + anything more detrimental to the service as well as dishonourable + to the corps wherein it takes place. I would also recommend to you + ..., in case you are engaged in any action, to beware of passing + judgment on the conduct of your Commanders, till at least you are + of an age and have acquired experience to entitle you to give your + opinion, as it is very common for a young man to be mistaken. You + must also avoid any dispute or difference with your brother + officers, for tho' there are unhappily some cases where a gentleman + _must_ vindicate his honour yet where I have known such things + happen they might have been prevented _with honour_ if the parties + had not allowed their passions to get the better of their reason; + and you must remember there is never honour to be acquired by being + quarrelsome, but the reverse, and that your life ought now to be + devoted to the service of your King and country. I know you will + not be sparing of it when occasion requires. + + I would also recommend to you to read useful books when you have + time and to acquire a competent knowledge of History, both Ancient + and Modern, especially that of the country in whose service you + are engaged, as also such books as treat of your profession; and to + pay particular attention to the lives and actions of those who have + distinguished themselves in its service, who you will find to have + been in general as remarkable for their moral, as for their + military characters; and I hope you will endeavour to imitate them + and, tho' you may not acquire the rank, you must remember that you + cannot become a _good general_ or even a good officer without first + acquiring a competent knowledge of your profession. For this + purpose (tho' I never had any proper knowledge of those matters + myself yet I am sensible of my deficiency) I would have you study + and read such books as treat of fortification and encampments; and + as you are still very young I imagine you may soon acquire a + competent knowledge by such reading, suitable to avail yourself of + it on any emergency. + + I must now recommend you to keep those who may be under your + command in that degree of subordination and obedience which the + service requires. But you must never forget that your inferiors, + even the Private Man who serves in the ranks, is your fellow + soldier and fellow-man, and that you are bound to show him every + attention and humanity in your power. This was one of the many good + qualities for which your father was remarkable, for which he was + beloved by all ranks; and I hope you will imitate him. I must now + conclude by recommending to you to let me hear from you once a + year, at least, or oftener if an opportunity offers. Nothing can + give more pleasure than to hear good accounts of you to + + Your affectionate godfather, + + MALCOLM FFRASER. + + In short you must never forget that you may at times become + responsible for the lives and honour of those under your command as + well as for your own, and, it may even happen, for that of your + King and Country, in some degree, and that you are to act + accordingly. All this with more and much better you may read or + hear from others; but I flatter myself that you will not think the + less of it as coming from _me_. + +It must be admitted that the soldier's ideal in that age for the British +army was as high as our own. We are accustomed to think that a hundred +years ago drunkenness was hardly accounted a vice. Perhaps it was not in +civil life, but in the army, in young Nairne's time, sobriety was the +rule. Writing on May 20th, 1807, he says that few in the army resort to +drink, as a pleasure, even at Gibraltar, where wine is cheap and +plentiful; the allowance in the regiment after dinner is but one-third +of a bottle, and only now and then when there are guests is it usual to +depart from this allowance. The deadly dullness and idleness of +Gibraltar were its chief defects, the young officer thought. + +There had been futile talk of peace. On August 13th, 1806, Ker wrote to +Murray Bay from Edinburgh: "We expect to hear of Peace between this +country and France. The Earl of Lauderdale has been sent to Paris to +treat. But what sort of peace can we make with Bona Parte?" What sort +indeed? Peace was not to come during Tom Nairne's lifetime. He was +getting ready meanwhile for an enlarged career. At Gibraltar he pressed +his guardian to purchase him a captaincy. Those were the bad old days +when promotion in the army went largely by purchase and Tom had been +Lieutenant for little more than a year when, at a cost of £1,000, Ker +bought for him the desired rank; he attained to this dignity at the age +of nineteen. The purchase strained his resources severely but his family +got some comfort out of the thought that he was advancing. There was an +excellent library at Gibraltar and he had good opportunities for +self-improvement of which he promised to avail himself. But the promise +was hardly realized. At any rate Tom gave a very poor account of his own +doings for, after he had returned to England, he wrote to his mother +(from Chelmsford Barracks on March 19th, 1808) a not very flattering +account of himself at Gibraltar: + + Only figure to yourself a rock, about two miles and a half in + length and scarcely the fifth part of that in breadth, and then + most likely you will not be so much astonished at my making the + above comparison [of Gibraltar to a prison], from which you may + wisely suppose that those unfortunate beings who had the misfortune + of being shut up in it led a most inactive and stupid life.... + However, to give the Devil his due, I must not omit to observe that + it contained a most excellent Library, by which means officers + might improve themselves greatly and spend their leisure hours to + their credit, provided they were desirous of doing so; particularly + as nothing existed in that place to take off their attention from + study; and I make no doubt but some young men had the sense to + profit by that favourable opportunity. At the same time [I] am + extremely sorry to inform you your promising son did not, in any + shape whatever, and am much concerned to add that he spent a very + idle life whilst there, doing nothing else the live-long day than + riding or lounging; which I presume you will think was a complete + disgrace to any man of a liberal education, in which I perfectly + agree with you.... I sincerely hope and trust that he [your son] + will mend as he becomes older and wiser. + +Tom confesses himself at this time "a complete idle, good for nothing +fellow," but he disarms his mother's reproaches when he adds that he is +chiefly occupied in thinking of her and of his large estate in Canada +where he longs to be. It had for him a new attraction, since his cousin +Alick Ker was just going out to Canada, a Captain on the staff of Sir +James Craig, the new Governor, who was related to the Kers. For the time +Tom's family was content that he should be at Gibraltar, where he was +safe, and where, too, as Ker prudently says, "he lives cheaper than he +could in England, has a genteel [how the age loved that word!] society +and the use of a large Library." He rode on the sandy beach; sometimes, +until the coming of the French troops, the British officers were allowed +to ride into Spain. + +These diversions all came to an end on August 26th, 1807, when Tom +turned his back on Gibraltar for good. Incredible as it may now seem, +the voyage to England took nearly a month; he arrived on the 24th of +September. The young man had been turning over seriously his future +prospects. In a letter to his mother he makes some enquiry about his +own probable income from his estate. While protesting that he is himself +"a Devilish ugly fellow" he has some thought of getting his mother to +choose a "rib" for him and, presumptuous as it may seem, she must be +handsome. He was thinking now of a civilian career. At Gibraltar he had +found that he was short-sighted, and long sight seemed a necessity to a +soldier. But Fraser, to whom he poured out his woe, answered that +short-sightedness need not interfere with his efficiency; Colonel Nairne +had been short-sighted and yet, withal, a successful officer; the +question of sight would matter only if he was in command, in face of the +enemy, and, even then, he could get assistance. Fraser advised him to +stay in the army until he attained the rank of a field officer, when he +might retire on half pay to his estate at Murray Bay, "extensive but not +valuable in proportion." In truth Tom, tired of the army, was home-sick. +He says to Fraser that he is "feeling an indescribable degree of anxiety +to see my dearest mother, sisters, and yourself, not forgetting to +include my estate, where I often figure myself, strutting about like +unto a mighty Bashaw; which peaceful idea I sincerely hope will be +realized, some day or other, if it pleases God to spare me so long; ... +my only desire is now that blessed time may be near at hand or even that +I could afford to set out to Murray Bay without any further delay. +However it is proper to drown that wish, for the present, amongst the +noise of arms, as the whole world is up against us, and my assistance, +though little enough, God knows, may be of some use. At all events it +would be tasting the sweets of this life before I had ever felt the +miseries of it." He ends by asking that nothing of which he is possessed +may be spared "towards making Alick Ker pass a pleasant time in Canada." + +The fear which the old aunt had ingenuously expressed that Tom might +prove too good to live was happily belied, for he appears to have been a +sufficiently idle young fellow, though, as his watchful guardian wrote, +"a good economist"; the same guardian thought this extremely opportune, +since "Bona Parte," with all Europe under his heel, was making it lively +for the fortunate islands, and forcing them to levy a tax of 10% on +incomes. "This tax," writes the indignant banker, "is one of the many +blessed fruits of the French Revolution, and of the horrible tyranny and +perfidy of their rascally Emperor." + +Not long did Tom remain in England. Soon he was off with his regiment to +Sicily, at this period garrisoned by British troops, and saved by a +strip of inviolate sea from the grasp of the master of Italy. The +sojourn in Sicily must have been dull. He was stationed at Syracuse, but +his school training had not gone deep enough to interest him in +Thucydides's marvellous story of the siege of that place or in the +antiquities of Sicily. The chief surviving record of his sojourn in +Sicily is an account from his washerwoman, "Mrs. De Lass," dated at +Syracuse the 8th of March, 1809. His distaste for the army was now +complete. His sister Polly had ended her school days and, by a fortunate +circumstance, had gone out to Canada "under the protection of Sir +William Johnstone's lady" and to Canada Tom was himself resolved to go. +Early in 1810, he was back in Edinburgh, taking a few weeks' holiday +with the Kers, resolved to go on half pay at once, if possible, or, +failing this, to sell out, and after a delay of fourteen or fifteen +months, to go home to Murray Bay. The intervening time he intended to +spend in the study of farming; he had almost completed a plan for going +into Berwickshire to reside with a farmer and thus equip himself as a +land owner. His friends thought him changeable. "The Captain," wrote Ker +on the 30th of March, 1810, "is a sweet tempered good young man but he +wants steadiness.... I fear that after trying to be a farmer at Murray +Bay he may tire and want to return to the army." So serious was Tom +about his future bucolic life that he wrote to his sister Christine, as +he had written before to his mother, to ask whether she did not think he +should look round for a wife; such a companion would be necessary, he +thought, if he settled down as a farmer in Canada. We can imagine that +the proposition, from a youth of twenty-three, caused some dismay among +the occupants of the Manor House at Murray Bay; but Tom was soon +professing himself something of a woman hater and he never married. + +His return to Murray Bay followed quickly. By a fortunate, or perhaps, +in view of the tragic fate awaiting poor Tom, unfortunate, chance, +instead of going on half-pay, he was able to exchange from the 10th +Regiment of Foot to the Newfoundland Regiment. The chief reason for the +exchange was that the Newfoundland Regiment was ordered to Canada, where +Tom could get leave of absence to pay a long visit to Murray Bay and +learn how its life would suit him. So, in the autumn of 1810, the young +man was in Canada, which he had not seen since childhood. To Murray Bay +he soon paid a flying visit; the longer leave of absence would come +later. His competent, busy, prudent and affectionate old mother welcomed +him with open arms. He had thought of himself as a young Bashaw +strutting round among the people of his seigniory. No doubt they were +much interested to see the young Captain; but his duties soon called him +back to Quebec, from which place on December 3rd, 1810, he writes to his +mother: + + I have this moment finished drinking tea, all alone.... You have + totally spoiled my relish for anything except for Murray Bay; my + notions of things in general appear to be entirely changed. Murray + Bay while viewed only in perspective afforded me a sort of pleasing + reflection; but now that I have a nearer view and enjoyed its + comforts my ideas have experienced a complete revolution. So you + see what your society and most kind loving treatment have effected. + You may therefore rest assured that no stone will be left unturned + to try to get back in order that we may remain together in this + world as long as it may please the Almighty to permit us. On my + arrival here at 2 o'clock p.m. I proceeded to the Upper Town in + order to look out for a bed, concerning the getting of which I had + entertained my doubts being, _tout ensemble_, a queer figure, + having on my covered handkerchief, thick great coat, Canadian + boots, and round hat; in short at the first essay I was refused by + a "No room in the house, Sir," a common reply given to those whose + unfortunate appearance happens not exactly to please the harsh and + scrutinizing eye of the lord of the mansion. I then turned my + frozen steps towards this house of hospitality where after + explaining _mon besoin_ to the waiter he scrupulously and + critically eyed me from top to toe, from head to foot, then turned + on his heel to go to his master and report accordingly. During his + absence I commenced a serious inspection of self to find if + possible what had attracted his attention so pointedly towards my + toes, when I observed the cause to be the silver chain of my + over-alls peeping out from under my great-coat; which, no doubt, + was the reason of having received a favourable answer; for on his + re-entrance he asked me to sit down and I finally engaged a room. + +On January 9th, 1811, Tom wrote to say that a man had arrived from +Murray Bay but without letters: + + "What the Devil has come over those sisters of mine? Pray are they + still behind the stove patching their old stockings? No time + forsooth--Rediculous--Could not the lazy wretches have only wrote + me the scratch of a pen merely to wish me a good New Year? Mr. + McCord to be sure mumbles something about time; it is highly + diverting to have country lasses talk about want of time, + particularly those I am now speaking of, unless they have greatly + altered for the better since I saw them last, and turned their + hands to cow-keeping, tending of poultry, or something of that + description; but I'll be bound for it they still employ themselves + with nothing else except perching behind the stove, growling, and + driving carriols." + +He exhorts his sisters to take long walks in the fine cold weather. Then +he dips into politics. There is to be an election at Murray Bay for the +county of Northumberland and Mr. Bouchette, a Canadian, had asked for +the interest of Tom as seigneur. He regrets that he cannot himself offer +to stand since he is unsettled in plans, "and totally unacquainted with +the language of the country"; a strange comment on the fact that in +early youth he had known only French. The habitant had recently secured +the right to vote but already pleased himself in exercising it. Though, +as Tom says, "Dr. La Terrière of the adjacent seigniory of Les +Eboulements, the Curés, and the Devil knows who" all wished Bouchette +elected and Tom was himself anxious that a habitant should not be +chosen, Bouchette failed and a habitant was sent to Quebec to represent +the district in the Legislature. + +Tom's letters written during the winter of 1810-1811 are full of the +gossip and events of the time in Quebec. He is now obviously keen for +self-improvement, and, in the manner of his father, for the improvement +of others also; while congratulating Polly on the better style of her +letters which are now "sprightly", he corrects her spelling. Among other +things he is trying to complete a proper inscription for his father's +tomb. He sends for the title deeds of his property in order that he may +do homage to the governor Sir James Craig, and shows a lively interest +in the management of his estate. His father's old friend, Colonel +Fraser, was visiting Quebec which, more than fifty years earlier, he had +helped to win for Britain but where now, it is somewhat sad to think, he +has, as Tom says, very few acquaintances. So the young Captain spends +two or three hours daily with the Colonel and finds that he has many +interesting subjects to talk with him about. He drives with him into the +country. He enquires about a house in Quebec which his mother had some +thought of buying and talks of a trip to Montreal to buy a horse to send +to Murray Bay. In the letters home Christine, "Rusty" is the special +object of his teasing. She has been accustomed to spend the winters at +Quebec, but is now at Murray Bay, and he asks how she likes the dull +country at this season. "She never says anything about it, which is in +her favour.... I trust that through the means of Picquet you contrive to +keep her rusty dollars moving." Tom's absence from Murray Bay was soon +to end. On March, 23rd, 1811, he wrote joyously that he has got leave of +absence for six months, and is coming "to my own dear Murray Bay." +Christine had been dangerously ill and he is naturally anxious to be at +home. + +So behold the young seigneur disporting himself at Murray Bay in the +spring of 1811. Old Malcolm Fraser, at the manor of Mount Murray just +across the bay, kept a watchful eye on the godson who, he had begun to +fear, was not proving wholly satisfactory. The cause of Fraser's +misgiving is not clear but he lectured Tom with tactful insight. Of his +own career the young officer was now beginning to take a new view. +During the long holiday at Murray Bay he had time to taste its pleasures +and to learn its chief interests. He went out fishing and shooting; he +sailed and rowed on the river; he occupied himself in the daily business +of the seigniory, for which his competent mother had so long cared; she +was now building a mill which would probably add to Tom's revenues. He +made friends with the curé Mr. Le Courtois. This gentleman, a French +émigré, who found a refuge in Canada, had thrown himself with great +devotion into the rough life of a missionary among the scattered +peoples, Canadians and Indians alike, of his remote parish. He was a man +of culture and remained always a valued counsellor of the Protestant +family in the Manor House.[22] But, in spite of all the interests and +friendships at Murray Bay, Tom soon found that the little community +hardly needed him. Every thing was well looked after, prosperous and +promising. He would be only a fifth wheel to the coach and, before long, +he had made up his mind that he had better stick to his military career. + +Without doubt Tom was a young man of winning character. Malcolm Fraser, +having studied him and lectured him, reconsidered his unfavourable +estimate, and wrote to Ker on the 10th of October, 1811: "I think him +incapable of any immoral or mean action; ... he seems to hearken to the +lectures of his old Godfather tho' not perhaps always delivered in the +most delicate Style." To his mother he was a tender son, and for his +father's memory he showed a filial reverence. One of his first acts on +arriving in Canada had been to arrange for the erection in Quebec of a +proper monument in his memory--something that others had long talked +about and which Tom brought to completion, but which has, alas, long +since disappeared. Tom was in truth a man of action, and to action in +the larger world he now turned. Towards the end of September, 1811, at +the time when, to-day, Murray Bay's summer sojourners turn reluctantly +homeward from the crisp autumn air and from the mountain sides beginning +to show the season's glowing tints, Captain Nairne set out from the +Manor House to join his regiment at Quebec. He had in mind a plan to go +back to Europe and to get to Spain or Portugal for a share in the +Peninsular War then raging. Fraser, now in his 79th year, writes on +October 10th, 1811, his advice that the young man "should continue on +full pay till he attains the rank of Major, by brevet or otherwise, and +then, if he chooses, he may exchange and retire on the half of whatever +full pay he holds at the time, and as soon as such exchange can be +accomplished with decency and propriety." War with the United States was +now impending, hardly a fitting time for a young man to withdraw from +the army, and Fraser points out that "in the present situation of public +affairs and at his age and fitness for service" Tom's retirement would +be hardly decent. "Next to my own nearest connections," he continues, +"my chief attention will be paid to Captain Nairne and the other +connections of his late Father with whom I had the happiness to live in +Friendship and intimacy from our first meeting (1757) till his Decease +(1802) and I trust we shall meet again in a future state." + +The young man thus returned to his military duties with his old friend's +benediction and restored confidence. But to the family the plan for a +military career was a sore disappointment. His sister Christine, its +woman of the world, and the one most in touch with the Canadian society +of the time, was keen that Tom should live at Murray Bay. To her +entreaties he answers on October 6th, 1811, that there is no earthly use +for him at Murray Bay where everything is so well looked after that his +presence would do more harm than good. Time would hang heavy on his +hands if he were always employed in fishing, shooting and navigating the +river. It is better, he says, that he should continue in his present +position and he intends to withdraw his application for half pay. When +Christine returns to the charge and urges that Murray Bay is not to be +despised the young man retorts that he never said it was and answers her +with some dignity: + + It will ill become me to despise the favourite residence of a + person for whom I have at all times testified the greatest love + esteem and respect. Indeed I think my behaviour hitherto might have + spared me such a severe remark.... You charge me with being + inconsistent and changeable, in which opinion you are not, I + believe, singular; but until you point out to me where I have been + so, I shall till then, plead not guilty in my own mind. + +War was now brooding over Canada--the fratricidal War of 1812. But for +the time Quebec was gay. There was hardly a week without a private ball, +Tom wrote in February, 1812; and the assemblies, dinners and suppers +were innumerable. He chaffs his sister Christine, whose rheumatic pains +had apparently become a kind of family joke, and says that, since they +are the enemies of high kicking, her inability longer for this pastime +"is partly the cause of her sounding a retreat to the peaceful shades +and grottoes of Murray Bay." Polly, the other unmarried sister, was more +content to be at Murray Bay, with results that led to a family tragedy +as we shall see later. Her brother pictures her driving his nag with her +carriole through the country; so reckless is she that she is sure to run +down some one. "Does she, proud and high, still continue hopping away to +the country weddings?" His request that Pope's Works and _The Spectator_ +be sent to him seems to indicate a serious turn of mind. He is sending +to Murray Bay _The Lady of the Lake_ and _The Lay of the Last Minstrel_ +whose middle-aged author was just turning from poetry to win +unprecedented success as a writer of fiction. In the spring he goes out +shooting for snipe nearly every day; and he sends to Murray Bay for his +fishing tackle. When a fellow officer falls ill he sends him down to +Murray Bay for a month. + +Soon came a more active life. War with the United States was near and +Canada was getting ready. In May, 1812, Malcolm Fraser, led to Quebec +from Murray Bay and the intervening parishes what militia he could +muster. At the same time, he was made a commissioner to administer the +oaths of allegiance: in extreme old age the veteran was ready again to +do what he could. The Newfoundland regiment, to which Tom belonged, was +ordered to the interior. The storm cloud drew near and burst on June +19th, 1812, in the form of a declaration of war by the United States on +Great Britain. The Americans intended to pour troops into Upper Canada, +but sparsely settled at that time, and quickly to occupy it. The +frontier on the Niagara River was the chief danger point and the +Newfoundland Regiment was sent up to Lake Ontario to aid in the defence. +On July 3rd, 1812, Tom writes from Kingston in Upper Canada. The news +has reached him that war has been declared; and already, busy with the +task of placing men and supplies where they will be most needed, he has +been the length of Lake Ontario in the _Royal George_; staying two days +at York, now Toronto; going thence to Niagara and then sailing back to +Kingston. At Kingston there are 1,000 militia and Carleton Island, +(where Tom's father had commanded in the War of the American Revolution) +has been taken by the British--an inglorious success for its garrison +consisted of but three veterans and some women. The adjacent Indians, +says the young Captain, "are anxious to be at the Yankees with their +Toma-hawks." Altogether some exciting campaigns were in prospect and Tom +was glad that his family was "snug at Murray Bay." + +[Illustration: SKETCH MAP OF LAKE ONTARIO AND R. ST. LAWRENCE TO +ILLUSTRATE WAR OF 1812] + +There, remote and isolated, they seemed indeed safe--so safe that, to +share the security, a general descent of their friends seemed imminent. +At Quebec there was, for a time, something like a panic. "Every one +here," wrote Mrs. Hale to Miss Nairne "is in a complete state of anxiety +and suspense, not at all knowing whether we shall be attacked, or what +may become of us. I have just now seen Colonel Fraser, who assures me I +shall be welcome at your mother's house, in case we should be obliged to +leave Quebec. [He] advised my writing for fear you should have +applications from other quarters.... Many ladies are going to +England.... My spirits are so depressed that I cannot pretend to amuse +you with any anecdotes." Murray Bay offered its hospitality with great +heartiness and Mr. Hale wrote, "I believe all Quebec mean to move +towards you if necessary, so you must prepare." + +Quebec was in a flutter of successive excitements, now certain that it +was invulnerable, now fearing an immediate descent of the enemy, and +always longing for peace. In England the Orders in Council which +provoked the war were now revoked, and Malcolm Fraser wrote that this +must soon bring peace in America, especially since New England and New +York were against the war. Miss Nairne's friend in Quebec, Judge +Bowen[23], wrote to her in November, 1812, announcing the armistice for +six months, arranged some time before, and assuring the ladies at Murray +Bay that all cause for anxiety was now past,--an illusive hope for the +armistice was not ratified by President Madison and the war went on. We +get echoes of social jealousies that may now amuse us. Sir James Craig, +the late Governor, had repressed sternly the aspirations of the French +element and had been specially friendly with the Nairne circle; he was +indeed a cousin of the Nairnes' relative by marriage, James Ker. But now +with Sir George Prevost as Governor things were changed. Sir George came +from Halifax and Quebec society looked with green-eyed jealousy upon his +"Halifax people." "They are not the right sort," Judge Bowen wrote to +Christine Nairne: + + It will be long before we meet a staff like Sir James Craig's + gentlemanly men.... The castle affords no delight but to the + Halifax people. They are all Gods, the Quebecers all Devils. As for + me I have no desire to be deified.... Would you believe it Pierre + Bedard [a French Canadian leader whom Sir James Craig had clapped + into prison] is now Judge of the Court of King's Bench at Three + Rivers. Would that poor Sir James[24] could raise his head to take + a view of the strange scenes daily occurring here; but it is better + he should be spared the Loathsome sight. What it will end in I dare + scarcely express. + +In these days there was ceaseless anxiety at Murray Bay. "We are all +here in a complete state of suspense," wrote Christine Nairne, "... My +brother is now in Upper Canada doing duty as a marine officer on board +the _Royal George_. We are in the utmost anxiety about him but on the +Almighty we rely for preservation in these horrid times." Echoes came of +stirring events. Tom wrote of General Brock's succeeds in capturing +Detroit and with it the American General Hull and his whole army. A +little later the Detroit garrison was sent to Montreal and Captain +Nairne, doing duty on the _Royal George_, carried General Hull--"the +extirpating General" he called him in view of dire threats that Hull had +made as to what he should do--with 200 prisoners from Niagara to +Kingston and then in batteaux down the River St. Lawrence on the way to +Montreal, through whose streets the Canadian militia marched their +prisoners to the strains of "Yankee Doodle." Elated with the success +against General Hull, Tom now expected to hear any day that the American +fort at the mouth of the Niagara River had been taken by General Brock. +He heard a much sadder tale. Instead of awaiting attack the Americans +became the aggressors and crossed the river into Canada. In a successful +attempt to dislodge them from Queenston Heights the gallant Brock was +slain. The invaders were driven back; but all Canada mourned for Brock. +Mrs. Bowen wrote to Christine Nairne, "I am sure you will have deeply +felt the loss of poor General Brock. He was always a great favourite of +yours as well as mine. Salter Mountain spoke in the highest terms of him +in his sermon last Sunday." + +As the war became more grim in character Captain Nairne formed a fixed +resolve to see it through to the end. On October 5th, 1812, he writes +from Kingston that in response to his former request he had just +received notice of having been put on half pay. With this release he +might now have retired to the serenity of Murray Bay. But, even though +he had not changed his mind, this would have been to turn his back on +fighting when men were most needed. So when Captain Wall of the 49th +Regiment broke his leg, and was thus rendered unfit for service, with +him Nairne effected an exchange. "I could not reconcile myself to the +idea of sneaking down to Murray Bay and forsaking my post at the present +critical period," he wrote to Fraser. That old soldier was delighted at +Tom's spirit and made this note at the foot of the letter which +announced this action: + + Point Fraser, [Murray Bay], Oct. 23rd, 1812: I do hereby certify + that my Godson Captain Thomas Nairne has, as I think, acted as + becomes him and very much to my satisfaction--Malcolm ffraser. + +From Prescott on the 29th of October, 1812, Tom wrote to his mother of +his delight at being once more a regular "in that distinguished old +corps the 49th." It was indeed a fine regiment. Brock had led it in +North Holland and in 1801 it had been on board the fleet at Copenhagen +with Hyde Parker and Nelson; it is now the Berkshire Regiment and the +name "Queenston" where its commander, Brock, fell, is on its flag. +Though a soldier not a sailor, Tom had now one gunboat and three armed +batteaux under his command, and, when writing, he had just arrived at +Prescott with the American prisoners taken in the gallant action at +Queenston where Brock was killed. His tone is serious and tender. "When +the war is over I trust in God we shall all have a happy meeting again +at Murray Bay, perhaps never more to part during our stay in this +world." It was now his plan that if he should outlive the war he would +go to Edinburgh, find a wife and settle himself on his property without +loss of time. A few days later, on November 15th, he writes from +Kingston of a lively incident in which he has taken part. With six +schooners and an armed tug, the _Oneida_, of 18 guns, all full of +troops, the Americans had appeared before the place. At 4 o'clock on the +morning of the 10th the adjutant of the 49th came into Tom's barrack +room to arouse him with the news that the enemy was thought to be +landing a force five or six miles above the town. "He lit my candle," +says Tom, "and left. I immediately jumped out of bed, dressed myself in +a devil of a hurry and sallied forth to the Barrack yard where I found +three Companies of the 49th under arms, Gunners preparing matches and +artillery horses scampering out of the yards with field pieces." He was +soon sent to hold a bridge about three miles west of the town. The ships +kept up a fierce cannonade for some time but it was so briskly returned +that in the end they drew away having lost four men. But they had +command of the lake, a supremacy not to be challenged until a British +Commodore, Sir James Yeo, arrived in the following summer. + +In his letters at this time Nairne speaks of his heavy expenses and says +that even if the opportunity came to visit Murray Bay he could not go +for lack of money. So he begs his mother to build all the mills and +houses she can, and thus to make the profits which he sorely needs. He +complains of hearing from home so rarely: "You have only wrote once, I +believe, since I came to the Upper Country. What in the name of wonder +are you all about? I hope Yankey Doodle has not run off with you. I am +sure there can be no complaints of my being negligent in this way." + +The scene changed rapidly. Early in February, 1813, Nairne was sent to +Niagara. Here for a time he was stationed at Fort George. The Americans +were now menacing Fort Erie on the Canadian side of the Niagara River. +But things were looking well for the British. On January 22nd the +British Colonel Procter defeated the American General Winchester at +Frenchtown near Detroit and made him and 500 of his men prisoners. Now +young Nairne talked even of "extirpating" General Harrison whom the +English were attacking in what is now the state of Ohio. But again high +hopes were dashed. General Harrison succeeded in forcing the British to +evacuate Detroit; then he invaded Canada, and before the campaign of +1813 was over he defeated the British badly at the river Thames in what +is now Western Ontario. Meanwhile about Niagara there was some lively +campaigning. In March Nairne describes an exciting night journey in +sleighs from Fort George to Chippewa near Niagara Falls where an +American landing was feared. Echoes of more distant wars reach this +remote frontier. This was the winter of Napoleon's terrible retreat from +Moscow and word comes, "glorious news certainly if true," that 140,000 +French have been captured by the Russians. + +Nearer home the chronicle was less glorious. The American fleet appeared +before York (Toronto), burned the Parliament Buildings and public +records, and carried off even the church plate, and the books from the +library, of Upper Canada's capital, acts avenged by the burning of +Washington later in the war. Flushed with success, the Americans now +prepared to attack Fort George in overwhelming force. The 49th, Nairne's +regiment, were the chief defenders. The attack came on May 27th, 1813. +There was sharp and bloody fighting. Greatly outnumbered, the British +were beaten; so hastily did they evacuate the fort that Nairne and +others lost their personal effects. He writes, somewhat ruefully, that +he has now only the clothes on his back and his watch, a purse, a family +ring, and some trinkets. But this had its compensations; now he could +carry everything in a haversack and blanket. Even paper, pens and ink +are hardly to be got; he is writing on the last bit of paper he is +likely to have for some time. + +For many weeks the young man took his share in this campaigning in the +Niagara peninsula. The British headquarters were by this time at +Burlington Heights at the head of Lake Ontario, half way between Fort +George and York, the ruined capital. By June the British had turned on +the foe with vigour. On June 6th they rather stumbled into victory at +Stoney Creek, capturing two American Generals, Winder and Chandler. On +June 7th a British squadron, under Sir James Yeo, appeared off +Burlington Heights, bombarded the American camp on the shore at Forty +Mile Creek and compelled a retreat towards Fort George. Soon the British +were menacing the enemy in Fort George itself. Nairne's letters, watched +for, we may be sure, at Murray Bay with breathless interest, recount the +incidents of the campaign. At Beaver Dam, only a dozen miles or so from +Fort George, Lieutenant Fitzgibbon of Nairne's regiment, the 49th, +entrapped an advancing party of Americans and, by the clever use of 200 +Indian allies, filled them with such dread of being surrounded and +massacred by the savages that nearly 600 Americans surrendered to little +more than one-third of their number. These same wild Indians in their +war paint were enough, Nairne thought, "to frighten the Black Deil +himsel'," and their proximity in the campaign is one of many causes for +which he thanks Heaven that the plague of war is so far removed from +Murray Bay; even if it lasted for years, it would still not reach that +remote haven, he says. Meanwhile Murray Bay can help him. Two pairs of +socks, one flannel and one linen shirt, have been the modest increases +to his wardrobe since the hasty exit from Fort George many weeks before. +He begs his sisters to make him some shirts and socks, but not many, +since on the marches, usually made at night, he has to carry all his +belongings on his own back. The charge of a too elaborate transport +service sometimes brought against the British army in modern campaigns +seems to have no place in the War of 1812. The British, few in number +and defending an immense area, had to do killing work. Nairne says that +his men were able only rarely even to take off their accoutrements. + +With the arrival of Yeo's squadron the war was again half military, half +naval. Yeo was a brilliant young officer and the remote waters of Lake +Ontario witnessed some clever naval tactics. The small fleets were +evenly matched. Chauncey, the American commander, was very cautious and +would not fight unless he could get the advantage of his longer range of +guns, while Yeo, if he fought at all, preferred to fight at close +quarters; so they manoeuvred for position, each declaring that the +other could not be brought to bay. On August 3rd, 1813, Nairne wrote +from Burlington Heights to Malcolm Fraser. In an earlier letter that +veteran had expressed the desire of dancing at Tom's wedding and Tom had +told him, with the prophetic saving clause "should I outlive this war," +that to see his friend of eighty years dancing would be a considerable +inducement to marry. He hopes that they may soon discuss the war "over a +good bottle of your Madeira at Mount Murray." + +He calls Burlington Heights the stronghold of Upper Canada. "The +situation we have chosen is by nature a strong position being bounded on +the east by Burlington bay, on the south by a commanding battery, ditch +and parapet, this being the only side bounded by the mainland; on the +west by a morass and creek; on the north by the continuation of this +same creek, which here discharges itself into Burlington bay. The height +of the land above the level of the water all round is upwards of 100 +feet and the only side therefore necessary to fortify is the south, +which I assure you is pretty strongly so." Here was the chief British +supply depôt and Nairne had just been sent thither to aid in repelling a +menace from the American fleet. He had brought his force from Ten Mile +Creek, in boats, on the open lake, and the journey, lasting all day, was +ticklish enough. All the time the American fleet was in pursuit and it +reached the narrow gateway to Burlington Bay only an hour and a half +after Captain Nairne entered. The enemy intended to storm the heights, +and landed 800 men for that purpose; but finding the position too +strong, they re-embarked their force at daylight on August 1st, and bore +away for York (Toronto) where they wrought new havoc in that undefended +and "much to be pitied town." + +On August 20th Nairne writes, still from Burlington Heights. This, his +last letter, gives a dramatic account of a running fight between the +rival fleets, in the dark, illuminated, however, by the flashes from +their cannon: + + It was a moment of great anxiety with us when the two fleets lay in + sight of each other, the one wishing to avoid coming to hard knocks + and the other straining every nerve to be at it. I rode 20 miles to + see the hostile squadrons, and, for nearly two days, had the + pleasure of observing their movements from the mountain at Forty + Mile Creek, and I must confess I never saw a more gratifying or + more interesting sight. At 11 o'clock on the night of the last day + that I was there (the 10th inst.) Sir James Yeo contrived to bring + them [the Americans] to a partial engagement and for an hour and a + half the Lake opposite the _Leo_ appeared to be in a continual + blaze. I remained in a state of uncertainty as to the result till + daylight when I observed the Yanky fleet steering for Fort George + with two Schooners less than they had the evening before, and our + fleet steering towards York with two additional sail. [They were + the _Julia_ and the _Growler_.] The Americans have besides lost two + of their largest Schooners, which upset from carrying a press of + sail, when our fleet was in chase of them. + +While this dramatic fighting is going on before his eyes Nairne's one +regret is that his present quarters are "completely out of the way of +broken heads." + +Meanwhile at Murray Bay events were happening. Colonel Fraser was kept +busy. Some of the French Canadians already showed a restiveness that +ended in open rebellion in 1837 and these misguided people now dreamed +of using the war with the United States as an opportunity for throwing +off the British yoke. At Murray Bay traitorous meetings were held. +Fraser watched them closely and caused a number of the habitants to be +imprisoned for a time on a charge of treason. For an old man of eighty +he showed amazing vigour. His neighbours of the Nairne household were +now in great trouble. Tom's elder sister by five years, Mary, the +sprightly "Polly" of his letters, had brought grief to her family. She +made a clandestine marriage with a habitant, the news of which, the +young man, in his last letter preserved to us, wrote, "nearly bereft me +of my senses." In those anxious days of domestic difficulty and of war +the old mother and her two remaining daughters at the Manor House had +assuredly enough to think of. Then came Fate's sharpest blow. The +tradition is still preserved at Murray Bay that on November 11th, 1813, +Mrs. Nairne, the Captain's mother, was in the kitchen at Murray Bay, +when suddenly a sound like the report of a gun came up as it were from +the cellar. She put her hands to her head, cried "Tom is killed," and +sank fainting into a chair. The day and the hour were, it is said, noted +by those about her. + +By this time Thomas Nairne's regiment had passed from Burlington Heights +to Kingston, at the opposite end of Lake Ontario, some two hundred miles +away. The St. Lawrence River had now become the chief danger point for +Canada. On October 21st the American General Wilkinson, with 8,000 men, +left Sackett's Harbour near the east end of Lake Ontario, opposite +Kingston, in boats, to descend the St. Lawrence and attack Montreal--the +identical plan that the British had found so successful in 1760. In +addition, as fifty years earlier, another American force was to advance +through the country bordering on Lake Champlain so that the two armies +might unite before Montreal. From the first the American plans went ill. +The more easterly force met with ignominious defeat by a handful of +French Canadians at Chateauguay. Wilkinson did little better. British +troops, among them Nairne's regiment, were hurried down the river under +Colonel Morrison to harass, if possible, Wilkinson's rear and to fire +upon his 300 boats from the points of vantage on the shore. After a slow +descent, day after day, on the night of November 10th the rear of the +American force, under General Boyd, landed and encamped near Crysler's +farm, a short distance above the beginning of the Long Sault Rapids on +the St. Lawrence, to descend which needed caution. As the American rear +was some distance from the vanguard, the British, though much inferior +in numbers, thought the time favourable for attack. On the morning of +the 11th when General Boyd was about to begin his day's march forward, +the British, some 800 against a force of 1800, advanced in line. Their +right was on the river and the line extended to a wood about 700 yards +to the left. The American general did not refuse the gage of battle and +a sharp fight followed. Boyd tried to outflank the British left and +Nairne's company was sent forward to charge for one of the enemy's guns. +When well in advance it was checked by a deep ravine lying between the +two armies and the American cavalry made a movement to cut off the +advancing party. The pause was fatal to Thomas Nairne. A musket ball +entered his head just above the left ear; he died instantly and without +pain. The British won the day. After a fierce fight the enemy fled to +their boats, embarked in great disorder and fled down the river. Their +generals, when they could hold a council, decided that the attack on +Montreal must be abandoned. + +Meanwhile dead on the field of battle lay Thomas Nairne. When the action +was over and the enemy had retired, his fellow officers bethought them +of the body of their companion lying stark where he fell. Already some +sinister visitor had been upon the spot for his watch was stolen--"as +was not unusual on such occasions," wrote Nairne's Commanding-officer, +Colonel Plenderleath, grimly. They dug a grave; Colonel Plenderleath +stooped over the body to cut off for those who loved him a lock of hair +falling over the dead face, and then, without a coffin, they laid him in +the earth. But before the grave was filled a member of the Canadian +militia stepped forward. He said that he had known Nairne's father, and +begged that, for the esteem and veneration which he bore that gallant +soldier, he might be allowed time to provide a coffin for his son. A +rough box was hastily prepared. In this the body was placed and once +more lowered into the grave and there, a few yards from where he fell, +the mortal remains of Thomas Nairne were committed to the earth with the +solemn rites of the Anglican Church. + +The next day Colonel Plenderleath, who was not two yards away when +Captain Nairne fell, wrote to Judge Bowen what words of comfort he could +for Nairne's friends: + + He was a gallant officer of most amiable Manners and + Disposition.... It may be of some comfort to his family that he has + fallen in the honourable service of his country. We obtained a + complete victory, having beaten a force greatly superior to ours, + driven him from the field of battle, and captured one Gun and + several Prisoners. + +If Nairne fell Canada was saved and the gallant young officer did not +die in vain. + +News travelled slowly in those days but bad news has swifter wings than +good; a week after Thomas Nairne fell the particulars of his death had +reached Quebec. It was Judge Bowen's painful duty to send to Murray Bay +the intelligence he had received from Nairne's Colonel. He wrote to Mr. +Le Courtois, the curé, giving the sad news and adding "I understand that +the enemy have since crossed over to their own side.... Would to God +their visit had fallen upon any other head than that of our poor +friends." He begged Mr. Le Courtois, who, himself an exile from France +because of the Revolution, had witnessed many sad days, to be the +minister of consolation at this time. "You will, I am sure be the friend +of the distressed and instil into their bosoms that peace which, I am +afraid, nothing but your assistance and time can restore to them." Mr. +Le Courtois was to hand to Miss Nairne a touching and wise letter from +Bowen. "Do not, my dear Miss Nairne," he wrote, "give way to feelings +but too natural upon a trying moment like this but rather exert +yourself to speak comfort and consolation to your dear Mother. Recall to +her that we are all but sojourners here on earth and that he is but gone +before to those blessed mansions of eternal peace and happiness where +she will one day meet him never to part again." Old Malcolm Fraser sent +the sad news to Tom's friends in Scotland. "I am not fit to write much," +he said, but he found comfort in the thought that the young Captain died +gallantly and that the enemy "must have suffered great loss of men, as +they were entirely drove off the Field and they lost a piece of cannon. +But, alas! all this can afford little consolation to his good and +afflicted mother." + +Nairne's body was not allowed to remain where he had fallen. Judge Bowen +thought he ought to lie at Quebec beside his soldier father and this was +also in accord with Mrs. Nairne's wishes. Colonel Morrison, the officer +in command on the field where Nairne fell, had already been transferred +to the garrison at Quebec and every attention was paid to the task. +Bowen ordered a strong oak coffin, large enough to contain that in which +Nairne was buried, and with this itself in an outer box a man was sent +to bring back the body. He bore a letter from the Bishop of Quebec to +the clergyman who had buried Nairne. All was carried out as arranged. A +second time Nairne's body was taken from the grave where it had been +laid and its bearer began his long winter journey to Quebec. The sleigh +with its sad burden, a moving dark speck on a white background, made its +slow way along the wintry roads and by the shores of the ice bound St. +Lawrence. We can picture the awed solemnity with which the French +Canadian peasants heard the story of Nairne's fall as his body rested +for the night in inn or farm yard. On January 20th, 1814, Bowen wrote to +Mr. Le Courtois that the body would arrive by Saturday as it was at +Berthier on the previous day when the stage passed. + +The funeral took place at one o'clock on the 26th of January, 1814. Of +the people of Murray Bay a single unnamed habitant was present, a man +detained by Bowen in Quebec that he might witness the ceremony and carry +back an account of it to his home. "I examined the body," wrote Bowen +briefly of what must have been a grim task, "with the assistance of my +friend Buchanan and there cannot now be the smallest doubt as to the +identity of it. He was buried poor Fellow in the Cloathes he wore when +killed. His Regimental Jackit and shoes which were put into his coffin I +found in it upon opening it and have taken them out and will preserve +them for his poor friends if so melancholy a Remembrance of him should +be desired by them." The lock of hair cut off by Colonel Plenderleath at +the funeral was brought to Quebec by young Sewell, one of Nairne's +companions; the remainder of his effects, sent forward in a box, seem +to have been lost on the way. At the funeral the six senior Captains in +Quebec were his pall bearers and the mourners were fellow officers of +the 49th and Quebec friends of his family--well-known names--Caldwell, +McCord, Stewart, Hale, Mountain, Dunn and Bowen himself. A great crowd +was present. "Never," wrote Bowen to Miss Nairne, "was a funeral at +Quebec more generally attended." The death of the young officer was too +tragic not to call forth the sympathy of a wide circle. Eulogies were +pronounced upon him and they said only what was true--that a soldier, +brave, lovable and promising had fallen on the field of honour. + +[Footnote 22: See Appendix G., p. 287. "The Curés of Malbaie".] + +[Footnote 23: Bowen's career was remarkable. He continued on the bench +until 1866, having held the office of a Judge in Canada for well nigh +sixty years.] + +[Footnote 24: He had recently died, and it did not diminish the Nairnes' +interest in him that he left £5,000 to their relative Ker.] + + + + +CHAPTER VII + +A FRENCH CANADIAN VILLAGE + + Life at Murray Bay after Captain Nairne's death.--Letters from + Europe.--Death of Malcolm Fraser.--Death of Colonel Nairne's widow + and children.--His grandson John Nairne, seigneur.--Village + life.--The Church's influence.--The habitant's tenacity.--His + cottage.--His labours.--His amusements.--The Church's missionary + work in the villages.--The powers of the bishop.--His + visitations.--The organization of the parish.--The powers of the + _fabrique_.--Lay control of Church finance.--The curé's tithe.--The + best intellects enter the Church.--A native Canadian clergy.--The + curé's social life.--The Church and Temperance Reform.--The + diligence of the curés.--The habitant's taste for the + supernatural.--The belief in goblins.--Prayer in the family.--The + habitant as voter.--The office of Churchwarden.--The Church's + influence in elections.--The seigneur's position,--The habitant's + obligations to him.--Rent day and New Year's Day.--The seigneur's + social rank.--The growth of discontent in the villages.--The evils + of Seigniorial Tenure.--Agitation against the system.--Its + abolition in 1854.--The last of the Nairnes.--The Nairne tomb in + Quebec. + + +With the death of Thomas Nairne almost end the dramatic events in the +history of the family. It remains briefly to bring this to its +conclusion, and to add to it some general account of a village of French +Canada in the past and in the present. Captain Nairne's mother was now +the owner of the property and it continued in her competent hands until +her death in 1828. "Polly's" marriage had taken that daughter away and, +though there was a reconciliation, no longer was the Manor House her +home. Mrs. McNicol (with her husband and children) and Christine Nairne +still lived there with the widow of Colonel Nairne, and life went on +much as before, save that its interests were now narrowed to Murray Bay; +no more was there an outside career, such as the young Captain's, to +watch. + +When Thomas Nairne was killed the struggle against Napoleon in Europe +had reached a supreme crisis. Occasional letters to Murray Bay give +glimpses of great events. On March 16th, 1814, an Edinburgh friend +writes to Christine: "The Castle was fired to-day in honour of the +successes of our allies in France who have again routed Bonaparte, who +has retreated to Paris. His enemies are within twenty-five miles of that +capital so we must hope that the Tyrant's fate is at the Crisis and that +we shall soon enjoy the blessings of a permanent peace; much has Bony to +answer for." Ker wrote a little later from Edinburgh to say that +Bonaparte "is now a prisoner on board of one of our 74 gun ships," and +to express the hope that by his fall Britons will soon get quit of the +property tax. + +On March 17th, 1815, we hear from another correspondent of the renewed +firing of the Castle guns at Edinburgh, this time to announce the +arrival from America of the ratification of Peace with the United +States. "We only regret this had not been settled before the disastrous +affair at New Orleans where we have lost so many brave men and able +generals, but such are the horrors of war." Just as this peace came in +America renewed war broke out in Europe. "That monster Bonaparte a +fortnight since landed and raised the standard of rebellion in the south +of France. The accounts from there are very contradictory." On March +22nd the news seems better. "Troops are assembling in defence of France +and the traitor does not seem to have any adherents, so we would fain +hope all may go well." The writer, a Miss Beck, sends, for the amusement +of Murray Bay, the book "Guy Mannering," which is "in very high +repute ... the author unknown, but very generally thought to be Walter +Scott, the Poet." + +The hope that all would go well in regard to Bonaparte was soon +dissipated. Ker wrote on April 10th, 1815, a bitter letter: + + We were flattering ourselves with being at Peace with the whole + world when like a thunderbolt, the tremendous news of the monster + Buonaparte's Escape from Elba, his landing and rapid progress + through France, and the second Expulsion of the unhappy Bourbons + burst upon us!... We have the immediate prospect of being involved + in a bloody and interminable war, the consequences of which no man + can foretell. The French army, Marshalls, and Generals have covered + themselves with indelible Disgrace and shewn themselves, what I + always thought them, the most perfidious and perjured traitors and + miscreants that the world ever produced, and the rest of the French + Nation are a set of the most unprincipled Knaves and Cowards that + ever were recorded in history. I trust however that their + punishment is at hand and that the Almighty will speedily hurl + vengeance on their guilty heads. Among other evils, a new tax on + Property, with additions, is said to be in immediate contemplation + and God knows how we shall bear all the accumulating Burdens to + which this Country must be subjected. + +Just at this time came old Malcolm Fraser's end. At the age of 82 he +died on June 17th, 1815, the day before the battle of Waterloo. He had +entered the army in 1757 and apparently was still serving in the +Canadian militia at the time of his death so that his military career +covered well nigh sixty years. One instruction given in his will is +characteristic; it is that his body might "be committed to the earth or +water, as it may happen, and with as little ceremony and expense as may +be consistent with decency." His removal was a heavy blow to the family +at the Manor House. It was Christine who kept most in touch with the +outside world and to her the letters of the period are nearly all +addressed. They contained the gossip of Quebec,--how in December, 1814, +a Mr. Lyman--"a bad name for a true story to come from,"--had brought +word of peace negotiations at Ghent; news of General Procter's Court +Martial and of a fee of £500 paid to Andrew Stuart, one of the lawyers +in the case. The letters are few and in 1817 they cease altogether. +During the spring of the year Christine had been ailing. On a June day +she drove out for an airing and, as she alighted from the carriage, +expired instantly. The feeling of the Protestant family towards the +Roman Catholic Church is shown in the fact that she left a small legacy +to the curé, Mr. Le Courtois. + +There now remained but two daughters. In May, 1821, "Polly" died in +Quebec at Judge Bowen's house. Her old mother followed in 1828. Of +Colonel Nairne's large family but one child remained, Mrs. McNicol. Her +husband, Peter McNicol, appears to have been a quiet and retiring man +and of him we hear little. He was an officer in the local militia and, +in 1830, became a Captain in the second Battalion of the County of +Saguenay. There were two sons, Thomas and John. Thomas, the elder, was +to get the estate at Murray Bay; for John India was talked of; but his +mother could not let him go--"our family has been too unlucky by going +there." In 1826, when a youth of twenty, Thomas made a tour in Europe. +Then, or later, the young man fell into dissipated habits and he died in +early manhood. There remained only John. When he came of age in 1829 he +too travelled in Europe; in April he was at Rome and there saw the +newly-elected Pope, Pius VIII. He returned to Canada quite a man of the +world and for a time lived in Quebec, engaged in business. But in 1834 +when his father Peter McNicol died[25] John's prospects changed. The +seigniory belonged to his mother, during her lifetime, but he was the +heir. It seemed desirable that the name of the first seigneur should be +continued and, in 1834, by royal warrant, John McNicol adopted the name +and arms of Nairne. Once more was there a John Nairne. In 1837 we find +him empowered to take the oath of allegiance from the habitants--to show +that they were not in sympathy with the rebel Papineau. His mother, the +old Colonel's last surviving child, died in 1839. She was a kindly +woman, of genial temper, with a fine faculty for friendship; so intimate +was she with Malcolm Fraser's daughter that she wrote "I do believe, nay +am sure, she has not a thought with which I am not made acquainted." She +never lost her sympathy with young people and her delight in their +"innocent gaiety." + +As in 1762, so now again in 1839, a John Nairne ruled at Murray Bay. The +young seigneur soon took a wife. In 1841 he married Miss Catherine +Leslie, of a well known Canadian family, a bride of only seventeen, and +then settled down at Murray Bay to live the life of a country gentleman. +He became Colonel in the militia, took some part in politics on the +Conservative side, and studied agriculture. He was resolved to keep up +the dignity of his position and set about rebuilding the manor house. +The work was begun in 1845 and completed by the autumn of 1847; the new +structure with little change is the present Manor. It is of stone +covered with wood, a capacious dwelling with some fine rooms, and +admirably suited to its purpose. To John Nairne an heir was born in 1842 +and named John Leslie Nairne and the prospect seemed excellent for the +final establishment of a Nairne dynasty in the seigniory. But, alas, +this was not to be. The child died in his third year and the last of the +Nairnes ruled at Murray Bay knowing that with himself the family should +become extinct. + +We must turn now to study the type of community of which he was the +chief. A singular type it is, French in speech, Roman Catholic in faith, +half feudal in organization, in a land British in allegiance, if not in +origin. Long the determined rival of the Briton in America the French +Canadian, though worsted in the struggle, remains still unconquered in +his determination to live his own separate life and pursue his own +separate ideals. When the British took Canada they fondly imagined that +in a few years a little pressure would bring the French Canadians into +the Protestant fold.[26] Immediately after the conquest preparations +for this gradual absorption were made. The Roman Catholics were to be +undisturbed but, as soon as a majority in any parish was Protestant, a +clergyman of that faith would be appointed and the parish church would +be given over to the Protestant worship. The minority would, it was +hoped, acquiesce, and, in time, adopt the creed of the majority. The +most illuminating comment upon these expectations is the fact that, +during the half century after the conquest, Protestantism made probably +not more than half a dozen converts among the Canadians, while of +Protestants coming to the country during that time hundreds went over to +the Church of Rome. In other ways too the type in French Canada has +proved curiously persistent. A Lowland Scot of twenty-five married an +Irish woman of twenty-three and went to live in a French Canadian +parish. Hitherto they had spoken only English but after twenty-five +years they could not even understand it when heard. They explained that +at first they spoke English to each other but when the children went to +school they used only French. So the parents yielded "_C'était les +enfants, M'sieu!_" + +A modern critic of France[27] has announced, as a sounding paradox, that +the French, even of present-day anti-clerical France, are a profoundly +religious people. Certainly this appears in France's efforts in Canada. +When the Roman Catholic faith was first planted there the ground was +watered with the blood of martyrs, done to death by brutal savages. At +the very time when in France Pascal's satire and scorn were making the +spiritual sincerity of the Jesuits more than doubtful, in Canada these +same Jesuits were dying for their faith almost with a light heart. They +and others, like-minded, won New France for the Catholic Church and to +that Church the conquered habitant has since clung with a tenacity +really heroic. He accepts its creed, he believes in its clergy. Whatever +license of conduct marked the clergy of France in the bad days before +the Revolution, the clergy in Canada during the 300 years of its history +have been notable for a severity in morals so austere that hardly once +in that long period has there been a whisper of scandal. In consequence, +they have always retained the respect of the people and to-day, in every +village, the curé commands extraordinary influence. + +It may be that to the Church chiefly does the habitant owe the +preservation of his identity. Inferior to the heretic conqueror in +social status, the habitant yet retained in religion the sense of his +own superiority. Was he not a member of an ancient body, in the presence +of which Protestantism represented a mushroom growth of yesterday? The +Church taught him that wealth, honour, and worldly power were not always +given to the faithful; they had the truer riches of spiritual +privileges and spiritual hopes. What mattered the pride of life in the +face of these eternal treasures? So the habitant went his way. Led by +his teachers he showed striking tenacity of character. He would not +follow the customs of the English. He looked with suspicion upon their +methods. Even in agriculture, where he had everything to learn, he would +not imitate him. Their language he would not learn, their religion he +abhorred; so he remained, and he remains still, true to his own +traditions, a Gallic island in the vast Anglo-Saxon sea of North +America. + +The habitant has not proved a pliable person. The very name shows his +sense of his own dignity. Though he held his land under feudal tenure he +would not accept a designation that carried with it some sense of the +servile status of the feudal vassal in old France. So the Canadian +peasant, a feudal tenant _en censive_ or _en roture_, yet wished not to +be called _censitaire_ or _roturier_, names which he thought degrading; +he preferred to be called a habitant, an inhabitant of the country, a +free man, not a vassal. The designation obtained official recognition in +New France and has come to be the characteristic word for the French +Canadian farmer among English-speaking people. + +In other respects too the Canadian has been hardly less assertive. +Earlier writers, while they call him obliging, honest and courteous, +speak also of his self-conceit, boastfulness, fondness for drink. At +Malbaie Nairne found him defiant when his spirit was aroused. Not less +tenacious than the men were the women. Malcolm Fraser tells how when he +was stationed at Beaumont, near Quebec, in January, 1761, he sent one of +his men to cut wood on the property of a certain habitant, the man +himself consenting. But Madame, his wife, was not pleased. She abused +Fraser, called him opprobrious names, and, in a war of words, remained, +he admits, mistress of the field. The wrathful virago carried her appeal +to Murray in Quebec, who, she said, had passed many officers under the +rod and Fraser found himself called upon to explain the matter. In a +petition he humbly begs that some "recompence" (of punishment of course) +may be made to the woman for "the insolent expressions used by her as +well against the general, as the officers, who have the honour to serve +under His Excellency." + +Even when he knows only rude frontier life the French Canadian often +retains something of the politeness and deference in manner of the +nation from which he springs. But, unlike them, he has retained little +sense of what is artistic. No thought of beauty of situation seems to +determine his choice of the site for his dwelling. What he has in mind +is protection from the prevailing wind, if this is possible, and, for +the rest, convenience. So he puts his house close to the highway, in +many cases even abutting upon it. He shows no taste in grouping his +farm buildings. He plants few trees and his house stands bare and +unattractive by the road side. The absence of trees near his dwelling is +sometimes accounted for by the need, in earlier times, of clearing away +everything that might offer a chance of ambush to his Indian enemies. If +this is the true origin of the habit, an instinct survives long after +the need which developed it has disappeared. The houses are persistent +in type and nearly always of wood. The principle doorway opens into the +living room, usually of a good size. It is kitchen, diningroom, parlour, +often even workshop. In this chamber cooking, sewing, repairing of +tools, all the varied family activities, take place. One large guest +chamber or two small bedrooms open off it. In the corner there is a rude +staircase and up under the sloping roof are two more rooms; one a +bed-room probably with three or four beds, the other a general lumber +room. Often there are two families in a household. As always with the +French, family feeling is very strong. As soon as they are old enough +the elder sons may go out into the world; it is usually a younger son +whom the father selects to remain with him on the family property. This +son is free to marry and to him, when the old father dies, the land goes +on condition that he will always keep the door open to members of the +family who may seek its refuge. It is not easy to see how so small a +cottage can discharge these hospitable functions; in addition to adults +there are often, in a French Canadian family, from ten to fifteen, +sometimes twenty or twenty-five children. Through the long winters, +doors and windows remain closed. The family gets on without fresh air +and it gets on also without baths. + +Since there are often many hands to do the work habitant farming is +greatly diversified. But improvements come only slowly. Some of the most +fertile areas in Quebec have been half ruined because the habitant would +not learn the proper rotation of crops. Of the value of fertilizing he +has had only a slight idea. His domestic animals are usually of an +inferior breed, except perhaps the horses. Of these he is proud and, no +matter how poor, usually keeps two, an extravagance for which he was +rebuked by successive Intendants under the French régime. In recent +times the French Canadian farmer has been making great progress. He is +pre-eminently a handy man. Though his versatility is lessening, to this +day, in some of the remoter villages, he buys almost nothing; he is +carpenter, farmer, blacksmith, shoemaker; and, if not he, his wife is +weaver and tailor. The waggon he drives is his handiwork; so is the +harness; the home-spun cloth of his suit is made by his wife from the +wool of his own sheep: it is an excellent fabric but, alas, the young +people now prefer the machine-made cottons and cloths of commerce and +will no longer wear homespun. Sometimes the habitant makes his own +boots, the excellent _bottes sauvages_ of the country. The women make +not only home-spun cloth, but linen, straw hats, gloves, candles, soap. +When there are maple trees, the habitant provides his own sugar; he +makes even the buckets in which the sap of the maple tree is caught. +Tobacco grows in his garden, for the habitant is an inveterate smoker: +sometimes the boys begin when only five years old or less. The women and +the girls, indeed, do not smoke and an American visitor, who declares +that he saw pretty French Canadian brunettes of sixteen puffing clouds +of smoke as they worked in the harvest field, is solemnly rebuked by a +French Canadian writer; the brunettes must have been Indian women.[28] + +Though nearly all the children now go to school, yet reading can hardly +be considered one of the amusements of the habitant. In the +neighbourhood of Malbaie, at least, rarely does one see other than books +of devotion in a habitant household; the book-shelf is conspicuous by +its absence. Of course newspapers are read but many of the habitants are +still illiterate, or nearly so, and read nothing. Not less gay are they +for this deprivation. They are endless talkers, good story tellers, and +fond of song and dance. They have preserved some of the popular songs of +France,--_Malbrouck s'en va-t-en guerre_, _En roulant ma Boule +roulant_, _A la Claire Fontaine_, and others--and these airs simple, +pleasing, a little sad, have become characteristic of French Canada. +Nearly every house has its violin, often home-made, and though this +music is rude it suffices for dancing. But some of the bishops are as +severe in regard to dancing as is the Methodist "Book of Discipline" and +in their dioceses the practise is allowed only under narrow +restrictions. The short Canadian summer makes that season for the +habitant one of severe labour. Winter, though it has its own labours, +such as cutting wood, is the great season of social intercourse. For a +long time the habitant would not consider a mechanic his social equal; +perhaps, still, the daughters of a farmer would spurn the advances of +the village carpenter. But whatever the social distinctions, baptisms, +marriages, anniversaries, are made the occasions for festivity. There +are _corvées récreatives_, such as parties gathered for taking the husks +off Indian corn, when there is apt to be a good deal of kissing as part +of the game. At New Year, the _jour de l'an_, the feasting lasts for +three days. Hospitality is universal and it is almost a slight not to +call at this time upon any acquaintance living within a distance of +twenty miles. Every habitant has his horse and sleigh and thinks little +of a long drive. + +Often in the foreground of the habitant's life, always in the background +at least, stand the Church and the priest. Malbaie, like a hundred other +populous, present-day Roman Catholic parishes, was nursed in the first +instance by the travelling missionary. In winter he could go on snow +shoes but his usual means of travel in a country, covered by forests, +but with a net-work of lakes and rivers, was by canoe. Malbaie could be +reached either from Tadousac, at the mouth of the Saguenay, one of the +earliest mission stations in Canada, or from Baie St. Paul in the other +direction. The St. Lawrence was oftentimes a perilous route. Its waves +rise at times huge as those of Ocean itself; a frail canoe could only +hug the shore and at times would be storm bound for days. The missionary +travelled usually with an attendant. They carried a portable chapel with +the vessels necessary for the celebration of the mass. We have a +description of the arrival of one of these missionaries, the Abbé Morel, +as long ago as in 1683, at Rivière Ouelle where one now takes the ferry +to cross to Murray Bay. A group of people stand on the shore watching a +small black object round a distant point. As it comes nearer they see it +is a birch bark canoe, paddled by two men. In a short time the bow of +the canoe has touched the sandy beach where stands the waiting group. As +the figure in the bow rises a long black cassock falls down to his +feet; he is the long expected missionary come to celebrate mass. With +the sun sinking behind the mountains of the north shore, a kind of +triumphal procession escorts the missionary to one of the neighbouring +houses. The evening is spent in preparation for the service of the +morrow. The priest hears confessions and imposes penances. At daybreak +on the following morning the people begin to gather, some coming by land +from the neighbouring clearings, others, in birch bark canoes, from +points more distant. Perhaps fifty persons gather before the house. +Meanwhile in its best room the portable altar has been arranged. Silence +falls upon the people as they enter the door. The mass begins; after the +gospel the priest preaches a practical sermon with impressive solemnity. +The mass over, a second service, vespers, soon follows. Then the people +separate. Before the priest leaves he says the office of the dead over a +grave made, it may be, many weeks ago, he baptizes children born since +his last visit, and perhaps marries one or more bashful couples. "How +beautiful upon the mountains," says a Canadian historian of the work of +these devoted men, "are the feet of those who bring the gospel of +peace."[29] Such a scene we may be sure was enacted many a time for the +benefit of the scattered sheep at Malbaie before and after the arrival +of Colonel Nairne. + +It was not until 1797 that these occasional services ceased and Murray +Bay secured a resident priest. Then was fully established in the parish +the imposing church system that to-day probably retains its original +vigour more completely in the Province of Quebec than in any other +country in the world. At its head is the diocesan bishop. Subject only +to the distant authority of the Pope he reigns supreme. With one or two +exceptions, such as that of the curé of Quebec, he appoints and he can +remove any and every priest in his diocese, a right, it is said, almost +never exercised arbitrarily. He fixes the tariff to be paid for masses. +It is he who determines whether such a practise as, for instance, +dancing shall be permitted in the diocese. He watches over the Church's +rights and gives the alarm when a political leader proposes anything +that seems to menace them. If a newspaper adopts a course dangerous to +the Church it has often happened that the bishop gives it one or two +warnings; in case of continued obstinacy his last act is to forbid the +faithful to read the paper; and since most of them will obey, this +involves ruin for the recalcitrant journal. + +The bishop visits each parish at least every third year and sometimes +even annually. A mounted cavalcade will probably meet him as he crosses +its boundary. A procession is formed. The roads have been cleared and +decorated with boughs of ever-green trees stuck in the ground. The +people watch the cavalcade from their doors and all kneel as the +procession passes. The bishop goes at once to the church where he gives +his benediction and holds confirmation. He remains for some days. There +is daily communion and spiritual instruction. He inspects +everything--the church and its furnishings, the registers, the accounts, +the inventory of effects, the cemetery. He has already given notice that +he is ready to hear any complaints or grievances even against the curé. +We may be sure that when he comes there is a general clearing up of +parochial difficulties. A wise bishop is a great peacemaker; an +arbitrary one commands an authority not lightly to be disregarded. + +The church that towers over the humble cottages of a French Canadian +village invariably seems huge. But we need to remember how large are the +parishes and how few in number relatively are the churches; it is +probable that in English-speaking Canada there are half a dozen +churches, or more, to every one in the Province of Quebec. In all +Canada, rural and urban, there is probably not a Protestant parish to +which are attached as many, or perhaps half as many, people as the five +thousand who dwell in the parish of St. Etienne de la Malbaie, one of +secondary importance in the Province of Quebec. In a whole diocese there +are often not more than forty or fifty parishes. In the country the +churches are usually built at intervals of not more than three leagues +(nine miles) so that no one may have to travel more than a league and a +half to mass. The life of the people centres in the Church. In its +registers, kept with great accuracy, is to be found the chief record of +the village drama, the story of its births, marriages and deaths. True +to the tastes of old France the French Canadian has an amazing interest +in family history, and genealogies, based upon these ample records, are +closely studied. In the olden days the habitant brought his savings to +be kept in the Church's strong chest. The church edifice, its pictures +and its other furnishings, are things in which to take pride. Each +village aspires to have its own chime of bells. To chronicle baptisms, +marriages, burials, anniversaries, the chimes are rung for a longer or +shorter time according to the fee paid. Every day one hears them often +and a considerable revenue must come from this source. Whatever the +habitant knows of art, painting, sculpture, music, he learns from the +Church and it is all associated with religious hopes and fears. +"Dwellers in cities," says a French Canadian writer, "have concerts, +theatres, museums; in the rural communities it is the Church that +provides all this. During her services the most fervent among the +faithful taste by anticipation the joys of heaven and murmur, enchanted: +'Since here all is so beautiful in the house of the Lord how much more +so will it be in his paradise!'"[30] + +Thus it happens that here the parish and its church have a significance +not felt where, as now in practically all English speaking countries, +each community represents a variety of religious beliefs. At Malbaie, as +in dozens of other parishes, there is not, except in summer, a single +Protestant. So strong is the pressure of religious and social opinion, +that even persons with no belief in Christianity are constrained to join +outwardly at least in the church services. In the villages, at least, +nearly every one confesses and partakes of the communion many times in +the year; at Easter there are practically no abstentions from the +sacrament. With this unanimity it has been possible to establish by +legislation a most elaborate system providing for the support of the +priests, for keeping up cemeteries and other parish needs. Elsewhere +left largely to voluntary action, in Quebec such duties become a tax on +the community as a whole. Whether a parishioner likes it or not, he +must, if the taxpayers so determine, pay his share for building a church +or for other similar expenditure decided upon. + +We will suppose that a new residence for the priest is desired. A +majority of ratepayers must address to the bishop of the diocese a +petition with a plan of what is proposed. The commission of five +members which exists in every diocese then gives ten days' public notice +in order that objectors may have every opportunity to express their +views. When, in the end, a decision to build is reached, the +commissioners announce this by public proclamation. The next step is for +the ratepayers of the parish to meet and vote the necessary money. +Trustees are then appointed to carry out the work with power to collect +the required funds from the Catholic ratepayers. This assessment is a +first charge on the land; it must be divided into at least twelve equal +instalments and the payments are spread over not less than three, or +more than eight, years. To be quite safe the trustees levy fifteen per +cent. more than the estimated cost. If ready money is not on hand for +the work the church property may be mortgaged. When the building is +completed the trustees render their accounts with vouchers and take oath +that they are correct. All is precise, clearly defined, business-like. + +No expenditure of money can be made for building without the consent of +the people. Always in French Canada a trace of old Gallican liberties +has remained, in the power over Church finances left in the hands of +churchwardens (_marguillers_) elected by the people. But in the old days +when the habitant was more ignorant and less alert than now he is, no +doubt the voice in this respect might be the voice of the churchwarden, +but the hand was the hand of the curé. No doubt, also, it is still true +that any project upon which the curé sets his heart he will in the end +probably get a majority of the parishioners to adopt. But he must +persuade the people. Sometimes they oppose his plan strenuously and +feeling runs high. Then when a churchwarden is elected, as one is +annually, the curé may have his candidate, the opposing party theirs. At +Malbaie recently there was a sharp difference of opinion between the +curé and the people on a question relating to the cemetery. The parties +divided on the choice of a churchwarden and the curé's candidate was +defeated. + +Yet the curé's position is one of great strength and authority. He has +his own income uncontrolled by the _fabrique_, which is master of the +rest of the church finances. The curé's tithe consists of one +twenty-sixth of the cereals produced by the parishioners. A further +tithe he has: the twenty-sixth child born to any pair of his +parishioners is by custom brought to the priest and he rears it; +sometimes, strange to say, this tithe is offered! From his tithe on +cereals the income is not large; at Malbaie it is probably never more +than from $1000 to $1200 a year; sometimes much less. The average income +of a curé is not more than $600. It is the custom for the parishioner to +deliver duly at the priest's house one twenty-sixth of his grain and in +the autumn a great array of vehicles may be seen making their way +thither. Usually there is considerable variety in the grain thus brought +but sometimes the curé is almost overwhelmed by a single product such as +peas; one of their number, thus paid, the neighbouring clergy christened +the "_curé des pois_." The French Canadian farmer is often narrowly +penurious and if he will not pay, as sometimes happens, the curé rarely +presses him or takes steps to recover what the law would allow. In any +case a bad harvest is likely to leave the curé poor. Changes in the type +of farming may also curtail his income. Of the products of dairy farming +he gets no share, yet it is a creditable fact that many priests have +urged their people to adopt this kind of farming. Fees for weddings +which, in Protestant Churches, go usually to the minister, are in the +Province of Quebec handed over to the general church fund. Of course the +priest has sources of income other than the tithe. He receives fees for +masses but the sums chargeable for these ceremonies are determined by +the bishop; the priest himself has no power of undue exaction. There is +indeed no evidence of a desire for such exaction. Whatever personal +differences may arise, the French Canadian curé is usually one in +thought and aim with his people. Wherever he goes he is always +respectfully saluted. To him the needy turn and there are heavy calls +upon his charity. Few curés have any surplus income. They keep up a +large house and have constant need of one or more horses. Most curés, it +is said, die poor. + +It is the complaint in Great Britain and the United States that, rather +than enter the Christian ministry, the best intellects are seeking +secular pursuits. This is not the case in the Province of Quebec. The +curés watch the promising boys in the schools. The Church has many +boarding schools where boys are led on step by step to the final one of +entering the priesthood. A promising boy, if he needs it, is given a +scholarship. When the time comes he is sent to complete his education at +Rome or elsewhere. The Church has selected him, trained him in her +service, and, for the rest of his life, his best powers are at her call. +Every family is ambitious to have a representative in the priesthood and +this becomes the most notable thing not merely in the family but also in +the parish. The Province of Quebec has many parish histories. These +volumes are rather dreary reading, it must be admitted, consisting +chiefly of the record of the building or improvement of the church and +of the coming and the going of the curés. But one chief record is always +found--that of the sons of the parish who have entered the priesthood. +They are its glory. Not merely pride in the success of their offspring +leads parents to wish for a son in the priesthood. He may bring to them +more substantial benefits. He is the interpreter of sacred mysteries, +the intercessor in some respects between God and man, and he will plead +for them in the court of Heaven. + +This ambition to get sons into the priesthood has made it possible now +for the Church to rely wholly upon priests Canadian in origin. Not +always was this the case. After the British conquest it was not easy to +get priests. The British government frowned upon the introduction of +priests from France, still Britain's arch-enemy. Irish priests were +thought of, but they could not speak French and, besides, the Bishop of +Quebec did not find in them the submissive obedience of the Canadian +priest. For a time it was seriously proposed to supply Canada with +priests from Savoy, since of them Britain could have no political fears. +But for the time the French Revolution solved the question. Emigré +priests, driven from France, could be in Canada no political danger to +Great Britain since, like her, they desired the overthrow of the +existing French government. So a good many emigré priests were brought +out, among them Mr. Le Courtois, so long the curé of Malbaie. This +movement soon spent itself. In time the Church in Canada had a number of +seminaries for training priests and it now levies a heavy tithe upon the +best intellects of the country. Recently a new emigration of French +priests to Canada has taken place. But they have not been wholly +welcome; their tone is not quite that of the Canadian priesthood; +sometimes they assume patronizing airs and they are felt to be +foreigners. I have even heard a French Canadian priest say in broken +English to a Protestant from the Province of Ontario: "I feel that I +have more in common with you than I have with the French priests who are +flocking into this country." + +The Canadian curé is the priest always. Unlike the clergy in other parts +of Canada he wears his cassock even when he goes abroad; one sees dozens +of these black robes in the streets, on the steamers and trains. He does +not share in the amusement of other people. In Quebec Anglican clergymen +play golf and tennis; probably if a curé did so he might be called to +account by the bishop. Occasionally priests ride bicycles, but even this +is looked upon with some suspicion. Into general society the priests go +but little. They come together in each other's presbyteries for mutual +counsel and to celebrate anniversaries, such as the 25th year of the +ordination of one of their number. The large presbyteries, which one +sees even in remote parishes, are necessary to house the visiting clergy +on such occasions. They assist each other when their parishes have +special fêtes. But their social intercourse is chiefly with each other. +The courtly abbé of old France, a universal guest in salons and at +dinner tables, is hardly found at all in the Province of Quebec. Nor is +the scholar usual. Even in small parishes there are rarely less than 500 +or 600 communicants and the calls upon the curé's time are heavy. There +are, of course, priests of literary tastes; as there are those with a +taste for art, to whom are due the occasional good pictures found in the +parish churches. Some priests interest themselves in agriculture and +give wise guidance to their people. But behind everything is the solemn, +severe, exacting, conception of the priest's high function as the medium +of God's speech to man. He is almost sexless--a being apart consecrated +to an awe-inspiring office. A mother will sometimes quiet an unruly +child by threatening the portentous intervention of the curé. + +Yet he is the universal friend. His relation to his people is not merely +official; it is affectionate, personal. The confessional makes him +familiar with the intimate details of nearly every one's life. On all +the joyous and sad crises, at births, marriages, and deaths, he is at +hand with sympathy, comfort and support. When he goes on a journey he +looks up not merely his own but his parishioners' friends and is welcome +everywhere. He is the general counsellor, the reconciler of family +quarrels, the arbitrator in differences, the guardian of morals. The +seigneur at Malbaie found the priest enquiring as to the manner in which +the male and female servants of the Manor were lodged. + +Colonel Nairne thought that the Church was too willing to see the people +remain ignorant; with her the primary virtue is obedience. But it is +not less true that on moral questions, such as sobriety and purity, the +Church has always shown great vigilance and zeal. In the old days there +was a mighty struggle between the Bishop of Quebec and the governor +Frontenac as to the sale of intoxicating liquors, and the Church is +still keen for temperance. It is due to her that public drinking places +are unknown in most Canadian villages. At Murray Bay it happened +recently that, by some lapse in vigilance, the party favourable to the +granting of licenses got the upper hand. The results were immediate and +deplorable. Summer visitors frequently found their drivers under the +influence of liquor and the habitant, usually courteous and respectful, +was now often rude and quarrelsome. The sudden fall made one realize how +slight might be the strength of virtue due merely to the absence of +temptation. The Church saw the danger. In the following winter she began +a systematic temperance campaign. For some ten days daily services were +held at which eloquent denunciations of intemperance roused the people. +Every effort was made to ensure attendance at these services and the +parish church, a great structure, was well filled daily. Hundreds signed +the pledge and by the next summer all was changed. No one was licensed +to sell liquor and the community was sober. If the relapse had been +rapid it must be admitted that the recovery was not less so. + +The curé and his assistants do their work with the precision and +regularity of a business man in his office. They watch education, and +have their own educational ideals. In the public schools of the +English-speaking world in America, manners and religion receive, alas, +but slight attention. But in Quebec one need only pass along a country +road to see that the children are taught respect and courtesy. The chief +subject of instruction is religion and to prepare the children for the +first communion seems to be the main aim of education. In the parish the +priest is never far away. Nearly always one or other of the clergy is at +the presbytery to answer calls of urgency, and their duties begin at an +early hour. "I am very busy until nine o'clock in the morning," a curé +once said to me. My comment was that most of us are only beginning the +serious duties of the day at that hour. "But I am tired by that time," +he said, rather sadly, "for already, so early in the day, I have heard +much of human sin." The people come early in the morning to confess and +by nine o'clock the curé was weary of the tale of man's frailty. +Thursday is his day of recreation. Only on that day usually does he +leave his parish and then he always arranges that a neighbouring priest +shall be within call. This oversight is not spasmodic; it is persistent, +alert, universal, and hardly varies with the individual curé. In human +society there is no institution more perfectly organized than the Roman +Catholic Church and in Quebec her traditions have a vitality and vigour +lost perhaps in communities more initiated. Of course not every one +accepts or heeds the curé's ministry. Many a _mauvais sujet_ is careless +or even defiant but, when his last moments come, at his bedside stands +the priest to show to the repentant sinner the path of blessedness, and, +when he is gone, his wayward course will give ground to call the living +to earlier obedience. + +In the Canadian parishes faith is simple, with a pronounced taste for +the supernatural. In the year 1907 a Jesuit priest, M. Hudon, published +at Montreal the life of Marie Catherine de Saint Augustin, 1632-1668, a +Quebec nun. This devout lady lived in an atmosphere charged always with +the supernatural. She knew of events before they happened; with demons +who tempted her she had terrific combats; she read the thoughts of +others with divine insight. Perhaps the climax of her experiences is +found when she has regularly, as confessor and mentor, the Jesuit father +and martyr Bréboeuf, dead for some years. M. Hudon declared that he +had submitted the evidence for these wonders to all the tests that +modern scientific canons could require and that they were undoubtedly +true. The Archbishop of Quebec, Mgr. Begin, wrote a prefatory note +approving of the teaching of the book, and adding that Mother Marie +Catherine's life could not fail to be an inspiration to young girls to +live nobly. This simple belief in the constant occurrence of the +supernatural is not found only in the remoter parishes of the Province +of Quebec as a French Canadian writer seems to indicate;[31] it appears +everywhere. All Christians believe in a God who shapes human events and +hears and answers prayer. But many, Catholic and Protestant alike, +believe that the energy of God, in response to man's appeal, is applied +through the ordinary machinery of nature's laws. Modern thought is +pervaded with the conception of nature's rigour. I have seen good +Catholics shrug their shoulders at the wonders narrated by Marie +Catherine de Saint Augustin. But others, and these not only the +ignorant, think that this attitude shows the lack of a deeper faith. +Must God and his saints, they ask, be confined within the narrow +framework of nature's laws? Cannot He do all things? + +So it is not strange that the Canadian peasant dwells in a world charged +with the supernatural. Night furnishes the opportunity for goblins to be +abroad; the flickering lights on the marshes are goblin fires. Then, +too, the vagrant dead wander about restlessly, sinful souls refused +entrance to Heaven until they have sought and secured adequate prayers +for their pardon and relief. To cross a cemetery at night might attract +the fatal vengeance of the dead thus disturbed. The grumbling mendicant +at the door may really be an evil spirit bent on mischief. With a few, +magic and the gift of the evil eye are still dreaded forces and it is +well to know some charm by which evil may be averted. Since night is the +time of danger, if abroad then be watchful; if at home close doors and +windows, ere you go to sleep. I was once on a fishing expedition with +habitant guides when we had to share the same _cabane_. The air becoming +insufferable, I got up quietly, opened the door and went back to bed. +Presently I heard one of the guides steal softly to the door and close +it. When I thought he was asleep I opened it again. But in vain; once +more it was closed. In the morning nothing was said about it. Certainly +not cold was what he feared, for the weather was hot. I do not think it +was the mosquitoes. Was it the goblins? + +A simpler and touching faith is common. Every one has noticed in the +Province of Quebec the numerous crosses by the way side. These Calvaires +are of rough wood, usually eight or ten feet high; sometimes with the +cross are the dread implements of Christ's pain--the crown of thorns, +the hammer and nails, the executioner's ladder, the Roman soldier's +spear. Often at the foot is a box for alms to help the forgotten dead +who are in purgatory. As the habitant passes them he usually lifts his +hat. The Calvaires are a kind of domestic altar to which the people +come. In the summer evenings one may see a family grouped about them in +prayer. When there is need for special prayers, several families will +come across the fields to meet at the Calvaire. Dr. Henry, of whom more +later, tells how at Malbaie some eighty years ago he found in the +cottages social family worship night and morning. It is to be feared +that the present generation at Malbaie is less devout, corrupted it may +be by the heretic visitors' bad influence and example. But still the +guide with whom one goes camping rarely neglects his evening devotions. +In some families prayer sanctifies all the actions of the day. There is +prayer at rising, prayer at going to bed. Though here, as in France, +women are spoken of as only _créatures_, the mother is usually better +educated than the father and often leads these devotions, the others +joining in the responses. Before meals is recited a prayer, usually the +_Benedicite_. There is often a family oratory and here at the +appropriate seasons, in the month consecrated to the special family +saint and guardian, in May, the Virgin's month, in June, that of the +Sacred Heart, in November, "the month of the dead," special prayers are +said. On Sunday evenings the family chant the Canticles. The Church's +feasts are marked by festal signs such as the laying of the best rugs +on the floor. If there is drought groups gather frequently at the +Calvaires to pray for rain. Occasionally such supplications have a +curiously commercial basis in frugal minds. A habitant's wife, learning +that a near neighbour had made an offering to the curé for prayers for +rain, declared that she would give nothing, since if rain fell on the +neighbour's farm it would not stop there: "_S'il mouille chez les +Pierrot Benjamin, il mouillera ben icitte_."[32] + +In each year, if he chooses, the habitant has a good many chances to +cast his vote. The Church, the greatest institution of the village has +its annual election--that for a churchwarden; of the three churchwardens +one retires every year. An annual election there is also for the +municipal council, two or three of whose members retire each year. This +body looks after the highways, the granting of licenses to sell +spirituous liquors and so on. Annually also are elected school +commissioners, who have charge of education. The municipal council and +the school commission are comparatively new institutions in the Province +of Quebec. They have been borrowed from the Anglo-Saxon world, but the +habitant takes kindly to the elector's privileges and struggles are +sometimes keen. The innovation of the ballot not having been adopted, as +yet, in municipal elections, the voting is open. Every voter must thus +show his preferences and when a moral question, such as the licensing of +drinking places, is before the electors this open voting aids the +Church's influence. Usually the curé is an ardent temperance man and to +vote for a license against his wishes, made known perhaps from the +pulpit, needs great strength of conviction. It thus happens that a very +large number of parishes in the Province of Quebec have no licensed +drinking places. + +Of offices in the gift of the village voter those in the Church are the +most highly esteemed. To be a municipal councillor or a school +commissioner is indeed all very well. But the village council is not +really very important. It spends only a few hundred dollars a year and +to keep up the roads is not an exciting task. The village council rarely +has even the "town hall" usual in other communities; it meets in the +"salle publique," or the vestry, of the Church, or in the school house. +The school commissioners too have no very dazzling work to do. The curé +is sometimes their chairman and thus in some degree they come under the +control of the Church. The commissioners appoint the teachers in the +schools and keep up the school buildings, but their outlay is also very +small, for the salaries of teachers, usually women, are appallingly low. +The really important elective office in the parish is that of +churchwarden (_marguiller_). In the church the churchwardens have a +special seat of honour assigned to them. They control the temporalities +and may beard even the curé himself. Large sums of money pass through +their hands. They receive the pew rents,--and every habitant has a pew; +they receive the voluntary offerings. It often happens that the Church +accumulates large sums of money and that, if the building of a +_presbytère_ or parish church is decided upon, there is enough on hand +to pay for it outright. The municipal council and the schoolboard, on +the other hand, are always poor. The habitant watches their taxation +with a parsimonious scrutiny and it is a thankless task to carry on +their work. + +Municipal interests represent of course only a part of the village's +political thought. In provincial politics, federal politics, there is +often in Quebec an interest keener even than in other parts of Canada. +It would be too much to say that the habitant has a wide outlook on +public questions; but the village notary and the village doctor are +likely to have political ambitions and rivalry becomes acute; often +indeed the curse of the village is the professional politician. At times +in Quebec politics have been closely associated with religion and always +the bishops are persons to be reckoned with. Their attitude has ever +been that, if the policy of one or the other party seems to be inimical +to the Church, they have the right to direct Catholic electors to vote +against such a party. From the point of view of British supremacy in +French Canada it would be a mistake to say that the bishops in a +political rôle have always been mischievous. After the conquest they +soon became the most staunch supporters of the authority of George III +and through the Church the British conqueror was able to reach the +people. When the American Revolution began, the bishops were strenuous +for British connection and from the pulpits came solemn warnings against +the Americans. Again in Britain's war on Revolutionary France the +Canadian bishops were with her, heart and soul. They ordered _Te Deums_ +when Nelson destroyed the French fleet at the battle of the Nile, and +over Trafalgar there were great rejoicings. After Waterloo we find in +French Canada perhaps the most curious of all the thanksgivings; at +Malbaie, as elsewhere, a _Te Deum_ was sung and the people were told in +glowing terms of the victory of the "immortal Wellington" which had +covered "our army" with glory and ended a cruel war. Later, in the days +of Papineau, the Church opposed rebellion; she has since opposed +annexation to the United States. She has also helped to preserve order. +If a crime was to be detected, the curé read from the pulpit a demand +that any one, who could give information to further this end, should do +so. Solemn excommunication was pronounced against offenders; to make the +warning impressive the priest would drop to the ground a lighted candle +and put it out with his foot; so would God extinguish the offenders thus +denounced, and those who abetted their crimes. + +Since the Church has aided the state, not unnaturally she expected some +special favours in return. She got them in the days of the early British +governors of Canada. Sir Guy Carleton, afterwards Lord Dorchester, +secured for the Church the legal power to levy the tithe on Catholics +and practically all the other privileges she had enjoyed under the old +régime. The bishops tended to become more and more active in politics +and this reached a climax in 1896. With great heat the bishops threw +themselves into the attack on the Liberal party, because it would not +support the Church's demands for her own separate schools in Manitoba, +supported by taxes levied on Roman Catholics by the state. Some of the +bishops went too far in denunciation; an appeal against their action was +carried by Catholics to the Pope and the offenders were rebuked. The +incident showed that in politics the habitant knows his own mind, for he +gave an overwhelming support to the party on which the bishops were +warring. Since then many a habitant draws a sharp distinction between +the spiritual and the political claims of the bishops. Their full +spiritual authority he does not doubt; in politics he thinks his own +opinion as good as theirs. + +If in spiritual matters the Church led it was intended that in temporal +affairs too the habitants should always have guidance. An old world +flavour seems to pervade the relations between seigneur and vassal in a +French Canadian parish. The seigneur was himself the vassal of the +crown, bound to do humble homage at the capital when he received his +grant. We have a detailed account of the ceremony as performed, perhaps +for the first time under British rule. On December 23rd, 1760, in the +morning one Jacques Noël, a seigneur, accompanied by royal notaries, +proceeded to the government house in Quebec. He knocked at the principal +entrance and, when a servant appeared, Noël asked if His Excellency +James Murray, the Governor, was at home. The servant replied that His +Excellency was within and that he would give him notice. On being +admitted to the presence of the Governor, Noël with head uncovered, and, +to symbolize his humble obedience, wearing neither sword nor spur, fell +on his knees before him and declared that he performed faith and homage +for the seigniory to which, on his father's death, he had become the +heir. He then took an oath on the gospels to be faithful to the king and +to be no party to anything against his interests; to hold his own +vassals to the same obedience; and to perform all other duties required +by the terms of his holding. + +The Crown required very little of the seigneur and so, in truth, did the +seigneur of his tenants. Their annual payment of _cens et rentes_ rarely +amounted to more than a very few dollars. When it fell due in the autumn +they were given abundant notice. Still in the Canadian parishes, when +the Sunday morning mass is over, the crier stands on a raised platform +near the church door, the people gather round, and the announcement is +made of tithes and taxes due, of articles lost or found, of anything +indeed of general interest to the community. It was in this way that as +St. Martin's day, November 11th, approached the people were reminded of +the falling due of the _cens et rentes_. The meaning of the two terms is +somewhat obscure. The _cens_ was a trifling payment by the _censitaire_ +in recognition of the seigneur's position and rights as landowner; while +the _rentes_ represented a real rental based in some degree on the +supposed value of the land. But the rate was usually conventional and +very small. In early Canada the river was the highway and upon it +therefore every settler desired to have a frontage. There was, also, +greater safety from Indian attacks in having the houses close together +at the front of the farms. So these became long narrow strips, with the +houses built so close together that the country side often seems like a +continuous village. The habitant paid usually in _cens et rentes_ twenty +sols (about twenty cents) for each arpent (192 feet) of frontage; +instead of cash usually he might pay in kind--a live capon or a small +measure (demi-minot) of grain for each arpent. He paid also about one +cent of rent for each superficial acre. Thus for a farm of 100 acres, +with two arpents of frontage, a habitant might pay $1.00 in cash and two +capons. If each of 400 such tenants paid for their frontage in capons, +800 of these fowls would he brought to the seigneur's barn-yard each +autumn! + +Though payment was due on November 11th, the habitants usually waited +for the first winter days when the sleighing had become good. In many of +the sleighs, hastening with the merry sound of bells over the wintry +roads to the manor house, there would be one or two captive capons or a +bag or two of grain. M. de Gaspé has described how on such an occasion +the seigneur, or some member of his family for him, would be found by +the tenant "seated majestically in a large arm chair, near a table +covered with green baize cloth." Here he received the payments, or in +many cases only excuses for non-payment. The scene outside was often +animated, for the fowls brought in payment of the rent, with legs tied +but throats free, would not bear their captivity in silence. Rent day +was a festal occasion, but the great day in the year at the manor house +was New Year's Day. Then the people came to offer their respects to the +seigneur and Nairne speaks of the prodigious consumption of whiskey and +cakes at such a time. The seigneur was usually god-father to the +first-born of the children of his tenants. It is a pretty custom among +French Canadians for the children to go on New Year's Day, which is a +great festival, to the chamber of their parents in the early morning and +kneel before the bed for their benediction. To the seigneur as to a +parent came on this day his god-children and we have it from M. de +Gaspé, an eye witness, that on one occasion he saw no less than one +hundred of these come to call upon the seigneur at the manor house! In +the old days the people came also on the first day of May to plant the +May-pole before his door and to dance round it. + +Some of the seigneurs were as poor as their own _censitaires_ and, like +them, toiled with their hands. But usually there was a social gulf +between the cottage and the manor house. Even the Church marked this. +The seigneur had the right to a special pew; he was censed first; he +received the wafer first at the communion; he took precedence in +processions, and was specially recommended from the pulpit to the +prayers of the congregation. Caldwell, who was seigneur of Lauzon +opposite Quebec, used to drive through his great seigniory in state, +half reclining on the cushions of his carriage and with a numerous +following. If on a long drive he stopped at a farm house, even for the +light refreshment of a drink of milk, he never paid the habitant with +anything less than a gold coin. I once asked a habitant, who remembered +the old days, whether the seigneur really was such a very great man in +the village. He replied, with something like awe in his voice, +"_Monsieur, il était le roi, l'empereur, du village_." + +The ministrations of the manor house were often patriarchical and +beneficent; the seigneur's wife was like the squire's wife in an English +village. In time this relation aroused resentment. Some villager's son +with a taste for business or letters made his way in the world, got into +touch with more advanced thought, and when he came back to the village +was not so willing as formerly to touch his hat to the seigneur and +accept an inferior social status as a matter of course. M. de Gaspé +tells how he often accompanied Madame Taché, in her own right +co-seigneuress of Kamouraska, opposite Malbaie, in her visits to the +people on the seigniory. She took alms to the poor, and wine, cordials, +delicacies to the sick and convalescent. "She reigned as sovereign in +the seigniory," he says, "by the very tender ties of love and of +gratitude." When she left the village church after mass on Sunday the +habitants, most of whom drove to church in their own vehicles, would +wait respectfully for her to start and then follow her in a long +procession, none of them venturing to pass her on the road. At the point +where she turned from the high-way up the avenue leading to the manor +house, each habitant, as he passed, would raise his hat, although only +her back was in view disappearing in the direction of the house. + +But early in the 19th century this spirit was changing: + + One day I was myself witness, says M. de Gaspé, of a violation of + this universal deference. It was St. Louis's day, the festival of + the parish of Kamouraska. As usual Madame Taché, at the close of + mass, was leading the long escort of her _censitaires_, when a + young man, excited by the frequent libations of which in the + country many are accustomed to partake during the parish fêtes,--a + young man, I say, breaking from the procession passed the carriage + of the seigneuress as fast as his horse would go. Madame Taché + stopped her carriage and turning round towards those who followed + her cried in a loud voice: + + "What insolent person is this who has passed before me?" + + An old man went up to her, hat in hand, and said with tears in his + voice: + + "Madame, it is my son who unfortunately is tipsy, but be sure that + I shall bring him to make his apologies and meanwhile I beg you to + accept mine for his boorishness." + + I ought to add that the whole parish spoke with indignation of the + conduct of the young man. The delinquent had committed a double + offence. He had been rude to their benefactress, and besides, + violating a French Canadian custom, he had passed a carriage + without asking permission.[33] + +This must have been before 1813 for in that year this good Madame Taché +died: even so early was youth restive under the old traditions of +deference and subordination. Already some even of the seigneurs were +saying that the system retarded settlement. It would have suited the +seigneurs to have their holdings converted into freehold, for then they +could have held the unsettled land as their own property instead of +being under obligation to grant it for a nominal rental to +_censitaires_. But to make this conversion would have been too kind to +the seigneurs; so the matter dragged on for a long time. + +The grievances of the habitant against the seigneurs were numerous, some +of them real, some fanciful. It seemed anomalous that, in a British +colony in the nineteenth century, there should be men holding great +tracts of land with rights over their tenants, as some authors have +seriously claimed, extending from the power of trying them for petty +offences to that of inflicting the death penalty. This last right was, +in any case, only nominal and was never exercised by any seigneur in +Canada; but even the claim that it existed shows how high were the +authority and privilege of the seigneur. A right like the _corvée_ had a +sinister meaning. One of the greatest hardships of the old régime, in +France it meant that, on demand, the peasant must drop his own work to +join in making highways, in carrying from one place to another the +effects of a regiment, and other unwelcome tasks, all without pay. In +Canada it was milder. The seigneur levied a _corvée_ of so many days' +labour, which he employed on the useful task of improving the highway. +Some seigneurs required that at the times they chose, the habitants +should work for them a certain number of days, usually six, in each +year. They could even make the habitants work without pay at building a +manor house; a few of the massive stone mansions still fairly numerous +in the Province of Quebec were constructed by such labour. Not +unnaturally the habitant came to feel it odious and humiliating to be +obliged thus to give his labour at another's order. + +The seigneuries too were often broken up. In Canada there is no law of +primogeniture and, at a seigneur's death, the land went to daughters as +well as to sons. Few of the old seigniorial families remained on their +original estates. In time those who held the property came to think that +a rental of about a cent an acre was not enough. In the days of French +rule they could not have increased it; but the old custom, they claimed, +did not apply under British sovereignty. So these charges were often +increased; in time instead of a penny the habitant had to pay +three-pence, six-pence, and even eight-pence, an acre; the seigneurs, as +a judge put it, showed an excellent knowledge of arithmetical +progression. Thus the _cens et rentes_ began to bring in a real income. +So did the _lods et ventes_, the tax of one-twelfth of the price of +whatever land the habitant sold. In early days land was rarely sold. But +when towns and villages had grown up on seigniorial estates, a good deal +of buying and selling took place and there stood always the seigneur +demanding in every transaction his share of the selling price. If the +land was sold two or three times in a year, as might well happen, each +time the seigneur got his share of one-twelfth. If the occupier had +built on the land a house at his own cost, none the less did the +seigneur, who had done nothing, get his large percentage on the selling +value of these improvements. This was a real grievance. To avoid paying +the seigneur's claim a price, lower than that really paid, was sometimes +named in the deed, and this led to perjury. To protect themselves the +seigneur used his _droit de retrait_ the right for forty days of himself +taking the property at the price named. This involved vexation and delay +and increased discontent. Moreover the seigneur's right to _lods et +ventes_ stood in the way of a ready transfer of property between members +of the same family. + +There were other causes of discontent. The seigneur had the _droit de +banalité_, the banal rights, under which in France the habitant must use +the seigneur's wine-press, his oven and his mill. In Canada no wine was +made, so the seigneur's winepress did not exist. Some attempts were made +to force the habitant to bake his bread in the seigneur's oven but what +would do in a compact French village, where fuel was scarce, became +absurd in Canada; the picture is ludicrous of a habitant carrying a +dozen miles, over rough roads, to the seigneur's oven, unbaked dough +which might be hard frozen _en route_. Moreover new inventions made +ovens common and cheap so that the habitant could afford to have his +own. The seigneur's oven thus caused no grievance. Not so however the +seigneur's mill. In the early days when the seigneur had the sole right +to build a mill this became for him, in truth, a duty sometimes +burdensome; for, whether it would pay or not, the government forced him +to build a mill or else abandon the right. But in time the mill proved +profitable and to it the peasant must bring his wheat. There might be a +good mill near his house, while the seigneur's mill might be a dozen +miles away and even then might give poor service; yet to the seigneur's +mill he must go. If it was a wind-mill, nature, by denying wind, might +cause a long delay before the flour should be ready. As time went on, +some seigneurs claimed or reserved a monopoly in regard to all mills; +grist mills, saw mills, carding mills, factories of every kind. Canada +in time exported flour, but the seigneur's rights stood in the way of +the free grinding of the wheat for this trade. The habitant might have +on his land an excellent mill site with water power convenient, but he +could not use it without the seigneur's consent. More than this the +seigneur often reserved the right to take such a site to the extent of +six arpents for his own use without any compensation to the habitant. + +In many cases the seigneur might freely cut timber on the habitant's +land to erect buildings for public use,--church, presbytery, mill, and +even a manor house. The rights to base metals on the property he also +retained. The eleventh fish caught in the rivers was his. He might +change the course of streams or rivers for manufacturing purposes; he +alone could establish a ferry; his will determined where roads should be +opened. Some seigneurs were even able to force villages and towns to pay +a bonus for the right to carry on the ordinary business of buying and +selling. So it turned out that if the habitant's crop failed he had +little chance to do anything else without the seigneur's consent; he is, +says the report of a Commission of Enquiry in 1843, "kept in a perpetual +state of feebleness and dependence. He can never escape from the tie +that forever binds to the soil him and his progeny; a cultivator he is +born, a mere cultivator he is doomed to die." No doubt this plaint is +pitched in a rather high key. But in time the burden of grievances was +generally felt and then the seigniorial system was doomed. + +In the days of the last John Nairne political agitation became an old +story at Malbaie. We get echoes of meetings held in the village to +support the cause of the idol of habitant radicalism, Louis Joseph +Papineau; in 1836 ninety-two resolutions drawn up by him and attacking +the whole system of government in Canada appear to have met with +clamorous approval from the assembled villagers. Papineau was himself a +seigneur and did not assail the system. But after his unsuccessful +rebellion in 1837-38 the attack on the seigneurs intensified. We know +little of what happened at Malbaie but the end came suddenly. In 1854, +after an election fought largely on this issue, the Parliament of Canada +swept away the seigniorial system. The habitants then became tenants +paying as rent the old _cens et rentes_. They could not be disturbed as +long as this trifling rent was paid. Moreover at any time they might +become simple freeholders by paying to the seigneur a sum of money +representing their annual rent capitalized on a six per cent, basis. The +term seigneur is still used but is now a mere honorary title. No longer +does his position give him the authority of a magistrate; no longer must +the habitants grind their corn at his mill; no longer can he claim _lods +et ventes_ when land is sold. For the loss of these rights he was paid +compensation out of the public treasury.[34] + +With the abolition of the seigniorial system ends too the story of the +Nairne family. In 1861, exactly one hundred years after Colonel Nairne +first visited Malbaie, died his grandson and the last of his +descendants, John McNicol Nairne, son of Colonel Nairne's eldest +daughter Magdalen. This last Nairne left the property absolutely to his +widow, tied only by the condition that it was to go to her male issue if +she had such, even by a second marriage. In 1884, she too died +childless, and bequeathed the property to an old friend, both of herself +and of her husband, Mr. W.E. Duggan. Had Mr. Duggan not survived Mrs. +Nairne the property was to go to St. Matthew's Church, Quebec. Mr. +Duggan occupied it, until his death in 1898, when it passed by will to +his half-brother, Mr. E.J. Duggan, the present seigneur.[35] + +It is a sad story this of the extinction of a family. Both Thomas Nairne +and his father were buried at first in the Protestant cemetery at +Quebec. But not there permanently were they to lie, and many years ago +they found a resting-place in a new tomb in Mount Hermon Cemetery. On a +lovely autumn day in 1907 I made my way in Quebec to the spot where the +Nairnes are interred. In the fresh cool air it was a pleasure to walk +briskly the three miles of the St. Louis road to the cemetery. One +crossed the battle field of the Plains of Abraham where, within a few +months, a century and a half ago, Britain and France grappled in deadly +strife. The elder Nairne saw that field with its harvest of dead on +September 13th, 1759, and, in the following April, he saw its snow +stained with the blood of brave men who fell in Murray's battle with +Lévis. In May, 1776, he marched across it in victorious pursuit of the +fleeing American army. At Mount Hermon I readily found the Nairne tomb. +It lies on the slope of the hill towards the river. Through the noble +trees gleamed the mighty tide of the St. Lawrence. A great pine tree +stands near the block of granite that marks the Nairne graves and a +gentle breeze through its countless needles caused that mysterious +sighing which is perhaps nature's softest and saddest note. One's +thoughts went back to the brave old Colonel who wrought so well and had +such high hopes for his posterity to the soldier son, remembered here, +who died in far distant India; and to the other soldier son who fell in +Canada upon the field of battle. He was the last male heir of his line. +The name and the family are now well-nigh forgotten. The inscriptions on +the tomb, reared by a friend, connected with the Nairnes by ties of +friendship only, not of blood, are themselves the memorial of the rise +and extinction of a Canadian family.[36] + +[Footnote 25: He must have been a Roman Catholic for he was buried in +the churchyard at Murray Bay.] + +[Footnote 26: We have seen (_ante_ p. 49) how at Malbaie Colonel Nairne +expected that a Protestant missionary would soon make the community +Protestant.] + +[Footnote 27: Professor Barrett Wendell, France of To-day, New York, +1907.] + +[Footnote 28: Roy, Histoire de la Seigneurie de Lauzon, IV: 169, 170.] + +[Footnote 29: The Abbé H.R. Casgrain: _Une Paroisse Canadienne au XVII. +Siècle_. _Oeuvres_, Vol. I, pp. 483 _sqq._] + +[Footnote 30: Roy, La Seigneurie de Lauzon, IV: 247.] + +[Footnote 31: M. Léon Gérin in "L'Habitant de Saint-Justin", p. 202.] + +[Footnote 32: Roy, La Seigneurie de Lauzon IV: 245.] + +[Footnote 33: De Gaspé, _Mémoires_, p. 533, 4.] + +[Footnote 34: Mr. Nairne claimed as compensation for his _lods et +ventes_ £4,560, 9s. 6d., (Halifax currency) and for the banal rights +£3,400. He probably received considerably less. More than 400 dwellers +in the seigniory still pay the annual _cens et rentes_.] + +[Footnote 35: Malcolm Fraser's seigniory, Mount Murray, remained +somewhat longer in the family of its original owner. On Fraser's death +in 1815 his eldest son William, who had become a medical practitioner +and a Roman Catholic, succeeded. He died without issue in 1830 and his +brother, John Malcolm Fraser, then fell heir to the seigniory. When he +died in 1860 the property passed by will to his two daughters, both +married to British officers. The elder, Mrs. Reeve, succeeded to the +manor house. The younger, Mrs. Higham, soon sold her share to the Cimon +family who became prominent in the district and one of whose members sat +in Parliament at Ottawa on the Conservative side. Mrs. Reeve died in +1879 leaving the use of the property to her husband, Colonel Reeve, for +his life. When he died in 1888, his son Mr. John Fraser Reeve, Malcolm +Fraser's great-grandson, became seigneur. In 1902 he sold the property +to the present seigneur, Mr. George T. Bonner, of New York, a Canadian +by birth. Though there are numerous living descendants of Malcolm +Fraser, Murray Bay knows them no more.] + +[Footnote 36: Sacred to the memory of Lieutenant Colonel John Nairne, +First Seigneur of Murray Bay. This Gallant Officer during 38 years +distinguished himself as an able and brave Soldier. For simplicity of +manners as a man, for Intrepidity and humanity as a Soldier, and for the +virtues of a Gentleman, his memory will long be respected and cherished. +Born in Scotland, March 1, 1731. Died at Quebec, July 14, 1802. + +Lieutenant Colonel Nairne first entered the Dutch Service where he +belonged to that distinguished Corps, the Scotch Brigade. He afterwards +entered the British Service where under Wolfe he was present at the +taking of Louisbourg and Quebec. He also served under Murray and +Carleton and distinguished himself in a most gallant manner when Quebec +was attacked by the Americans in the years 1775 and 1776. + +And of his eldest son, Lieutenant John Nairne of the 19th Regiment of +Foot, who fell a victim to the climate of India when returning with the +victorious troops from the capture of Seringapatam in the 21st year of +his age; also of his youngest son, Captain Thomas Nairne, of the 49th +Regiment of Foot who bravely fell at the head of his Company in the +Battle at Chrysler's Farm in Upper Canada November 11, 1813, aged 26 +years. + +Also of John Leslie Nairne, great grandson of Colonel Nairne, born July +23, 1842, died March 18, 1845; and of John Nairne, Esq., Grandson of +Colonel Nairne, born at Murray Bay, March 22nd, 1808, died at Quebec +June 8, 1861; and of his Widow, Maria Katherine Leslie, died at Quebec, +August 25, 1884, deeply regretted by her friends and by the poor of whom +she was the constant benefactress. + +This monument is erected in affectionate remembrance of much kindness by +one who was privileged to enjoy their friendship during the best part of +his life.] + + + + +CHAPTER VIII + +THE COMING OF THE PLEASURE SEEKERS + + Pleasure seeking at Murray Bay.--A fisherman's experience in + 1830.--New visitors.--Fishing in a mountain lake.--Camp life.--The + Upper Murray.--Canoeing.--Running the rapids.--Walks and + drives.--Golf.--A rainy day.--The habitant and his visitors. + + +In the Middle Ages mankind in pursuit of change of air and scene and of +bodily and spiritual health went on pilgrimage to some famous shrine; in +modern times dwellers in cities, in a similar pursuit, go in summer to +some beautiful spot by sea, or lake, or mountain. To many these places +then become as sacred as was the saint's shrine of an earlier age. Busy +men have leisure there to be idle, to read, to enjoy companionship, to +pursue wholesome pleasures. Such a spot has Murray Bay become to many. +Their intrusion was not looked upon with favour by those who wished to +preserve the old simplicity, but it could not be resisted. More than a +hundred years ago Colonel Nairne and Colonel Fraser had parties of +guests in the summer that must have made the two manor houses lively +enough. The beauty of the place, its coolness when Quebec and Montreal +suffered from sweltering heat in the short Canadian summer, the +simplicity and charm of its life, proved alluring. There was also +excellent sport. Salmon and trout abounded. Though time has brought +changes, in some seasons the salmon fishing is still excellent and, in +all the world, probably, there is no better trout fishing than in the +upper waters of the Murray and in some of the lakes. + +Thus it happened that the earliest annals of pleasure seeking at Murray +Bay relate to fishing. It is at least possible that more than two +hundred years ago the Sieur de Comporté tried his fortune as a fisherman +in the lake that bears his name. A hundred and fifty years ago, as we +have seen, Captain Nairne and his guest Gilchrist had such excellent +salmon fishing that Gilchrist thought this sport alone worth a trip +across the Atlantic. Many other fishing expeditions to Malbaie there +must have been and, fortunately, a detailed narrative of one of them, +made in 1830, has been preserved. The fishermen were Major Wingfield and +Dr. Henry--attached to the 66th regiment at Montreal. + +They went by steamer from Montreal to Quebec and an American General on +board jeered at them for travelling three hundred miles to catch fish +which they could buy in the market at their door! When they reached +Quebec they found no steamer for Murray Bay,--hardly strange as then the +steamboat was comparatively new. Three days they waited at Quebec until +at length they bargained with the captain of a coasting schooner bound +for Kamouraska, on the south shore of the St. Lawrence, to land them at +Malbaie. The weather was stormy, the ship nearly foundered, and the +eighty miles of the journey occupied no less than four days and nights. +The fishermen had brought with them a quarter of cold lamb, a loaf, and +a bottle of wine, but, before the journey was over, sheer hunger drove +them to the ship's salt pork and to sausages stuffed with garlic. Rather +than take refuge below among "thirty or forty dirty habitants from +Kamouraska" they stuck to the deck and encamped under the great sail, +but the rain fell so heavily that they could not even keep their cigars +alight. At length "with beards like Jews," cold, wet, half-starved and +miserable, they reached their destination. As they landed at Murray Bay +they saw a salmon floundering in a net, bought it, and carried it with +them to the house of a man named Chaperon where they had engaged +lodgings. Here, says Dr. Henry, the sensation of being clean and +comfortable in their host's "pleasant parlour" was delicious. The tea, +the toast, the dainty prints of fresh butter were all exquisite "after +rancid pork and garlic," and he declares that they ate for two hours and +consumed "some half gallon of thick cream and half a bushel of new laid +eggs." Under their window bloomed a rose bush in full flower. Murray Bay +was at its best. + +On Monday morning, July 5th, 1830, the two fishermen engaged a +_calèche_, and a boy named Louis Panet drove them up the Murray River. +The present village church was already standing, "a respectable church," +says Dr. Henry, "with its long roof and glittering spire and a tall elm +or two"; the elms, alas, have disappeared and now there are only +willows. A wooden bridge crossed the Murray and its large abutments +loaded with great boulders told of formidable spring floods sweeping +down the valley. A recent "éboulement" or land slide had blocked the +road along the river and men were still busy clearing away the rubbish. +Eight or ten miles up the river at the fall known as the Chute, still a +favourite spot for salmon fishing, they had magnificent sport. One Jean +Gros, in a crazy canoe, took them to the best places for casting the +fly. The first salmon weighed twenty-five pounds and they had to play it +for three-quarters of an hour. That evening when they returned to M. +Chaperon's, to feast once more, they had five salmon weighing in all one +hundred and five pounds and forty-five sea trout averaging three pounds +each. No wonder Gilchrist has said such fishing was worth a trip across +the Atlantic! The blot on the day's enjoyment was that in the July +weather they were pestered with flies. + +Excellent sport continued from day to day. Once Jean Gros lost his hold +of the pole by which he controlled the canoe and it drifted helplessly +towards a rapid, Henry all the time playing a salmon. The man was +alarmed and knelt to mumble prayers but Henry caught up a board thrown +from the shore, gave him a whack with it on the back and shouted: +"_Ramez! Sacré! Ramez!_" The effect was electrical. The old fellow +seized the board, paddled with it like mad, steered down the rapid, and +Henry finally landed his salmon. Day after day the two fishermen drove +up to the Chute to fish until, after a fortnight, the river fell and the +salmon ceased to rise; then they went down in a large boat to Rivière +Noire, said never yet to have been fished with a rod, slept at night on +the sandy beach, but had no luck. Henry tells of an annoyance at Malbaie +that still continues; mongrel dogs ran after their _calèche_; sometimes +one would try to seize the horse by the nose and nearly cause a +run-away. Each cur pursued the vehicle and barked himself hoarse, and +then, when he retired, his neighbour would take up the task. At length, +after this experience had been frequently renewed, they decided to +retaliate. One black shaggy beast had made himself specially obnoxious; +with his thick wooly fur he did not mind in the least being struck by +the whip. So one day Dr. Henry got ready the salmon gaff and, as the +brute darted out at them, skilfully hooked him by the side. The driver +whipped up his horse, which seemed to enjoy the punishment of his +enemy, and the vehicle went tearing along the road, the dog yelling +hideously as he was dragged by the hook. The people ran to the doors +holding up their hands in astonishment. The Doctor soon shook off the +dog and he trotted home little the worse. Next day when he saw the +fisherman's calèche coming he limped into the house "as mute as a fish" +with his tail between his legs. + +Dr. Henry thought Murray Bay an earthly paradise. The people in this +"secluded valley" were the most virtuous he had ever seen. Flagrant +crime was unknown,--doors were never locked at night. There was no need +of temperance reform; "whole families pass their lives without any +individual ever having tasted intoxicating fluids." The devout people, +he says, had social family worship, morning and evening; the families +were huge, fifteen to twenty children being not uncommon; when a young +couple married the relations united to build a house for them; and so +on. Unfortunately we know from other sources that conditions were not as +idyllic at Murray Bay as Dr. Henry describes; but it was, no doubt, a +simple and virtuous community. + +In time its isolation was to disappear before invaders like Dr. Henry, +in pursuit of pleasure. So gradual was the change that we hardly know +when it came. By 1850 there was a little summer colony mostly from +Quebec and Montreal. Soon a few came from points more distant. As means +of transport on the St. Lawrence improved a great many travellers passed +Murray Bay on their way to the Saguenay. Tadousac, at its mouth, was +already well known and an occasional stray visitor stopped off at Murray +Bay to see what it was like. The accommodation offered was rude enough, +no doubt, but perhaps less rude than one might suppose. At Pointe au Pic +stood a substantial stone house. This was turned into a hotel and known +some fifty years ago as Duberger's house. There were besides a few other +houses for summer visitors. Thus, long ago, was there tolerable comfort +at Murray Bay. In any case visitors soon found that the place had +abundant compensations even for discomfort. They came and came again. +Friends came to visit them and they too learned to love the spot. Some +Americans from New York chanced to find it out and others of their +countrymen followed; by 1885 already well established was the now +dominant American colony. + +The influx has limited and restricted but has not destroyed the old +diversion of fishing. There are still many hundreds of lakes in the +neighbourhood on which no fisherman has ever yet cast a fly. But nearly +all the good spots within easy range are now leased or owned by private +persons and clubs; no longer may the transient tourist fish almost where +he pleases. All the better for this restriction is the quality of the +fishing. What magnificent sport there is in some of those tiny lakes on +the mountain side and what glorious views as one drives thither! To +reach Lac à Comporté, for instance, one crosses the brawling Murray, +drives up its left bank for a mile or so and then heads straight up the +mountain side. Turning back one can see the silver gleam of the small +river winding through its narrow valley until lost in the enveloping +mountains. From points still higher one looks northwestward upon the +mountain crests worn round ages ago, some of them probably never yet +trodden by the foot of man. Most are wooded to the top but there are +bare crags, a glowing purple sometimes in the afternoon light; but the +prevailing tone is the deep, deep blue, the richest surely that nature +can show anywhere. Along the road where we are driving stretch the +houses of the habitants and sometimes, to survey the passing strangers, +the whole family stands on the rude door-step. They rarely fail in a +courteous greeting, with a touch still of the manners of France. + +Two or three days spent on one of these wild mountain lakes, such as Lac +à Comporté, is as pleasant an experience as any one can have. The walk +is beautiful from the last cottage where the vehicles are left and the +two or three men are secured who shoulder the packs with the necessary +provisions. At first the forest path is hewn broadly in a straight line +but it soon narrows to a trail winding up the mountain side. The way is +rough; one must clamber over occasional boulders and turn aside to avoid +fallen trees. The white stems of birches are conspicuous in the forest +thicket. After a stiff climb we have passed over the shoulder of the +mountain; the path is now trending downward and at length through the +arch of green over the pathway one catches the gleam of the lake. The +pace quickens and in a few minutes we stand upon the shore of a lovely +little sheet of water with a shore line perhaps three miles long, lying +in the mountain hollow. Evening is near and, half an hour later, each +fisherman is in a boat paddled softly by a habitant companion. In a +thousand places the calm water is disturbed by the trout feeding busily; +they often throw themselves quite clear of the water and, when the sport +has well begun, at a single cast one occasionally takes a trout on each +of his three flies. Before it is dark the whole circuit of the lake has +been made and a goodly basket of trout is the result. + +A camp at evening is always delightful. The tired fishermen lie by the +cheery fire while the men prepare the evening meal, to consist chiefly +of the trout just caught. They have the vivacity and readiness of their +race: rough habitants though they are their courtesy is inborn, +inalienable. After the meal is over silence often falls on the group of +three or four by the fire. Every one is tired and at barely nine o'clock +it is time for bed. Before each of the two or three small tents standing +some distance apart by the water's edge the men have built a blazing +fire which throws its light far out over the tiny lake. All round rise +the mountains, now dark and sombre; a sharp wind is blowing and as one +stands alone looking out over the water there comes a sense of chill; +for a moment the mountain solitude seems remote, melancholy and +friendless: with something like a shiver one turns to the cheerful fire +before the tent. Here blankets are spread on sweet scented boughs of +_sapin_; the bed is hard, but not too hard for a tired man and one +quickly falls asleep. + +Other fishing expeditions at Murray Bay take one farther afield and into +more varied scenes. In its upper stretches, three thousand feet above +the sea, the Murray River flows through a level country before it +plunges into mountain fastnesses, almost impregnable in summer, for a +long and troubled détour, to emerge at length into this last valley. To +reach this flat upland one must drive through a beautiful mountain pass +with great heights towering on either side of the winding roadway. In +the upper river the fishing is still unsurpassed. Of small trout there +are vast numbers, excellent for the table, but in the deep pools are +also huge trout, ranging in weight from three to eight pounds. The +surrounding country is open; there are only clumps of scrubby timber; +and the plain is covered with deep moss readily beaten into a hard path +upon which the foot treads silently. Here the bears come to feed upon +the berries and the Canadians have called the plain prettily the "Jardin +des Ours." Other sport than trout fishing there is. In season the +caribou and the moose are abundant--but that is a sportsman's tale by +itself. + +Fishing and hunting are not the sole diversions. As long ago as in 1811, +when young Captain Nairne came here fresh from Europe, the boating +attracted him and he spent much time on the bay and the river. No doubt +the young seigneur was soon skilful in the art of paddling a canoe. In +those days there were real Indians and no other canoes than those of +birch bark; now these have well-nigh disappeared and, indeed, few +visitors at Murray Bay, use any kind of a canoe. The pastime is thought +too dangerous for all but the initiated. Amid these mountains, winds +rise quickly and beat up a sea, and it is well to keep near the shore. +The rising tide sweeps like a mill race over the bar at the mouth of the +bay and when one has passed out to the great river it is like being +afloat on the open sea. On perfectly calm days we may go far out to be +swept up with the tide; but it is both safer and pleasanter to glide +along close to shore under the shadow of the cliffs, around sharp +corners, dodging in and out among boulders submerged, or now being +submerged, by the rising tide. The successive sandy beaches are each +backed by high cliffs. The river is a shining, spangled, surface of +light blue and white, reflecting the sky sprinkled with fleecy clouds. +Here a chattering stream, the Petit Ruisseau, falls over white rocks to +lose itself in the sand. Far ahead now one can see the Church of Ste. +Irénée perched on a level table-land, two or three hundred feet above +the river. Soon a dark green line on the high birch-clad shore marks the +gorge by which the Grand Ruisseau flows to the St. Lawrence. At its +mouth is a good place to land and make tea. The canoes are drawn up on a +sandy beach under the shadow of cliffs, a medley of red and grey and +brown. Near by, the Grand Ruisseau, a fair sized brook, babbles in its +bed crowded with great boulders. A wild path, part of it including steps +from rock to rock in the bed of the stream itself, leads to a lovely +little cascade where, in white foam, the water falls into a deep dark +pool. One hurries to visit it and then, with the evening shadows falling +and the narrow gorge becoming sombre, it is wise to hasten back. As one +steps out from the wooded path to the shore of the great river the scene +is enchanting. The river's shining surface is perfectly smooth. Far +across it is a dark-blue serried line of mountains. Houses, twenty miles +distant, stand out white in the last light of the sun. From the +tin-covered spire of a church far away, the flash of the rays comes back +like the glow of fire. Standing in shadow we look out on a realm of +light: + + "As when the sun prepared for rest + Hath gained the precincts of the West, + Though his departing radiance fail + To illuminate the hollow vale, + A lingering light he fondly throws + On the fair hills, where first he rose." + +The shore is strangely silent; one hears only the occasional puffing of +the white whale or the sad cry of the loon. + +A thrilling diversion is that of running the rapids in the Murray River. +The canoe is sent up by _charette_ and after luncheon it is a walk or +drive of eight or nine miles up the river to the starting point--a deep, +dark-brown pool, which soon narrows into a swift rapid, the worst in all +the stretches to the river's mouth. Formerly a procession of half a +dozen canoes would go through the rapid with light hearts, but, long +ago, when the river was very high, a canoe upset here and one of its +occupants was never seen alive again. As one paddles out into the pool +and is drawn into the dark current moving silently and swiftly to the +rapid the heart certainly beats a little faster. The water's surface is +an inclined plane as it flows over the ledge of rock. Straight ahead the +current breaks on a huge black rock in a cloud of white foam. One must +sweep off to the right, with the great volume of the water, and need +catch only a little spray in swinging safely past the danger point. +Then, in the waves caused by the current, before the canoe is quite +turned "head-on" a wave may curl over the bow and leave the occupants +kneeling in half an inch of water. In such a case it is wise to land and +empty the canoe. In the next rapid, a tangled maze, the water is shallow +and skill is required to wind in and out among the rocks and find water +enough to keep afloat. Then the canoe slips over a ledge with plenty of +water and the only care is to curve sharply to the left with the current +before it strikes the bank straight ahead. The whole trip down the river +occupies two glorious hours. There are short stretches of smooth and +deep water; then the river contracts and pours with impetuous swiftness +down a rocky slope. Sometimes trees stand close to the river; then there +are bare grey banks of clay; then smiling fields sloping gently up to +the high land; at times the canoe is in shade, then in the flashing +sunlight. The river grows milder as it nears its mouth but the +excitement does not end until we float under the bridge at Malbaie +village and lift the canoe over the boom fastened there to catch logs in +their descent. To paddle home in calm water across the bay seems tame +after dancing for two hours on that tossing current. + +Of course there are many walks and drives--on the whole the most +delightful of Malbaie's diversions. The favourite walk is to "Beulah." A +generation that does not read its Bible as it should may need to be told +that Beulah is the name of the land no more desolate in which the Lord +delighteth; some Bible reader so named a spot on the mountain where one +looks out far, far, afield in every direction for immense distances. It +may be reached by a forest path straight up the mountain side from +Pointe au Pic. We go through spruce and birch woods till we reach an +opening where we look out northward on rounded mountain tops blue, +silent, immeasurable, spreading away, one might almost fancy to the +North Pole itself, so endless seems their mass. On beautiful turf +through woods, then by a cow path across a bog, the path leads until a +bare hill top lies full in view. This is Beulah. Standing there one +seems to have the whole world at one's feet. When Petrarch had climbed +Mount Ventoux, near Avignon, the first man for half a century to do so, +the scene overwhelmed him; thoughts of the deeper meaning of life rose +before his mind; he drew from his pocket St. Augustine and read: "Men go +about to wonder at the height of the mountains and the mighty waves of +the sea, and the wide sweep of rivers and the circuit of the ocean and +the revolution of the stars, but themselves they consider not." I never +stand on "Beulah" without thinking of this passage. Far away to the +distant south shore, and up and down the river we can survey a stretch +of eighty or ninety miles. We stand in the midst of a sea of mountains +and look landward across deep valleys in all directions with the ranges +rising tier on tier beyond. + +[Illustration: THE GOLF LINKS AT MURRAY BAY] + +Among diversions for men golf, in spite of a certain reaction, has still +the chief place. The club house is on the west shore of the bay. One +plays out northward. The players zigzag here and there among curious +earth mounds formed by the eddying swirl of water when the river's +current held high carnival over these level stretches. Then the course +leads up to the higher slope and mounts steadily, until, at the farthest +hole, a considerable height has been reached. As one turns back towards +the river he faces a wonder scene of changing grey and blue and green +and white. The smoke of passing steamers floats lazily in the air; they +take the deep channel by the south shore and are a dozen miles away. It +is usually a silent world that one looks out upon; but when there is a +north-east wind great green waves come rolling in upon the sandy shore +of the bay and fill the air with their undertone. + +Even the rainy days have their own pleasures. One is glad of its excuse +to sit before a crackling fire of birch wood and read. When the rain has +ceased and the sun comes out, looking across to Cap à l'Aigle and up +the river valley one sees new beauties. The mist disperses slowly. First +it leaves bare the rounded mountain tops; they stand out dark, massive, +with bases shrouded still in fleecy white. When the sun grows strong, +river and valley are soon clear again, though the outlines are still a +little softened. Up over the sand and boulders of the bay comes the +rising tide changing sombre brown to shining blue. It rushes noisily +across the bar at the bay's mouth a few hundred yards away. + +The visitors to this beautiful scene gather year by year from places +widely separated and form in this remote village a society singularly +cosmopolitan. English, French, Americans, Canadians, all mingle here +with leisure to meet and play together. For a time far away seems the +hard world of competition. Rarely do newspapers arrive until at least +the day after publication; the telegraph is used only under urgent +necessity; as far as possible business is excluded. The cottages are +spacious enough but quite simple, with rooms usually divided off only by +boards of pine or spruce. Very little decoration makes them pretty. +Gardening has a good many devotees; the long day of sunshine and in some +seasons the abundant rain of this northern region help to make +vegetation luxurious. If one drives he may take a _planche_--the +convenient serviceable "buck-board,"--still unsurpassed for a country +of hills and rough roads. But to me at least the _calèche_ is the more +enjoyable. It comes here from old France, a two-wheeled vehicle, with +the seat hung on stout leather straps reaching from front to back on +each side of the wooden frame. It is not a vehicle for those sensitive +to slight jars. The driver sits in a tiny seat in front and one is +amazed at the agility with which even old men spring from this perch to +walk up and down the steep hills. Their ponies are beautiful little +animals, specially fitted by a long development for work in this hilly +country. So well do they mount its heights that travellers repeat an +unconfirmed tradition of their having been known to climb trees! + +It is not strange that in our happy summer days we acquire a deep +affection for this northern region, its brilliant colouring, its crisp +air. Not its least charm is in the cheerful and kindly people. One would +not have them speak any other tongue than their French, preserving here +archaic usages, with new words for new things, influenced of course by +English, but still the beautiful language of an older France than the +France of to-day. The people have their own tragedies. One sees pale +women, over-worked. The physician's skill is too little sought; the +country ranges are very remote; it is difficult and expensive to get +medical aid; and there are deformed cripples who might have been made +whole by skill applied in time. Consumption too is here a dread +scourge, though against it a strenuous campaign has now begun. Many +children are born but too many die. Still, most of the people live in +comfort and they enjoy life--enjoy it probably much more than would an +Anglo-Saxon community of the same type. + +We who are among them in the summer are citizens of another and an +unknown world. New York and Chicago, Boston and Washington, Toronto and +Montreal are to us realities with one or other of which, in some way, +each of us is linked. To this simple people they are all merely that +outer world whence come their fleeting visitors of summer, as out of the +unknown come the migrant birds to pause and rest awhile. We bring with +us substantial material benefits; but it is not clear that our moral +influence is good. Leaving his farm the habitant brings to the village +his horse and calèche to become a hired _charretier_. He often gets good +fares but there is much idle waiting. Bad habits are formed and regular +industry is discouraged. The curé finds Malbaie a difficult sphere. We +alone get unmixed benefit from this fair scene, its days of glad +serenity, and of almost solemn stillness, when even a bird's note is +heard but rarely. + +Because all that concerns it interests us I have tried to put together +from scattered fragments the story long forgotten of the past of +Malbaie. In it there is abundance of the tragedy never remote from +man's life: if the telling of the tale has been a pleasure it has proved +not less a sad pleasure. But the story adds only a deeper meaning to our +beautiful playground. After all it is man and his activities which give +to nature's scenes their deepest interest; Quebec's chief charm is due +to Wolfe and Montcalm, St. Helena's to Napoleon. The shaggy mountain +crests which we view from our valley, the glistening blue river, the +strong north-east wind which clouds the sky, turns the river to grey, +and sprinkles its surface with white caps,--all are full for us of +joyous beauty. But how much less of interest would there be did the +white spire of the village church not peep out above the green trees up +the bay to tell of man's weakness and his hopes! The story of the brave +old soldier who peopled this valley, the pathetic tragedy of his +successor's fate, add something here to the bloom of nature. It may be +that the chief service of the chequered and half-forgotten past when it +speaks is to show how vain and transient is all we think and +plan,--"what shadows we are and what shadows we pursue." But be it so. +One would not miss from life this last joy of knowing what it really +means. + + + + +AUTHORITIES + + +CHAPTER I.--For Jacques Cartier see his Voyages of 1535-36, in +French (Ed. D'Avezac) Paris, 1863, translated into English (Ed. Baxter), +New York, 1906. For Champlain see his Oeuvres (Ed. Laverdière) Quebec, +1870. Bourdon's Act of Faith and Homage is in Canadian Archives, Series +M., Vol. I, p. 387. M. B. Sulte gives an account of the Carignan +Regiment in the Proc. and Trans. of the Royal Society of Canada for +1902. The account of the Sieur de Comporté in France is in Canadian +Archives Series B., F., 213, p. 46; that of the auction sale of his +property is in a MS. preserved at Murray Bay, while a record of the sale +of Malbaie to the government is in Canadian Archives, Series M., Vol. +LXV, p. 75. "The Jesuit Relations and Allied Documents" (Ed. Thwaites) +(Cleveland, 1900), Vol. LXIX., pp. 80 _sqq._ contains the account of +Malbaie in 1750. The authority for the burning of Malbaie in 1759 is Sir +James M. Le Moine, "The Explorations of Jonathan Oldbuck," Quebec, 1889, +based upon documents printed by "T.C." in _L'Abeille_, Nov. and Dec., +1859. Standard histories of the time such as Parkman's "Montcalm and +Wolfe" give references to authorities for the events of the Seven Years' +War. + +CHAPTER II.--The "Dictionary of National Biography" contains +good articles on Lord Lovat, General Murray, &c., with references to +authorities. Alexander Mackenzie's "History of the Frasers of Lovat" +(Inverness, 1896) is the most recent detailed history of the family. +MacLean, "An Historical Account of the Settlement of Scotch Highlanders +in America," (Cleveland, 1900), contains valuable information. The +portion of the chapter relating to Malbaie is based upon MSS. preserved +there in the Murray Bay Manor House. + +CHAPTER III.--MS. material preserved at Murray Bay. + +CHAPTER IV.--Much original material relating to the Siege of +Quebec in 1775-76 has been published by the Literary and Historical +Society of Quebec. To be specially noted are the two volumes of +documents on the "Blockade of Quebec in 1775-76 by the American +Revolutionists, (Les Bostonnais)" Edited by F.C. Würtele (Quebec, 1905 +and 1906). Two or three works have been written recently on the episode +from the American point of view: Codman, "Arnold's Expedition to Quebec" +(New York, 1901); Justin H. Smith, "Arnold's March from Cambridge to +Quebec, a critical study, together with a reprint of Arnold's Journal," +(New York, 1903); Justin H. Smith, "Our Struggle for the Fourteenth +Colony," 2 Vols. (New York, 1907). The story of Nairne's part in the war +is based chiefly upon MS. material preserved at Murray Bay. The incident +of the escaped prisoners is told in Nairne's reports; to Captain +Matthews, Secretary to Haldimand, on the 14th of May, 1780, and to Major +Le Maistre, on the 5th of June. These are at Murray Bay. A further +report to Matthews on the 3rd of June is preserved at Ottawa; Canadian +Archives, Series B, Vol. 73, p. 130. Mr. James Thompson was in charge of +the building of the houses for the prisoners and tells of their escape +in his MS. Diary. + +CHAPTER V. and CHAPTER VI. are based upon MSS. at +Murray Bay. + +CHAPTER VII.--M. Léon Gérin has given an exhaustive analysis of +the life of the habitant in "L'Habitant de Saint Justin," published in +the Proc. and Trans, of the Royal Society of Canada for 1898 (Ottawa, +1898). M. J.-E. Roy's "Histoire de la Seigneurie de Lauzon," of which +five volumes have been published (the last, Levis, Quebec, 1904) is the +most detailed and authoritative account of a Canadian Seigniory. Vol. IV +deals especially with the life of the habitants. Philippe Aubert de +Gaspé's "Les anciens Canadiens," (Quebec, 1863), and his "Mémoires" +(Ottawa, 1866), contain much that is interesting on the life of a +Canadian manor. So also do H.R. Casgrain's "Une Paroisse Canadienne au +XVIIe Siècle," Oeuvres Completes, Vol. I (Montreal, 1884), and +Parkman's "The Old Régime in Canada," (Boston, 1893). W. Bennett Munro's +"The Seigniorial System in Canada," (New York, 1907), and his "Documents +relating to Seigniorial Tenure in Canada," (Toronto, 1908), cover +adequately the whole subject, and contain, in addition, abundant +references to further authorities. The "Mandements des Evêques de +Québec," (Ed. Têtu and Gagnon), in six volumes, the first published in +1887, contain much of interest in regard to the attitude of the Church +to the people. The Second Part of "The Report of the Commission charged +with revising and consolidating the General Statutes of the Province of +Quebec," (Quebec, 1907), outlines the legal aspects of the school and +Church systems. M. André Seigfried's "Le Canada, Les Deux Races," +(Paris, 1906), translated into English under the title of "The Race +Question in Canada," (London, 1907), is a passionless analysis of +religious and political thought in the Province of Quebec. + +CHAPTER VIII.--The account of fishing at Murray Bay in 1830 is +by Walter Henry; "Events of a Military Life," 2 Vols. (London, 1843). +The chapter is based chiefly upon personal observation. + + + + +APPENDICES + + + + +APPENDIX A (p. 31) + +THE JOURNAL OF MALCOM FRASER, FIRST SEIGNEUR OF MOUNT MURRAY, +MALBAIE + + +Malcolm Fraser was a young man of about twenty-six when he kept his +diary of Wolfe's campaign against Quebec. It shows that already he had +considerable powers of observation and very definite opinions. No doubt +Fraser preserved a record of events in the campaign earlier than those +of 1759; and it seems likely that the habit of recording his experiences +would also have been kept up in later life. When, some time before 1860, +were made the extracts from Fraser's Journal upon which the present +notes are based, the original remained in the possession of his son the +Hon. John Malcolm Fraser. The extracts were published by the Literary +and Historical Society of Quebec in 1868 and have been used by Parkman +and other historians, who usually, however, confuse Fraser with his +commanding officer Colonel Simon Fraser. The extracts have long been out +of print. I have not been able to trace the original MS. or any other +Journal of Fraser, except a brief and quite valueless one preserved at +Mount Murray. In one of his later letters, written fifty years after +this Journal, Fraser speaks of his reluctance to handle the pen. But +this did not keep him from writing in a beautiful round hand many long +letters and making also copies for his own use. + +Early in the spring of 1859 a great British fleet had arrived in America +from England and a squadron under Admiral Holmes had gone to New York to +embark the Highlanders and other regiments wintering there to proceed +to Quebec. The place of rendezvous was Louisbourg. Fraser's Journal +begins on May 8th, 1759, with the departure of the regiments from Sandy +Hook, the fleet consisting of about twenty-eight sail. The Highlanders +had taken part in the siege and capture of Louisbourg in the previous +year but had gone to New York for the winter. On May 17th the fleet +sailed into Louisbourg Harbour after "a very agreeable and quick +passage" of nine days. Patches of snow lay still on the ground and on +the 29th of May Louisbourg Harbour was so full of ice that boats could +not pass from the ships to shore. "I suppose," says Fraser, "the ice +comes from the Gulf and river of St. Lawrence," regions he was in time +to be very familiar with. He hears that a Lieutenant has shot himself on +one of the men of war "for fear I suppose the French should do it. If he +was wearied of life, he might soon get out of it in a more honourable +way." + +On Monday, June 4th, after much bustle of preparation, the fleet set +sail for Quebec. "I take it to consist of about 150 sail," says Fraser; +so great was the array that to count the ships was almost impossible. +They numbered in fact nearly 300, a huge force. On June 13th the fleet +anchored at Bic in the St. Lawrence River. As they came up the river +Fraser noted that the north shore was but little inhabited, a defect +which, within a few years, he was himself to try to remedy in part. On +June 23rd a whole division of the fleet anchored near Isle aux Coudres +as Jacques Cartier had done more than two hundred years earlier. + +Arrived before Quebec the Highlanders were sent to Point Levi where, on +July 1st, they pitched their tents. The next day Fraser's company +established itself in the Church of St. Joseph there. The Canadians were +carrying on guerilla warfare, firing on the British from the woods and +Fraser was shocked at the horrid practise of scalping. He writes on July +2nd: + +"While we were out, I observed several dead bodies on the road, not far +from our Camp; they were all scalped and mangled in a shocking manner. I +dare say no human creature but an Indian or Canadian could be guilty of +such inhumanity as to insult a dead body." + +He was to see worse atrocities committed on his own side. On July 10th, +still at Point Levi, he writes of the doings of a company of the +colonial scouting force, the Rangers, commanded by Captain Gorham, who +soon after desolated Malbaie. + +"A party of our Rangers having been sent out on this side of the river +(the south), on the 9th they took one man prisoner and two boys (his +children) having followed him a little way, making a great noise, were +in a most inhuman manner murdered by those worse than savage Rangers, +for fear, as they pretend, they should be discovered by the noise of the +children. I wish this story was not fact, but I'm afraid there is little +reason to doubt it:--the wretches having boasted of it on their return, +tho' they now pretend to vindicate themselves by the necessity they were +under; but, I believe, this barbarous action proceeded from that +cowardice and barbarity which seems so natural to a native of America, +whether of Indian or European extraction. In other instances, those +Rangers have hitherto been of some use, and showed in general a better +spirit than usual. They are for the most part raised in New England." + +On Friday, July 13th, the scene changed. Wolfe was planning an attack on +Montcalm's camp and Fraser writes: "I was sent orderly officer to the +Camp, at Montmorency, where I had an opportunity of seeing our own, and +the French posts nigh the Fall. The river is fordable below the Fall at +low water." On July 24th, 350 of the Highlanders under Col. Simon Fraser +were sent down the river to bring in prisoners and cattle. The Highland +leader met with misfortune. On July 26th Fraser writes: "Lieut. +Alexander Fraser, Junior, returned to camp from the detachment which +marched with the Col. on the 24th. He brings news of the Colonel's +having been wounded in the thigh, by an unlucky shot from a small party +of Canadians who lay in ambush and fired on the detachment out of a +bush, and then retired. In the evening, the Col. came to camp with Capt. +McPherson, who was wounded by the same shot, and the ball lodged in his +thigh; but it is thought neither of their wounds are (_sic_) dangerous. +There was not another man of the detachment touched." Next day the rest +of the detachment "returned with three women and one man prisoners, and +above two hundred head of cattle." + +On the following night July 28th, the French tried to destroy the +British fleet by a fire ship. "This night the French sent down a large +fire raft which they did not set fire to till they were fired on by some +of the boats who are every night on the watch for them above the +shipping. Our boats immediately grappled it, and tho' it burnt with +great violence, they towed it past all the shipping without any damage." +We know from other sources that one of the sailors engaged in dragging +away the fireship likened it to having "hell-fire in tow." + +Fraser records on Tuesday, July 31st, the disastrous attempt by the +British to carry by a frontal attack Montcalm's entrenchments along the +Beauport shore. The attack failed partly through the rashness of the +Grenadiers who dashed forward prematurely. For this Wolfe rebuked them +but he commended the cool steadiness of the Highlanders. Some 700 +British casualties were the results of the attack. When the British drew +off they left many of their men fallen on the shore. Fraser says: "I +observed some men coming down from the trenches where some of our people +lay killed; we imagined they were Indians who were sent to scalp them, +after the whole had retreated." + +At once after the disaster, the Highlanders were moved back to their old +camp at Point Levi. Some idle days followed. But, on August 15th, a +detachment which included Fraser was sent to the Island of Orleans. It +was bent on the work of desolating the Canadian parishes, the people of +which still persisted in warring on the British. On Thursday, August +16th, the detachment, consisting of about 170 officers and men, marched +the length of the Island of Orleans and on the 17th it crossed to St. +Joachim--the fertile flats lying almost under the shadow of Cap +Tourmente: Fraser was drawing near to the Malbaie country. He writes: +"Friday, 17th August.--Crossed from the Isle of Orleans to St. Joachim. +Before we landed we observed some men walking along the fences, as if +they intended to oppose us and on our march up to the Church of St. +Joachim, we were fired on by some party's of the Enemy from behind the +houses and fences, but upon our advancing they betook themselves to the +woods, from whence they continued popping at us, till towards evening, +when they thought proper to retire, and we kept possession of the +Priest's house, which we set about fortifying in the best manner we +could." They remained quietly at St. Joachim for some days. But they +were getting ready for the grim task of desolating the parishes lying +between St. Joachim and Montmorency. Fraser tells the story with +soldier-like brevity, but obviously he hated the work. + +"Thursday, 23rd.--We were reinforced by a party of about one hundred and +forty Light Infantry, and a Company of Rangers, under the command of +Captain Montgomery of Kennedy's or forty-third Regiment, who likewise +took the command of our detachment, and we all marched to attack the +village to the west of St. Joachim, which was occupied by a party of the +enemy to the number of about two hundred, as we supposed, Canadians and +Indians. When we came pretty near the village, they fired on us from +the houses pretty smartly; we were ordered to lie behind the fences till +the Rangers, who were detached to attack the Enemy from the woods, began +firing on their left flank, when we advanc^d briskly without great +order; and the French abandoned the houses and endeavoured to get into +the woods, our men pursuing close at their heels. There were several of +the enemy killed, and wounded, and a few prisoners taken, all of whom +the barbarous Captain Montgomery, who commanded us, ordered to be +butchered in a most inhuman and cruel manner; particularly two, who I +sent prisoners by a sergeant, after giving them quarter, and engaging +that they should not be killed, were one shot, and the other knocked +down with a Tomahawk (a little hatchet) and both scalped in my absence, +by the rascally sergeant neglecting to acquaint Montgomery that I wanted +them saved, as he, Montgomery, pretended when I questioned him about it; +but even that was no excuse for such an unparalleled piece of barbarity. +However, as the affair could not be remedied, I was obliged to let it +drop. After this skirmish we set about burning the houses with great +success, setting all in flames till we came to the church of St. Anne's, +[the now famous shrine of St. Anne de Beaupré], where we put up for this +night, and were joined by Captain Ross, with about one hundred and +twenty men of his company. + +"Friday, 24th August.--Began to march and burn as yesterday, till we +came to Ange Gardien where our detachment and Captain Ross, who had been +posted for some days at Chateau Richer, joined Colonel Murray with the +three companies of Grenadiers of the 22nd, 40th and 45th Regiments, +where we are posted in four houses which we have fortified so as to be +able, we hope, to stand any attack which we can expect with small arms. + +"Saturday, 25th.--Busy felling the fruit trees, and cutting the wheat to +clear round us. + +"Sunday, 26th.--The same. + +"Monday, 27th August.--I hear Brigadier Murray has returned with his +detachment, having had all the success expected of the detachment. We +received orders to march to-morrow to Chateau Richer. Some men were +observed skulking in the corn, round the houses we possessed; upon +which, some of our people fired from one of the houses, when the whole +took the alarm and continued firing from the windows and loopholes for +about ten minutes. For my own part I can't say I could observe any of +the Enemy, but as we had one man killed, and most of the men affirmed +they saw men in the Corn, I can't doubt but there were a few of the +Enemy near us." + +So the record goes on. On August 30th the detachment was busy fortifying +itself in the Church at Château Richer near Quebec. On the next day +orders came to burn the houses there but not the church and return at +once to Montmorency. At Ange Gardien, on the way, General Murray, after +whom Murray Bay is named, joined them with his detachment. As they +marched along the force burned all the houses and was soon back in camp +at Montmorency. They had left a trail black with desolation between that +point and Cap Tourmente. Captain Gorham completed the tale of woe by +destroying Baie St. Paul and Malbaie. Hardly a house was left between +Montmorency and the Saguenay. + +But all this was only side-play. The crisis of the campaign was now +near. On September 3rd Wolfe abandoned the camp at Montmorency. Fraser +writes: "The Army at Montmorency decamped this day, and crossed to the +Island of Orleans, and from thence to Point Levy, without molestation +from the French, tho' they must have known some time ago that we +intended to abandon that post." + +Wolfe was now massing as many troops as possible above Quebec on the +south side of the river. On September 6th, 600 of the Highlanders, +together with the 15th and the 43rd, marched six miles above Point Levi +and there embarked on board the ships. Fraser says: "We are much +crowded; the ship I am in has about six hundred on board, being only +about two hundred and fifty tons." On the 7th and 8th it rained and the +men must have been very uncomfortable in their narrow quarters. For some +days still they remained in this condition. Meanwhile were issued to the +men careful instructions as to what they should do. The army was to drop +down the river in small boats, and to attempt to make a landing on the +north shore. + +On the evening of September 12th came the final effort so carefully +planned. "About nine o'clock, the night of the 12th, we went into the +Boats as ordered." Fraser says that a shore battery began to fire on the +British boats about 4.0 A.M. before they landed and that the landing at +the Foulon to climb to the Heights was made at daybreak. + +"Thursday, 13th September, 1759.--The Light Infantry under the command +of Colonel Howe, immediately landed and mounted the hill. We were fired +on in the Boats by the Enemy who killed and wounded a few. In a short +time, the whole army was landed at a place called 'Le Foulon,' (now +Wolfe's Cove) about a mile and a half above the Town of Quebec, and +immediately followed the Light Infantry up the hill. There was a few +tents and a Picket of the French on the top of the hill whom the Light +Infantry engaged, and took some of their Officers and men prisoners. The +main body of our Army soon got to the upper ground after climbing a hill +or rather a precipice, of about three hundred yards, very steep and +covered with wood and brush. We had several skirmishes with the +Canadians and Savages, till about ten o'clock, when the army was formed +in line of battle, having the great River St. Lawrence on the right with +the precipice which we mounted in the morning; on the left, a few +houses, and at some distance the low ground and wood above the General +Hospital with the River St. Charles; in front, the Town of Quebec, about +a mile distant; in the rear, a wood occupied by the Light Infantry ... +and the third Battalion of the Royal Americans.... The Army was ordered +to march on slowly in line of battle, and halt several times, till about +half an hour after ten, when the French began to appear in great numbers +on the rising ground between us and the Town, and [they] having advanced +several parties to skirmish with us, we did the like. They then got two +Iron field pieces to play against our line. Before eleven o'clock, we +got one brass field piece up the Hill, which being placed in the proper +interval began to play very smartly on the Enemy while forming on the +little eminence. Their advanced parties continued to annoy us and +wounded a great many men. About this time, we observed the Enemy formed, +having a bush of short brush wood on their right, which straitened them +in room, and obliged them to form in columns. About eleven o'clock, the +French Army advanced in columns till they had got past the bush of wood +into the plain, when they endeavoured to form in line of Battle, but +being much galled by our Artillery, which consisted of only one field +piece, very well served, we observed them in some confusion. However +they advanced at a brisk pace till within about thirty or forty yards of +our front, when they gave us their first fire, which did little +execution. We returned it, and continued firing very hot for about six, +or (as some say) eight minutes, when the fire slackening, and the smoke +of the powder vanishing, we observed the main body of the Enemy +retreating in great confusion towards the Town, and the rest towards +the River St. Charles. Our Regiment were then ordered by Brigadier +General Murray to draw their swords and pursue them, which I dare say +increased their panic but saved many of their lives, whereas if the +artillery had been allowed to play, and the army advanced regularly +there would have been many more of the Enemy killed and wounded, as we +never came up with the main body. In advancing, we passed over a great +many dead and wounded, (french regulars mostly) lying in the front of +our Regiment, who,--I mean the Highlanders,--to do them justice, behaved +extremely well all day, as did the whole of the army. After pursuing the +French to the very gates of the Town, our Regiment was ordered to form +fronting the Town, on the ground whereon the French formed first. At +this time the rest of the Army came up in good order. General Murray +having then put himself at the head of our Regiment, ordered them to +face to the left and march thro' the bush of wood, towards the General +Hospital, when they got a great gun or two to play upon us from the +Town, which however did no damage, but we had a few men killed and +Officers wounded by some skulking fellows with small arms, from the +bushes and behind the houses in the suburbs of St. Louis and St. John's. +After marching a short way through the bush, Brigadier Murray thought +proper to order us to return again to the high road leading from Porte +St. Louis, to the heights of Abraham, where the battle was fought, and +after marching till we got clear of the bushes, we were ordered to turn +to the right, and go along the edge of them towards the bank, at the +descent between us and the General Hospital, under which we understood +there was a body of the Enemy who no sooner saw us than they began +firing on us from the bushes and from the bank; we soon dispossessed +them from the bushes and from thence kept firing for about a quarter of +an hour on those under cover of the bank; but as they exceeded us +greatly in numbers, they killed and wounded a great many of our men, +and killed two Officers, which obliged us to retire a little, and form +again, when the 58th Regiment with the 2nd Battalion of Royal Americans +having come up to our assistance, all three making about five hundred +men, advanced against the Enemy and drove them first down to the great +meadow between the Hospital and town and afterwards over the River St. +Charles. It was at this time and while in the bushes that our Regiment +suffered most: Lieutenant Roderick, Mr. Neill of Bana, and Alexander +McDonell, and John McDonell, and John McPherson, volunteer, with many of +our men, were killed before we were reinforced; and Captain Thomas Ross +having gone down with about one hundred men of the 3rd Regiment to the +meadow, after the Enemy, when they were out of reach, ordered me up to +desire those on the height would wait till he would come up and join +them, which I did, but before Mr. Ross could get up, he unfortunately +was mortally wounded in the body, by a cannon ball from the hulks, in +the mouth of the River St. Charles, of which he died in great torment, +but with great resolution, in about two hours thereafter. + +"In the afternoon, Mons. Bougainville, with the French Grenadiers and +some Canadians, to the number of two thousand who had been detached to +oppose our landing at Cap Rouge, appeared between our rear and the +village St. Foy, formed in a line as if he intended to attack us; but +the 48th Regiment with the Light Infantry and 3rd Battalion Royal +Americans being ordered against him, with some field pieces, they fired +a few cannon shot at him when he thought proper to retire. + +"Thus ended the battle of Quebec, the first regular engagement that we +... fought in North America, which has made the king of Great Britain +master of the capital of Canada, and it is hoped ere long will be the +means of subjecting the whole country to the British Dominion; and if +so, this has been a greater acquisition to the British Empire than all +that England has acquired by Conquest since it was a nation, if I may +except the conquest of Ireland, in the reign of Henry the 2nd. + +"The Enemy's numbers I have never been able to get an exact account of. +We imagined them seven or eight thousand: this has been disputed since. +However, I am certain they were greatly superior to us in numbers, as +their line was equal to ours in length, tho' they were in some places +nine deep, whereas ours was no more than three deep. Add to this, their +advanced parties and those in the bushes, on all hands, I think they +must exceed five thousand. + +"Our strength at the utmost did not exceed the thousand men in the line, +exclusive of the 15th Regiment and 2nd Battalion Royal Americans, who +were drawn up on our left, fronting the River St. Charles, with the 3rd +Battalion Royal Americans and Light Infantry in the rear, and the 48th +Regiment, who were drawn up between our main body and the Light Infantry +as a Corps of Reserve. So that I am pretty certain our numbers did not +exceed four thousand men, the Regiments being very weak, most of them +under three hundred men each. + +"We had only about five hundred men of our Army killed and wounded, but +we suffered an irreparable loss in the death of our commander the brave +Major General James Wolfe, who was killed in the beginning of the +general action; we had the good fortune not to hear of it till all was +over. + +"The French were supposed to have about one thousand men killed and +wounded, of whom five hundred killed during the whole day, and amongst +these Monsieur le Lieutenant Général Montcalm, the commander in chief of +the French Army in Canada, one Brigadier General, one Colonel and +several other Officers. I imagined there had been many more killed and +wounded on both sides, as there was a heavy fire for some minutes, +especially from us. + +"We had of our Regiment three officers killed and ten wounded, one of +whom Captain Simon Fraser, afterwards died. Lieutenant Archibald +Campbell was thought to have been mortally wounded, but to the surprise +of most people recovered; Captain John McDonell thro' both thighs; +Lieut. Ronald McDonell thro' the knee; Lieutenant Alexander Campbell +thro' the leg; Lieutenant Douglas thro' the arm, who died of this wound +soon afterwards; Ensign Gregorson, Ensign McKenzie and Lieutenant +Alexander Fraser, all slightly. I received a contusion in the right +shoulder or rather breast, before the action became general, which +pained me a good deal, but it did not disable me from my duty then, or +afterwards. + +"The detachment of our Regiment consisted, at our marching from Point +Levi, of six hundred men, besides commissioned and non-commissioned +Officers; but of these, two Officers and about sixty men were left on +board for want of boats, and an Officer and about thirty men left at the +landing place; besides a few left sick on board, so that we had about +five hundred men in the action. We suffered in men and Officers more +than any three Regiments in the field. We were commanded by Captain John +Campbell; the Colonel and Captain McPherson having been unfortunately +wounded on the 25th July, of which they were not yet fully recovered. + +"We lay on our Arms all the night of the 13th September. + +"Friday, 14th September.--We got ashore our tents and encamped our +Regiment on the ground where they fought the battle yesterday. He[re] we +are within reach of the guns of the town. + +"Saturday, 15th September.--We were ordered to move our Camp nigh the +wood, at a greater distance from the Town. We are making advanced +redoubts within five hundred yards of the town." + +Such is Fraser's account of the struggle on the Plains of Abraham and of +the conduct of the Highlanders in their first pitched battle in North +America. The resolute preparations to attack Quebec produced their +effect. On September 18th the fortress surrendered. A little later the +army broke up the camp outside the walls and marched into the town. The +outlook was certainly not cheerful: "Most of the houses are destroyed +and we have but a very dismal prospect for seven or eight months, as +fresh provisions are very scarce, and every other thing exorbitantly +dear." A little later the fleet sailed away and General Murray with a +small force was left in a hostile country to hold Quebec through a long +and bitterly cold winter. He established two out-posts, one at Ste. Foy, +the other at Lorette, and then the army bent all its energies to meet +the foes, cold, disease and the French. Fighting the cold was terrible +work. Fraser writes: + +"December 1st.--The Governor ordered two weeks wood to be issued to the +Garrison. It is thought we shall have a great deal of difficulty in +supplying ourselves with fuel this winter. The winter is now very +severe. + +"December 20th.--The winter is become almost insupportably cold. The men +are notwithstanding obliged to drag all the wood used in the Garrison on +sledges from St. Foy, about four miles distance. This is a very severe +duty; the poor fellows do it however with great spirit, tho' several of +them have already lost the use of their fingers and toes by the +incredible severity of the frost, and the country people tell us it is +not yet at the worst. Some men on sentry have been deprived of speech +and sensation in a few minutes, but hitherto, no person has lost his +life, as care is taken to relieve them every half hour or oftener when +the weather is very severe. The Garrison in general are but +indifferently cloathed, but our regiment in particular is in a pitiful +situation having no breeches, and the Philibeg is not all calculated for +this terrible climate. Colonel Fraser is doing all in his power to +provide trowsers for them, and we hope soon to be on a footing with +other Regiments in that respect. + +"January, 1760.--Nothing remarkable during this month. The duty is very +severe on the poor men; we mount every day a guard of about one hundred +men, and the whole off duty with a subaltern officer from each Regiment +are employed in dragging fire wood; tho' the weather is such that they +are obliged to have all covered but their eyes, and nothing but the last +necessity obliged any men to go out of doors." + +Early in February the St. Lawrence froze over. On February 13th the +British established a force in the Church at St. Joseph at Point Levi +but it was attacked by the French and then, on February 24th, Murray +sent a rescue party. The Highlanders and the 28th went across on the ice +and nearly intercepted the retreat of the French force, which was driven +off. The kilted Highlanders marching on the ice in the bitter winter +weather make an interesting picture. But by this time, no doubt, they +were not bare-legged! + +Towards the end of March there was much illness and Fraser writes: "The +Scurvy, occasioned by salt provisions and cold, has begun to make fierce +havock in the garrison, and it becomes every day more general. In short, +I believe there is scarce a man of the Army entirely free from it." On +the 24th of April he writes again: "Great havock amongst the Garrison +occasioned by the Scurvy, &c.; this is the more alarming, as the General +seems certain that the French are preparing to come and attack the +place, and will he says, be here in a very few days." + +Of the garrison of 5653 no less than 2312 were on the sick list, when, +on the 26th, came the great crisis of the defence of Quebec: + +"On the night of the 26th April, a man of the French army who, with some +others had been cast away in a boat that night, came down the river on a +piece of ice, and being taken up next morning at the Town, gave the +General information that the chevalier de Levi [Lévis] was within twenty +miles of us, with an army of about twelve thousand men, made up of +regulars, Canadians and savages. + +"27th April, 1760.--The Governor marched out, with the Grenadiers and +Piquets of the garrison, to support the Light Infantry which had taken +post some days before near Cap Rouge. By the time he got out, the +vanguard of the French army appeared; upon which, he thought it +adviseable to withdraw the Light Infantry, and all the other outposts, +and retire to Town; and for that purpose he sent orders to the 28th, +47th and 58th and Colonel Fraser's Regiment to march out to St. Foy and +cover his retreat; the 35th Regiment, 2nd Battalion Royal Americans +having been detached in the morning to prevent the enemy, in case they +attempted to land at Sillery or any other place near the Town. The +retreat was accordingly effected without any loss, tho' the enemy were +so nigh as to skirmish with our rear till we got within half a league of +the Ramparts. + +"On the 28th April, 1760, about eight o'clock in the morning, the whole +Garrison, exclusive of the Guards, was drawn up on the parade, and about +nine o'clock we marched out of Town with twenty pieces of Field +Artillery, that is, two to each Regiment. The men were likewise ordered +to carry a pick axe or spade each. When we had marched a little way out +of Town, we saw the advanced parties of the Enemy nigh the woods, about +half a league distant from us. When we were about three-quarters of a +mile out of Town, the General ordered the whole to draw up in line of +Battle, two deep, and take up as much room as possible. Soon thereafter, +he ordered the men to throw down the intrenching tools, and the whole +Army to advance slowly, dressing by the right, having drawn up the 35th +Regiment and 3rd Battalion Royal Americans in our rear as a corps of +reserve, with one hundred men (in a redoubt which was begun by us a few +days preceding) to cover our retreat in case of necessity. In this +order, we advanced, about one hundred paces, when the canonading began +on our side, and we observed the French advanced parties retiring, and +their main body forming in order of Battle at the edge of the wood, +about three hundred paces distant we continued canonading and advancing +for some minutes. The enemy, on their side, played against the left of +our army, where our Regiment happened to be, with two pieces of cannon +and killed and wounded us some men. The affair begun now to turn +serious, when the General ordered the Light Infantry, who were posted on +the right of our army, to attack five companies of French Grenadiers who +they obliged to retire, but they being supported by a large column of +the enemy, the Light Infantry were in their turn obliged to give way, +which they doing along the front of our line on the right (as I am told) +hindered our men on the right from firing for some minutes which gave +the enemy full time to form. On the left, matters were in a worse +situation. The company of Volunteers of the garrison, commanded by +Captain Donald McDonald of our Regiment, and Captain Hazen's company of +Rangers who covered the left flank of our army having been almost +entirely destroyed, were obliged to give way; by this means the left of +the 28th Regiment was exposed, and this obliged them to give ground +after an obstinate resistance; Colonel Fraser's Regiment was next them +to the right, and being in danger of being surrounded, and at the same +time extremely galled by a fire from the Bushes in front and flank, +were under a necessity of falling back instantly, when Colonel Fraser +who commanded the Left Brigade consisting of the 28th, 47th and his own +Regiment, sent orders to the 47th to retire; they were drawn up with a +small rising ground in their front, which till then covered them pretty +much from the enemy's fire, but as most of the Regiment to the right, as +well as the two Regiments to the left of them, had by this time retired, +it was absolutely necessary for the 47th to quit that ground, otherwise +they must inevitably have been surrounded in a few minutes. Most of the +Regiments attempted to carry off their artillery, but the ground was so +bad with wreaths of snow in the hollows, that they were obliged to +abandon them, after nailing them up, as well as the intrenching tools. +Every Regiment made the best of their way to Town, but retired however +in such a manner that the enemy did not think proper to pursue very +briskly, otherwise they must have killed or made prisoners many more +than they did. Our loss was about three hundred killed, and about seven +hundred wounded, and a few Officers and men made prisoners. We had about +three thousand in the field, one-third of whom had that very day, come +voluntarily out of the Hospitals; of these, about five hundred were +employed in dragging the cannon, and five hundred more in reserve, so +that we could have no more than two thousand in the line of battle, +whereas the enemy must have had at least four times as many, beside a +large body in reserve, and notwithstanding their great superiority we +suffered very little in the retreat; some Regiments attempted to rally, +but it was impossible to form in any sort of order with the whole, till +we got within the walls. + +"Our Regiment had about four hundred men in the field near one half of +whom had that day come out of the Hospital, out of their own accord. We +had about sixty killed and forty wounded, and of thirty-nine officers, +Captain Donald McDonald who commanded the volunteer company of the army, +and Lieutenant Cosmo Gordon who commanded the Light Infantry company of +our Regiment, were both killed in the field; Lieutenant Hector McDonald +and Ensign Malcolm Fraser died of their wounds, all very much regretted +by every one who knew them. We had twenty-three more Officers wounded; +of this number was Colonel [Simon] Fraser, who commanded the left wing +of the army, and it was with great pleasure we observed his behaviour +during the action, when he gave his orders with great coolness and +deliberation. He was touched at two different times; the first took him +in the right breast but having his cartouche box slung, it luckily +struck against the star of it and did not penetrate tho', otherways, +must infallibly have done his business. The second, he got in the +retreat, but striking against the cue of his hair, he received no other +damage than a stiffness in his neck for some days. [Fraser then adds +this tribute to Lord Lovat's son:] Here I cannot help observing that if +any unlucky accident had befallen our Colonel, not only his Regiment +must have suffered an irreparable loss, but I think I can, without any +partiality say, it would be a loss to his Country. His behaviour this +winter in particular to his Regiment has been such, as to make him not +only esteemed by them, but by the Garrison in general. Captain Alexander +Fraser of our Regiment, was wounded in the right temple, and thought +very dangerous, the rest are mostly flesh wounds. I received a musket +ball in the right groin, which was thought dangerous for three or four +days, as the ball was supposed to be lodged, but whether it has wrought +out in walking into Town, or did not penetrate far enough at first to +lodge, or is still in, I cannot say, but in twenty days I was entirely +cured, and the wound which was at first but small was entirely closed +up. + +"When we marched out, we thought the General did not intend to give the +French battle; and as he ordered the Army to carry out intrenching +tools, we thought he meant to throw up works on the rising ground, +before the Town, if the Enemy should not choose to attack him that day; +but, it seems he changed his mind on seeing their situation, which gave +him all the advantage he could desire with such an inferior Army and +where, if the Enemy ventured to attack him, he could use his Artillery, +on which was his chief dependence, to the best purpose: having a rising +ground, whereon he might form his Army and plant his Cannon, so as to +play on the Enemy as they advanced for about four hundred or five +hundred yards, with round shot, and when they came within a proper +distance the grape shot must have cut them to pieces. However, it seems +he observed the enemy, some formed at the edge of the wood, some +forming, and the rest marching from St. Foy. The bait was too tempting, +and his passion for glory getting the better of his reason he ordered +the Army to march and attack the enemy, as he thought, before they could +form, in a situation the most desired by them and ought to be avoided by +us, as the Canadians and Savages could be used against us to the +greatest advantage in their beloved (if I may say element) woods. It +would give me great pleasure to relate something more to the advantage +of this gentleman who is, in many respects, possessed of several +virtues, and particularly all the military ones, except prudence, and +entirely free of all mercenary principles; but, as his conduct on this +occasion is universally condemned by all those who are not immediately +dependent on him, truth obliges me to state matters as I believe, they +really stood; more especially as it is not said he advised with any of +those who had a right to be consulted before such a step should be +taken. Nay, it is said: that the preceding night, at a meeting with the +different Commandants of the Corps, he declared his intention of +fortifying himself on the heights and not to attack the Enemy, unless he +should be forced to it, which we were persuaded of by his orders to +carry out intrenching tools. We had very little chance of beating an +Army four times our number [an exaggeration: they were not twice as +numerous] in a situation where we could scarce act; and if the Enemy had +made a proper use of their advantage, the consequences must have proved +fatal to us, as they might have got betwixt us and the Town, cut off our +retreat, and by that means ruined us to all intents." [It will hardly be +denied that the young officer is rather severe upon his future friend +and patron, General Murray.] + +"Our situation became now extremely critical: we were beat in the field, +by an army greatly superior in numbers, and obliged to rely on what +defence we could make within the walls of Quebec, which were hitherto +reckoned of very little consequence against a superior army. + +"The French that very night after the Battle opened trenches within six +hundred yards of the walls, and went on next, 29th April, with their +works pretty briskly. For the first two days after the battle there was +very little done by us; and on the 1st of May, the largest of our block +houses (small square redoubts of Logs musquet proof) was blown up by +accident, and Captain Cameron of our Regiment and a subaltern of the +48th with several men, dangerously burnt and bruised. On the 3rd day +after the battle, the General set about to strengthen or (I may say) +fortify the Town, and the men worked with the greatest alacrity. In a +few days there were about one hundred additional guns mounted, with +which our people kept an incessant fire on the enemy, and retarded their +works very much. + +"On the 9th May, the Leostaff Frigate, Captain Dean, arrived from +England, and brought us news from thence, and informed us that there +was a squadron in the River, which might be expected every tide to our +assistance. This added greatly to the spirits of the Garrison, and our +works were carried on briskly. The General seemed resolved from the +first to defend the place to the last. This, nobody doubted, and every +one seemed to forget their late misfortune, and to place entire +confidence in the General's conduct, which all must acknowledge very +resolute, when reduced almost to an extremity. + +"On the 11th May, the French opened two Batteries mounting thirteen +guns, and one or two mortars. Their heavy metal consisted of one +twenty-four and two eighteen pounders, the rest were all light. They did +not seem to confine their fire entirely to any particular part of the +Walls, otherwise I believe they might in time have made a breach, and +their fire was not very smart. We were masters of a much superior fire, +and annoyed the besiegers at their batteries very much. Their fire +became every day more and more faint, and it was generally believed they +intended to raise the seige. + +"On the 16th May, in the evening the Vanguard, commodore Swanton, and +Diana Frigate, Captain Schomberg, arrived from England, and next +morning, 17th May, 1760, they and the Leostaff attacked the two French +Frigates that lay at anchor in the Bay, above Cape Diamond; which when +they first observed, they made as if they intended to engage, but on our +ships approaching nearer, they set sail up the river; but one of them +ran ashore immediately, and our Frigates soon got up with theirs, and +obliged them also to run aground and thereafter destroyed them. One ship +however escaped out of their reach, and unluckily, the Leostaff, after +all was over, ran on a rock, sunk and was entirely lost. + +"That very night several deserters came into the Town, and informed that +most part of the French army had marched, the Trenches being guarded by +their Grenadiers only. About twelve o'clock at night, the General sent +out a party who found the Trenches entirely abandoned and next morning, +18th May, 1760, we found ourselves entirely freed of very disagreeable +neighbours, having left behind all their artillery, with a great part of +their ammunition, Camp equipage and baggage. What made them retreat with +such precipitation we could not guess; but, it seems they were seized +with a panic. It appears they allowed the savages to scalp all the +killed and most part of the wounded, as we found a great many scalps on +the bushes. + +"I have been since informed by Lieutenant McGregor, of our Regiment, who +was left on the field wounded, and narrowly escaped being killed, having +received two stabs of a bayonet from two French Regulars, that he saw +the savages murdering the wounded and scalping them on all sides, and +expected every moment to share the same fate, but was saved by a French +Officer, who luckily spoke a little English." + +Thus ends Fraser's narrative of the two sieges of Quebec. He served in +the third siege, that of 1775-76, and was still alive in 1812-15 to give +counsel when Quebec was again menaced by the Americans. + + + + +APPENDIX B (p. 38) + +TITLE-DEED OF THE SEIGNIORY OF MURRAY BAY GRANTED TO CAPTAIN JOHN +NAIRNE OF THE 78th REGIMENT, APRIL 27th, 1762 + + +By the Honourable James Murray, Esquire, Governor of Quebec, &c. + +Whereas it is a national advantage and tends to promote the cultivation +of lands within the province to encourage His Majesty's natural-born +subjects settling within the same: + +For these purposes, and in consideration of the faithful services +rendered by John Nairne, Esquire, Captain in the 78th Regiment of Foot, +unto His Majesty, I do hereby give, grant, and concede unto the said +Captain John Nairne, his heirs, executors, and administrators for ever, +all that extent of land lying on the north side of the river St. +Lawrence from the Cap aux Oyes, limit of the parish of Eboulemens, to +the south side of the river of Malbaie, and for three leagues back, to +be known hereafter, at the special request of said John Nairne, by the +name of Murray's Bay; firmly to hold the same to himself, his heirs, +executors, and administrators for ever, or until His Majesty's pleasure +is further known, for and in consideration of the possessor's paying +liege homage to His Majesty, his heirs and successors, at his castle of +St. Lewis in Quebec on each mutation of property, and, by way of +acknowledgment, a piece of gold of the value of ten shillings, with one +year's rent of the domain reserved, as customary in this country, +together with the woods and rivers, or other appurtenances within the +said extent, right of fishing or fowling on the same therein included +without hindrance or molestation; all kind of traffic with the Indians +of the back country hereby specially excepted. + +Given under my hand and seal at Quebec, this 27th day of April, 1762. + +(Signed) JAS. MURRAY. + + + + +APPENDIX C (p. 78) + +THE SIEGE OF QUEBEC IN 1775-76 + +COLONEL NAIRNE TO MISS M. NAIRNE + + +_Quebec, 14th May, 1776._ + +The New England rebels were very successful on their first arrival in +this Province having got most of the Canadians in their interest. They +took the two Regiments (which were all the regular troops in the +Province) prisoners, made themselves masters of the Town of Montreal and +all the Forts and the whole open country. Flushed with this success they +came before our Capital (Quebec) where their main army was joined by a +reinforcement of six hundred men who had marched straight through the +Woods from Boston where scarcely any body had ever passed before and +thought utterly impracticable for a body of men. The suburbs about +Quebec which were extensive (now in ruins) were not all destroyed at the +first arrival of the enemy so that in two places they annoyed us with +their Riflemen though they only killed a very few. They also (though in +the Winter) got a Battery of five guns against the Town but [it] was +silenced by a superior fire from our Ramparts. They also bombarded the +Town in the night with small shell till the 31st December when about two +hours before day they made a general attack with their whole force upon +the Ramparts, their two principal attacks being against the two +extremitys of the low Town. Their General (Montgomery) an Irish +gentleman who had been a Captain in our army possessing extraordinary +qualifications fitting him for such a Command led the attack against a +very strong post in the low town. Our Cannon (six pieces) loaded with +grape shot, did not begin to fire till the enemy was within the distance +of twenty yards, which with the musketry of the guard at the same time +made terrible havoc. Their General with four of his officers lay slain +in one heap within twenty and others within ten yards of our +fortifications by which that attack was wholly frustrated and all that +part of their army retired in confusion. The attack upon the other +extremity of the low Town was made with six hundred men. At first they +had success though that turned out at last to their ruin. They forced +our advanced post where we had four pieces of cannon, afterward got +possession of another barrier and forced their way through a narrow +street to the last barrier, which if they had gained they would have +been in the low Town. At the same time the Governor ordered a sally out +at a Gate they had passed to follow their track in the snow (that was +then deep) and fall upon them behind. That we should open a Gate and +attack them when attacked ourselves was a thing very unexpected so that +finding they were stopped at the last barrier and thus attacked behind +they were obliged to take shelter in the houses of the narrow street and +at last gave themselves up prisoners to the number of about four hundred +and fifty amongst whom were thirty-two officers of all ranks from +Colonels to Ensigns. The morning of the attack I happened to have the +Piquet and guessing by the flashes in the air (in the dark) that it was +musketry at the other side of the town, tho' we heard no report, had the +Piquet drawn out upon the Ramparts at our alarm post, before the firing +came round that length, which it soon did and we fired away upon these +people as they passed along that way, which they were obliged to do to +get to the low Town. About break of day Major Caldwell came round with +some men, and took me with part of the Piquet along with him to the low +Town. When we got there the enemy had got on as far as the inner Barrier +and [had] a Ladder on both sides of it. There the Battle raged till the +Enemy falling back got into Houses. Some time after the Sorti coming +behind them put an end to the affair. It was the first time I ever +happened to be so closely engaged as we were obliged to push our +bayonets. It is certainly a disagreeable necessity to be obliged to put +one another to death especially those speaking the same language and +dressed in the same manner with ourselves. Only these mad people had a +large piece of white linen or paper upon their foreheads with the words +"Liberty or Death" wrote upon it. The Garrison in general behaved +remarkably well consisting in all of about 1400 men, mostly the town +Militia and sailors with 200 of Maclean's corps which were only raised +last summer. They certainly did their duty with much patience during a +severe winter of six months. In the day time we wrought a great deal at +the fortifications and shovelling the snow and in the night even those +not upon duty durst not sleep but with Clothes and accoutrements on and +by whole Companys in one House to be the more ready, for, upon our +vigilance, everything depended. For the last month the Enemy had two +Batterys of four Guns each, playing on the Town with red hot Balls, in +hope to set it on fire but luckily did very little harm. They also made +use of a fire ship in order to burn our shipping in the Harbour, which +would have communicated the flames to the Town, at the same time +intending to escalade the Walls, for which purpose they laid numbers of +ladders all round in our sight which had the effect to keep us more upon +our Guard. This fire ship got very near the Harbour but a Cannon being +fired that was well directed the men that were in her left her a little +too soon so that the tide carried her clear past the town without doing +the least harm and disappointed them of their attack for which their +whole army was prepared. Thus from the 14th of November last we passed +one dreary night after another either watching or making Rounds and +Patrole upon an extent of works of upwards of three miles round, till +the 6th of May when we had the agreeable sight of Commodore Douglass +with a Ship of War and two Frigates arriving in the Bason with part of +the 29th Regiment on board. And the same day with only the reinforcement +of about 300 Regular Troops the Gates were thrown open and the whole +garrison (except those on Guard) poured out, drove off the Enemy's +advanced Guards and marched forward near two miles clear out upon the +plain (our former field of Battles last war) with three pieces of cannon +in our front that fired away at some partys of men at a distance. This +Sally, so unexpected and the two Frigates [being] under sail at the same +time up the River; [and the enemy] being ignorant of our numbers and +suspecting probably that there was a force on board the Frigates which +might by taking possession of a strong post above cut off their retreat, +their whole army took to their heels (it is said about 3000 men) leaving +all their Artillery stores, baggage and provisions which fell into our +hands. I suppose they will retreat to Montreal where they expect strong +reinforcements from New England. We will probably soon follow them +though our Corps may possibly be left to garrison Quebec. General +Carleton has gained honour by his behaviour this winter. He showed +himself a brave steady officer careful not to expose rashly the lives of +his men, in short a chief whom we esteem and cheerfully obey. Lieut. +Colonel Maclean has likewise great merit in having contributed much to +the preservation of this place by his forwarding the reparations of the +fortifications and his indefatigable care and trouble in the directing +the duty of the Garrison, together with his management in every shape as +a good officer. He was here the second in Command and seemed the fittest +man in the world for the place he occupied. There were also several old +Officers who happened to be here and were of great service as Major +Caldwell who distinguished himself very much, Major Cox, two Captain +Frasers and several others. + +Mr. Wauchope who you will wish to hear of is very well. He has done +Lieutenant's duty this winter in Maclean's Regiment, is a good officer +and went through some severe Duty with great perseverance. + + +Yours, &c., &c., + +J.N. + + + + + +APPENDIX D (p. 98) + +MEMORANDUM FOR ENSIGN JOHN NAIRNE, 5TH APRIL, 1795 + + +1st. You ought to read the Articles of War. + +2nd. To pay the greatest attention to all orders from your Superior +Officers. + +3rd. Take care to have your own Orders strictly obeyed by those who are +under your Command but before you give any Order, be sure it is right +and necessary. + +4th. Attend the Parades, and learn without delay the different motions +and words of Command and every part of the Duty of a Subaltern officer +when upon guard; also when under Arms with the whole Battalion, or +otherwise. + +5th. Be always ready and willing to go upon every military duty that may +be ordered. Never think you do too much in that way; the more the better +and the more honourable. + +6th. Be careful in doing the Company Duty, in such a manner, that the +Soldiers may be kept in excellent Order and everything belonging to +them; as their Arms, Accoutrements, Ammunition, Necessarys, Dress, +Messing, etc., according as may be regulated by the standing Orders of +the Regiment, or that may be most agreeable to your Captain or +Lieutenant Commanding the Company; also not only to know every man of +the Company by Name, but, as soon as possible, to know their several +Characters and Dispositions that each may be encouraged, cherished, or +punished, as he deserves. You ought every day, or very frequently to +wait on your Captain, or Lieutenant Commanding the Company, in order to +report to him upon these matters, and to know if he has any directions +or Commands for you. + +7th. Endeavour all you can to learn the Adjutant's Duty: To be able to +Exercise the Company (or even the Battalion) in the Manual, their +Manoeuvres and the firings. + +8th. Make yourself fit for paying the Company, and to be exact in +keeping Accounts, so that you may be capable of even being paymaster to +a Regiment. + +9th. You ought to practice writing Court-Martials, Returns, and Reports +of all sorts, Acquittance Rolls, Muster Rolls, and Letter Writing; +taking always great pains to have a good hand of writ and to spell well. + +10th. It is also recommended to you to study Engineering and Drawing; To +read Military Books, The occurrences and news of the time and History, +etc.; Never to leave anything undone which you think ought to be done; +in short, not to lose or misspend time, but constantly [to] endeavour to +gain knowledge, and improvement, and to exert yourself in being always +steady and diligent in the Execution of every part of your Duty. + +11th. No doubt you will soon get Acquainted with all the officers of the +Regiment, and to know the Companys the Subaltern Officers belong to, +likewise to know the Names and Characters of all the non-Commissioned +officers, and the Companys they belong to, even most of the private men +and what Companys they are in. You ought to have a Book of Quarters (or +List of the Army) and learn the Number, and any thing else Remarkable of +each Regiment; also concerning the Generals, and Field Officers, and the +Rules and Regulations of the Army. + +N.B.--Never be ashamed to ask questions at any of your Brother Officers +in order to gain information. The Sergeants of your Company will furnish +you with any Rolls, Lists or Returns you may have occasion for +respecting the Regt. + + + + +APPENDIX E (p. 104) + +THE "PORPOISE" (BELUGA OR WHITE WHALE) FISHERY ON THE ST. +LAWRENCE + + +The so-called "porpoise" of the St. Lawrence is in reality the French +_marsouin_, the English beluga, a word of Russian origin, signifying +white. The Beluga (_Delphinapterus leucas_), is a real whale with its +most striking characteristic the white, or rather cream-coloured, skin +described by some writers as very beautiful. Like the narwhal it has no +dorsal fin. Though the smallest member of the whale family it is +sometimes more than twenty feet long; but usually ranges from thirteen +to sixteen feet. The young are bluish black in colour and may be seen +swimming beside their mother who feeds them with a very thick milk. +These young grow rapidly and become mottled and then white as they grow +older. The beluga is peculiar to northern regions where the water is +cold: when one is seen at the mouth of an English river it is a subject +of special note. There are numbers in Hudson Bay and they have been +found in the Yukon River, it is said, 700 miles from its mouth, whither +they went no doubt after salmon or other fish. + +Jacques Cartier saw the beluga disporting itself off Malbaie nearly 400 +years ago and in summer it is still to be seen there almost daily. It is +never alone. One sees the creatures swimming rapidly in single file. +They come to the surface with a prolonged sigh accompanied by the +throwing of a small jet of water; the perfectly white bodies writhe into +view as the small round heads disappear. Sometimes the beluga makes a +noise like the half suppressed lowing of oxen and, since the aquatic +world is so silent, sailors have christened the beluga, for this slender +achievement, the "sea canary." It is a playful creature and is +apparently attracted by man's presence. Before its confidence in him was +shaken it used to linger about wharves and ships. But, in spite of the +extremely small aperture of its ear, it is very sensitive to sound and +modern man with his fire arms and clatter of machinery frightens it +away. In 1752 the Intendant Bigot issued special instructions to check +the use of firearms on the point at Rivière Ouelle, in order that the +beluga might not be frightened, to the ruin of the extensive fishery +that has existed there for more than two hundred years. Its sight, touch +and taste are also well developed but it has no olfactory nerve and is +apparently without the sense of smell. The creature has qualities that +we should hardly expect. It has been tamed and almost domesticated. The +enterprising Barnum exhibited in New York a beluga which drew a boat +about in his aquarium. At Boston another beluga from the St. Lawrence +drew about a floating car carrying a woman performer. It knew its keeper +and at the proper time would appear and put its head from the water to +be harnessed or to take food. This beluga would take in its mouth a +sturgeon and a small shark confined in the same tank, play with them and +allow them to go unharmed. It would also pick up and toss stones with +its mouth. + +The beluga is greedy. In the early spring, when he is thin and half +starved, capelin and smelt in great numbers come to spawn along the +north and south shores of the St. Lawrence. With high tide comes the +beluga's chance to feed on the spawning fish and he will rush in quite +near to shore for his favourite food. So voracious is he that with the +fish he takes quantities of sand into his stomach. In eight or ten days +he will eat enough to form from five to eight inches of fat over his +whole body. "The facility with which he thus grows fat is explained," +says the Abbé Casgrain, "by the easy assimilation of such food and by +the considerable development of his digestive apparatus." + +No doubt the beluga enjoys himself hugely. But Nemesis awaits him. His +fish diet has a soporific effect; gorged with food he becomes stupid and +is easily taken. Man's trap for him is simple and ingenious. A century +and a half ago it was to be seen at Pointe au Pic and to-day it is in +operation at Rivière Ouelle on the south side of the river. The weir or +fishery for the beluga must be on a large scale and is expensive to keep +up; it is for this reason that when the number of these creatures +declined it was no longer possible to maintain the fishery at Pointe au +Pic. At Rivière Ouelle annually more than 7000 stakes, from 18 to 20 +feet long, are necessary to keep in repair the fishery which is almost +entirely destroyed each year by ice. Beginning at the shore a line of +stakes is carried out into the river placed perhaps a foot apart to form +a rough semi-circle about a mile and a third long. The stakes curve back +to the shore leaving however a passage of perhaps 1000 feet open between +the farther end and the shore. This outer end of the weir is completed +by a smaller circle of stakes, so arranged as to make entrance easy by +following within the line of stakes, but exit difficult. The distance +between high and low water mark at Rivière Ouelle is about a mile and a +half and along this great stretch of beach the small fish come in great +numbers to spawn. There is a considerable point at the mouth of the +little Rivière Ouelle. The wide beach, bare at low water, and this point +furnish an admirable combination for the beluga fishery. At high tide +the beluga comes rushing in near to shore after his prey, sometimes in +water so shallow that his whole body comes into view. In his progress +along the shore he is checked by the stakes reaching out from the point, +so close together that he cannot get through. The stakes sway with the +current and sometimes strike together making considerable noise. Early +whalers thought the beluga would try to pass by squeezing between the +stakes and to prevent this they fastened the stakes together with ropes. +But this was not necessary. Frightened by the noise the timid beluga's +instinct leads him to make for the open water. He dashes across the +semi-circle of the fishery only to be checked by the line of stakes on +its outer edge. The line like a wall he follows, looking for an opening, +and may be led insensibly into the labyrinthine circle at its end from +which he will hardly escape. If he heads back towards shore where he +came in, he is frightened by the shallow water which he disregarded only +when in pursuit of his prey. Where was shallow water indeed he may now +find dry land for the tide is running out. So the creature becomes +bewildered. He swims about slowly, as it were feeling his way, or +disappears at the bottom, to be stranded when the tide goes out and thus +becomes the prey of his enemy, man. + +Some old belugas are very cunning; they are called by the French +Canadian the _savants_, the knowing ones, and seem to understand the +wiles of the fisherman. They warn off the others and so foil the design +against them. But greediness proves often their destruction. From +over-feeding year after year they become fat and stupid and they too are +likely in time to be taken. The less knowing beluga has usually slight +chance of escape when once he encounters the line of stakes stretching +out from the point and, since they follow each other blindly, if one is +taken a whole troop is likely to meet the same fate. + +The Abbé Casgrain, who, since his childhood was spent at the Manor House +at Rivière Ouelle, was long familiar with the "porpoise" fishery, +describes the scene witnessed there by him on May 1st, 1873. It was a +glorious day and the belugas appeared in greater numbers than for many +years. They swarmed off the mouth of the Rivière Ouelle. At high tide +they came in, skirting the rocks within a stone's throw of shore and +devouring greedily the innumerable small fish. The surface of the +shallow water in which they swam was white with their gleaming bodies. +When they puffed they spurted jets of water into the air which fell in +spray that sparkled in the sunlight. The Abbé then describes how the +creatures became entrapped in the fishery. Instances of the mother's +devotion are recorded. They have been known to wait outside the stakes +for their young, caught within, and to allow themselves to be stranded +and killed rather than leave their offspring. + +When the tide is low the slaughter begins. In the season of the spring +tide the water at Rivière Ouelle retreats so far that the entrapped +"porpoises" are left high and dry in the fishery and are readily killed. +But in the season of neap tides enough water is left for them to swim +about within the semi-circle of stakes. Boats are taken into the fishery +through the outer line of stakes and then begins a regular whale hunt +within a very circumscribed area. If the belugas are numerous their +captors have not a moment to lose for the creatures may escape with the +next tide. And numerous they sometimes are; 500 have been taken in a +single tide; at Rivière Ouelle, about 1870, 101 were killed in one night +by only four men. They had not expected such a host and had no time to +send for help before the tide should rise again. + +The captors are armed with barbed harpoons and with spears. The harpoon +is sometimes thrown at the beluga from a considerable distance. When +struck the creature rushes to the surface, plunges and rolls to get +free. He never defends himself but thinks only of flight. It is an +accident if a boat is upset by the stroke of its tail; such accidents +sometimes happen but the victim gets little more than a soaking, much to +the merriment of his companions. The harpooned beluga will make off at +full speed dragging in his wake the assailant's boat which flies over +the face of the water, boiling with the mighty strokes of the monster's +tail. Soon the water is red for each beluga sheds eight or ten gallons +of blood. When he is tired the boat is drawn in closer by the rope +fastened to the animal. As opportunity offers the spear is used and, +driven home by a strong hand, it sometimes goes clear through the body. +A skilful man will quickly strike some vital spot; otherwise the beluga +struggles long. + +"Picture if possible," says the Abbé, "the animation of the beluga hunt +when a hundred of them are in the weir, when twenty-five or thirty men +are pursuing them, when five or six boats dragged by the creatures are +ploughing the enclosed waters in every direction, when the spears are +hurled from all sides and the men are covered with the blood which +gushes out in streams. Some years ago the passengers of a passing +steamer from Europe were witnesses of such a scene and showed their keen +interest by firing a salvo of cannon." + +When the belugas have been killed the next task is to get them to shore. +The work must be done quickly for the next tide will stop all work and +may sweep the animals away. Horses are brought and the bodies are +dragged ashore or partly floated with the aid of the rising tide. The +task of cutting up and boiling follows immediately. Workmen with long +knives take off the skin and separate the blubber from the flesh. The +Abbé Casgrain describes the process in detail. In the end the blubber is +cut up into small pieces and boiled in huge caldrons. The poor never +fail to come for their share of the catch and, with proverbial charity, +the Company carrying on the operations never send them away empty. "The +share-holders" says the Abbé Casgrain, "are convinced that the success +of their labours depends upon the gifts which they make to God, and +their generosity merits His benediction," Many a habitant goes home with +a mass of blubber in his pot or hooked to the end of a stout branch. + +The fishery is old and has been very profitable. La Potherie describes +the industry as it existed at Kamouraska in 1701: that at Rivière Ouelle +is found in 1707 and it remained in the hands of the heirs of the +original promoters until, in 1870, it was found necessary to form them +into an incorporated company. The oil is highly valued. It is very clear +and has good lubricating qualities. Before the universal sway of +petroleum it was much used for lighting purposes; an ordinary lamp would +burn for 72 hours without going out. The Abbé Casgrain says that a +barrel of the oil is worth from 100 to 200 dollars and since each beluga +would yield not less than a barrel the value of the fishery in a good +season is evident. The skin is very thick and of extraordinary strength. +It has no grain and will take a beautiful polish. + +[Beddard, "A Book of Whales" (London, 1900), pp. 244 _sqq._ + +Sir Harry Johnston, "British Mammals," (London, 1903), pp. 22 _sqq._ + +La Potherie, "Histoire de l'Amérique Septentrionale," (Paris, 1703), +Vol. 1, Lettre X., pp. 273 _sqq._ + +Casgrain, "Une Paroisse Canadienne au XVIIe Siècle," Oeuvres, Vol. 1, +pp. 530 _sqq._ + +Casgrain, "Eclaircissements sur La Pêche aux Marsouins," Ib. p. 563 +_sqq._] + + + + +APPENDIX F (p. 122) + +THE PRAYER OF COLONEL NAIRNE + + +(There are several versions of parts of the Prayer. It is, I think, +partly copied from some other source, partly Nairne's own composition.) + +We believe in Thee our God; do thou strengthen our faith; We hope in +thee; confirm our hope; we repent of all our Sins; but do thou increase +our repentance. As our first beginning we worship thee; as our +benefactor we praise thee; and as our supreme protector we pray unto +thee that it may please thee, O God, to guide and lead us by thy +Providence, to keep us in obedience to thy justice, to comfort us by thy +mercie, and to protect us by thy Almighty power. We submit to thee all +our thoughts, words, and deeds, as well as our afflictions, pains, and +sufferings, and in thy name and for thy sake [we desire] to bear all +adversity with patience. We will nothing but what thou Willest, because +it is agreeable to thee. Give us grace that we may be attentive in +prayer, vigilant in our Conduct, and immovable in all good purposes. +Grant, most merciful Lord, that we may be true and just to those who put +their trust in us, that we may be Courteous and kind to all men, and +that in both our words and actions we may show them a good example. +Dispose our hearts to admire and adore thy goodness, to hate all errours +and evil ways. Assist us, most gracious God, in subduing our passions, +covetousness by liberality, anger by mildness, and lukewarmness by zeal +and fervency. Enable us to Conduct ourselves with prudence in all +transactions, to show courage in danger, patience in adversity, in +prosperity an humble will. Let thy Grace illuminate our understanding. +Direct our will and bless our souls. Make us diligent in curbing all +irregular affections and Zealous in imploring thy Grace, careful in +keeping thy Commandments and constant in working out our own salvation. + +We humbly beseech thee, O Lord, to assist us in keeping our temper and +passions under due restraint to reason and to virtue, so as not only to +contribute to our internal peace of mind, honour, and reputation in this +life, but also to our eternal Comfort and happiness in the life to come; +and to defend us, O Lord, from the arts and subtilties which designing +men may work against us in order to lead us into evil or idle purposes. +Finally, O God, make us sensible how little is this world, how great thy +Heavens and how long will be thy blessed eternity. O! that we may well +prepare ourselves for Death and obtain of thee, O God, eternal life +through the merits of Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen. + + + + +APPENDIX G (p. 144) + +THE CURÉS OF MALBAIE + + +Of the early missionaries I have found no record, though no doubt one +could be compiled from the episcopal archives. The registers at Malbaie +do not begin until 1790 but I find a note that in 1784 there were +sixty-five communicants. Isle aux Coudres, Les Eboulements and Malbaie +were then united under one curé, M. Compain, who lived at Isle aux +Coudres. He served Malbaie from 1775 to 1788. This curé has a share in +the legend of Père de La Brosse, which, since it is characteristic of +the region, is worth repeating. + +Père de La Brosse was a much loved and saintly missionary priest, +dwelling in his later years at Tadousac. On the evening of April 11th, +1872, he played cards at Tadousac at the house of one of the officers of +the post. Rising to go at about nine o'clock he said to the company: + +"I wish you good night, my dear friends, for the last time; for at +midnight I shall be a dead man. At that hour you will hear the bell of +my chapel ring. I beg you not to touch my body. To-morrow you will send +for M. Compain at Isle aux Coudres. He will be waiting for you at the +lower end of the island. Do not be afraid if a storm comes. I will +answer for those whom you shall send." + +At first the company thought the good father was joking. None the less +did they become anxious to see what should happen. Watch in hand they +waited for the hour named. Exactly at midnight the bell of the chapel +rang three times. They ran to the chapel and there found Père de La +Brosse upon his _prie-dieu_ dead. + +The next day, Sunday, a south-east wind blew with violence. Huge +white-capped waves made the great river so dangerous that the employés +of the post refused to undertake the journey to Isle aux Coudres of +forty or fifty miles in a canoe over a raging sea. But the chief clerk +at the post said to them: "You know well that the Father never deceived +you. You ought to have confidence in his word. Is there no one among you +who will carry out his last wish?" + +Then three or four men agreed to go. When they put their canoe in the +water, behold a wonder! To the great surprise of every one the sea +subsided so that before them lay a pathway of calm water. To their +further amazement, they made the journey to Isle aux Coudres with +incredible rapidity. As they neared the shore they could see M. Compain +walking up and down, a book in his hand. When they were within hearing +distance he called out "Père de La Brosse is dead. You come to get me to +bury him. I have been waiting an hour for you." When the canoe touched +the shore M. Compain embarked and they carried him to Tadousac. At Isle +aux Coudres the bell of the chapel had distinctly sounded three times +at midnight as at Tadousac. M. Compain knew what it meant for Père de La +Brosse had told him what he told his friends at Tadousac. Other church +bells in the neighbourhood also rang miraculously on that night. Père de +La Brosse had said while curé at Isle Verte, "If I die elsewhere than +here, you will have certain knowledge of the fact at the moment of my +death." + +The legend, the rather obscure motive of which is to emphasize the +saintly virtues of Père de La Brosse, is believed even to this day by +many simple people, hundreds of whom know it by heart. But some are +skeptical. "I should have been able to give more certainty to this +tradition," says M. Mailloux, the historian of Isle aux Coudres and also +its curé, "had I been able to make more extended investigation. +Meanwhile," he adds naïvely, "my investigations suffice to give a high +idea of the virtues of this admirable missionary." + +There is little to record of the careers of curés at Malbaie subsequent +to M. Compain. Often the annals of the good are not exciting and this is +eminently true of these virtuous teachers. M. Charles Duchouquet was +curé of Isle aux Coudres and served Malbaie in 1790. In 1791 he was +succeeded by M. Raphael Paquet who lived at Les Eboulements. The first +curé resident at Malbaie was M. Keller who came in 1797. When he went +away in 1799 M. J.-B.-A. Marcheteau who was curé of Les Eboulements and +lived there, served Malbaie. In 1807 M. Marcheteau was succeeded by M. +Le Courtois, the second resident curé, a French émigré who remained at +Malbaie until 1822 and was, as we have seen, an intimate friend of the +Nairne family. For a long time M. Le Courtois carried on missionary work +among the Indians. In 1822 M. Duguay became curé; he went to Malbaie +after being curé at Isle aux Coudres. In 1832 he was succeeded by M. +Zephérin Lévêque who, in 1840, was followed by M. Alexis Bourret. This +curé was something of a scholar. He read the Greek fathers in the +original which is, I fancy, very unusual among the priests of Canada. In +1847 M. Beaudry became curé and in 1862 he was followed by M. Narcisse +Doucet. It was under M. Doucet that the great influx of summer visitors +began. Naturally they desired to have their own Protestant service on +Sunday and M. Doucet did all he could to prevent their getting a place +of worship. Protestantism having disappeared from Malbaie the curé was +not anxious to see it revived. But the last Mrs. Nairne, a Protestant, +then ruled at the Manor House, and she gave for the purpose of +Protestant worship the admirable site of the present Union Church. M. +Doucet was a man of considerable culture. The parish church, first built +in 1806, was remodelled in his time as also was the _presbytère_; he +built, too, the convent for girls. In 1891 M. B.-E. Leclercq became +curé--a good man of the peasant type, who retired in 1906 and died at +Malbaie in the following year. The present energetic curé is M. Hudon. + +[For Père de La Brosse, see Casgrain, Oeuvres, Vol. 1, "Une Excursion +a L'Ile aux Coudres"; Mailloux, "Histoire de L'Isle aux Coudres" +(Montreal, 1879). M. Mailloux has particulars about some of the curés +named above. The dates for the successive curés are found in the +registers at Malbaie.] + + + + +INDEX + + +Abraham, Plains of, 30, 69, 74, 81, 123, 258, 262. + +Amherst, General, 34. + +Amiens, Peace of, 119. + +Ange Gardien, 254, 255. + +Arnold, Colonel Benedict, 66-70, 76, 78, 81. + +Augustine, St., 236. + +Austerlitz, Battle of, 129. + +Avignon, 213. + + +Baie St. Paul, 2, 9, 16, 20, 64, 89, 183, 255. + +Barnum, P.T., 280. + +Baxter, J.P., 243. + +Bazire, Marie, 11. + +Beaudry, Père, 290. + +Beauport, 252. + +Beaupré, 16. + +Beaver Dam, 156. + +Beck, Miss, 170. + +Bedard, Pierre, 150. + +Begin, Mgr., 198. + +Begon, M., Intendant, 14. + +Belairs, 109. + +Belmont Seigniory, 36. + +Beluga Fishery on the St. Lawrence, 279-285. + +Bencoolen, India, 59. + +Berthier, 9, 69. + +Bic, 250. + +Bigot F., Intendant, 18, 280. + +Blackburn, Hugh, 54, 55. + +Bleakley, Mrs., 106. + +Bonaparte, Napoleon, 112, 129, 133, 155, 169. + +Bonneau, 10, 11, 109. + +Bonner, G.T., 219. + +Boucher, Pierre, 9. + +Bouchette, Mr., 141. + +Bougainville, Col., 29, 51, 259. + +Boulogne, 129. + +Bourdon, Jean, 8, 243. + +Bourret, Père Alexis, 290. + +Bowen, Judge E., 149, 150, 163-7. + +Bowen, Mrs. E., 151. + +Boyd, General, 162. + +Brassard, 54. + +Bréboeuf, 198. + +Brock, Gen. Sir I., 151, 153. + +Brosse, Père de la, 287-9. + +Buchanan. Mr., 166. + +Burlington Heights, 156, 158, 161. + +Burlington Bay, 158, 159. + +Butler, Captain, 86. + + +Cacouna, 88. + +Caldwell, Colonel, 84, 85, 87, 148. + +Cameron, Captain, 269. + +Campbell, Lieut. Alex., 261. + +Campbell, Lieut. Archibald, 261. + +Campbell, Capt John, 261. + +Cap à l'Aigle, 2, 11, 21, 238. + +Cap aux Oies, 2, 11. + +Cap Rouge, 259, 264. + +Cap Tourmente, 2, 87, 108, 109, 253, 255. + +Cape Diamond, 73-78, 270. + +Carignan Regiment, 9, 34, 243. + +Carleton, Sir Guy (Lord Dorchester) 22, 59, 64, 65, 69-78, 83, 206, 276. + +Carleton Island, 84-7, 148. + +Cartier, Jacques, 56, 244, 250, 279. + +Casgrain, Abbé H.R., 245, 281-285. + +Castle Dounie, 24. + +Chambly, 9. + +Champlain, Samuel de, 6, 7, 243. + +Chandler, General, 156. + +Chaperon, M., 224, 225. + +Château, Richer, 254-5. + +Chateauguay, Battle of, 161. + +Chaudière River, 66. + +Chauncey, Commodore, 158. + +Chelmsford, 134. + +Cherry Valley, 86. + +Chicoutimi, 15. + +Chippewa, 155. + +Cimon family, 219. + +Clark, John, 102. + +Clive, Lord, 57. + +Colbert, 8. + +Columbo, India, 100, 101. + +Compain, Père, 287-9. + +Company of New France, 7, 8. + +Comporté, Philippe Gaultier, Sieur de, 9-14, 223, 243. + +Comporté, La, 15, 16. + +Comporté, Lac à, 12, 229. + +Continental Congress, 60, 63. + +Contrecoeur, 89. + +Cook, Captain, 22. + +Coquart, Father Claude Godefroi, 16-18. + +Cornwallis, General, 91. + +Cox, Major, 276. + +Craig, Sir James, 135, 142, 150. + +Crysler's Farm, Battle of, 162. + +Culloden, Battle of, 23, 33, 48. + + +Dalrymple, Col., 100. + +Dambourges, M., 77. + +D'Avezac, Editor of Cartier's Works, 243. + +Dean, Captain, 269. + +De Lass, 138. + +Detroit, 151, 155. + +_Diana_, the, 270. + +Dobie, Richard, 106. + +Dorchester, Lord, (See Carleton, Sir Guy). + +Doucet, Père Narcisse, 290. + +Douglas, Lieut., 261. + +Douglass, Commodore, 276. + +Duchouquet, Père C., 289. + +Dufour, Joseph, 16-18, 20, 56, 109. + +Duggan, E.J., 219. + +Duggan, W.E., 219. + +Duguay, Père, 289. + +Dundass, 118. + +Durham, 127. + + +East India Co'y, 57, 58. + +Edinburgh, 94, 95, 101, 119, 125, 127, 128, 133. + +Edinburgh Castle, 26, 169, 170. + +Elibank, Lord, 35. + +Emerson, Parson, 67. + +Emery, Christiana, (Mrs. Nairne), 56. + +Enos, Colonel, 67. + + +_Fell_, the, 70. + +Fisher, Dr., 115. + +Fitzgibbon, Lieut, 156. + +Forbes, Duncan, of Culloden, 23. + +Fort Erie, 154. + +Fort George, 154-157, 160. + +Forty Mile Creek, 156, 159. + +Foucault, Seigniory of, 36. + +Foulon, Anse de, 256. + +Fraser, Alex., Jr., 252, 261, 267. + +Fraser, John Malcolm, 219, 249. + +Fraser, Malcolm, Seigneur of Mount Murray, 21, 28, 30-41, 49, 54, 55, + 65, 74, 75, 82, 92, 93, 95, 101, 105, 106, 108, 114, 117, 120, + 127-132, 136, 142-147, 149, 152, 158, 160, 165, 171, 178, 219, + 222, "Journal," 249-271, 276. + +Fraser, Ensign Malcolm, killed, 267. + +Fraser, Simon, Lord Lovat, 24-26, 243, 267. + +Fraser, Colonel Simon, Commander of the 78th Regiment, 25, 26, 31, 32, + 249, 251, 252, 261, 264-267. + +Fraser, Simon, Explorer, 26. + +Fraser, Simon, Captain, 261. + +Fraser, William, 219. + +Fraserville, Seigniory of, 39. + +Frenchtown, 154. + +Frontenac, 196. + + +Gagnon, Mgr., 245. + +Gaspé, Philippe Aubert de, 109, 209-212, 245. + +Gaultier, Philippe, (See Comporté). + +Gérin, Léon, 244. + +Gibraltar, 129, 133, 134, 135, 136. + +Gilchrist, Mr., 47, 53, 55, 60, 61, 223, 225. + +Glasgow, 119. + +Goose, Cape, 2. + +Gordon, Lieut. Cosmo, 267. + +Gorham, Captain, 20, 34, 36, 251, 255. + +Graeme, General, 96. + +Gregorson, Ensign, 261. + +Gros, Jean, 225. + +"_Growler_", the, 160. + + +Haldimand, General, 46, 83, 85, 87, 92. + +Hale, Mr. and Mrs., 149. + +Halifax, 150. + +Harrison, General, 155. + +Hazen, Captain, 265. + +Hazeur, François, 12, 13, 14. + +Hazeur, J.T., 15. + +Hazeur, P. de l'Orme, 15. + +Henry, Dr., 201, 223-227, 245. + +Hepburn, 42, 59, 114, 118, 121. + +Higham, Mrs., 219. + +Holmes, Admiral, 249. + +Hubert, Bishop of Quebec, 46 + +Hudon, M., Jesuit, 198. + +Hudon, Père, 290. + +Hudson Bay, 14, 279. + +Hull, General, 151. + + +India, 96, 99, 100, 172. + +Isle aux Coudres, 2, 6, 46, 64, 250, 287-289. + +Isle aux Noix, 82, 83, 84, 91. + +Isle Verte, 289. + + +Jena, Battle of, 129. + +Jervis, John, Lord St. Vincent, 22. + +Johnson, Dr. Samuel, 35. + +Johnston, Sir John, 85. + +Johnston, Sir William, 138. + +_Julia_, the, 160. + + +Kamouraska, 89, 108, 211, 212, 224, 285. + +Keller, Père, 289. + +Kennebec, River, 66. + +Ker, Alick, 126, 127, 135, 137. + +Ker, James, 98, 112, 114, 117, 118, 121, 125, 126, 133, 134, 137, 138, + 144, 150, 169, 170. + +Ker, Mrs., 121. + +Kingston, 148, 151, 152, 153, 161. + + +La Fouille, 10. + +La Grange, 56. + +La Motte-Saint-Heray, 10. + +La Potherie, 285. + +La Terrière, Dr., 141. + +Lake Champlain, 36, 82, 161. + +Lake Ontario, 9, 84, 148, 156, 161. + +Lake St. John, 15. + +Langan, Mrs., 106. + +Lanoraye, 10. + +Lauderdale, Earl of, 133. + +Lauzon, Seigniory of, 36, 210. + +Laverdière, Editor of Champlain's Works, 243. + +Le Courtois, Père, 143, 164, 166, 172, 193, 289. + +Leclercq, Père, B.-E, 290. + +Le Maistre, Major, 244. + +Le Moine, Sir J.M., 243. + +Les Eboulements, 2, 14, 37, 46, 64, 109, 141, 287, 289. + +_Leo_, the, 159. + +_Leostoff_, the, 269, 270. + +Leslie, Miss C., 173, 221. + +Lévêque, Père, 289. + +Levis, 36. + +Lévis, Marquis de, 32, 220, 264. + +Longueuil, 9. + +Lorette, 262. + +Lotbinière, Père de, 71. + +Louisbourg, 29, 42, 119, 129, 221, 250. + +Lovat, Baroness, 24. + +Lovat, Lord, (See Fraser, Simon). + +Lyman, Mr., 171. + + +Mabane, Miss, 108. + +McCord, Mr., 141. + +McDonald, Capt. Donald, 265, 267. + +McDonald, Lieut. Hector, 267. + +McDonnell, Alex., 259. + +MacDonnell, Capt. John, 86, 259, 261. + +MacDonnell, Lieut. Ronald, 261. + +McGregor, Lieut., 271. + +MacKenzie, Sir Alex., 111. + +MacKenzie, Alex., author, 243. + +MacKenzie, Ensign, 261. + +MacKinnon, Lieut., 82-4. + +McLean, Col. Allan, 65, 275, 276. + +McNicol, John, (See Nairne, John McNicol). + +McNicol, Peter, 172, 173. + +McNicol, Mrs. Peter, 93, 107, 114, 130, 169, 172, 173, 219, 221, 290. + +McNicol, Thomas, 172. + +McPherson, Capt., 252, 259, 261. + +Madawaska, Seigniory of, 36. + +Madison, President, 150. + +Mailloux, Père, 289. + +Maldon, 128. + +Malteste, notary, 52. + +Marchand, Louis, 12. + +Marcheteau, Père, 289. + +Marie, Catherine de St. Augustin, 198, 199. + +Marlboro', India, 57. + +Masson, Mr., 106. + +Matthews, Captain, 85, 92, 244. + +Micmac Indians, 55. + +Mingan seigniory, 14. + +Mississaga Indians, 85. + +Mistassini, 15. + +Mohawk Valley, 85. + +Montcalm, Marquis de, 19, 241, 251, 252, 260. + +Montgomery, General R., 69-78, 273. + +Montgomery, Capt., 253, 254. + +Montmorency, 251, 253, 255. + +Morel, Abbé, 183. + +Morgan, 76. + +Morrison, Colonel, 162, 165. + +Mount Hermon Cemetery, 122, 123, 220. + +Mount Murray Seigniory, 21, 38. + +Mount Ventoux, 236. + +Mountain, Salter, 152. + +Munro, W. Bennett, 245. + +Murray, Alex., 35. + +Murray, Admiral George, 35. + +Murray, General James, 30-38, 42, 43, 51, 178, 207, 243, 254, 255, 258, + 262, 272. + + +Nairne, Anne, 56, 94, 125. + +Nairne, Baron, 27. + +Nairne, Christine, 93, 94, 99, 101, 106-108, 114, 121, 130, 138, 142, + 145, 146, 150, 151, 164, 169, 171, 172. + +Nairne, John, First Seigneur of Murray Bay, Chap's. I-V., 178, 184, 195, + 209, 219-223. + +Nairne, John, Mrs., 56, 149, 161, 165, 168, 172. + +Nairne, John, Captain, 93, 94, 95-101, 221, 277-279. + +Nairne, John Leslie, 174, 221. + +Nairne, John McNicol, 172-174, 218, 219. + +Nairne, Magdalen (See McNicol, Mrs. Peter). + +Nairne, Mary (Polly), 93, 101, 107, 121, 124, 126, 138, 142, 147, 160, + 169, 172. + +Nairne, Miss, 27, 101, 117, 273. + +Nairne, Robert, 57-59. + +Nairne, Captain Thomas, 93, 101, 102, 107, 121, 124-167, 220, 221, 232. + +Neill, Mr., of Bana, 259. + +Nelson, Lord, 114, 153, 205. + +Newfoundland Regiment, 139, 147, 143. + +New Orleans, Battle at, 170. + +Niagara, 148, 151, 154-156. + +Niagara Falls, 155. + +Niagara River, 148, 154. + +Noël, Jacques, 207. + +Northumberland County, 115, 141. + + +_Oneida_, the, 153. + +Orleans, Island of, 1, 253, 255. + + +Panet, Louis, 225. + +Papineau, L.J., 205, 218. + +Paquet, Père Raphael, 289. + +Parker, Sir Hyde, 114, 153. + +Parsons' House, 82. + +Pitt, William, Earl of Chatham, 23, 26, 34. + +Pitt, William, 112, 118. + +Pius VIII., Pope, 172. + +Plassey, Battle of, 57. + +Plenderleath, Colonel, 163, 166. + +Point Levi, 80, 250, 251, 253, 255, 256, 261, 263. + +Pointe au Fer, 82, 83. + +Pointe au Pic, 47, 104, 228, 236, 281. + +Pointe aux Trembles, 15. + +"Porpoise" Fishery (See Beluga). + +Prés de Ville Barrier, 75. + +Prescott, 152, 153. + +Prevost, Sir George, 150. + +Procter, General, 154, 171. + + +Quebec Act, 59-61. + +Quebec, Protestant Bishop of, 48, 50, 165. + +Quebec, Roman Catholic Bishop of, 45, 51. + +Queenston Heights, 151, 153. + + +Reeve, Colonel, 219. + +Reeve, John Fraser, 219. + +Reeve, Mrs., 219. + +Richelieu, Robert, 70. + +Riedesel, General, 89, 91. + +Riverin, 13. + +Rivière du Loup, 36, 39. + +Rivière Noire, 37, 226. + +Rivière Ouelle, 183, 280, 281, 283, 285. + +Roderick, Lieut., 259. + +Ross, Mr., 43. + +Ross, Captain, 254, 259. + +Roy, J.E., 244. + +_Royal George_, the, 148, 151. + + +Sackett's Harbour, 161. + +Saguenay River, 5, 183, 228, 255. + +Saguenay County, 172. + +Saint Anne de Beaupré, 64, 254. + +Saint Charles River, 257, 258, 259, 260. + +Sainte Foy, 73, 259, 262, 264. + +Sainte Irénée, 233. + +Saint Jean Seigniory, 36. + +Saint Joachim, 253. + +Saint Matthew's Church, Quebec, 219. + +St. Roch's, Quebec, 76, 88. + +St. Roch, 88. + +Sans Bruit Seigniory, 36. + +Sault au Matelot, 76, 77. + +Schomberg, Capt., 270. + +Scott, Sir Walter, 27, 170. + +Sewell, Mr., 166. + +Sicily, 137, 138. + +Siegfried, André, 245. + +Sillery, 264. + +Smith, Justin H., 244. + +Sorel, 9, 90, 91. + +Soumande, Pierre, 12. + +Stadacona, 5. + +Sterling, 56. + +Stevenson, James, 119. + +Stewart, Andrew, 172. + +Stewart, Lieut Chas., 33. + +Stewart, Mr., 107. + +Stoney Creek, 156. + +Stuart, Prince Charles, 22, 27. + +Sulte, B., 243. + +Swanton, Capt, 270. + +Syracuse, 137, 138. + + +Taché, Madame, 211, 212. + +Tadousac, 6, 7, 14, 15, 19, 88, 183, 228, 287-289. + +Talon, Jean, 8, 11. + +Taschereau, Hon G., 106. + +Ten Mile Creek, 159. + +Têtu, Mgr. H., 15, 245. + +Thames River, Ontario, 155. + +Thompson, James, 244. + +Three Rivers, 69, 150. + +Toronto, 148, 155, 159. + +Trafalgar, Battle of, 129, 205. + +Tremblay, 109. + + +Usburn, Mr., 106. + + +_Vanguard_, the, 270. + +Vaudreuil, Marquis de, 34. + +Verchères, 9, 89. + +Villeneuve, Joseph, 53. + + +Wall, Captain, 152. + +Walpole, Sir R., 23. + +Warren, John, 119. + +Washington, 155. + +Washington, George, 65. + +Waterloo, Battle of, 205. + +Wauchope, Mr., 277. + +Wellington, Duke of, 205. + +West Indies, 95. + +Wilkes, John, 35. + +Wilkinson, General, 156. + +Winchester, General, 154. + +Winder, General, 156. + +Wingfield, Major, 223. + +Wolfe, General James, 19, 20, 22, 23, 28, 29, 31, 66, 241, 252, 260. + +Wolfe's Cove, 29, 68, 75, 256. + +Wooster, General, 81. + +Würtele, F.C., 244. + + +Yeo, Sir James, 154, 156-159. + +York, Duke of, 96. + +York (Toronto), 148, 155, 156, 159, 160. + +Yorktown, 91. + +Yukon River, 279. + + + + + + +End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs +by George M. Wrong + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CANADIAN MANOR AND ITS SEIGNEURS *** + +***** This file should be named 16747-8.txt or 16747-8.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + https://www.gutenberg.org/1/6/7/4/16747/ + +Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Taavi Kalju and the Online +Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net. +Produced from page scans provided by Internet +Archive/Toronto Collection. + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at +https://gutenberg.org/license). + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org. + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at +https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at +809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email +business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact +information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official +page at https://pglaf.org + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit https://pglaf.org + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including including checks, online payments and credit card +donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + https://www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. + +*** END: FULL LICENSE *** + diff --git a/16747-8.zip b/16747-8.zip Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..e88cd52 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-8.zip diff --git a/16747-h.zip b/16747-h.zip Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..535ef58 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h.zip diff --git a/16747-h/16747-h.htm b/16747-h/16747-h.htm new file mode 100644 index 0000000..85c3bd1 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/16747-h.htm @@ -0,0 +1,8871 @@ +<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" + "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> + +<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml"> + <head> + <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=iso-8859-1" /> + <title> + The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs, by George M. Wrong. + </title> + <style type="text/css"> +/*<![CDATA[ XML blockout */ +<!-- + p { margin-top: .75em; + text-align: justify; + margin-bottom: .75em; + } + h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 { + text-align: center; /* all headings centered */ + clear: both; + } + hr { width: 33%; + margin-top: 2em; + margin-bottom: 2em; + margin-left: auto; + margin-right: auto; + clear: both; + } + + table {margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto;} + + body{margin-left: 10%; + margin-right: 10%; + } + + .linenum {position: absolute; top: auto; left: 4%;} /* poetry number */ + .blockquot{margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 10%;} + .pagenum {position: absolute; left: 1%; font-size: smaller; text-align: left; color: gray;} + .sidenote {width: 20%; padding-bottom: .5em; padding-top: .5em; + padding-left: .5em; padding-right: .5em; margin-left: 1em; + float: right; clear: right; margin-top: 1em; + font-size: smaller; background: #eeeeee; border: dashed 1px;} + + .bb {border-bottom: solid 2px;} + .bl {border-left: solid 2px;} + .bt {border-top: solid 2px;} + .br {border-right: solid 2px;} + .bbox {border: solid 2px;} + + .center {text-align: center;} + .smcap {font-variant: small-caps;} + .u {text-decoration: underline;} + + .caption {font-weight: bold;} + + .figcenter {margin: auto; text-align: center;} + + .figleft {float: left; clear: left; margin-left: 0; margin-bottom: 1em; margin-top: + 1em; margin-right: 1em; padding: 0; text-align: center;} + + .figright {float: right; clear: right; margin-left: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; + margin-top: 1em; margin-right: 0; padding: 0; text-align: center;} + + .footnotes {border: dashed 1px;} + .footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;} + .footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;} + .fnanchor {vertical-align: super; font-size: .8em; text-decoration: none;} + + .poem {margin-left:10%; margin-right:10%; text-align: left;} + .poem br {display: none;} + .poem .stanza {margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;} + .poem span.i0 {display: block; margin-left: 0em;} + .poem span.i2 {display: block; margin-left: 2em;} + .poem span.i4 {display: block; margin-left: 4em;} + // --> + /* XML end ]]>*/ + </style> + </head> +<body> + + +<pre> + +Project Gutenberg's A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs, by George M. Wrong + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + +Title: A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs + The Story of a Hundred Years, 1761-1861 + +Author: George M. Wrong + +Release Date: September 25, 2005 [EBook #16747] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1 + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CANADIAN MANOR AND ITS SEIGNEURS *** + + + + +Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Taavi Kalju and the Online +Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net. +Produced from page scans provided by Internet +Archive/Toronto Collection. + + + + + + +</pre> + + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image01" name="image01"> + <img src="images/01.jpg" + alt="Colonel John Nairne" + title="Colonel John Nairne" /></a><br /> + <span class="caption"><span class="smcap">Colonel John Nairne</span></span> +</div> + + +<h1>A CANADIAN MANOR +AND ITS SEIGNEURS</h1> + +<h2>THE STORY OF A HUNDRED YEARS +1761-1861</h2> + + +<h3>BY</h3> + +<h2>GEORGE M. WRONG, M.A.</h2> + +<h4>PROFESSOR OF HISTORY IN THE UNIVERSITY OF TORONTO</h4> + + +<h4>WITH ILLUSTRATIONS</h4> + + +<h5> +TORONTO<br /> +THE BRYANT PRESS, LIMITED<br /> +1908<br /> +</h5> + + +<p class="center"> +<span class="smcap">Copyright, Canada</span>, 1908<br /> +<span class="smcap">by George M. Wrong</span><br /> +</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="pageiii" name="pageiii"></a>Pg iii</span></p> +<h2>PREFACE</h2> + + +<p>In spite of many pleasant summers spent at Murray Bay one had never +thought of it as having a history. The place and its people seemed +simple, untutored, new. Some of the other summer residents talked +complacently even of having discovered it. They had heard of Murray Bay +as beautiful and had gone to explore this unknown country. When this +bold feat was performed there was abundant recompense. Valley, mountain, +river and stream united to make Murray Bay delightful. The little summer +community grew. At first visitors lived in the few primitive hotels or +in cottages at Pointe au Pic, vacated for the time being by their +owners, who found temporary lodgings somewhere,—not infrequently in +their own out-buildings. The cottages left something to be desired, and, +gradually, the visitors bought land and built houses for themselves: +to-day dozens of them dot the western shore of Murray Bay. In due time +appeared tennis courts; then a golf links. Murray Bay had become, alas, +almost fashionable.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="pageiv" name="pageiv"></a>Pg iv</span></p> + +<p>It still seemed to have no past. True, near the village church, a +fair-sized house stood, embowered in trees, with a fine view out over +the bay and the wide St. Lawrence. A high fence shut in a beautiful old +garden, with a few great trees: as one drove past one got a glimpse of +shady walks and old-fashioned flowers. The extensive out-buildings near +this manor house, stables, carriage-house, dairy, showed that the +establishment was fairly large. There were sleek cattle in the farm +yard. On one of the out-buildings was a small belfry, with a bell to +summon the work-people from afar to meals, and this seemed like the +olden times when the seigneur fed his labourers under his own roof. On +making a formal call at the manor house one noted that some of the rooms +were of fine proportions and that a good many old portraits and +miniatures hung on the walls. This all spoke of a past; and yet of it +one asked little and knew nothing.</p> + +<p>Just across the bay stood another manor house; of stone, too, in this +case not concealed by a covering of wood. Thick walls crowned by a +mansard roof spoke of a respectable age. This manor house, also looked +out on the bay and across the St. Lawrence. One knew that it was named<span class="pagenum"><a id="pagev" name="pagev"></a>Pg v</span> +Mount Murray Manor, while that on the right bank of the river Murray was +called Murray Bay Manor. It was said vaguely that a Colonel Fraser had +dwelt at Mount Murray and a Colonel Nairne at Murray Bay; but all that +one heard was loose tradition and there were no Nairnes or Frasers of +whom one might ask questions. One could see that, in both places, +something like an old world dignity of life had in the past been kept +up.</p> + +<p>Making a call at the Murray Bay Manor House, I was told one day of a +manuscript volume in which the first seigneur had copied some of his +letters. I begged to be allowed to spend an afternoon or two in looking +through it. I went and went again. To me the book was absorbing. It told +the story of the first people of British origin who went to settle at +Malbaie, which they named Murray Bay, just after the British conquest; +of the career of a soldier brother of Colonel Nairne who died in India +not long after Plassey; of campaigns fought by Colonel Nairne during the +period of the American Revolution; of his plans and hopes as the ruler +of the little community where he settled. When I had read the book +through, I asked if there was not something more. Yes, there were some +old letters, preserved<span class="pagenum"><a id="pagevi" name="pagevi"></a>Pg vi</span> in a lumber room at the top of the house. These +I was allowed to see. This task, too, was of great interest and I spent +the better part of a summer holiday reading, analyzing, and copying +letters. Some of them told of the schoolboy days, in Edinburgh, of the +old Colonel's son and heir, the second seigneur, of this son's life at +Gibraltar at the time when Trafalgar was fought, of his return to +Canada, of campaigns in the war of 1812. Then there were touching +letters from others to tell how he fell at the battle of Crysler's Farm. +So intimate were the letters that one experienced again the hopes and +fears of more than a century ago. In time, out of the dimness in which +all had been shrouded, Murray Bay's history became clear. Of course one +had to seek some information elsewhere, especially in attempting an +analysis of French Canadian village life. But the story told in this +volume is based chiefly on the papers read during that holiday. Not only +did they enable one to reconstruct the story of a spot made almost +sacred by the joys of many a delightful summer; they furnished, besides, +an outline of the tragic history of a Canadian family. Here at Murray +Bay, a century and a half ago, a brave and distinguished British officer +secured<span class="pagenum"><a id="pagevii" name="pagevii"></a>Pg vii</span> a great estate and made his home. In his letters we read almost +from day to day of his plans. He had a strong heart and a deep faith. He +reared a large family and built not merely for himself but for his +posterity. And yet, just one hundred years after he began his work at +Murray Bay, the last of his descendants was laid in the grave and the +family became extinct. It is the fashion of our modern fiction to end +the tale in sorrow not in joy. Perhaps the fashion has a more real basis +in fact than we like to think. At any rate this true story of the +seigneur of Murray Bay ends with the closed record of his family history +on a granite monument in Quebec. There is no one living for whom the +tale has the special interest that attaches to one's ancestors.</p> + +<p>I have received help from many but my deepest obligation is to Mr. E.J. +Duggan, the present seigneur of Murray Bay, for his great kindness in +permitting me to use the letters and papers in the Manor House. I owe +much to the Right Honourable Sir Charles Fitzpatrick, who has taught me, +in many holiday outings, most of what appreciation I have learned for +French Canadian village life, and has corrected errors into which I +should otherwise have fallen. So<span class="pagenum"><a id="pageviii" name="pageviii"></a>Pg viii</span> also have Mr. W.H. Blake, K.C., of +Toronto, a good authority on all that concerns life at Murray Bay, and +M. J.-Edmond Roy, Assistant Archivist at Ottawa, whose "Histoire de la +Seigneurie de Lauzon" and many other works relating to the Province of +Quebec entitle him to the rank of its foremost historical scholar. To +another authority on the seigniorial system in Canada, Professor W. +Bennett Munro, of Harvard University, I am much indebted for information +readily given. My colleagues Professor W.J. Alexander, Ph.D., of +University College, and Professor Pelham Edgar, Ph.D., of Victoria +College, Toronto, have given me the benefit of their discriminating +criticism. Dr. A.G. Doughty, C.M.G., Dominion Archivist, and the Rev. +Abbé A.E. Gosselin of Laval University, have responded with unfailing +courtesy to my numerous calls upon them, and Mr. John Fraser Reeve, the +great-grandson of Colonel Malcolm Fraser, who figures so prominently in +the story, has given me invaluable information about the Fraser family. +Dr. J.M. Harper and M. P.-B. Casgrain, of Quebec, and Mr. A.C. +Casselman, of Toronto, have also aided me on some difficult points. To +the Honourable Edward Blake, K.C.,<span class="pagenum"><a id="pageix" name="pageix"></a>Pg ix</span> of Toronto, I am indebted for +reproductions of some of his paintings of scenes at Murray Bay, and to +the Honourable Dudley Murray, of London, England, for a photograph of +the portrait of General Murray preserved in the General's family.</p> + +<p>Toronto, <i>July, 1908</i>.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="pagexi" name="pagexi"></a>Pg xi</span></p> +<h2>CONTENTS</h2> + +<div class='center'> +<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="Contents"> +<tr> + <td align='left'></td> + <td align='left'>PAGE</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>PREFACE</b></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#pageiii">iii</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CONTENTS</b></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#pagexi">xi</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS</b></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#pagexv">xv</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>MAPS</b></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#pagexv">xv</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CHAPTER I</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">The Founding of Malbaie</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>The situation of Malbaie.—The physical features of +Malbaie.—Jacques Cartier at Malbaie.—Champlain at +Malbaie.—The first seigneur of Malbaie.—A new policy for +settling Canada.—The Sieur de Comporté, seigneur of +Malbaie, sentenced to death in France.—His career in +Canada.—His plans for Malbaie.—Hazeur, Seigneur of +Malbaie.—Malbaie becomes a King's Post.—A Jesuit's +description of Malbaie in 1750.—The burning of Malbaie by +the British in 1759.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page1">1</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CHAPTER II</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">The Two Highland Seigneurs at Malbaie</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Pitt's use of Highlanders in the Seven Years' War.—The +origin of Fraser's Highlanders.—The career of Lord +Lovat.—Lovat's son Simon Fraser and other Frasers at +Quebec.—Malcolm Fraser and John Nairne future seigneurs of +Malbaie.—The Highlanders and Wolfe's victory.—The +Highlanders in the winter of 1759-60.—Malcolm Fraser on +Murray's defeat in April, 1760.—The return of Canadian +seigneurs to France.—General Murray buys Canadian +seigniories.—Nairne and Fraser at Malbaie.—Their grants +from Murray.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page22">22</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CHAPTER III</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">John Nairne, Seigneur of Murray Bay</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Colonel Nairne's portrait.—His letters.—The first Scottish +settlers at Malbaie.—Nairne's finance.—His tasks.—The +curé's work.—The Scottish settlers and their French +wives.—The Church and Education.—Nairne's efforts to make<span class="pagenum"><a id="pagexii" name="pagexii"></a>Pg xii</span> +Malbaie Protestant.—His war on idleness.—The character of +the habitant.—Fishing at Malbaie.—Trade at +Malbaie.—Farming at Malbaie.—Nairne's marriage,—Career +and death in India of Robert Nairne.—The Quebec Act and its +consequences for the habitant.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page40">40</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CHAPTER IV</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">John Nairne in the American Revolution</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Nairne's work among the French Canadians.—He becomes Major +of the Royal Highland Emigrants.—Arnold's march through the +wilderness to Quebec.—Quebec during the Siege, +1775-76.—The habitants and the Americans.—Montgomery's +plans.—The assault on December 31st, 1775.—Malcolm Fraser +gives the alarm in Quebec.—Montgomery's death.—Arnold's +attack.—Nairne's heroism.—Arnold's failure.—The American +fire-ship.—The arrival of a British fleet.—The retreat of +the Americans.—Nairne's later service in the War.—Isle aux +Noix and Carleton Island.—Sir John Johnson and the +desolation of New York.—Nairne and the American prisoners +at Murray Bay.—Their escape and capture.—Nairne and the +Loyalists.—The end of the War.—Nairne's retirement to +Murray Bay.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page62">62</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CHAPTER V</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">The Last Days of John Nairne</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Nairne's careful education of his children.—His son John +enters the army.—Nairne's counsels to his son.—John Nairne +goes to India.—His death.—Nairne's declining years.—His +activities at Murray Bay.—His income.—His daughter +Christine and Quebec society.—The isolation of Murray Bay +in Winter.—Signals across the river.—Nairne's +reading.—His notes about current events.—The fear of a +French invasion of England.—Thoughts of flight from +Scotland to Murray Bay.—Nairne's last letter, April 20th, +1802.—His death and burial at Quebec.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page93">93</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="pagenum"><a id="pagexiii" name="pagexiii"></a>Pg xiii</span><b>CHAPTER VI</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">Thomas Nairne, Seigneur of Murray Bay</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>His education in Scotland.—His winning character.—He +enters the army.—Malcolm Fraser's counsels to a young +soldier.—Thomas Nairne's life at Gibraltar.—His desire to +retire from the army.—His return to Canada in 1810-11.—His +life at Quebec.—His summer at Murray Bay, 1811.—His +resolve to remain in the Army.—Beginning of the War of +1812.—Captain Nairne on Lake Ontario.—Quebec Society and +the proposed flight from danger to Murray Bay.—Anxiety at +Murray Bay.—The progress of the War.—An American attack on +Kingston.—Captain Nairne on the Niagara frontier.—Naval +War on Lake Ontario.—Nairne's description of a naval +engagement.—Sense of impending disaster at Murray Bay.—The +American advance on Montreal by the St. Lawrence.—Nairne's +regiment a part of the opposing British force.—The Battle +of Crysler's Farm.—Nairne's death.—His body taken to +Quebec.—The grief of the family at Murray Bay.—The +funeral.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page124">124</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CHAPTER VII</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">A French Canadian Village</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Life at Murray Bay after Captain Nairne's death.—Letters +from Europe.—Death of Malcolm Fraser.—Death of Colonel +Nairne's widow and children.—His grandson John Nairne, +seigneur.—Village Life.—The Church's Influence.—The +Habitant's tenacity.—His cottage.—His labours.—His +amusements.—The Church's missionary work in the +Village.—The powers of the bishop.—His visitations.—The +organization of the Parish.—The powers of the +<i>fabrique</i>.—Lay control of Church finance.—The curés' +tithe.—The best intellects enter the Church.—A native +Canadian clergy.—The curé's social life.—The Church and +Temperance Reform.—The diligence of the curés.—The +habitant's taste for the supernatural.—The belief in<span class="pagenum"><a id="pagexiv" name="pagexiv"></a>Pg xiv</span> +goblins.—Prayer in the family.—The habitant as voter.—The +office of Churchwarden.—The Church's influence in +elections.—The seigneur's position.—The habitant's +obligations to him.—Rent day and New Year's Day.—The +seigneur's social rank.—The growth of discontent in the +villages.—The evils of Seigniorial Tenure.—Agitation +against the system.—Its abolition in 1854.—The last of the +Nairnes.—The Nairne tomb in Quebec.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page168">168</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>CHAPTER VIII</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><span class="smcap">The Coming of the Pleasure Seekers</span></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Pleasure seeking at Murray Bay.—A fisherman's experience in +1830.—New visitors.—Fishing in a mountain lake.—Camp +life.—The Upper Murray.—Canoeing.—Running the +rapids.—Walks and drives.—Golf.—A rainy day.—The +habitant and his visitors.</td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page222">222</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>AUTHORITIES</b></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page243">243</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>APPENDICES</b></td> + <td align='left'></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><span class="smcap">Appendix</span> A (p. <a href="#page31">31</a>) <span style="margin-left: 5em;">The Journal of Malcolm Fraser, First Seigneur of Mount Murray, Malbaie.</span></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page249">249</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><span class="smcap">Appendix</span> B (p. <a href="#page38">38</a>) <span style="margin-left: 5em;">Title Deed of the Seigniory of Murray Bay, granted to Captain John Nairne.</span></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page271">271</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><span class="smcap">Appendix</span> C (p. <a href="#page78">78</a>) <span style="margin-left: 5em;">The Siege of Quebec in 1775-76. Colonel Nairne's Narrative.</span></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page273">273</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><span class="smcap">Appendix</span> D (p. <a href="#page98">98</a>) <span style="margin-left: 5em;">Memorandum of Colonel Nairne, 5th April, 1795, for his son John Nairne in regard to military duty.</span></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page277">277</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><span class="smcap">Appendix</span> E (p. <a href="#page104">104</a>) <span style="margin-left: 5em;">The "Porpoise" (Beluga or White Whale) Fishery on the St. Lawrence.</span></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page279">279</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><span class="smcap">Appendix</span> F (p. <a href="#page122">122</a>) <span style="margin-left: 5em;">The Prayer of Colonel Nairne.</span></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page286">286</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><span class="smcap">Appendix</span> G (p. <a href="#page144">144</a>) <span style="margin-left: 5em;">The Curés of Malbaie.</span></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page287">287</a></td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='center'><b>INDEX</b></td> + <td align='right'><a href="#page291">291</a></td> +</tr> +</table></div> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="pagexv" name="pagexv"></a>Pg xv</span></p> +<h2>LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS</h2> + + + +<div class='center'> +<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="List of Illustrations"> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image01"><span class="smcap">Colonel John Nairne</span></a><br /> + (From the Oil Painting in the Manor House at Murray Bay.)</td> + <td align='left'>Frontispiece</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'></td> + <td align='right'>PAGE</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image03"><span class="smcap">Cap à l'Aigle From the West Shore of Murray Bay</span></a><br /> + (From the Water Colour by the late L.R. O'Brien, in the possession of the Hon. Edward Blake, K.C.)</td> + <td align='right'>6</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image04"><span class="smcap">View Across Murray Bay From the Cap à l'Aigle Shore</span></a><br /> + (From an Oil Painting by E. Wyly Grier, in the possession of the Hon. Edward Blake.)</td> + <td align='right'>21</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image05"><span class="smcap">General James Murray</span></a><br /> + (From an Oil Painting preserved in the General's Family.)</td> + <td align='right'>35</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image06"><span class="smcap">The Manor House at Murray Bay</span></a><br /> + (From amateur photographs.)</td> + <td align='right'>74</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image07"><span class="smcap">View from Pointe au Pic up Murray Bay</span></a><br /> + (From a Water Colour by the late L.R. O'Brien in the possession of the Hon. Edward Blake.)</td> + <td align='right'>102</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image09"><span class="smcap">The Golf Links at Murray Bay</span></a><br /> + (From a Photograph by W. Notman and Son, Montreal.)</td> + <td align='right'>237</td> +</tr> +</table></div> + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /> + +<h2>MAPS</h2> + +<div class='center'> +<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="Maps"> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image02"><span class="smcap">The St. Lawrence From Quebec to Murray Bay</span></a></td> + <td align='right'>1</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'><a href="#image08"><span class="smcap">Sketch Map of Lake Ontario and the River St. Lawrence to Illustrate the War of 1812-14</span></a></td> + <td align='right'>148</td> +</tr> +</table></div> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image02" name="image02"></a><a href="images/02large.jpg"> + <img src="images/02.jpg" + alt="THE ST. LAWRENCE FROM QUEBEC TO MURRAY BAY" + title="THE ST. LAWRENCE FROM QUEBEC TO MURRAY BAY" /></a> +</div> + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page1" name="page1"></a>Pg 1</span></p> +<h2>A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs</h2> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /> +<h2>CHAPTER I</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Founding of Malbaie</span></h3> + +<h4>The situation of Malbaie.—The physical features of +Malbaie.—Jacques Cartier at Malbaie.—Champlain at Malbaie.—The +first seigneur of Malbaie.—A new policy for settling Canada.—The +Sieur de Comporté, seigneur of Malbaie, sentenced to death in +France.—His career in Canada.—His plans for Malbaie.—Hazeur, +Seigneur of Malbaie.—Malbaie becomes a King's Post.—A Jesuit's +description of Malbaie in 1750.—The burning of Malbaie by the +British in 1759.</h4> + + +<p>If one is not in too great a hurry it is wise to take the steamer—not +the train—at Quebec and travel by it the eighty miles down the St. +Lawrence to Malbaie, or Murray Bay, as the English call it, somewhat +arrogantly rejecting the old French name used since the pioneer days of +Champlain. This means an early morning start and six or seven hours—the +steamers are not swift—on that great river. Only less than a mile apart +are its rugged banks at Quebec but, even then, they seem to contract the +mighty torrent of water flowing between them. Once past Quebec the river +broadens into a great basin, across which we see the head of the +beautiful Island of Orleans. We skirt, on the south side, the twenty +miles of the island's well wooded shore, dotted with the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page2" name="page2"></a>Pg 2</span> cottages of +the habitants, stretched irregularly along the winding road. Church +spires rise at intervals; the people are Catholic to a man. Once past +this island we begin to note changes. Hardly any longer is the St. +Lawrence a river; rather is it now an inlet of the sea; the water has +become salt; the air is fresher. So wide apart are the river's shores +that the cottages far away to the south seem only white specks.</p> + +<p>Hugging the north shore closely we draw in under towering Cap Tourmente, +fir-clad, rising nearly two thousand feet above us; a mighty obstacle it +has always been to communication by land on this side of the river. Soon +comes a great cleft in the mountains, and before us is Baie St. Paul, +opening up a wide vista to the interior. We are getting into the Malbaie +country for Isle aux Coudres, an island some six miles long, opposite +Baie St. Paul, was formerly linked with Malbaie under one missionary +priest. The north shore continues high and rugged. After passing Les +Eboulements, a picturesque village, far above us on the mountain side, +we round Cap aux Oies, in English, unromantically, Goose Cape, and, far +in front, lies a great headland, sloping down to the river in bold +curves. On this side of the headland we can see nestling in under the +cliff what, in the distance, seems only a tiny quay. It is the wharf of +Malbaie. The open water beyond it, stretching across to Cap à l'Aigle, +marks the mouth of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page3" name="page3"></a>Pg 3</span> the bay. The great river, now twelve miles broad, +with a surging tide, rising sometimes eighteen or twenty feet, has the +strength and majesty almost of Old Ocean himself.</p> + +<p>As we land we see nothing striking. There is just a long wharf with some +cottages clustered at the foot of the cliff. But when we have ascended +the short stretch of winding road that leads over the barrier of cliff +we discover the real beauties of Malbaie. Before us lies the bay's +semi-circle—perhaps five miles in extent; stretching far inland is a +broad valley, with sides sloping up to rounded fir-clad mountain tops. +It is the break in the mountains and the views up the valley that give +the place its peculiar beauty. When the tide is out the bay itself is +only a great stretch of brown sand, with many scattered boulders, and +gleaming silver pools of water. Looking down upon it, one sees a small +river winding across the waste of sand and rocks. It has risen in the +far upland three thousand feet above this level and has made an arduous +downward way, now by narrow gorges, more rarely across open spaces, +where it crawls lazily in the summer sunlight:—<i>les eaux mortes</i>, the +French Canadians call such stretches. It bursts at length through the +last barrier of mountains, a stream forty or fifty yards wide, and flows +noisily, for some ten miles, in successive rapids, down this valley, +here at last to mingle its brown waters with the ice-cold, steel-tinted, +St. Lawrence.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page4" name="page4"></a>Pg 4</span></p> + +<p>When the tide is in, the bay becomes a shallow arm of the great +river,—the sea, we call it. The French are better off than we; they +have the word "<i>fleuve</i>" for the St. Lawrence;—other streams are +"<i>rivières</i>." Almost daily, at high water, one may watch small schooners +which carry on the St. Lawrence trade head up the bay. They work in +close to shore, drop their anchors and wait for the tide to go out. It +leaves them high and dry, and tilted sometimes at an angle which +suggests that everything within must be topsy-turvy, until the vessel is +afloat again. With a strong wind blowing from the north-east the bay is +likely to be, at high tide, an extremely lively place for the mariner; a +fact which helps perhaps to explain the sinister French name of Malbaie. +The huge waves, coming with a sweep of many miles up the broad St. +Lawrence, hurl themselves on the west shore with surprising vehemence, +and work destruction to anything not well afloat in deep water, or +beyond the highest of high water marks. At such a time how many a +hapless small craft, left incautiously too near the shore, has been +hammered to pieces between waves and rocks!</p> + +<p>Tired wayfarers surveying this remote and lovely scene have fancied +themselves pioneers in something like a new world. In reality, here is +the oldest of old worlds, in which pigmy man is not even of yesterday, +but only of to-day. This majestic river, the mountains clothed in +perennial<span class="pagenum"><a id="page5" name="page5"></a>Pg 5</span> green, the blue and purple tints so delicate and transient as +the light changes, have occupied this scene for thousands of centuries. +No other part of our mother earth is more ancient. The Laurentian +Mountains reared their heads, it may be, long before life appeared +anywhere on this peopled earth; no fossil is found in all their huge +mass. In some mighty eruption of fire their strata have been strangely +twisted. Since then sea and river, frost and ice, have held high +carnival. Huge boulders, alien in formation to the rocks about them, +have been dropped high up on the mountain sides by mighty glaciers, and +lie to-day, a source of unfailing wonder to the unlearned as to how they +came to be there.</p> + +<p>Man appeared at last upon the scene; the Indian, and then, long after, +the European. In 1535, Jacques Cartier, the first European, as far as we +know, to ascend the St. Lawrence, creeping slowly from the Saguenay up +towards the Indian village of Stadacona, on the spot where now is +Quebec, must have noted the wide gap in the mountains which makes the +Malbaie valley. Not far from Malbaie, he saw the so-called "porpoises," +or white whales, (beluga, French, <i>marsouin</i>) that still disport +themselves in great numbers in these waters, come puffing to the surface +and writhe their whole length into view like miniature sea-serpents. +They have heads, Cartier says, with no very great accuracy, "of the +style of a grey<span class="pagenum"><a id="page6" name="page6"></a>Pg 6</span>hound," they are of spotless white and are found, he was +told (incorrectly) only here in all the world. He anchored at Isle aux +Coudres where he saw "an incalculable number of huge turtles." He +admired its great and fair trees, now gone, alas, and gave the island +its name—"the Isle of Hazel Nuts"—which we still use. For long years +after Cartier, Malbaie remained a resort of its native savages only. +Perhaps an occasional trader came to give these primitive people, in +exchange for their valuable furs, European commodities, generally of +little worth. In time the Europeans learned the great value of this +trade and of the land which offered it. So France determined to colonize +Canada and in 1608, when Champlain founded a tiny colony at Quebec, the +most Christian King had announced a resolution to hold the country. Ere +long Malbaie was to have a European owner.</p> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image03" name="image03"> + <img src="images/03.jpg" + alt="Cap à l'Aigle from the West Shore of Murray Bay" + title="Cap à l'Aigle from the West Shore of Murray Bay" /></a><br /> + <span class="caption"><span class="smcap">Cap à l'Aigle from the West Shore of Murray Bay</span><br /> +"A great headland sloping down to the river in bold curves."</span> +</div> + +<p>As Champlain went up from Tadousac to make his settlement of Quebec he +noted Malbaie as sufficiently spacious. But its many rocks, he thought, +made it unnavigable, except for the canoes of the Indians, whose light +craft of bark can surmount all kinds of difficulties. Perhaps Champlain +is a little severe on Malbaie which, when one knows how, is navigable +enough for coasting schooners, but his observations are natural for a +passing traveller. In the years after Quebec was founded no more can be +said of Mal<span class="pagenum"><a id="page7" name="page7"></a>Pg 7</span>baie than that it was on the route from Tadousac to Quebec +and must have been visited by many a vessel passing up to New France's +small capital on the edge of the wilderness. In the summer of 1629 the +occasional savages who haunted Malbaie might have seen an unwonted +spectacle. Three English ships, under Lewis Kirke, had passed up the +river and to him, Champlain, with a half-starved force of only sixteen +men, had been obliged to surrender Quebec. Kirke was taking his captives +down to Tadousac when, opposite Malbaie, he met a French ship coming to +the rescue. A tremendous cannonade followed, the first those ancient +hills had heard. It ended in disaster to France, and Kirke sailed on to +Tadousac with the French ship as a prize.</p> + +<p>When peace came France began more seriously the task of settling Canada. +Though inevitably Malbaie would soon be colonized, it was still very +difficult of access. A wide stretch of mountain and forest separated it +from Quebec; not for nearly two hundred years after Champlain's time was +a road built across this barrier. Moreover France's first years of rule +in Canada are marked by conspicuous failure in colonizing work. The +trading Company—the Company of New France or of "One Hundred +Associates"—to which the country was handed over in 1633, thought of +the fur trade, of fisheries, of profits—of anything rather than +settlement, and never lived up to its promises to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page8" name="page8"></a>Pg 8</span> bring in colonists. +It made huge grants of land with a very light heart. In 1653 a grant was +made of the seigniory of Malbaie to Jean Bourdon, Surveyor-General of +the Colony. But Bourdon seems not to have thought it worth while to make +any attempt to settle his seigniory and, apparently for lack of +settlement, the grant lapsed. Even the Company of New France treasured +some idea that would-be land owners in a colony had duties to perform.</p> + +<p>After thirty years France at length grew tired of the incompetence of +the Company and in 1663 made a radical change. The great Colbert was +already the guiding spirit in France and colonial plans he made his +special care. Louis XIV too was already dreaming of a great over-sea +Empire. The first step was to take over from the trading Company the +direct government of the colony. The next was to get the right men to do +the work in New France. An excellent start was made when, in 1665, Jean +Talon was sent out to Canada as Intendant. He had a genius for +organization. Though in rank below the Governor he, with the title of +Intendant, did the real work of ruling; the Governor discharged its +ceremonial functions. Talon had a policy. He wished to colonize, to +develop industry, to promote agriculture. In his capacious brain new and +progressive ideas were working. He brought in soldiers who became +settlers, among them the first real seigneur of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page9" name="page9"></a>Pg 9</span> Malbaie. An adequate +military force, the Carignan regiment, came out from France to awe into +submission the aggressive Iroquois, who long had made Montreal, and even +Quebec itself, unsafe by their sudden and blood-thirsty attacks. +Travelling by canoe and batteau the regiment went from Quebec up the +whole length of the St. Lawrence, landed on the south shore of Lake +Ontario, and marched into the Iroquois country. With amazement and +terror, those arrogant savages saw winding along their forest paths the +glittering array of France. Some of their villages were laid low by +fire. The French regiment had accomplished its task; with no spirit left +the Iroquois made peace.</p> + +<p>A good many officers of the Carignan regiment, with but slender +prospects in France, decided to stay in Canada and to this day their +names—Chambly, Verchères, Longueuil, Sorel, Berthier and others are +conspicuous in the geography of the Province of Quebec. Malbaie was +granted to a soldier of fortune, the Sieur de Comporté, who came to +Canada at this time, but apparently was not an officer of the Carignan +Regiment. His outlook at Malbaie cannot have been considered promising, +for Pierre Boucher, who in 1664 published an interesting account of New +France, declared the whole region between Baie St. Paul and the Saguenay +to be so rugged and mountainous as to make it unfit for civilized +habi<span class="pagenum"><a id="page10" name="page10"></a>Pg 10</span>tation. But Philippe Gaultier, Sieur de Comporté, was of the right +material to be a good colonist. Born in 1641 he was twenty-four years of +age when he came to Canada. Already he had had some stirring adventures, +one of which might well have proved grimly fatal had he not found a +refuge across the sea. Comporté, then serving as a volunteer in a +Company of Infantry led by his uncle, La Fouille, was involved in one of +the bloody brawls of the time that Richelieu had made such stern efforts +to suppress. The Company was in garrison at La Motte-Saint-Heray in +Poitou. On July 9th, 1665, one of its members, Lanoraye, came in with +the tale of an insult offered to the company by a civilian in the town. +Lanoraye had been marching through the streets with a drum beating, in +order to secure recruits, when one Bonneau, the local judge, attacked +him, and took away the drum. Lanoraye rushed to arouse his fellow +soldiers. When Comporté and half a dozen other hot-heads had listened to +his tale, they cried with one voice, "Let us go and demand the drum. He +must give it up." So at eight or nine o'clock at night they set out to +look for Bonneau. They came upon him unexpectedly in the streets of the +town. He was accompanied by seven or eight persons with whom he had +supped and all were armed with swords, pistols or other weapons. When +Lanoraye demanded the drum, Bonneau was defiant and told him to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page11" name="page11"></a>Pg 11</span> go away +or he should chastise him. The inevitable fight followed. Comporté, +whose own account we have, says that it lasted some time and the results +were fatal. Comporté declares that he himself struck no blows but the +fact remains that two of Bonneau's party were so severely wounded that +they died. Comporté and the rest of the Company soon went to Canada. In +their absence he and others were sentenced to death.</p> + +<p>In Canada he appears to have behaved himself. In France a simple +volunteer, in New France he became an important citizen. Talon trusted +him and made him Quarter-Master-General. In 1672 Comporté received an +enormous grant of land stretching along the St. Lawrence from Cap aux +Oies to Cap à l'Aigle, a distance of some eighteen miles, including +Malbaie and a good deal more. About the same time he married Marie +Bazire, daughter of one of the chief merchants in the colony, by whom he +had a numerous family. So eminently respectable was he that we find him +churchwarden at Quebec. In time he retired from trade, in which he had +engaged, and became a judge of the newly established Court of the +Prévôté at Quebec. This was not doing badly for a man under sentence of +death. But over him still hung this affair in France and, in 1680, he +petitioned the King to have the sentence annulled. For this petition he +secured the support of the families<span class="pagenum"><a id="page12" name="page12"></a>Pg 12</span> of the men killed in the quarrel +fifteen years earlier. In 1681 Louis XIV's pardon was registered with +solemn ceremonial at Quebec, and at last Comporté was no longer an +outlaw.</p> + +<p>He had plans to settle his great fief. Working in his brain no doubt +were dreams of a feudal domain, of a seigniorial chateau looking out +across the great river, of respectful tenants paying annual dues to +their lord in labour, kind, and money, of a parish church in which over +the seigniorial pew should be displayed his coat of arms. But if these +pictures inspired his fancy and cheered his spirit, they were never to +become realities. In 1687 he was, apparently, in need of money, and he +resolved to sell two-thirds of his interest in the seigniory of Malbaie. +The price was a pitiful 1000 livres, or some $200, and the purchasers +were François Hazeur, Pierre Soumande and Louis Marchand of Quebec, who +were henceforth to get two-thirds of the profits of the seigniory. Then, +in 1687, still young—he was only forty-six—Comporté died, as did also +his wife, leaving a young family apparently but ill provided for. His +name still survives at Malbaie. The portion of the village on the left +bank of the river above the bridge is called Comporté, and a lovely +little lake, nestling on the top of a mountain beyond the Grand Fond, +and unsurpassed for the excellence of its trout fishing, is called Lac à +Comporté; it may be that well-nigh<span class="pagenum"><a id="page13" name="page13"></a>Pg 13</span> two and a half centuries ago the +first seigneur of Malbaie followed an Indian trail to this lake and wet +a line in its brown and rippling waters.</p> + +<p>Comporté and his partners in the seigniory had planned great things. +They had begun the erection of a mill, an enterprise which Comporté's +heirs could not continue. So the guardian of the children determined to +sell at auction their third of the seigniory. The sale apparently took +place in Quebec in October, 1688. We have the record of the bids made. +Hazeur began with 410 livres; one Riverin offered 430 livres; after a +few other bids Hazeur raised his to 480 livres; then Riverin offered 490 +and finally the property was sold to Hazeur for 500 livres. Malbaie was +cheap enough; one third of a property more than one hundred and fifty +square miles in extent sold for about $100! In 1700 for a sum of 10,000 +livres ($2,000) Hazeur bought out all other interests in the seigniory +and became its sole owner. Its value had greatly improved in 22 years.</p> + +<p>Of Hazeur we know but little. He was a leading merchant at Quebec and +was interested in the fishing for "porpoises" or white whales. When he +died in 1708 he left money to the Seminary at Quebec on condition that +from this endowment, forever, two boys should be educated; for the +intervening two centuries the condition has been faithfully observed; +one knows not how many youths owe their start in life to the gift<span class="pagenum"><a id="page14" name="page14"></a>Pg 14</span> of +the former seigneur of Malbaie. There, however, no memory or tradition +of him survives. In his time some land was cleared. The saw mill and a +grist mill, begun by Comporté, were completed and stood, it seems, near +the mouth of the little river now known as the Fraser but then as the +Ruisseau à la Chute. Civilization had made at Malbaie an inroad on the +forest and was struggling to advance.</p> + +<p>On Hazeur's death in 1708 his two sons, both of them priests, inherited +Malbaie. Meanwhile the government developed a policy for the region. It +resolved to set aside, as a reserve, a vast domain stretching from the +Mingan seigniory below Tadousac westward to Les Eboulements, and +extending northward to Hudson Bay. The wealth of forest, lake, and +river, in this tract furnished abundant promise for the fur and other +trade of which the government was to have here a complete monopoly. +Malbaie was necessary to round out the territory and so the heirs of +Hazeur were invited to sell back the seigniory to the government. The +sale was completed in October, 1724, when the government of New France, +acting through M. Begon, the Intendant, for a sum of 20,000 livres +(about $4,000) found itself possessed of Malbaie "as if it had never +been granted," of a saw mill and a grist mill, of houses, stables and +barns, gardens and farm implements, grain, furniture, live stock, +cleared land, cut wood and all<span class="pagenum"><a id="page15" name="page15"></a>Pg 15</span> other products of human industry there +in evidence.<a name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a></p> + +<p>Within the reserve, in addition to Malbaie, were a number of trading +posts—Tadousac, Chicoutimi, Lake St. John, Mistassini, &c. In this +great tract the government expected to reap large profits from its +monopoly of trade with the Indians. Some of the fertile land was to be +used for farms which should produce food supplies for the posts. The +Intendant had sanguine hopes that the profit from trade and agriculture +would aid appreciably in meeting the expense of government. It was, we +may be well assured, an expectation never realized.</p> + +<p>We get a glimpse of Malbaie in 1750 as a King's post. There were two +farms, one called La Malbaie, the other La Comporté. The two farmers +were both in the King's service and, in the absence of other diversions, +quarrelled ceaselessly. The re<span class="pagenum"><a id="page16" name="page16"></a>Pg 16</span>gion, wrote the Jesuit Father Claude +Godefroi Coquart, who was sent, in 1750, to inspect the posts, is the +finest in the world. He reported, in particular, that the farm of +Malbaie had good soil, excellent facilities for raising cattle, and +other advantages. Only a very little land had been cleared, just enough +wheat being raised to supply the needs of the farmer and his assistants. +The place should be made more productive, M. Coquart goes on to say, and +the present farmer, Joseph Dufour, is just the man to do it. He is able +and intelligent and if only—and here we come to the inherent defect in +trying to do such pioneer work by paid officials who had no final +responsibility—he were offered better pay the farm could be made to +produce good results. The old quarrel with the farmer at La Comporté had +been settled; now the farmer of Malbaie was the superior officer, +rivalry had ceased, and all was peace.</p> + +<p>Coquart gives an estimate of the farming operations at Malbaie which is +of special interest as showing that, if the old régime in Canada did not +produce good results, it was not for lack of criticism. Better cattle +should be raised, he says; at Malbaie one does not see oxen as fine as +those at Beaupré, near Quebec, or on the south shore. The pigs too are +extremely small, the very fattest hardly weighing 180 pounds; in +contrast, at La Petite Rivière, above Baie St. Paul, the pigs are huge; +one could have good breeds without great<span class="pagenum"><a id="page17" name="page17"></a>Pg 17</span> expense; it costs no more to +feed them and [a truism] there would be more pork! Of sheep too hardly +fifty are kept at Malbaie through the winter; there should be two or +three hundred. From the two farms come yearly only thirty or forty pairs +of chickens.</p> + +<p>Father Coquart's census is as rigorous and unsparing of detail as the +Doomsday Book of William the Conqueror. He tells exactly what the +Malbaie farm can produce in a year; the record for the year of grace +1750 is "4 or 6 oxen; 25 sheep, 2 or 3 cows, 1200 pounds of pork, 1400 +to 1500 pounds of butter, one barrel of lard,"—certainly not much to +help a paternal government. The salmon fishery should be developed, says +Coquart. Now the farmers get their own supply and nothing more. Nets +should be used and great quantities of salmon might be salted down in +good seasons. Happily, conditions are mending. The previous farmer had +let things go to rack and ruin but now one sees neither thistles nor +black wheat; all the fences are in place. Joseph Dufour has a special +talent for making things profitable. If he can be induced to continue +his services, it will be a benefit to his employer. But he is not +contented. Last year he could not make it pay and wished to leave. +Nearly all his wages are used in the support of his family. He has three +grown-up daughters who help in carrying on the establishment, and a boy +for the stables. The best paid of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page18" name="page18"></a>Pg 18</span> these gets only 50 livres (about $10) +a year; she should get at least 80 livres, M. Coquart thinks. Dufour has +on the farm eight sheep of his own but even of these the King takes the +wool, and actually the farmer has had to pay for what wool his family +used. Surely he should be allowed to keep at least half the wool of his +own sheep! If it was the policy of the Crown to grant lands along the +river of Malbaie there are many people who would like those fertile +areas, but there is danger that they would trade with the Indians which +should be strictly forbidden. So runs M. Coquart's report. It was +rendered to one of the greatest rascals in New France, the Intendant +Bigot, but he was a rascal who did his official tasks with some +considerable degree of thoroughness and insight. He knew what were the +conditions at Malbaie even if he did not mend them.</p> + +<p>After 1750 the curtain falls again upon Malbaie and we see nothing +until, a few years later, the desolation of war has come, war that was +to bring to Canada, and, with it, to Malbaie, new masters of British +blood. After long mutterings the war broke out openly in 1756. In those +days the farmer at Malbaie who looked out, as we look out, upon the +mighty river would see great ships passing up and down. Some of them +differed from the merchant ships to which his eye was accustomed. They +stood high in the water. Ships came near the north shore in those days +and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page19" name="page19"></a>Pg 19</span> he could see grim black openings in their sides which meant cannon. +Already Britain had almost driven France from the sea and these French +ships, which ascended the St. Lawrence, were few. Then, in 1759, +happened what had been long-expected and talked about. Signal fires +blazed at night on both sides of the St. Lawrence to give the alarm, +when not French, but British ships, sailed up the river, a huge fleet. +They stopped at Tadousac and then slowly and cautiously filed past +Malbaie. On a summer day the crowd of white sails scattered on the +surface of the river made an animated scene. In wonder our farmer and +his helpers watched the ships silently advance to their goal. There were +39 men-of-war, 10 auxiliaries, 70 transports and a multitude of smaller +craft carrying some 27,000 men; it was the mightiest array Britain had +ever sent across the ocean. New France was doomed.</p> + +<p>The French fought bravely a campaign really hopeless. Montcalm massed +his chief force at Quebec and there awaited attack. In vain had he +appealed to France for further help; he was left unaided to struggle +with a foe who had command of the sea, whose fleet could pass up and +down before Quebec with the tide and keep the French guards for twenty +miles in constant nervous tension as to where a landing might be made. +Wolfe carried on his work relentlessly. He warned the Canadians that he +would ravage<span class="pagenum"><a id="page20" name="page20"></a>Pg 20</span> their villages if they did not remain neutral. Neutral it +was almost impossible for them to be for the French urged them in the +other direction. With stern rigour, Wolfe meted out to them his +punishment. He sent parties to burn houses and destroy crops and Malbaie +was not spared. On August 15th, 1759, Captain Gorham reported to Wolfe +that with 300 men, one half of them Rangers from the English colonies, +the other half Highlanders, he had devastated the north shore of the St. +Lawrence. The soldiers did their work thoroughly. From Baie St. Paul, +the last considerable village east of Quebec, they went on thirty miles +to Malbaie where they destroyed almost all of the houses. We do not know +whether the competent Dufour was still the farmer at Malbaie. But all +the fine pictures of better cattle, better pigs and sheep, better +farming, better fishing, ended with the applying of the British +soldiers' torch to the wooden buildings: much of the settlement went up +in smoke. Some of the cattle, pigs and sheep found their way perhaps to +Wolfe's commissariat. But a good many were left and no doubt they are +the ancestors of many of the cattle, sheep and pigs we see at Malbaie +still. This first visit of Americans and Highlanders to Malbaie has its +special interest. A few years later Highlanders came again, not to +destroy but to settle, and to become the ancestors of families that to +this day show their Highland<span class="pagenum"><a id="page21" name="page21"></a>Pg 21</span> origin in their names and in their +faces, but never a trace of it in their speech or in their customs.<a name="FNanchor_2_2" id="FNanchor_2_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> +The Americans were longer in coming back. But, after more than a hundred +years they, too, were to come again, not to destroy but in a very +literal sense to build; their many charming cottages now stretch along +the shore of the Bay that looks across to Cap à l'Aigle.</p> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image04" name="image04"> + <img src="images/04.jpg" + alt="View across Murray Bay from the Cap à l'Aigle Shore" + title="View across Murray Bay from the Cap à l'Aigle Shore" /></a><br /> + <span class="caption"><span class="smcap">View across Murray Bay from the Cap à l'Aigle Shore</span><br /> +(The farther point: Cap aux Oies, the nearer Pointe au Pic)</span> +</div> + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page22" name="page22"></a>Pg 22</span></p> +<h2>CHAPTER II</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Two Highland Seigneurs at Malbaie</span></h3> + +<h4>Pitt's use of the Highlanders in the Seven Years' War.—The origin +of Fraser's Highlanders.—The career of Lord Lovat.—Lovat's son +Simon Fraser and other Frasers at Quebec.—Malcolm Fraser and John +Nairne, future seigneurs at Malbaie.—The Highlanders and Wolfe's +victory.—The Highlanders in the winter of 1759-60.—Malcolm Fraser +on Murray's defeat in April, 1760.—The return of Canadian +seigneurs to France.—General Murray buys Canadian +seigniories.—Nairne and Fraser at Malbaie.—Their grants from +Murray.</h4> + + +<p>The great British fleet which has passed up beyond Malbaie to Quebec is +important for our tale. It carried men who have since become world +famous; not only Wolfe but Jervis, afterward Lord St. Vincent, Cook, the +great navigator, Guy Carleton, who saved Canada for Britain during the +American Revolution, and many others of lesser though still considerable +fame. But for Malbaie the most interesting men in that great array were +those connected with the 78th, or Fraser's, Highlanders. On the decks of +the British ships were hundreds of these brawny, bare-legged and kilted +sons of the north, speaking their native Gaelic, and on occasion +harangued by their officers in that tongue. A few years earlier many of +them had served under Prince Charles Stuart to over<span class="pagenum"><a id="page23" name="page23"></a>Pg 23</span>throw, if possible, +King George II, and the house of Hanover; now they were fighting for +that King against their old allies the French. Unreal in truth had been +the rising in behalf of the Stuarts. Scotland had no grievances: she did +not wish to dissolve the union with England, and if the tyranny of any +royal house troubled her it was that of the Stuarts, alien from most +Scots in both religious and political thought. But when, in 1745, some +of the chieftains called out their clansmen, loyalty made these heed the +summons, though half-heartedly. The same devotion was now given to the +house of Hanover. Years earlier Duncan Forbes of Culloden, one of the +noblest and wisest Scots of his age, had urged Walpole to call the +Highlanders to fight Britain's battles. The hint was not then taken but +later, Pitt, the greatest war minister Britain has ever had, revived +Forbes's plan. Some Highland regiments were formed. The Highland dress +that had been proscribed after Culloden as the brand of treason was now +given its place in Britain's battle array: ever since it has played +there its creditable part. Wolfe called his Highland companions in arms +the most manly lot of officers he had ever seen.</p> + +<p>The Highland regiment that came with Wolfe to Quebec was known as +Fraser's Highlanders because recruited chiefly from that ancient and +powerful Scottish clan. In the rising of 1745 the Frasers had supported +the Stuart cause and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page24" name="page24"></a>Pg 24</span> they suffered when that cause was lost. In 1747 +the head of the clan, Simon Fraser, Lord Lovat, an old man of 80, +perished on the scaffold for his treason. The details of Lovat's career +are amazing. In one aspect he was a wild, half barbarous Highland +chieftain, in another one of the polished gentlemen and courtiers of his +time. He was devoured by the ambition to be the most powerful man in +Scotland. In that age others, more reputable than Fraser, found it wise +to stand well with both royal houses, but he surpassed them all in +tortuous treachery. In the rising of 1715 he was on the Whig side; in +1745 he was forced at last to come out openly for the Stuarts. For +neither side did he really care: he was merely serving his own ends. +Considering his deeds it is a wonder that he so long escaped the +scaffold. When he was a young man a certain Baroness Lovat stood in the +way of his own claims to be the heir to the title of Lovat; so he +offered to marry this lady's daughter and thus end the dispute. When his +advances were refused he determined to use force and seized Lady Lovat's +residence, Castle Dounie, only to find that the young lady had been +spirited away. He resolved on the spot to marry her mother who was in +the castle. She was a widow of thirty-four, he a man of thirty, so the +disparity of age was not great. Stories of what happened vary, but it is +said that in the dead of night a clergyman was brought to Lady<span class="pagenum"><a id="page25" name="page25"></a>Pg 25</span> Lovat's +chamber and she was forced to go through the form of marriage, the +bag-pipes playing in the next room to drown her cries. The lady was +connected with the great house of Atholl who warred on Fraser with fire +and sword. Outlawed, he escaped to the Continent to survive for half a +century of intrigue and treason.</p> + +<p>Though profligate, cruel, treacherous and avaricious, so smooth was +Lovat's address, so profound his knowledge of Scotland, and so strong +his hold upon his own clansmen, that he always remained a man to be +reckoned with. Since he served on the Hanoverian side in 1715 George I +granted a pardon for his many offences; for his treason in 1745 George +II let him go to the block. His last days in London were like those of a +dying saint. He wrote to his son Simon Fraser, who led Fraser's +Highlanders at Quebec in 1759, a beautiful spiritual letter. To the +Major of the Tower he said he was going to Heaven where, he added, "very +few Majors go." He was gay on his last morning:—"I hope to be in heaven +by one o'clock or I should not be so merry now,"—and expressed his pity +for those who "must continue to crawl a little longer in this evil +world." He took what he called an eternal farewell from some of those +about him: "we shall not meet again in the same place; I am sure of +that." He practised kneeling at the block so that he might do it with +dignity on the scaffold. A great crowd assembled to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page26" name="page26"></a>Pg 26</span> witness his +execution and a platform fell killing several people. "The more +mischief, the better sport," said Lord Lovat grimly, but he wondered +that so many should come to see the taking off of his "old grey head." +He carefully felt the edge of the executioner's axe to make sure that it +was sharp.</p> + +<p>No doubt there was a touch of madness in Lord Lovat but the Fraser clan +was devoted to him. By his treason all his honours and estates were +forfeited. At the time his heir, Simon Fraser, only twenty-one years +old, was a prisoner in the Castle of Edinburgh, attainted for high +treason. But so good was his conduct that in 1750 he received a pardon. +Then, a penniless man, he was called to the Scottish Bar. But another +career was in store for him. Some years later when Pitt formed his +design to use the Highlanders in the Seven Years' War he made Simon +Fraser Colonel of a battalion, to be raised on the forfeited estates of +his family and from the clan of which he was head. Success was +instantaneous. Within a few weeks Fraser was at the head of some 1500 +men. They wore the Highland dress, with a sporran of badger's or otter's +skin and carried musket and broadsword; some of them wore a dirk at +their own cost. Among the officers were no less than five Simon +Frasers,<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> three or four each<span class="pagenum"><a id="page27" name="page27"></a>Pg 27</span> of Alexander Frasers and John Frasers, +and a good many other Frasers, among them a young Ensign, Malcolm +Fraser, destined to rule one of the seigniories at Malbaie for more than +half a century. Other Scottish names also appear, Macnabs, Chisholms, +Macleans, and among them John Nairne who, like Malcolm Fraser, spent the +best part of his life at Malbaie.</p> + +<p>The head of the Nairne clan, a John Nairne, third Baron Nairne, had +fought for the Stuarts in 1745. He died an exile in France. Of how close +kin to him was the young Highland Officer, John Nairne, who settled +later at Malbaie, we do not know. His family was of course Jacobite. In +"Waverley" Sir Walter Scott mentions a Miss Nairne with whom he says he +was acquainted, and this lady appears to have been one of the sisters of +Captain John Nairne. In 1745, as the Highland army rushed into +Edinburgh, Miss Nairne was standing with some ladies on a balcony, when +a shot, discharged by accident from a Highlander's musket, grazed her +forehead. "Thank God," she said, "that the accident happened to me whose +principles are known; had it befallen a Whig [the name then identified +with the anti-Jacobite party] they would have said it was done on +purpose."<a name="FNanchor_4_4" id="FNanchor_4_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> At Murray Bay there is still a miniature portrait of Prince +Charlie given it is said by himself to Miss Nairne.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page28" name="page28"></a>Pg 28</span></p> + +<p>Before fighting under Wolfe John Nairne had followed the Dutch flag. +Just before the rising of 1745, when a youth of only 17, he, like a +great many others of his countrymen, is found serving in the well known +"Scots Brigade"; many years later at Malbaie, he tells in his letters, +of old companions in this service with well known Scottish names—Bruce, +Maclean, Seton, Hepburn, Campbell, Dunbar, Dundass, Graham, and so on. +In the pay of Holland Nairne remained for some nine years. He made, he +says, "long voyages" possibly to the Dutch possessions in the far East. +But he was glad of the chance to serve his own land which came when +Britain, embarked upon the Seven Years' War, was anxious to recall her +banished sons and to find soldiers, Scots or of any other nationality, +who would fight her battles. So John Nairne left the Dutch service to +join the 78th Highlanders and henceforth his loyalty to the house of +Hanover was never questioned. From the first, since Scotland offered +only a poor prospect of a career, Nairne may have thought of remaining +in the new world when the war should end. The Highlander of that day, +like the Irishman, found better chances abroad than at home. Unlike +Nairne, Malcolm Fraser, a younger man, had not seen foreign service. The +two met for the first time when, in 1757, they both joined the 78th +Highlanders. Soon they became fast friends and for nearly half a century +they were to live in the closest relations.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page29" name="page29"></a>Pg 29</span></p> + +<p>Fraser's Highlanders had landed at Halifax in Nova Scotia in June, 1757. +Their dress seemed unsuited to both the severe winters and the hot +summers of North America and a change of costume was proposed; but +officers and men protested vehemently and no change was made. During the +campaigns in America the Highlanders boasted, not with entire truth as +we shall see, that they with their bare legs enjoyed better health than +those who wore breeches and warm clothing. At Louisbourg they did well. +At Quebec a Highland officer's knowledge of French proved a great boon. +When, in the darkness of the momentous morning of September 13th, 1759, +Wolfe's boats were drifting down with the tide close to the north shore +near Quebec, intending to land and scale the heights at what is now +Wolfe's Cove, a French sentry called out sharply from the bank, "<i>Qui +vive?</i>" A Highland officer, who had served in Holland, was able to reply +"<i>France!</i>" without betraying his nationality.</p> + +<p>"<i>A quel régiment?</i>" demanded the sentry.</p> + +<p>"<i>De la reine</i>," answered the Highlander, giving the name of a +well-known French regiment commanded by Bougainville; and then he added +in a low voice, "<i>Ne faites pas de bruit; ce sont les vivres</i>"—for a +convoy with provisions was expected by the French. The Highlanders were +at the forefront in the stiff climb up the heights which proved to be +Wolfe's master stroke. Mal<span class="pagenum"><a id="page30" name="page30"></a>Pg 30</span>colm Fraser has left his own account of that +morning's work. The troops, he says, had been in the boats since nine +o'clock on the previous night. At about twelve they had set out with a +falling tide and they landed just as day was breaking. The light +infantry struggled up the hill first, the French meanwhile firing on the +boats, killing and wounding some of the occupants; but "the main body of +our army soon got to the upper ground, after climbing a hill or rather a +precipice, of about three hundred yards, very steep and covered with +wood and brush." By ten the army was drawn up in order of battle,—"in a +masterly manner," John Nairne said later,—on the Plains of Abraham, the +bag-pipes of the Highlanders screaming a wild defiance to the foe. Then +followed that brief death grapple, fatal to the leader on each side. +Fraser and his Highlanders, we are told, rushed at the enemy with their +broadswords in such irresistible fury that they were driven with a +prodigious slaughter into the town. The Highlanders suffered as much +after the battle as in it, for General Murray led them to reconnoitre in +the direction of the General Hospital and a good many were shot by the +French from bushes and from houses in the suburbs of St. Louis and St. +John. To the French the Highlanders seemed especially ferocious, +possibly owing to the wild music of their pipes, their waving tartans, +their terrible broadswords, and perhaps, also, their<span class="pagenum"><a id="page31" name="page31"></a>Pg 31</span> partially naked +bodies. They were indeed christened "the savages of Europe."</p> + +<p>Not many days after Wolfe's victory the Highlanders marched into Quebec +with the victorious army. The French garrison was sent away to Europe, +the British fleet itself soon followed, and the conquerors, with General +Murray in command, settled down to face for the first time the rigours +of a winter at Quebec. The Highlanders suffered terribly. One suspects +that, in spite of their protests, the Highland costume was ill-suited to +meet the severity of the climate; and, in any case, the army was +ill-fed, ill-housed, and overworked. Malcolm Fraser kept a journal,<a name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> +but Nairne, the other future seigneur at Malbaie, the most methodical of +men, was less ready with the pen and appears to have made no chronicle +of those slow but momentous days. The bitter weather was the dread +enemy. Fraser tells how men on duty lost fingers and toes and some were +even deprived of speech and sensation in a few minutes through "the +incredible severity of the frost.... Our regiment in particular is in a +pitiful situation having no breeches. Nothing but the last necessity +obliged any man to go out of doors." Colonel Simon Fraser is, he adds, +doing his best to provide trousers. Pitying nuns observed the need and +soon busied themselves knitting long<span class="pagenum"><a id="page32" name="page32"></a>Pg 32</span> hose for the poor strangers. The +scurvy carried off a good many. In April, 1760, of 894 men in Fraser's +Highlanders not fewer than 580 were on the sick list and it was a wan +and woe-begone host that set itself grimly to the task of meeting the +assault on Quebec for which the French under Lévis had been preparing +throughout the winter.</p> + +<p>When it came on April 28th, 1760, the Highlanders were not wanting. +Instead of fighting behind Quebec's crazy walls Murray marched his men +out to the Plains of Abraham to meet the enemy in the open. On ground +half covered by snow, with here and there deep pools of water from the +heavy rain of the previous day, the two armies grappled in what was +sometimes a hand to hand conflict. Of the British one-third had come +from the hospital to take their places in the ranks. The proportion of +the Highlanders who did this was even greater; half of them rose on that +day from sick beds. It proved a dark day for Britain. Murray was +defeated, losing about one-third of his army on the field. Four of the +Highland officers were killed, twenty-three were wounded, among them +Colonel Simon Fraser himself. Malcolm Fraser was dangerously wounded; +but he tells us gleefully that within twenty days he was entirely cured. +Nairne seems to have gone through the fight without a hurt. It was +surely by a strange turn of fortune that men, some of whom fought +against George II in '45<span class="pagenum"><a id="page33" name="page33"></a>Pg 33</span> and had been condemned as traitors, should +fifteen years later shed their blood like water for the same sovereign. +Malcolm Fraser was disposed to be critical of Murray's tactics. He ought +to have stood like a wall on the rising ground near Quebec, says Fraser; +but "his passion for glory getting the better of his reason he ordered +the army to march out and attack the enemy ... in a situation the most +desired by them and [that] ought to be avoided by us as the Canadians +and Savages could be used against us to the greatest advantage in their +beloved ... element, woods." Nearly half a century later when Malcolm +Fraser was giving advice to a young officer, Nairne's son, he advised +him not to be too critical of the actions of his superiors. The +confident young diarist of 1760 had meanwhile learned reserve. But he +was not alone among the Highlanders in his criticism of Murray. A Murray +led at Culloden in April, 1746, as at Quebec in April, 1760. Lieutenant +Charles Stewart was wounded in both battles; as he lay in Quebec +surrounded by brother officers he said, "From April battles and Murray +generals, Good Lord deliver me." It is to General Murray's credit that, +when the remark was repeated to him, he called on his subordinate to +express the hope for better luck next time.</p> + +<p>A little later Quebec was saved by the arrival of a British fleet and +the French fell back on Montreal. Murray followed them but the +High<span class="pagenum"><a id="page34" name="page34"></a>Pg 34</span>landers remained in garrison at Quebec, apparently because, with +half the officers and men invalided, they could make but a poor muster +for active campaigning. It thus happened that Nairne and Fraser did not +share the glory of being present at the fall of Montreal. There, on a +September day in 1760, the Governor of Canada, the Marquis de Vaudreuil, +handed over to General Amherst, the Commander-in-Chief in America of the +armies of Great Britain, the vast territory which he had ruled. It was +not certain, albeit the great Pitt was resolved what to do, that, when +the war ended, the country would not be handed back to France. The +French officers professed, indeed, to believe that a peace was imminent +by which France should save what she held in America. Meanwhile, +however, they and their regiments were to be sent to France. The few +residents at Malbaie whom Captain Gorham had spared, looking out across +the river in October, 1760, saw it dotted with the white sails of many +ships outward bound. Though they floated the British flag, their decks +were crowded with the soldiers of France now carried home by the +triumphant conqueror.</p> + +<p>But more than the soldiers went back to France. Rather than live under +the sway of the British, many civilians also left Canada, among them +some of the seigneurs of Canadian manors. Land was cheap in Canada and +it is not to be wondered at that young British officers, seeking their +fortune,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page35" name="page35"></a>Pg 35</span> should have thought of settling in the country. A hundred +years earlier French officers of the Carignan Regiment had abandoned +their military careers to become Canadian seigneurs. In the end John +Nairne and Malcolm Fraser took up this project most warmly and in their +plan to get land they had the support of their commanding officer, +General Murray. Murrays, Nairnes and Frasers had all fought on the +Jacobite side in 1745; and we know how the Scots hold together.</p> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image05" name="image05"> + <img src="images/05.jpg" + alt="General James Murray" + title="General James Murray" /></a><br /> + <span class="caption"><span class="smcap">General James Murray</span></span> +</div> + +<p>James Murray, son of a Scottish peer, Lord Elibank, was himself still a +young man of only a little more than thirty,—a high-spirited, brave, +generous and impulsive officer. His family played some considerable part +in the life of the time and they were always suspected of Jacobite +leanings. Murray's brother, Lord Elibank, was a leader among the +Scottish wits of his day. Dr. Johnson's famous quip against the Scots +when he defined oatmeal as a food in England for horses and in Scotland +for men was met by Elibank's neat retort: "And where will you find such +horses and such men?" Another brother, Alexander, was a forerunner of +John Wilkes the radical; the cry of "Murray and Liberty" was heard in +London long before that of "Wilkes and Liberty." A third brother, George +became an admiral. General James Murray sometimes described himself as a +soldier of fortune. He was certainly not rich. Yet now when many of the +Canadian seigneurs sold their manors,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page36" name="page36"></a>Pg 36</span> in some way Murray was able to +purchase half a dozen of these vast estates. He bought that of Lauzon +opposite Quebec on which now stands the town of Levis and half a dozen +villages. He bought St. Jean and Sans-Bruit (now Belmont), near Quebec, +Rivière du Loup and Madawaska, on the lower St. Lawrence, and Foucault +on Lake Champlain.</p> + +<p>To Nairne and Fraser, brave young Scots, who had done good service, +Murray was specially attracted. Nairne, though only a lieutenant, till +1761, when he purchased a captaincy, was his junior by but a few years; +Lieutenant Malcolm Fraser was three years younger than Nairne. The young +men were seeking their fortunes but since they had very little money to +buy estates, as Murray did, they could not expect to get land in the +more settled parts of the country. For them Malbaie was a promising +field and in September, 1761, they went down to have a look at it. The +property was vested in the government, for which Murray could act. It +was not wholly untrodden wilderness, for some land was cleared and a +good deal of live stock still remained. The houses too had not been +entirely destroyed by Gorham's men. The war had not yet ended. It was +still uncertain whether Britain would hold Canada. But, for the moment, +there was little to do. It was possible that in Canada further +opportunities of military service would not be wanting. As<span class="pagenum"><a id="page37" name="page37"></a>Pg 37</span> seigneurs in +Canada the young officers would retain rank as gentlemen and would not +sink to the social level of mere cultivators of the soil. The experience +too of founding settlements in the Canadian wilderness had +compensations. Good sport was always to be had. They could pay at least +annual visits to Quebec for a few weeks, and were, perhaps, hardly more +remote from the cultivated world than some of the chieftains in their +own Scottish Highlands.</p> + +<p>The survey of Malbaie must have proved satisfactory. It is true, as the +young officers said, that there was an over-abundance of "mountains and +morasses," with good land scattered only here and there. But in their +formal proposals to Murray they made this fact the plea for the grant of +a larger area. Nairne apparently had greater resources than Fraser and, +being now a captain, was his senior in rank. He asked for the more +important tract lying west of the little river at Malbaie and stretching +to the seigniory of Les Eboulements, Fraser for that lying east of the +river and stretching some eighteen miles along the St. Lawrence to the +Rivière Noire. The grants were to extend for three leagues into the +interior. They were to be held under seigniorial tenure but Nairne asked +for 3000 acres of freehold and Fraser for 2000. They thus close their +petition to Murray: "This [request], if his Excellency is pleased to +grant, will make the proposers extremely happy,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page38" name="page38"></a>Pg 38</span> and they shall forever +retain the most grateful remembrance of his bounty; and [they] hope his +Excellency will be pleased in the grant to allow them to give the lands +to be granted such a name as may perpetuate their sense of his great +kindness to them." They got what they asked for. It may indeed be +doubted whether Murray had any right to allot huge areas of land in a +country which had not yet been ceded finally to Great Britain, but any +defects of title in this respect were corrected long after by new grants +under the great seal. As it was, Murray wrote on a sheet of ordinary +foolscap, still preserved at Murray Bay, a brief deed of the land<a name="FNanchor_6_6" id="FNanchor_6_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> +and, behold, the two young officers have become landed proprietors! To +their request for permission to use Murray's name, in grateful +remembrance of his kindness, he also assented. Nairne's seigniory was to +be called Murray's Bay and Fraser's Mount Murray. The grants were made +because "it is a national advantage and tends to promote the cultivation +of lands within the province to encourage His Majesty's natural-born +subjects settling within the same"; and the consideration was "the +faithful services" rendered by the two officers.</p> + +<p>A good deal of stock and farm implements remained at Malbaie and this +the new proprietors arranged to buy, giving in payment their promissory +notes, Nairne's for £85, 6s. 8d., currency and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page39" name="page39"></a>Pg 39</span> Fraser, who got only +one-third, his for £42, 13s. 4d. They seem to have had a good deal for +their money. There were a score and a half or so of cattle, four or five +horses, (one of them twenty-two years old), twenty sheep, fourteen pigs, +besides chickens and other living creatures. In addition there were +waggons and other farm appliances, most of them probably old and of +little use, though they must have helped to tide over the first +difficult days when everything would have to be provided.</p> + +<p>On getting his grant Nairne retired from the army on half pay, but +Fraser remained on active service for many years still. Thus Nairne was +the more continuously resident at Murray Bay and in its development he +played the greater part. Fraser's interests were divided, not only +between Murray Bay and the army, but also between Murray Bay and another +seigniory which he secured on the south side of the river at Rivière du +Loup and known as Fraserville. For us therefore the interest at Murray +Bay now centres chiefly in Nairne and his family.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page40" name="page40"></a>Pg 40</span></p> +<h2>CHAPTER III</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">John Nairne, Seigneur of Murray Bay</span></h3> + +<h4>Colonel Nairne's portrait.—His letters.—The first Scottish +settlers at Malbaie.—Nairne's finance.—His tasks.—The curé's +work.—The Scottish settlers and their French wives.—The Church +and Education.—Nairne's efforts to make Malbaie Protestant.—His +war on idleness.—The character of the habitant.—Fishing at +Malbaie.—Trade at Malbaie.—Farming at Malbaie.—Nairne's +marriage.—Career and death in India of Robert Nairne.—The Quebec +Act and its consequences for the habitant.</h4> + + +<p>In the dining room of the Manor House at Murray Bay Nairne's portrait +still hangs. It was painted, probably in Scotland, when he was an old +man, by an artist, to me unknown. The face is refined, showing +kindliness and gentleness in the lines of the mouth, and revealing the +"friendly honest man" that he aspired to be. His nose is big and in +spite of the prevailing gentleness of demeanour the thin lips, pressed +together, indicate some vigour of character. He has the watery eye of +old age and this takes away somewhat from the impression of energy. It +is not a clever face but honest, rather sad, and unmistakeably Scottish +in type. Nairne wears the red coat of the British officer and a wig in +the fashion of the time. The portrait might be one of a frequenter of +court functions in London rather than that of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page41" name="page41"></a>Pg 41</span> a hardy pioneer at Murray +Bay, who had carried on a stern battle with the wilderness.</p> + +<p>Nairne was a good letter writer. To his kin in Scotland he sent from the +beginning voluminous annual epistles. They are not such as we now write, +hurriedly scratched off in a few minutes. With abundant time at his +disposal Nairne could write what must have occupied many days. When +written, the letters were sometimes copied in a book almost as large as +an office ledger. It is well that this was done, for in this book is +preserved almost the sole record of the life at Murray Bay of a century +and a half ago. The pages are still fresh and the handwriting, while not +that of one much accustomed to use the pen, is clear and vigorous. The +zeal for copying letters was intermittent. There are gaps, covering many +years. Then, for a time, not only the letters sent, but those received, +are copied into the book. In the long winter evenings there was not much +to do. Malcolm Fraser, it is true, lived just across the river at the +neighbouring manor house. But Malcolm was more usually away than not. +Besides, as one grows older, there is no place like one's own fireside +of a winter evening. So our good seigneur read and dozed and wrote and +we are grateful that he has told us so much about past days.</p> + +<p>Nairne's first visit to Malbaie was, as we have seen, in the autumn of +1761, when he took pos<span class="pagenum"><a id="page42" name="page42"></a>Pg 42</span>session of his seigniory. Not until the following +year was the formal grant made by Murray. Long afterwards, in 1798, +writing to a friend, Hepburn, in Scotland, Nairne recalled his arrival +at his future home. "I came here first in 1761 with five soldiers [alas, +we do not know their names!] and procured some Canadian servants. One +small house contained us all for several years and [we] were separated +from every other people for about eighteen miles without any road." He +contrasts this with what he sees about him at the time of writing—a +parish with more than five hundred inhabitants, with one hundred men +capable of bearing arms, grist mills, fisheries, good houses and barns, +fertile fields, a priest, a chapel, and so on. The five soldiers of whom +Nairne speaks were no doubt men of the 78th Highlanders and ancestors of +a goodly portion of the population of Malbaie at the present time. +Perhaps some of them had fought at Culloden; certainly all fought at +Louisbourg and Quebec.</p> + +<p>In the first days at Murray Bay Nairne was in debt. In 1761, probably to +purchase his captaincy, he had incurred a considerable obligation to his +friend General Murray; where Murray got £400 to lend him is a mystery, +for he was himself always pressed for funds. With everything to do at +Murray Bay, mills to be built, roads to be opened, a manor house to be +constructed, it was not easy to get together any money; for years the +debt<span class="pagenum"><a id="page43" name="page43"></a>Pg 43</span> hung like a mill-stone round Nairne's neck. But he had always a +certain, if small, revenue in his half pay and, in time, he acquired, +chiefly by inheritance, what was, for that period in Canada, a +considerable fortune. In 1766, when Nairne was in Scotland, General +Murray, who had himself just arrived from Canada, wrote urgently to ask +for payment. Murray owed to a Mr. Ross £8,000 and could not borrow one +shilling in England on his estates in Canada; so he said "delay will be +a very terrible disappointment to me." But this disappointment he had to +bear. In 1770 the debt was still unpaid and may have remained so for +some years longer. Happily the friendship between the former comrades +was not impaired by their financial relations. Murray promised to put +Nairne in the way of being "very comfortable and easy" in Canada, if he +would follow his advice, but nothing came of his offer. For some years +after 1761 Nairne thought of returning to Scotland, whither ties of kin +drew him strongly. But his father's death in 1766 or 1767 helped to +weaken these ties. In any case Scotland offered no career and he must do +something to pay the debt to Murray and to provide for himself.</p> + +<p>Nairne's chief task as seigneur was to put settlers on his huge tract. +The seigneur, indeed, discharged functions similar to those of a modern +colonization company, but with differences that in some respects favour +the older system. Now-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page44" name="page44"></a>Pg 44</span>a-days the occupier buys the land and the +colonization company gets the best possible price for what it has to +sell; it can hold for a rise in value and, if it likes, can refuse to +sell at all. Nairne had no such powers. Under the law, if a reputable +person applied for land, he must let him have it. Settlers required no +capital to buy their land, and, as long as they paid their merely +nominal rent, they could not be disturbed in their holdings. The rent +amounted to about one cent an acre, and some twenty cents or a live +capon for each of the two or three arpents of frontage which a farm +would have. The rent charge was uniform and depended not upon the +quality of the land or upon the individual seigneur but upon what was +usual in the district; moreover, under the French law, no matter how +valuable the land became, the rent could not be increased and, though so +trifling, it was rarely required until the settler's farm had begun to +be productive. Sometimes in a single year Nairne would put as many as +twenty brawny young fellows on his land to hew out homes for themselves. +Each of them got a tract of about one hundred acres and, as the annual +rental received for a dozen farms would be hardly more than twenty +dollars, the seigneur reaped no great profit from his tenants. It was +only when a tenant sold a holding, that the seigneur secured any +considerable sum. To him then went one-twelfth of the price. The other +chief source of profit,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page45" name="page45"></a>Pg 45</span> as settlement increased, was from the +seigneur's mill. To it all the occupiers of his land must bring their +grain and pay a fixed charge for its grinding. In scattered settlements +the mill brought little profit and was a source of expense rather than +of income. But, as population increased, this "<i>droit de banalité</i>" +became valuable. The mill at Malbaie was, in time, very prosperous.</p> + +<p>In Canada the seigneur was not the oppressor of his people but rather +their watchful guardian. He planned roads and other improvements, +checked abuses, and enforced justice. At his side stood, usually, the +priest. The moment a parish was established a curé was entitled to the +tithe; near every manor house, the village church was sure to spring up. +Even when, as at Malbaie, the priest and the seigneur were not of the +same faith they were often fast friends. Nairne's relations were good +with the neighbouring curé, when, at length, Malbaie had a resident +priest. Each village would thus usually have at least two men of some +culture working together for its spiritual and temporal interests. Both +remained in touch with the outside world; the priest with his bishop at +Quebec, the seigneur with the representative there of the sovereign. +Upon each change of governor Nairne was required to appear at Quebec to +render fealty and homage. With head uncovered and wearing neither sword +nor spur he must kneel before the governor, and take oath<span class="pagenum"><a id="page46" name="page46"></a>Pg 46</span> on the +Gospels to be faithful to the king, to be party to nothing against his +interests, to perform all the duties required by the terms of his +holding, and, especially, to appear in arms to defend the province if +attacked. We find Nairne excused by General Haldimand in 1781 from +discharging this ceremony, but only because he was away on active +service.</p> + +<p>When Nairne settled at Murray Bay he was unmarried and so, no doubt, +were the soldiers he brought with him. Only after five or six years did +he himself find a wife but we may be sure that his men did not wait so +long. What more natural than that they should marry the French Canadian +servants of whom Nairne speaks? A visitor at Murray Bay is struck with +names like McNicol, Harvey, Blackburn, McLean, and one or two others +that have a decidedly North British ring. Some, if not all, are names of +one or other of the half dozen soldiers who settled at Murray Bay in +Nairne's time. There was no disbanding there of a regiment, as tradition +has it. In time the 78th Highlanders were disbanded, but certainly not +at Murray Bay, and, though hundreds of them remained in Canada, only a +few individual soldiers came to Nairne's settlement. Already when he +arrived French Canadians were there and from the first the community was +prevailingly French and Catholic. In 1784 when joined with Les +Eboulements and Isle aux Coudres under a single<span class="pagenum"><a id="page47" name="page47"></a>Pg 47</span> priest Malbaie already +had 65 communicants. As likely as not some even of the Highlanders were +Catholics. In any case their children became such and spoke French, the +tongue of their mothers; even Nairne's own children spoke only French +until they went to Quebec to school.</p> + +<p>When, from time to time, a missionary priest visited the place he +baptized children of Catholic and Protestant alike, including even the +children of the Protestant family in the manor house. The only religious +services that the people ever shared in were those of the Roman Catholic +Church. Nairne would have wished it otherwise. He held sturdy Protestant +views, and wished to bring in Protestant settlers. On one or more of his +visits to Scotland he made efforts to induce Scots to move to Canada. +But he met with no great success. A Scottish friend, Gilchrist, who had +visited Nairne at Murray Bay, writes, in 1775, to express hope that he +will not encourage French settlers who will rob him, who have +"disingenuous, lying, cheating, detestable dispositions," and are the +"banes of society." He adds, "I am glad you give me reason to believe +you are to carry over some industrious honest people from hence with +you. I am convinced 'twere easy by introducing a few such [to bring +about that] the dupes to the most foolish and absurd religion now in the +world might be warmed out and your quiet as well as interest established +from Point au Pique to the Lake."<a name="FNanchor_7_7" id="FNanchor_7_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a><span class="pagenum"><a id="page48" name="page48"></a>Pg 48</span> The Roman Catholic faith had more +vitality than Nairne's correspondent supposed. It was Protestantism that +should in time be "warmed out" of Murray Bay.</p> + +<p>To prevent this Nairne did what he could; for a long time he entertained +hopes not only that the Protestants at Murray Bay might be held to their +faith but also that the Roman Catholics would be led into the Protestant +fold. His chief complaint against the Roman Catholic Church was in +regard to education. There was woeful ignorance. Nairne was in command +of the local militia and he found that officers of militia, and even a +neighbouring seigneur, could not read. When Roman Catholic services were +held at Murray Bay, as they were regularly before he died, the tongue +was one that the people did not understand. At the services there was +nothing "but a few lighted candles, in defyance of the sun, and the +priest singing and reading Latin or Greek.... None of us understands a +word." He complains of "the greatest deficiency in preaching sentiments +of morality and virtue." Indeed, very few of the priests could preach or +say anything in public beyond the Latin mass. Nairne tried to secure +better means of educating his people. Probably earlier also, but +certainly in 1791, he was writing to the Anglican Bishop of Quebec to +help him to do something. He lives, he says, in "the most Northerly and, +I believe, the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page49" name="page49"></a>Pg 49</span> poorest parish on the Continent of America." The people +cannot read and have no literary amusement. Their idle days they spend +in drunkenness and debauchery and he wishes something done for them. Ten +years later Nairne is returning to the charge. There are five Protestant +families in the neighbourhood. They cannot even be baptized except by +the curé. They cannot get any Protestant instruction; so the Protestant +children are reared Roman Catholics. Nairne wished to have a Protestant +clergyman established at Murray Bay; he could make that place his +headquarters and carry on missionary work in the neighbouring parishes. +But the five Protestant families at Murray Bay soon became three, for +Nairne says, in 1801, that his and Colonel Fraser's families and one +other man, an Englishman, are the only remaining Protestants. He and +Fraser, he adds, are growing old and, in any case, it was doubtful +whether the Englishman would attend service.</p> + +<p>Yet Nairne still begged for a Protestant missionary. He desired most of +all a free school. The teacher should be, he says, French but able also +to preach in English; there was now no school at Murray Bay; a free +school and a church system which would release the people from paying +tithes could work wonders and, probably, most of the people would soon +become Protestants. Knowing the tenacity with which the French +Canadians<span class="pagenum"><a id="page50" name="page50"></a>Pg 50</span> have clung to their faith, it seems hardly likely that +Nairne's dreams would have been realized. At any rate nothing was done. +At that time there were hardly more than a dozen Anglican clergymen in +all Canada and the Bishop of Quebec had no one to spare to look after +the few scattered sheep at Murray Bay. On the other hand the rival +Church did not forget her own. Long before the British conquest +occasional services had been held at Malbaie and these were continued, +with some regularity, until a resident priest came in 1797. The visiting +priests worked hard. They were, Nairne says, "industrious in private to +confess the people, especially the women, which branch of their duty is +deemed most sacred and necessary." Against this tremendous power of the +confessional, Protestantism had nothing that could be called an opposing +influence. When a Protestant died he might not, of course, be buried in +the Roman Catholic burial ground. For these outcast dead Nairne set +aside a plot near his own house, where, still, under a little clump of +trees, their bones lie, neglected and forgotten. Not more than half a +dozen Protestants were ever buried there and this shows that even the +Protestant pioneers were few in number; hardly one of their children +remained outside the Roman Church.</p> + +<p>Nairne thought the Canadians not too prone to industry and he deplored +the multitude of re<span class="pagenum"><a id="page51" name="page51"></a>Pg 51</span>ligious holidays that gave an excuse for idleness. +In a year there were not less than forty, in addition to Sundays, and on +some of the holidays, such as that of the patron saint of the parish, +there were scenes of great disorder. Nairne wrote on the subject to the +Roman Catholic Bishop of Quebec asking him to take steps to ensure that +the people might come to think it not sinful but virtuous to work for +six days in the week. The Bishop promised consideration of the matter. +Already it had been under debate and in the end the Bishop gave orders +that labour might continue on most of the Church's festivals; that of +the patron saint of the parish was in time abolished. Nairne thus helped +to bring about a considerable industrial reform. But beyond this he +achieved little.</p> + +<p>The French Canadians, who occupied his vacant acres, have shown both a +marvellous tenacity for their own customs and also a fecundity that has +enabled people, numbering 60,000 at the time of the British conquest, to +multiply now to some 2,500,000, scattered over the United States and +Canada. To govern them has never been an easy problem. Nairne says that +the French officer, Bougainville, who had known the Canadians in many +campaigns, called them at Murray's table a brave and submissive people; +he thought they needed the strong hand of authority and added that he +was sure the British method of govern<span class="pagenum"><a id="page52" name="page52"></a>Pg 52</span>ment would soon spoil them. Under +the French régime they had had no gleam of political liberty. For twenty +years before the conquest France had exacted from them the fullest +possible measure of military service. The British ended this and brought +liberty. Its growth is sometimes so rapid as to be noxious, and, no +doubt, some of those who came to Nairne's domain gave him much trouble. +"No people," Nairne said of them, "stand more in awe of punishment when +convinced that there is power to inflict it, as none are so easily +spoiled as to be mutinous by indulgences." Some of them showed striking +intelligence: in 1784 we find Nairne recommending for appointment as +Notary one Malteste (no doubt the well-known name Maltais is a later +form) as a "remarkable honest, well-behaved countryman with more +education than is commonly to be found with one in his station." The +dwellers at Malbaie were for the most part a quiet people entirely +untouched by the movements of the outside world. "Nothing here," wrote +Nairne in 1798, "is considered of importance but producing food to +satisfy craving Stomachs, which the people of this cold and healthy +country remarkably possess, and to feed numbers of children.... They +have no other ambition or consideration whatever but simply to procure +food and raiment for themselves and their numerous families."</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page53" name="page53"></a>Pg 53</span></p> + +<p>They had a very clear idea of their rights. Nairne's grant conferred +upon him those of fishing and hunting. But the inhabitants declared that +when land was once granted, the seigneur lost all control over the +adjoining waters. Nairne wished, for instance, to prohibit the spearing +of salmon at night by the Canadians, with the aid of torches or +lanterns. But they had never been hampered by such restrictions and, +when Nairne tried to check them, they said that they would not be +hindered. It was in vain that he said "I had rather have no power at all +and no seigneurie at all [than] not to be able to keep up the rights of +it." When, in 1797, he ordered one Joseph Villeneuve to cease the +"flambeau" fishing at night, the fellow "roared and bellowed" and set +him at defiance; no less than twenty companions joined him in the +fishing. They would acknowledge no law nor restraint and seem to have +had <i>force majeure</i> on their side. It was not until long after that the +legislature at Quebec passed strict laws regulating the modes of +fishing.</p> + +<p>Whatever the limitations on the seigneur's authority he had the +undoubted right of control over fishing in rivers and lakes until the +adjacent lands were conceded to occupiers. It was important, therefore, +not to grant lands which carried with them the best fishing and Nairne's +ardent friend Gilchrist kept exhorting him from Scotland on this point. +"There is no place ... I would<span class="pagenum"><a id="page54" name="page54"></a>Pg 54</span> so willingly and happily pass life in," +he wrote, in 1775, "as in your Neighbourhood and often have I been +seized with the memory of your easy and uncontrolled way of rising, +lying, dancing, drinking, &c., at your habitation.... One hope ... I +wish to be well founded and that is that your Stewart, Factor or +Attorney, has not conceded any lands with the River in front from the +Rapides du Vieux Moulin. If otherwise, you have lost more than the +profits [which] all above Brassar's will yield in our lifetime. The +fishing in that part of the River is alone worth crossing the Atlantic."</p> + +<p>Over trade Nairne and Fraser tried to exercise some real control. Their +grants gave them no right to trade with the Indians and in reality no +authority over trade. But they were guardians of the law and took steps +to check traders from violating it. One Brassard, who lived up the +Murray River, seems to have been a frequent offender. It was easy to +debauch the Indians with drink and then to get their furs for very +little and the seigneurs needed always to be alert. In 1778 we find +Malcolm Fraser making with one Hugh Blackburn a bargain which outlines +what the seigneurs tried to do in regard to trade. Blackburn binds +himself in the sum of £200 to obey certain restrictions: he will not +attempt to debauch the Indians belonging to the King's Posts; in no +circumstances will he sell them liquor; nor<span class="pagenum"><a id="page55" name="page55"></a>Pg 55</span> will he sell liquor on +credit to anyone. He will obey the lawful orders of Nairne and Fraser +relative to the carrying on of his trade; he will pay his debts, and +will make others pay what they owe him, refusing them credit if accounts +are not paid within six months. In consideration of these pledges by +Blackburn Fraser guarantees his credit with the Quebec merchants. The +difficulty in regard to trade with the Indians settled itself by the +tragic remedy of their gradual extinction. In 1800 Nairne says that the +Micmacs, once a great nuisance, are now rarely seen.</p> + +<p>Nairne was a good farmer and his letters contain many references to +farming operations. At Murray Bay, he says, plowing goes on for seven +months in the year, from the middle of April to the middle of November. +But the Canadians do not plough well; they do not understand how to +preserve the crops when cut; and, on the whole, are backward in +agriculture. He himself preserved for a domain more land than he could +ever get cleared, for this clearing was heavy work. Some of the soil at +Murray Bay is very good. Gilchrist writes indeed to say that he has been +talking in Scotland about Nairne's land. "On my mentioning that you had +lime, without digging for it, it was acknowledged that you possessed all +the advantages possible and that anything might be done with ground such +as yours which is dry; and I verily believe would you thoroughly<span class="pagenum"><a id="page56" name="page56"></a>Pg 56</span> lime +your land you may keep it in crops as long as you please and have +prodigious returns." Good farming, he says, Nairne may have and he +should preserve good fishing; then Murray Bay will be perfect. "If I +have the pleasure of seeing your sisters, I'll represent Mal Bay as the +counterpart of Paradise before the fall." He adds some local +characterizations. "Catish will do for Eve, La Grange for Adam, and +Dufour for the Devil."</p> + +<p>Nairne was married in 1766 to Christiana Emery. Of her history I know +nothing, except that she was born in Edinburgh and married in Canada. +Soon after marriage Nairne paid a long visit to Scotland and there in +1767 the freedom of the borough of Sterling was conferred upon him. Mrs. +Nairne must have been considerably younger than her husband, for though +he lived to ripe old age, she survived him by twenty-six years, dying at +Murray Bay in 1828. Whether she brought any dowry I do not know; Nairne +certainly had had in mind the improvement of his position by marrying. +Nine children were born to them but three died in childhood of an +epidemic fever that broke out at Murray Bay in 1773 while Nairne was in +Scotland. A fourth child, Anne, died of consumption. Five children lived +to grow up—three daughters and two sons.</p> + +<p>Canada seemed so remote that it was not easy for Nairne to keep in touch +with his kin. The scattering of families, one of the penalties Imperial<span class="pagenum"><a id="page57" name="page57"></a>Pg 57</span> +Britain, with a world wide domain, imposes upon her sons, had taken +Nairne's brother Robert to India. At a time only ten years later than +Clive's great victory of Plassey, Britain's grasp on the country was, as +yet, by no means certain and India was amazingly remote; five years +usually elapsed between the sending of a letter to India from Canada and +the receipt of a reply! On January 5th, 1770, Robert Nairne writes from +Marlborough, India, acknowledging a letter from his brother John, only +recently received, dated April 21, 1767. The brothers discuss family +news and family plans, their old father's health, the desirability of +settling down at home in Scotland, the life each is living, remote from +that home. Though an officer, Robert engaged in trade and made some +money. "The Company's pay is hardly subsistence," he says, "and here we +have not, as on t'other side of India the spoils of plundered provinces +to grow fat on. I keep my health very well and if I want the +satisfaction, I am also free from many Anxietys, people are subject to +who are more in the glare of life." He was in a retired place, where +there were few people and perennial summer, with "no variety of seasons +nor of anything else." Time passes insensibly, he says; "in India years +are like months in Europe ... I write, read, walk and go in company the +same round nearly throughout the year. Here we have little company; yet +everyone wants to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page58" name="page58"></a>Pg 58</span> go to out settlements where they are quite alone. I +cannot account for it. Mal Bay is your out settlement. Do you like that +as well as Quebec?"</p> + +<p>Robert Nairne was something of a philosopher. "Have you ever so much +philosophy," he writes to the seigneur of Murray Bay in 1767, "as to +think everything that happens is for the best? I am so far of that mind +that content and discontent I think arises [<i>sic</i>] rather from the cast +of our own thoughts than from outward accidents and that there is nearly +an equal distribution of the means of happiness to all men, and that +they are the happiest that improve their means the most." He felt the +weariness of exile, the Scot's longing for his own land. "Certainly to a +person of a right tone of mind if there are enjoyments in life, it must +be in our own country amongst our friends and relations. With such +conditions the bare necessaries of life are better than riches without +them.... Death is but a limited absence and you and I are much in that +state with regard to our friends at home."</p> + +<p>It was not long before Robert Nairne's letters ceased altogether. In +1776, John Nairne received at Murray Bay the sad news that, in November +or December, 1774, his brother had been killed in a petty expedition +against some local tribesmen. A native chieftain had murdered, cooked +and eaten a rival who was friendly to the East India Company and Robert +Nairne with some natives, and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page59" name="page59"></a>Pg 59</span> only three Europeans, went up country, +through woods and bogs, to seize the offender. When there was fighting +his natives fled, and he was shot through the body. It was a pity, says +John Nairne's correspondent, Hepburn, to lose his life "in so silly a +manner." He would soon have been governor of Bencoolen and was in a way +to make "a great figure in life." Of his fortune of £6,000 John Nairne +received a part. Twenty-five years after his brother's death Nairne was +to get at Murray Bay similar news of the loss of his own son in distant +India. It has levied a heavy tribute of Britain's best blood.</p> + +<p>In 1774 Nairne again revisited Scotland. Though no politician, he must +have heard much about the Quebec Act, then before the Imperial +Parliament. The Governor of Canada, Sir Guy Carleton, after careful +consideration of the whole question, had reached the conclusion, not +belied by subsequent history, as far as the Province of Quebec is +concerned, that Canada would always be French and that, with some slight +modifications, the French system found there by Britain should be given +final and legal status under British supremacy. So the Quebec Act was +passed in 1774. While the British criminal law was introduced, the +French civil law, including the land system under which Nairne held +Murray Bay, was left unchanged. The Bill gave the Church the same +privileged position that it had enjoyed under<span class="pagenum"><a id="page60" name="page60"></a>Pg 60</span> Catholic sovereigns. The +tithe could be collected by legal process; taxation for church purposes +voted by the parochial authority called the <i>fabrique</i> was as compulsory +as civil taxes, unless the person taxed declared that he was not a Roman +Catholic; and the whole ecclesiastical system of New France was +supported and encouraged. The Bill caused much irritation in Protestant +New England, which saw some malicious design in the establishment of +Roman Catholicism on its borders. The Continental Congress of 1775 +denounced the Quebec Act, and even the Declaration of Independence has +something to say about it.</p> + +<p>It is obvious that Nairne disliked the Bill. His irrepressible friend, +Gilchrist, wrote giving a picture of its probable dire social results, +upsetting all domestic relations between the two races. The Bill, says +Gilchrist, "is the most pernicious [that] could have been devised. Judge +of the Fêtes now that the fools have got the sanction of the British +Parliament to their beggaring principles. It is not clear that your +Protestant servants will [even] be allowed to work upon their [the Roman +Catholic] idle days. What would you and I think on being told by these +black rascals [the priests are meant of course] that our people, I mean +Protestants, durst not obey our orders without a dispensation from +them?"</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page61" name="page61"></a>Pg 61</span></p> + +<p>The social consequences of the Quebec Act did not prove as revolutionary +as Nairne's animated correspondent feared. Less than is usually supposed +did the habitant like it since it placed him again under the priest's +and the seigneur's authority, suspended since the British conquest. To +the English colonies it added one to other causes of friction that boded +trouble to the British Empire. In the previous year the people of Boston +had defied Britain, by throwing into their harbour cargoes of tea upon +which the owners proposed to pay a hated duty, levied by outside +authority. The Quebec Act brought a final rupture a step nearer and at +last there was open war. "The colonists have brought things to a crisis +now, indeed;" wrote Gilchrist; "the consequences must be dreadful to +them soon and I am afraid in the end to our country." To Great Britain +indeed disastrous they were to be and soon the seigneur of Murray Bay +was busy with his share in preparing for the conflict.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page62" name="page62"></a>Pg 62</span></p> +<h2>CHAPTER IV</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">John Nairne in the American Revolution</span></h3> + +<h4>Nairne's work among the French Canadians.—He becomes Major of the +Royal Highland Emigrants.—Arnold's march through the wilderness to +Quebec.—Quebec during the Siege, 1775-76.—The habitants and the +Americans.—Montgomery's plans.—The assault on December 31st, +1775.—Malcolm Fraser gives the alarm in Quebec.—Montgomery's +death.—Arnold's attack.—Nairne's heroism.—Arnold's failure.—The +American fire-ship.—The arrival of a British fleet.—The retreat +of the Americans.—Nairne's later service in the War.—Isle aux +Noix and Carleton Island.—Sir John Johnson and the desolation of +New York.—Nairne and the American prisoners at Murray Bay.—Their +escape and capture.—Nairne and the Loyalists.—The end of the +War.—Nairne's retirement to Murray Bay.</h4> + + +<p>When war with the revolted colonies grew imminent, it was obvious that a +man of Nairne's experience in military matters would soon be needed. One +aim of the government was to keep the French Canadians quiet by +disarming their prejudices and impressing upon them their duty to George +III. From Quebec, on July 13th, 1775, Nairne was given instructions to +undertake this work for his district. Self-control and cool +persuasiveness fitted him for his task, he was told; his work would be +to visit all the parishes on the north shore,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page63" name="page63"></a>Pg 63</span> with the aim of winning +the loyal support of the French Canadians during the coming struggle. +Though fifteen years of tranquility under the mild British sway had made +the habitants prosperous and averse to war, it was still possible to get +from them useful military service, under the leadership of British +officers. Nairne was to tell them that the Americans would borrow their +dollars, take their provisions, pay for them only in worthless letters +of credit upon the Congress, and even make free with their lands. He was +to show, also, how bitterly the Protestant English colonies hated the +Roman Catholic faith of the Canadians. A British fleet, he was to add, +would soon arrive and, if the Canadians joined the revolt, the second +British conquest would be shorter and not quite so gentle as the first; +for "a fair and open enemy is a different thing from a rebel and a +traitor."</p> + +<p>Fifteen years earlier the Canadians had borne a heavy part in defending +their country against the British assailant; now they were to fight in +his interests. Whenever possible Nairne was to employ the same old +Captains of militia who had fought the battles of France against the +British; he was to make a roll of those fit to bear arms, and to report +the number of discharged soldiers in his district. To him were entrusted +commissions for Captains whom he might select; the inferior officers he +might also name. The Church aided his work as much as possible, the +Vicar-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page64" name="page64"></a>Pg 64</span>General sending to the priests instructions to this effect.</p> + +<p>On taking up his task Nairne found that at Murray Bay there were +thirty-two men between the ages of 16 and 55. When summoned to meet him +they were respectful, but showed fear of having to serve in the army and +pleaded that they were only a new settlement. Had there been, as is so +generally supposed, many disbanded soldiers among them we should have +had a different tale but, already, in 1775, most of the people at Murray +Bay were French. Neither they nor their neighbours showed any zeal for +the upholding of British rule in Canada. At Les Eboulements and Baie St. +Paul, whither Nairne went, the inhabitants were respectful, as at Murray +Bay, but also objected to military service. At Isle aux Coudres they +disregarded Nairne's summons to meet him, while at St. Anne de Beaupré +they made open manifestations of hostility.</p> + +<p>In the actual fighting, now imminent, Nairne was eager to take part, +and, on August 12th, he wrote to Sir Guy Carleton offering himself for +any service and applying for a vacant captaincy. On the 9th of September +he received an urgent summons to Quebec, and, from that time, for six or +seven years, he was engaged in the great fratricidal struggle.</p> + +<p>Again, in a time of crisis, Great Britain made special use of the +Highlanders. Many of those<span class="pagenum"><a id="page65" name="page65"></a>Pg 65</span> who had served during the conquest of Canada +had become settlers in the New World. Now at the call to arms some of +them—between one and two hundred—rallied again to fight Britain's +battles. They were formed into a regiment known as the Royal Highland +Emigrants. It was not a regular corps but was organized for this special +campaign only. Nairne's rank in the regular army was that of Captain; +now he was given the duty of Major, though this promotion was not yet +permanent. Malcolm Fraser served in the same corps as Captain and +Paymaster. The commanding officer, Colonel Allan McLean, was brave and +indefatigable and he and his Highlanders played a creditable part in the +work of saving Canada for Britain.</p> + +<p>When the American colonies saw that the war was inevitable they saw too +that Quebec was the key of the situation. Washington himself declared +that in favour of the holders of Quebec would the balance turn in the +great conflict. From the outset there was an eager desire to attack the +Canadian capital. Washington believed—with some truth, indeed,—that +its defences were ridiculous. He thought, too, that the Governor, Sir +Guy Carleton, had no money to buy even provisions, that the Canadians +were eager to throw off the yoke of Great Britain and to co-operate with +the revolted colonies, and that some even of the few regulars to be +found in Quebec<span class="pagenum"><a id="page66" name="page66"></a>Pg 66</span> would join the colonial army. To take Quebec seemed, +therefore, comparatively easy, and the task was undertaken by a man with +a sinister name for posterity as a traitor to the young republic, but a +vigorous and able officer,—Colonel Benedict Arnold. Wolfe's rôle Arnold +essayed to play and Wolfe's fame he fondly hoped would be his.</p> + +<p>A fundamental difference existed, however, between Arnold's task and +that of Wolfe. Wolfe's army had been carried to Quebec in ships; +Arnold's was to advance by land. He chose the shortest route to Quebec +from the New England seaboard. It lay through the untrodden wilderness +and its difficulties were terrible. Half of it was up the Kennebec river +along whose shallow upper reaches the men would have to drag their boats +on chill autumn days in water sometimes to their waists; then they must +take them over the steep watershed dividing the waters flowing northward +to the St. Lawrence from those flowing southward to the Atlantic. Even +when they embarked on the upper waters of the Chaudière, which flows +into the St. Lawrence near Quebec, the hardships were killing. The +numerous rapids and falls on that swift and turbulent river would wreck +their boats. At the time no fleet defended Quebec. If, instead of +advancing by this land route, the Americans had been able to bring, by +sea, an adequate force as Wolfe had done, the later<span class="pagenum"><a id="page67" name="page67"></a>Pg 67</span> history of Canada +might indeed have been different.</p> + +<p>Arnold set out in the middle of September with 1100 or 1200 men,—"the +very flower of the colonial youth" they have been called. Many were +hardy frontier men trained in Indian wars, who knew well the +difficulties of the wilderness. But now they were face to face with +something more difficult than they had ever before encountered. When one +Parson Emerson had committed the enterprise to the divine care in a +prayer that, tradition says, lasted for one hour and three-quarters, the +army began its struggle across the dreadful three hundred miles of +forest. The swollen rivers swept away much ammunition and food, until +upon the army settled down the horror of starvation. The boats proved to +be badly built; their crews were always wet and shivering. At night the +men had sometimes to gather on a narrow footing of dry land in the midst +of a swamp and huddled over a fire that at any moment rain might +extinguish. The cold became terrible. Many lay down by the trail to die. +When the journey was half over, Colonel Enos, deeming it useless to lead +the force farther amid such conditions, turned back. With him went some +hundreds of men; but Arnold held on grimly. He pushed ahead to get +succour for his starving force from the Canadian settlements near +Quebec. With a few boats and canoes his party committed<span class="pagenum"><a id="page68" name="page68"></a>Pg 68</span> themselves to +the Chaudière river. In two hours Arnold was swept down twenty miles, +steering as best he could through the rapids, and avoiding the rocks, in +the angry river. At one place all his boats and canoes were carried over +a fall and capsized, the occupants struggling to land. But this reckless +courage did wonders. By October 30th, after more than a month of +unspeakable hardship, Arnold had reached the borderland of civilization +in Canada, and was sending back provisions to his men. It is little +short of marvellous that at Point Levi on November 9th he could muster +six hundred men, five hundred of whom were fit for duty.</p> + +<p>The Canadians and Indians had been very friendly; without their aid the +greater part of Arnold's force would have perished. Even before Quebec +he was dependent on their kindly offices. Its defenders, among whom were +Nairne and Fraser, moved every boat to the north side of the St. +Lawrence; the frigate <i>Lizard</i> and the sloop-of-war <i>Hunter</i>, pigmy +representatives at Quebec of Britain's might upon the sea, lay near +Wolfe's Cove ready to attack him if he tried to cross. But the Indians +brought canoes and on the night of November 13th, silently and +unobserved, they carried Arnold's force across the river almost under +the bows of the ships watching for them. The Americans landed where +Wolfe had landed sixteen years earlier. On the morning of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page69" name="page69"></a>Pg 69</span> 14th, to +the surprise of Quebec's garrison, a body of Americans appeared on the +Plains of Abraham, not eight hundred yards from the walls, and gave +three loud huzzas. The British answered with three cheers and with the +more effective retort of cannon, loaded with grape and canister shot, +and the hardy pioneers of Arnold's attacking force retired.</p> + +<p>Quebec was not in a happy situation. Montreal had already fallen to the +Americans advancing by Lake Champlain, and to force the final surrender +of Canada General Montgomery was hurrying to join Arnold at Quebec. For +a time its defenders were uncertain whether Carleton himself, absent at +Montreal, had not fallen into the hands of the enemy. A miraculous +escape he indeed had. Leaving Montreal on a dark night, when the +Americans were already within the town, Carleton went in a skiff down +the river, both shores of which were already occupied by the enemy for +fifty miles below Montreal. At the narrows at Berthier their blazing +camp fires sent light far out over the surface of the water. Carleton's +party could hear the sentry's shout of "All's Well," and the barking of +dogs. But they let the boat float down with the current so that it might +look like drifting timber, and, when they could, impelled it silently +with their hands. At Three Rivers they thought themselves safe and +Carleton lay down in a house to sleep. But, while he was<span class="pagenum"><a id="page70" name="page70"></a>Pg 70</span> resting, some +American soldiers entered the house. His disguise as a peasant saved +him; he passed out unchecked. The skiff soon carried him to an armed +brig, the <i>Fell</i>, which lay at the foot of the Richelieu Rapids. He +hastened on to Quebec, which showed joy unspeakable when he arrived on +November 19th. Meanwhile Montgomery pursued his rival down the river and +on December 1st he joined Arnold before Quebec.</p> + +<p>Now the siege began in earnest. Carleton had 1800 men; Arnold and +Montgomery can hardly have had more than a thousand, and these were +badly equipped. For the Americans the prospects of success were, at no +time, very great, unless they could secure help from the Canadians. +This, indeed, was not wholly wanting. Montgomery's march along the north +shore of the St. Lawrence to Quebec was a veritable triumph. He promised +to the habitants liberty, freedom from heavy taxes, the abolition of the +seigneurs' rights and other good things. Some of the Canadians hoped +that, in joining the Americans, they were hastening the restoration of +France's power in Canada—an argument however of little weight with +many, who remembered grim days of hard service and starvation when, +without appreciation or reward, they had fought France's battle. The +habitants were, in truth, friendly enough to the Americans; but they +would not fight for them. The invaders tried to arouse the fear of the +peasantry<span class="pagenum"><a id="page71" name="page71"></a>Pg 71</span> by a tale that when the British caught sixty rebel Canadians, +they had hanged them over the ramparts of Quebec, without time even to +say "Lord, have mercy upon me," and had thrown their bodies to the dogs. +But this only made the habitants think it as well perhaps not to take +arms openly against such stern masters. The Church's weight was wholly +on the British side. Canadians who joined the rebel Americans died +without her last rites. Only one priest, M. de Lotbinière, a man, it is +said, of profligate character, espoused the cause of the invaders. For +doing so he was promised a bishopric: to see Puritan New Englanders +offering a bishopric in the Roman Catholic Church as a reward for +service, is not without its humour.</p> + +<p>As December wore on Montgomery grew eager to seize his prey. Carleton +sat unmoved behind his walls and allowed the enemy to invest the town. +He would hold no communication with the rebel army. When Montgomery sent +messengers to the gates, under a flag of truce, Carleton would not +receive them; the only message he would take, he said, would be an +appeal to the mercy of the King, against whom they were in rebellion. +Montgomery, too, showed for his foe lofty scorn, in words at least. On +December 15th in General Orders he spoke of "the wretched garrison" +posted behind the walls of Quebec, "consisting of sailors unacquainted +with the use of arms, of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page72" name="page72"></a>Pg 72</span> citizens incapable of the soldier's duty and +[a gibe at the corps in which Nairne served] a few miserable emigrants." +He went on to promise his troops that when they took Quebec "the effects +of the Governor, garrison, and of such as have been active in misleading +the inhabitants and distressing the friends of liberty" should be +equally divided among the victors. The opposing sides showed, in truth, +the bitterness and exasperation of family quarrels and abandoned the +usual courtesies of war. The Americans lay in wait to shoot sentries; +they fired on single persons walking on the ramparts. It was reported to +the British that Montgomery had said "he would dine in Quebec or in Hell +on Christmas"—gossip probably untrue, as a British diarist of the time +is fair enough to note, since it is not in accord with the dignity and +sobriety of Montgomery's character.</p> + +<p>He did what he could to make possible this Christmas festivity within +Quebec's walls. His men got together some five hundred scaling ladders. +Then heavy snow came and the defenders jeered at such preparations: "Can +they think it possible that they can approach the walls laden with +ladders, sinking to the middle every step in snow? Where shall we be +then? Shall we be looking on cross-armed?" The clear and inconceivably +cold weather was also one of Quebec's defences for, as one diarist puts +it, no man, after being exposed to it for ten minutes, could hold arms +in his half-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page73" name="page73"></a>Pg 73</span>frozen hands firmly enough to do any execution. But by +nothing short of death itself was Montgomery to be daunted; steadily he +made his plans to assault the town.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile Quebec was ready. Carleton ordered out of the town all who +could not assist to the best of their power in the defence. Some shammed +illness to escape their tasks. But this was the exception. Well-to-do +citizens worked zealously, took their share of sentry duty on the +bitterly cold nights, and submitted to the commands of officers in the +militia, their inferiors in education and fortune. On the loftiest point +of Cape Diamond Carleton erected a mast, thirty feet high, with a sentry +box at its top. From this he could command a bird's eye view of the +enemy's operations, to a point as distant as Ste. Foy Church. When one +of the besiegers asked a loyalist Canadian what the queer-looking object +on the pole really was he answered, "It is a wooden horse with a bundle +of hay before him." A second remark capped this one: "General Carleton +has said that he will not give up the town till the horse has ate all +the hay; and the General is a man of his word."</p> + +<p>Although Montgomery did not eat his Christmas dinner in Quebec a few +days later he was ready for an assault. The crisis came on the last day +of the year 1775. Early on that day, between four and five in the +morning, Captain Malcolm<span class="pagenum"><a id="page74" name="page74"></a>Pg 74</span> Fraser, in command of the main guard, was +going his rounds in Quebec when he saw a signal thrown by the enemy from +the heights outside the walls near Cape Diamond. Fraser knew at once +that it meant an attack. He sent word to the other guards in Quebec and +ordered the ringing of the alarm bell, and the drum-beat to arms. He +himself ran down St. Louis street, shouting to the guards to "Turn out" +as loudly and often as he could, and with such effect that he was heard +even by General Carleton, lodged at the Recollet convent. It was a +boisterous night and the elements themselves raged so fiercely that some +of the alarms were not heard. But, in time, all Quebec was aroused and +the guards stood at their posts.</p> + +<p>The alarm was completed when to its din was added the menacing sound of +cannon. The besiegers began to ply the town with shells, and those who +looked out over the ramparts could see in the darkness the flash of +guns. Soon began from behind ridges of snow, within eighty yards of the +walls of Cape Diamond, the patter of musketry. The Americans were +seeking to lead the defenders of Quebec to believe that an assault on +the walls of the Upper Town on the side of the Plains of Abraham was +imminent and to hold the defence to this point. In fact the real danger +was far away.</p> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image06" name="image06"></a> + <img src="images/06a.jpg" + alt="The Manor House at Murray Bay (from the West)" + title="The Manor House at Murray Bay (from the West)" /> +</div> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <img src="images/06b.jpg" + alt="The Manor House at Murray Bay (from the East)" + title="The Manor House at Murray Bay (from the East)." /><br /> + <span class="caption"><span class="smcap">The Manor House at Murray Bay</span><br /> +(The upper view from the West, the lower from the East)</span> +</div> + +<p>Montgomery's was a hazardous plan. He had resolved to try to seize the +Lower Town first and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page75" name="page75"></a>Pg 75</span> then to get his troops into the Upper Town by +way of the steep Mountain Street, thus taking the defenders of the walls +in the rear. It was a desperate venture, depending for its success +largely upon the surprise of the garrison which Malcolm Fraser's +thorough-going alarm had prevented. Montgomery himself, with a force of +several hundred men, marched to the Lower Town from Wolfe's Cove along +the narrow path under the cliffs, a distance of nearly two miles, with +progress impeded by darkness, by heavy snow-drifts, and by blocks of ice +which the tide had strewn along the shore. His men struggled on in the +dark hoping to surprise the post which guarded the road below Cape +Diamond at a point called Près de Ville. Here were some fifty defenders +and the tale of what happened is soon told. The guardians of the post +were on the alert, for at it, too, Malcolm Fraser's warning had been +effective. As Montgomery bravely advanced, at the head of his men, there +was a flash and a roar in the darkness and the blinding snow storm, and, +a moment after, Montgomery lay dead in the snow with a bullet through +his head. Two or three other officers were struck down. The British +heard groans and then there was silence. As daylight came they saw hands +and arms protruding from the snow, but only slowly did they realize that +the chief of their foes was killed.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page76" name="page76"></a>Pg 76</span></p> + +<p>Nairne was on duty elsewhere but he did not miss severe fighting. Arnold +was to advance on the Lower Town from the north-eastern suburb, St. +Roch's, to meet at the foot of Mountain Street Montgomery coming from +the west. At first he was more fortunate than Montgomery. When the +rocket from Cape Diamond went up he set out. The storm was frightful but +it served to conceal Arnold's force from Quebec's sentries. The +Americans passed under the height where stands the Hôtel Dieu. Here +Nairne was stationed with a small guard. They spied the Americans in the +darkness and kept up as effective a fire as the dim light permitted. But +the assailants were able to advance along the whole east side of Quebec +and to reach the entrance to the Sault au Matelot, a short and narrow +street opening into the steep Mountain Street, by which alone the Upper +Town could be reached. Here fortune favoured them for, apparently, in +spite of Fraser's alarm, they surprised the guard at the first barrier +by which the street was closed. The street itself they secured but when +they reached the second barrier at its farther end, commanding the road +to the Upper Town, it was well defended by an alert garrison. Arnold had +already been wounded and taken to the rear and Morgan, an intrepid +leader, was in command of the assailing force. Every moment he expected +that Montgomery would arrive to attack the second barrier on the Sault +au Matelot from the West as he attacked it from<span class="pagenum"><a id="page77" name="page77"></a>Pg 77</span> the East. But +Montgomery was dead and Morgan waited in vain.</p> + +<p>While the Americans were checked by the second barrier, Carleton was not +idle. There was an excellent chance to send a force out of the Palace +Gate near the Hôtel Dieu, by which the assailants had passed, and to +attack them in the rear. For this duty Colonel Caldwell was told off and +he took with him Nairne and his picket of about thirty men. The force +plodded through the deep snow in the tracks of the enemy who, about +daybreak, were astonished to find themselves shut in by British forces +at each end of the Sault au Matelot. A hand to hand fight followed. The +Americans took refuge in the houses of the street and it was the task of +the British to drive them out. In this Nairne distinguished himself. +"Major Nairne of the Royal Emigrants and M. Dambourges of the same corps +by their gallant behaviour attracted the attention of every body," +writes an English officer.<a name="FNanchor_8_8" id="FNanchor_8_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> By ladders, taken from the enemy, they +mounted to a window of one of the houses, from which came a destructive +fire, and at the point of the bayonet drove the foe out by the door into +the street. In the end, to the number of more than four hundred, the +Americans were forced to surrender. The casualties included thirty +killed and forty-two wounded. By eight o'clock all<span class="pagenum"><a id="page78" name="page78"></a>Pg 78</span> was over. "It was +the first time I ever happened to be so closely engaged," Nairne wrote +to his sister on May 14th, 1776, "as we were obliged to push our +bayonets. It is certainly a disagreeable necessity to be obliged to put +one another to death, especially those speaking the same language and +dressed in the same manner with ourselves.... These mad people had a +large piece of white linen or paper upon their foreheads with the words +"Liberty or Death" wrote upon it." Nairne's account is modest enough. +One would not gather from it that his own conspicuous courage had +obtained general recognition.<a name="FNanchor_9_9" id="FNanchor_9_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a></p> + +<p>Even with Montgomery killed, Arnold wounded, and quite one-quarter of +their force dead or captured, those grim men who wished "Liberty or +Death" had no thought of raising the siege. Ere long Arnold was again +active and, for four months longer, the Americans kept Carleton shut up +within Quebec. So deep lay the snow that to walk into the ditch from the +embrasures in the walls was easy; buried in the snow were the muzzles of +guns thirty feet from the bottom of the ditch. Sometimes Nairne was +actively engaged in scouting work. In February we find him leading a +party to take possession of the English burying ground in the suburbs; +on March 19th, he went out into the open from Cape Diamond to the +height<span class="pagenum"><a id="page79" name="page79"></a>Pg 79</span> overlooking the Anse de Mer. But nothing happened; a diarist +expresses, on April 21st, his contempt for the American attack by +writing: "Hitherto they have killed a boy, wounded a soldier, and broke +the leg of a turkey."<a name="FNanchor_10_10" id="FNanchor_10_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a></p> + +<p>The assailants were, in truth, impotent before the masterly inactivity +of Carleton, who waited patiently behind his walls for the arrival in +the spring of a British fleet. Counting upon this expectancy the +Americans tried an old-time ruse. Between nine and ten o'clock in the +evening of May 3rd, with the moon shining brightly and the tide flowing +in and nearly high, a ship under full sail came into view from the +direction of the Island of Orleans. With the wind behind her she swung +in at a good rate of speed. Those who watched were, for a moment, sure +that the long expected rescue had come. But, as she bore down to the +<i>cul de sac</i> where lay the shipping at Quebec, she made no response to +signals. At last, the British, after three vain efforts to draw a +response, warned her to reply or they should fire. When this threat was +carried out she was only some two hundred yards away. Then suddenly +flames burst out on the ship, followed by random explosions; a boat left +her side rowed very swiftly, and it was now apparent that she was sent +to burn, if possible, the British shipping. It must have been<span class="pagenum"><a id="page80" name="page80"></a>Pg 80</span> an +anxious moment when she was so near and heading straight for her prey. +But, showing a natural prudence, those who steered left her too soon +and, with no hand at the helm, her head came up quickly in the wind. By +this time all Quebec had been alarmed and, as attack from the landward +side was also expected, every man was soon at his post. The ship was a +striking sight as, with sails and rigging on fire, she drifted +helplessly before the town. When the tide turned she floated down, a +mass of fire, with explosions shaking her from time to time, to the +shallows off Beauport where she soon lay stranded, a blackened ruin of +half-burnt timbers.</p> + +<p>Quebec still waited for rescue, and not in vain. At day break, on the +6th of May, a frigate appeared round Point Levi. Again went forth the +cry of "A ship," "A ship." "The news," we are told, "soon reached every +pillow in town." Men half dressed rushed to the Grand Battery, which was +quickly crowded with spectators, who indulged in much shaking of hands, +and in the exchange of compliments, as the character of the ship became +clear. She was the British frigate <i>Surprise</i>, and, with much +difficulty, had forced her way, under full sail, through the great +fields of ice which still blocked the river. Following her closely were +the <i>Isis</i> and a sloop the <i>Martin</i>. Quebec went wild with joy. But +there was still serious business on hand. The <i>Surprise</i> brought a part +of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page81" name="page81"></a>Pg 81</span> 29th regiment and a good many marines. They were landed at once. +Carleton lost not a moment and, by twelve o'clock of the same day, the +gates of Quebec were thrown open and he marched out to attack the +Americans.</p> + +<p>It was only a thin red line that stretched across the Plains of Abraham. +But the Americans dared not face it. The newly arrived ships might, they +feared, carry a force up the river and cut off retreat; so, after some +desultory skirmishing, the investing army fled. It was now commanded by +General Wooster, for Arnold had gone to Montreal. The flight soon became +a panic. Arms, clothes, food, private letters and papers were thrown +away. Nairne was in command of a portion of the Highland Emigrants, who +were the vanguard of the British pursuing force, and was among the first +to occupy the American batteries. On that very ground he had fought, +victorious in 1759, woefully beaten in 1760; now, a victor again, he +helped to drive back a force, some of whose members had been his +companions in those earlier campaigns. That night the relieved British +slept secure in Quebec, while the bedraggled American force was making +its distressful way towards Montreal.</p> + +<p>Though the American army soon withdrew from Montreal and from Canada, +the war was still to drag on for many weary years. Throughout the whole +of it Nairne remained on active service.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page82" name="page82"></a>Pg 82</span> In September, 1776, we find +him in command of the garrison at Montreal. In 1777 he was sent to +command the post at Isle aux Noix which guarded the route into Canada by +way of Lake Champlain. Here Fraser was serving under him as Captain; the +two friends were usually together throughout the war. At Isle aux Noix +Nairne remained until June, 1779. We get glimpses from his letters of +the defects in the service at this time. There were involuntary evils, +such as scurvy, caused by want of fresh meat and vegetables, but +relieved by drinking a decoction of hemlock spruce. Moral evils there +were too, such as gambling and drunkenness; in 1778 the commanding +officer gave warning that he had heard of losses at play, and that those +taking part in such practises would be excluded from promotion.</p> + +<p>The British officers showed sometimes a fool-hardy recklessness. On +March 9th, 1778, one Lieutenant Mackinnon, with forty-five volunteers, +set out from Pointe au Fer, near Isle aux Noix, to surprise an American +post at Parsons' House, no less than sixty miles distant, and in the +heart of the enemy's country. A few days later two of the volunteers +returned with news that the attack had wholly failed, that six of the +party were killed and six wounded, and that Lieutenant Mackinnon and +four others were missing. So reckless an attack was bad enough and, in +the General Orders,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page83" name="page83"></a>Pg 83</span> it was condemned as "a presumptuous disregard of +military discipline"; only vigilance and watchfulness were required of +the picket at Pointe au Fer, so that the enemy might not invade the +province. At the incident the Commander-in-Chief was very angry. "I +never saw the General in such a passion in my life," wrote an officer to +Nairne. Mackinnon had surrounded the house in the darkness and both he +and his men, as far as is known, had done their best. Though wounded and +for a time missing, in the end Mackinnon got back crippled to Isle aux +Noix. But he had failed, and whispers soon began that he showed +cowardice in the attack; an absurd charge, as Nairne said, for he had +given proof of rather too much, than of too little, courage. The +accusation gave Nairne infinite trouble. The subalterns in the Royal +Highland Emigrants refused to do duty with Mackinnon, and General +Haldimand, who succeeded Carleton in the summer of 1778, would not take +the matter seriously enough to grant a Court Martial, that Mackinnon +might clear himself. For quite a year and a half the affair dragged on. +In the end, at a Court of Enquiry, Mackinnon was acquitted. Haldimand +told Nairne to rebuke the officers sternly for combining to subvert +authority, for disrespect to their superiors, and for refusing, on the +basis of futile reports and hearsays, to serve with Mackinnon. "I much +mistake his character," wrote Nairne of Mackinnon, "if<span class="pagenum"><a id="page84" name="page84"></a>Pg 84</span> he can ... be +prevented from calling one or two of those gentlemen to a severe +account."</p> + +<p>A part of Nairne's duty was to watch the French Canadians and check +sedition. In spite of the failure of Arnold's expedition many of them +were still favourable to the American cause. They harboured deserters in +the remoter parishes, gave protection and assistance to rebels, and +threw as many difficulties as possible in the path of loyalists. Nairne +found two men issuing papers from a printing press to foment sedition +and sent them down to Quebec to stand their trial for treason.</p> + +<p>From Isle aux Noix Nairne was sent, in the summer of 1779, with fifty of +his Royal Highland Emigrants, to command at Carleton Island, near +Kingston where Lake Ontario flows into the St. Lawrence; some +thirty-five years later his only surviving son held a military command +at the same place. Here there was much to do in strengthening the +fortifications and in keeping up communications with Niagara and other +points in the interior. The situation was not without its +embarrassments. Prisoners were sent in from Niagara and he had no prison +in which to keep them. For want of fresh meat and vegetables there was +much sickness. But the Indians were his greatest trial. Through him came +their supplies and, to hold them at all, he had sometimes to serve out +the rum for which such savages are<span class="pagenum"><a id="page85" name="page85"></a>Pg 85</span> always greedy. On July 4th, Nairne +made a speech to these Mississaga Indians and said pretty plainly what +he thought of them. Against the American scouts they had proved no +defence; at night they fired off guns in the neighbouring woods and +created false alarms, which prevented Nairne's men from getting their +proper sleep. "My men work hard in the day," he said, "and I will have +them to sleep sound at night," and he warned the Indians that he would +fire upon them if their noise disturbed him further. The savages, he +wrote to Haldimand, are "almost unbearable, greedy and importunate." +They behaved more like rebels than friends and their talk ended always +in the demand for rum, "the cause of all bad behaviour in Indians."</p> + +<p>On the remoter frontiers the war was ruthless beyond measure. Sir John +Johnson devastated the Mohawk valley, in the present State of New York, +and some of his prisoners were received at Carleton Island. Of this +inglorious warfare Haldimand's secretary, Captain Matthews, wrote to +Nairne a little later [17th June, 1780], "You will have heard that Sir +John Johnson has executed the purpose of his enterprise without the loss +of a man, having destroyed upwards of an hundred dwelling houses, barns, +mills, stock, &c., and brought off 150 Loyalists, besides Women and +Children." The worst outrages came from the Indian allies, of whom +Nairne thought so badly.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page86" name="page86"></a>Pg 86</span> From Niagara, on March 1st, 1779, Captain John +MacDonnell wrote to Nairne of the terrible massacre at Cherry Valley, on +the New York frontier, which excited horror throughout the colonies, and +did much to inflame the hatred of the Americans for England. Not, +however, the English but the Indians were really guilty. "There has +nothing appeared," wrote Captain MacDonnell, "on the theatre of the war +of near so tragical or rather barbarous a hue; the reflection never +represents itself to my view but when accompanyed with the greatest +horrors; both Sexes, young and old Tomahawked, Speared and Scalped +indiscriminately in the most inhuman and cruel manner. But that there +was all possible care and precaution taken to prevent them is +undenyable. Captain Butler, who had command of the expedition, was +indefatigable in his endeavours and exertions to restrain and mitigate +the fury and ferocity of the savages often at the risk of the Tomahawk +being made use of against himself as well as the Indian officers.... Out +of a hundred and seventy scalps three-fourths were those of Women and +Children." Butler's name is still looked upon in the United States as +that of a fiend incarnate, but the testimony of his fellow officer seems +to free him from blame for the worst of the horrors. Both sides were +bitter, but Nairne himself never shows any vehemence of passion.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page87" name="page87"></a>Pg 87</span> In his +view the war was a painful necessity, to be fought to the end without +anger.</p> + +<p>Late in 1779, Nairne was recalled from Carleton Island. He reached +Montreal on the 5th of December, and, two days later, secured leave of +absence to look after his private affairs. At this time General +Haldimand had matured a plan to take advantage of the remote position of +Murray Bay to confine there some of his American prisoners. At Murray +Bay they seemed particularly safe. There was as yet no road over Cap +Tourmente; in any case to go in the direction of Quebec would mean +seizure sooner or later; to go in the opposite direction would be to +perish in the wilderness; and the only outlet was by water across a +wintry river some twelve miles broad. On the 26th of January, 1780, +Haldimand wrote to Nairne at Murray Bay that he was to erect buildings +for rebel and other prisoners, and that, to do the work, some men were +being sent down; he was to employ in addition as many of the inhabitants +as he might think necessary.</p> + +<p>Nairne stayed on at Murray Bay in 1780 much longer than the two months +for which he had originally asked. A part of his duty was to watch that +American colony, so different in station and situation from the many +Americans who now visit the spot. As yet there were no barracks in which +to confine the poor fellows, and the climate of Murray Bay is not too +hospitable in winter.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page88" name="page88"></a>Pg 88</span> Some kind of rough quarters must have been +prepared for the prisoners, in the winter of 1779-80, and they were kept +busy in helping to build the houses intended for their occupation. They +seemed contented. One of them Nairne kept about his person. He knew +where everything was placed and all the men were used, Nairne says, in +the best manner he could think of. But liberty is sweet and they longed +for their own land. So, early in May, 1780, when the ice was out of the +river and there was a chance to get away, eight of them made a dash for +liberty.<a name="FNanchor_11_11" id="FNanchor_11_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> No doubt under cover of night, they stole a boat and put +out boldly into the great river across which, in so small a craft, few +ever venture, even in mild summer weather. Almost wonderful to relate, +they reached the south shore in safety. Nairne was uncertain whether +they had gone up, down, or across the river. He hurried to Tadousac, +crossed to Cacouna and then went up the south shore. At St. Roch he +found that the men, rowing a boat, had been seen to pass. On May 14th +this boat was found abandoned. On the 15th the men were seen on the +highway carrying their packs. We are almost sorry to learn that the poor +fellows were in the end captured and taken to Quebec. Nairne reported +the flight of these men on the 14th of May. Their example was contagious +for,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page89" name="page89"></a>Pg 89</span> on the 18th, while he was absent in their pursuit, four others +made off, found a small boat on the shore some nine miles from Malbaie, +and put out into the river, where their tiny craft was seen heading for +Kamouraska on the south shore. A few days later two others also escaped. +These had not courage to strike out into the river, and one of them was +caught at Baie St. Paul. Nairne offered a reward of four dollars for +each of the prisoners and probably all were taken. A sequel of the +incident was that a non-commissioned officer and eight men of the +Anhalt-Zerbst Regiment were sent to guard the remaining prisoners at +Murray Bay—a task apparently beyond Nairne's local militia. This guard +was, no doubt, composed of Germans; one wonders to what extent they +fraternized with the French Canadians. It is amusing to read that, when +one of them deserted, he was brought back by a habitant.</p> + +<p>In 1781 we find Nairne stationed at Verchères on the south side of the +St. Lawrence, nearly opposite Montreal. He was now in charge of the +expatriated Loyalists who had found refuge in that part of Canada. A +whole corps of them were billeted in the two parishes of Verchères and +Contrecœur—the officers chiefly at Contrecœur. They lived, of +course, in the cottages with the habitants. On December 16th, 1781, +Nairne writes to General Riedesel, a German officer who played a +conspicuous part on the British side in<span class="pagenum"><a id="page90" name="page90"></a>Pg 90</span> the Revolutionary war and was +now in command at Sorel, that the Canadians do not mind supplying +firewood for the loyalist officers but that they rather object to having +the same people quartered upon them for two years at a time. Though an +occasional officer had said that the Loyalists were not obedient, he +adds that they were quiet and orderly people. Some of them had large +families and must have crowded uncomfortably their involuntary hosts. +These colonial English living in the households of their old-time +enemies, the French Canadians, make a somewhat pathetic picture. We see +what domestic suffering the Revolutionary War involved. Some were very +old; one "genteel sort of woman," a widow, had four children, the +youngest but four months old; there was another whose husband had been +hanged at Saratoga as a spy. Very large sums passed through Nairne's +hands in behalf of the Loyalists. One account which he renders amounts +to about £20,000.<a name="FNanchor_12_12" id="FNanchor_12_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a></p> + +<p>Nairne's regiment, the Royal Highland Emigrants, had been put upon the +permanent establishment in 1779. Sometimes he complained that his own +promotion was slow; not until the spring of 1783 was he given the rank +of Lieutenant-Colonel. Having reached this goal he intended, as soon as +he decently could, to sell out and retire.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page91" name="page91"></a>Pg 91</span> Late in 1782 we find him +again in command at Isle aux Noix and not sure but that he may at any +time be surprised by the Americans. It seems odd that, though Cornwallis +had already surrendered at Yorktown, and the war was really over, Nairne +was still hoping for final victory for Great Britain; on February 8th, +1783, he writes: "It is to be hoped that affairs will at last take a +favourable turn to Great Britain; her cause is really a just one." In +fact preliminary articles of the most disastrous peace Great Britain has +ever made had already been signed.</p> + +<p>Nairne was now anxious to go home. But even in June, 1783, he could not +get leave of absence from Isle aux Noix for even a fortnight. Conditions +were still unsettled. American traders were now pressing into Canada but +Nairne sent back any that he caught; the cessation of arms was, he said, +no warrant as yet for commercial intercourse and many suspicious +characters were about. The troops from Europe were returning home. +General Riedesel, about to leave for Germany, wrote from Sorel on July +6th, 1783, a warm letter of thanks to Nairne for the attention, +readiness, and punctuality of his services. Not long after, in the same +year, Nairne was at last free. He now sold his commission, receiving for +it £3,000. With the sale he renounced all claim to half-pay, pension, or +other consideration for past services and the sum he received was, +therefore,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page92" name="page92"></a>Pg 92</span> no very great final reward for his long services. There had +been some competition for this commission and its final disposal throws +some light on promotion in the army under the purchase system. General +Haldimand insisted that Captain Matthews, who appears to have been his +relative, should get it, since the General "must provide for his own +family." At this time Malcolm Fraser too thought of selling out but he +made difficulties about terms and the opportunity passed; Fraser was, +indeed, to live to see recruiting service in the war of 1812. When the +war was over, Nairne hurried to Murray Bay and to the country life in +which he delighted, and in his correspondence we soon find him +discussing not high questions of national defence but the qualities of +"a well-bred bull calf" and of an improved plough. "I have more +satisfaction," he says, perhaps with a touch of irony, "in a country +life and [in] cultivating a farm than even [in] being employed as first +major of the Quebec militia." Henceforth his heart is wholly at Murray +Bay and in his interests there.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page93" name="page93"></a>Pg 93</span></p> +<h2>CHAPTER V</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Last Days of John Nairne</span></h3> + +<h4>Nairne's careful education of his children.—His son John enters +the army.—Nairne's counsels to his son.—John Nairne goes to +India.—His death.—Nairne's declining years.—His activities at +Murray Bay.—His income.—His daughter Christine and Quebec +society.—The isolation of Murray Bay in Winter.—Signals across +the river.—Nairne's reading.—His notes about current events.—The +fear of a French invasion of England.—Thoughts of flight from +Scotland to Murray Bay.—Nairne's last letter, April 20th, +1802.—His death and burial at Quebec.</h4> + + +<p>Colonel Nairne's life was troubled with many sorrows. In 1773, when he +was on a visit to Scotland, Malcolm Fraser had had the painful duty of +writing to tell him of the death of three of his infant children at +Murray Bay from a prevailing epidemic. His daughter, Anne, born in 1784, +was sent to Scotland to be educated. She contracted consumption and +after a prolonged illness died there in 1796. "This event gave me great +affliction," wrote Nairne, "she was always a most amiable child." There +now remained two sons and three daughters,<a name="FNanchor_13_13" id="FNanchor_13_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a> and Nairne may well<span class="pagenum"><a id="page94" name="page94"></a>Pg 94</span> have +been certain that his name would go down to an abundant posterity. One +of the chief interests of his life was their training and education. All +in turn were sent to Scotland for their chief schooling. The eldest son, +John, born in 1777, and his sister Christine, some three years older, +lived in Edinburgh with aunts who showed exhaustless kindness and +interest. Nairne was grateful, and writing from Malbaie on August 27th, +1791, he says: "[I] am glad of an opportunity, my dear Christine and +Jack, to remind you both in the strongest manner I am able of the +gratitude and assiduous Duty you owe to your Aunts and other Relations +for admitting you into their family and also for the attention they are +pleased to bestow on your education." Upon his children he imposes +indeed counsels of perfection not easy to fulfil; "Remember it's my +injunctions and absolute orders to you both to have always an obedient +temper to your superiors ... to receive every reprimand with submission +and attention as it can only be intended for your benefit in order to +give you a valuable character which of all things is the greatest +blessing both for this world and the next; besides you must consider +that you are never to indulge yourselves in any sort of indolence or +laziness but to rise early in the morning to be the more able to fulfil +your Duty.... As to you, Jack, I expect to see you a Gallant and +honourable fellow that will always scorn to tell<span class="pagenum"><a id="page95" name="page95"></a>Pg 95</span> the least lie in your +life. It was well done to answer Captain Fraser [Malcolm Fraser, a +Lieutenant in 1762, is still only a Captain in 1791!] with which he was +well pleased.... Both of you have I think improved in your writing which +gives me pleasure." He adds regretfully to Christine: "I cannot send you +a muff this year but perhaps I may do so next year." The letter closes +with a modest list of purchases to be sent out from Edinburgh for +Malbaie: "one piece of Calico for two gowns; one piece of calico for +children; three pieces of linen (for shirts), two of which coarse and +the other a little finer; one yard of cambrick; five yards of muslin +(for caps and Handkerchiefs); six yards of lace (for caps); twelve yards +of different ribbons, three pairs of worsted stockings and three pairs +of cotton stockings for myself."</p> + +<p>Jack was to follow a military career, and he entered the army when a +youth of sixteen or seventeen. His first active service was in the West +Indies, after war with revolutionary France broke out, and the dangers +of that climate gave his father some anxiety; all will be well, he +hopes, if Jack continues to take a certain "powder of the Jesuits' +Bark"; above all "the best rules are temperance and sobriety"; then "the +same gracious Power who protected me in many dangers through the course +of three Wars will also vouchsafe protection to you through this one." +In<span class="pagenum"><a id="page96" name="page96"></a>Pg 96</span> 1795, when Jack was only eighteen, his corps was back in England +and, through the influence of a distant relative, General Graeme, with +the Duke of York, Commander in Chief of the Army and all powerful in +days when promotion went avowedly by favour and purchase rather than by +merit, Jack secured a Lieutenancy in the 19th Regiment. His father was +delighted: "I wish you much joy with all my heart of your quick rise in +being at your age already a Lieutenant in an old Regiment whereas I was +past twenty-six years of age before I obtained a Lieutenancy in the +British service and that only in a young corps." At the time, with +Britain warring on the French Directory, service in Europe for Jack was +not unlikely, and was desired by Nairne. But in the end Jack's regiment +was ordered to India. Nairne was sorely disappointed, but writing to +Jack he laid down a great guiding principle: "we must suppose that +Providence orders everything aright and that, provided we are always +active and diligent in doing our duty, there is reason to be satisfied." +In view of what was to happen, his anxiety for the success of his son is +pathetic. He exhorts him in regard to every detail of conduct. He is to +avoid drink and gambling; to pay his accounts promptly; to be punctual +and scrupulously exact whenever duty or business is concerned. The +father is particularly anxious about his son's capacity to express +himself in good English and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page97" name="page97"></a>Pg 97</span> lays down the sound maxim that "writing a +correct and easy style is undoubtedly of all education the most +necessary and requisite." To acquire this he "ought to write and read a +great deal with intense labour, attention and application"; to write +several hours a day is not too much and to get time he must go to bed +early and rise early. It is wise to keep a grammar and dictionary always +at hand to correct possible errors. He should also translate from French +into English. The father himself undertakes the duty of the complete +letter writer, drawing up for Jack a model on which his letters may be +based. "In writing ordinary letters (as in conversation) a large scope +may be taken, as of News, all sorts of information, adventures, +descriptions, remarks, enquirys, compliments, &c., &c., but in a letter +upon business one is commonly confined only to what is necessary to be +said on the subject and to civilitys and politeness." Certainly Jack did +not lack admonition and when he does well his father writes that it +makes him "very happy." When in one letter Jack mentions the practise of +smoking his father is severe: "All our family have ever been temperate +not [practising] even the Debauchery of smoking tobacco, a nasty Dutch, +Damn'd custom, a forerunner of idleness and drunkenness; therefore Jack, +my lad, let us hear no more of your handling your Pipe, but handle well +your fuzee, your sword, your pen and your Books."</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page98" name="page98"></a>Pg 98</span></p> + +<p>Certainly the pictures sometimes drawn of the brutality, violent manners +and ignorance of the British officer at this period find no confirmation +in Nairne's monitions to his son, or in the account of his own military +experience which dates from the mid-eighteenth century. He says to Jack: +"Say your Prayers regularly to God Almighty and trust entirely to His +Will and Pleasure for your own preservation.... If you should happen to +be in an engagement attend to your men, encourage them to act with +spirit in such a manner as most effectually to destroy their +enemy's."<a name="FNanchor_14_14" id="FNanchor_14_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> When Jack is a little too free in his demands for money +the Colonel, writing on Nov. 22nd, 1795, tells him of his own +experience:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>I have done wrong in having given you so much money since you went +into the Army which might have served you almost without any pay +from the King and which by the bye I can little afford. You +obtained it easily; for which reason I suppose you have spent it +easily: you have no right to expect more than I had at your age yet +you seem to regard twenty pounds as I would have done twenty +shillings. But you must now understand that twenty pounds is a +considerable sum to my circumstances they being straitened for the +Rank and the family which I have to support; therefore I have to +inform you that you are to draw no more Bills upon Mr. Ker nor upon +me without first obtaining his or my consent in writing for so +doing. It is no disgrace nor does it hurt the service (but quite +the contrary) for every officer and soldier to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page99" name="page99"></a>Pg 99</span> live within the +limits of the pay which Government has thought proper to allow +them. They are thereby more led to temperance, to improve +themselves by study, to mind their duty and how best to promote the +service of their country. I served sixteen years as a subaltern +officer in the army, made long sea voyages with the Regiment, +furnished myself with sea stores, camp equipage and every other +necessary equipments [and] my Father nor any Relation during that +time was never [put to] one farthing's expense upon my account. +Altho' I sometimes lost money in the Recruiting service I repayed +it by stoppages from my pay, was always present with the men +whether in camp or in Garrison and punctually attending on my Duty. +I endeavoured to be in a good mess for my Dinner, drank small Beer +or Water when it was good; when the Water was bad qualified it with +a mixture of Wine or Ginger or Milk or Vinegar but no grog or +smoking tobacco. I was always an enemy to suppers, never engaged +myself in the Evenings, but on particular occasions or to be +Complaisant to Strangers. Nor [did I] ask Company to see me when on +Guard; nor show a Vanity to treat people. By which means I had a +great deal of quiet and sober time to myself, to read and to write, +&c., &c., especially as I always rose early in the Mornings. You +may believe also that I was always far from being concerned in any +sort of Gaming so as to risk losing any of my money or to have a +desire to gain any from others. By such a Conduct I received more +favour and regard sometimes from my Commanding officers even than I +thought I was entitled to.</p></div> + +<p>These monitions to Jack were written while his father was in Scotland in +1795. There they separated, the father to return to Canada with +Christine whose schooldays were now ended, Jack to go with his regiment +to India. In parting<span class="pagenum"><a id="page100" name="page100"></a>Pg 100</span> from his son the father pronounced a solemn +benediction: "that God may preserve you and assist you in following +always that which is good and virtuous shall ever be my most earnest +prayer." They never met again. Jack continued to draw rather freely upon +his father for funds, and Nairne wrote to the Colonel of the regiment to +ask for information about the young man. Before an answer came Scottish +relatives learned in 1800 of Jack's fate and wrote of it to Murray Bay. +A friend of the family in India had noticed in the newspaper that some +one was promoted to John Nairne's place. This led to enquiry, when it +was found that he had died in August, 1799. Not until six months after +his death, and then only in reply to the enquiry as to Jack's demands +for money, did his commanding officer write the following letter to +Colonel Nairne:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p><i>Colonel Dalrymple to Colonel Nairne</i></p> + +<p><i>From Columbo [India], 1st Feb., 1800.</i></p> + +<p>I received your letter dated October, 1798, but a short time ago +but too late, had there been any occasion to have spoken to your +son upon the subject it contained for, Poor fellow, it is with pain +I'm to inform you of his death. He died upon the 7th of August, +1799, in the Coimbalore country upon the return from the capture of +Seringapatam. Never did a young man die more regretted nor never +was an officer more beloved by his corps. He was an honour to his +profession. An involuntary tear starts in my eye on thus being +obliged to give you this painful information.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page101" name="page101"></a>Pg 101</span></p> + +<p>The cause of his having drawn for so much money from Bombay was +unfortunately his ship parted from us and they did not join at +Columbo for some months, where I understand he had been induced to +play by some designing people. But I assure you, from the moment he +joined here, his life was exemplary for all young men. He was +beloved by every description of people. From the very sudden way he +took the field and the very expensive mode of campaigning in this +country he was in debt to the paymaster. He was not singular; they +were all in the same predicament. The first division of the prize +money which was one thousand ster. Pagodas, about your hundred +pounds, will only clear him with the Regiment.</p></div> + +<p>Long before this letter arrived the news was known at Murray Bay. +Malcolm Fraser, the tried family friend, writes on September 1st, 1800, +that he has just discharged the most painful task of telling the sad +news to Jack's sister and companion, Christine, who was visiting in +Quebec. In his grief Nairne gives an exceeding bitter cry, "Lord, help +me. I shall lose all my children before I go myself." His sister +Magdalen wrote from Edinburgh on March 17th, 1800, to offer comfort and +to hope that he bears the trial "with Christian fortitude, and that God +will reward him by sparing those that remain to be a blessing to him," +Nairne's sisters now had with them in Edinburgh the two remaining +children, Tom and Mary, called "Polly." John is gone but Tom is left, +says the fond aunt, and to console Nairne she tells of Tom's virtues: +"Never was father blessed with a more promising<span class="pagenum"><a id="page102" name="page102"></a>Pg 102</span> son than our little +Tom, and though I used to dread he was too faultless and too good to +live, I would now persuade myself he is intended by Providence to +compensate you for the losses you have sustained." On Tom now centred +the hopes of the Nairne family.</p> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image07" name="image07"> + <img src="images/07.jpg" + alt="View from Pointe au Pic up Murray Bay" + title="View from Pointe au Pic up Murray Bay" /></a><br /> + <span class="caption"><span class="smcap">View from Pointe au Pic up Murray Bay</span></span> +</div> + +<p>The sands of Nairne's own life were running out. As he looked around him +he could see much to make his heart content. He was never unmindful of +the singular beauty of the place. "I wish I could send you a landscape +of this place," he wrote to a friend, John Clark, in 1798; "Was you here +your pencil might be employed in drawing a beautiful one which this Bay +affords, as the views and different objects are remarkably various and +entertaining." This is, no doubt, a mild account of the beauties of a +very striking scene, but the 18th century had not developed our +appreciation for nature. Nairne tells of his delight in tramping through +the woods, and over the mountains, with a gun on his shoulder. The +increase of settlement, and the burning of the woods, had driven the +wild animals farther back into the wilderness, but partridges and water +fowl were still abundant. There was salmon fishing almost at his door +and "Lake Nairne," the present Grand Lac, had famous trout fishing. The +thick woods, which at his coming extended all round the bay, were now +cleared away. Much land had been enclosed and brought under cultivation +and to do this had been<span class="pagenum"><a id="page103" name="page103"></a>Pg 103</span> a laborious and expensive task. Now he had +three farms of his own, each with a hundred acres of arable land and +with proper buildings. There was also a smaller farm for hay and +pasture. "I have been employed lately," he writes in 1798, "making paths +into our woods and marking the trees in straight lines thro' tracts of +pretty good land in order to encourage the young men to take lots of +land." He tells how the successive ridges, representing, no doubt, +different water levels in remote ages, were numbered. In the highest, +Number 7, the lakes are all situated; the elevated land was generally +the best but as yet settlement was chiefly in Flats 1, 2, and 3. His +great aim had always been to get people on the land and he denounced +obstacles put in their way. "For God's sake let them pitch away, and if +they have not good titles give them better." The Manor House had become +a warm and comfortable residence well finished and well furnished. In +1801 Nairne wrote to his sister, with some natural exultation, that +where he had at first found an untrodden wilderness were now order, +neatness, good buildings, a garden and plenty of flowers, fruits and +humming birds. In the winter one might often say "O, it's cold," but +means of warming oneself were always available. His wife had proved +always a useful helper and was indeed a motherly, practical woman, +beloved by the people. These came to pay their compliments on the first<span class="pagenum"><a id="page104" name="page104"></a>Pg 104</span> +day of the year, when there was much drinking of whiskey and eating of +cakes, all costing a pretty penny. There were 100 young men in the +parish composing a complete company of militia. The children grew up so +fast that he could not distinguish the half of them.</p> + +<p>On the commercial side also Murray Bay was developing. In 1800 a man +came through the district buying up wheat at "9 livers a Bushel," but +since the population was increasing very rapidly, and the people were +accustomed to eat a great deal of bread, there was not much wheat for +export. The total exports of all commodities amounted in 1800 to +£1500:—oil, timber, grain, oxen and a few furs being the chief items. +Oil was the most important product; it came from the "porpoise" fishery. +What Nairne calls a porpoise, is really the beluga, a small white whale. +The fishery is an ancient industry on the St. Lawrence.<a name="FNanchor_15_15" id="FNanchor_15_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> The creature +has become timid and is now not readily caught so that the industry +survives at only a few points. At Malbaie it has wholly ceased; but in +the summer of 1796 sixty-two porpoises were killed at "Pointe au Pique." +In the summer of 1800, which was hot and dry, no less than three hundred +were "catched." Malbaie must have had bustling activity on its shores +when such numbers of these huge creatures<span class="pagenum"><a id="page105" name="page105"></a>Pg 105</span> were taken in a single +season. We can picture the many fires necessary for boiling the blubber. +The oil of each beluga was worth £5 and the skin £1. Nairne's own share +in a single year from this source of revenue was £70, but even then the +industry was declining.</p> + +<p>We have Nairne's statement of income in 1798 and it indicates simple +living at Malbaie. We must remember that in addition, he had received a +number of bequests which brought in a considerable income and that he +had sold out of the army for £3000. Perhaps, too, 1798 was a bad year.</p> + +<div class='center'> +<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="Statement of Income"> +<tr> + <td align='left'>"Porpoise" fishery</td> + <td align='right'>£20</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Income from four farms at £20 each</td> + <td align='right'>80</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Profits from mills</td> + <td align='right'>20</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'></td> + <td align='left'>——</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'></td> + <td align='right'>£120</td> +</tr> +</table></div> + +<p>The rent from the land granted to the habitants was scarcely worth +reckoning, as the people paid nothing until the land was productive, a +condition that could apparently be postponed indefinitely. Since under +the seigniorial tenure, the farmers must use the seigneur's grist mill, +Nairne had his mill in operation and Fraser was building one in 1798. +Nairne had also one or more mills for sawing timber. "I hope there are a +great many loggs brought and to be brought to your and my saw mills," +Fraser wrote in 1797, but an income of only £20 a year from the mills<span class="pagenum"><a id="page106" name="page106"></a>Pg 106</span> +does not indicate any extortionate exercise of seigniorial rights.</p> + +<p>Already some of the city people were beginning to find Murray Bay a +delightful place in which to spend the summer. In 1799 Nairne writes to +a friend, Richard Dobie, in Montreal, that it is the best place in the +world for the recovery of strength. "You shall drink the best of wheys +and breathe the purest sea air in the world and, although luxuries will +be wanting, our friendship and the best things the place can afford to +you, I know, will make ample amends:"—a simple standard of living that +subsequent generations would do well to remember. In 1801 the manor +house must have been the scene of some gaiety for there and at Malcolm +Fraser's were half a score of visitors. Christine, Nairne's second +daughter, who preferred Quebec to the paternal roof, had come home for a +visit and other visitors were the Hon. G. Taschereau and his son, Mr. +Usburn, Mr. Masson, Mrs. Langan and Mrs. Bleakley, Fraser's daughters, +described as "rich ladies from Montreal," the last with three children. +No doubt they drove and walked, rowed and fished, much as people from +New York and Baltimore and Boston and Toronto and Montreal do still on +the same scene, when they are not pursuing golf balls. The coming of +people with more luxurious habits made improvements necessary and also, +Nairne says, increased the expense of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page107" name="page107"></a>Pg 107</span> living—a complaint that +successive generations have continued with justice to make.</p> + +<p>With Tom and Mary Nairne absent at school in Edinburgh, the family at +Murray Bay during Nairne's last days consisted of but four persons—of +himself and his wife and the two daughters Magdalen and Christine. +Christine, a fashionable young lady, disliked Murray Bay as a place of +residence, tolerated Quebec, but preferred Scotland where she had been +educated. "Christine does not like to stay at Murray Bay and Madie her +sister does not like to stay anywhere else," wrote Nairne in 1800. In +the manner of the eighteenth century he was extremely anxious that his +children should be "genteel". Christine's Quebec friends pleased him. "I +saw her dance at a ball at the Lieutenant-Governor's and she seemed at +no loss for Genteel partners but does not prepare to find one for life. +I am well pleased with her and do not in the least grudge her so long as +she is esteemed by the best company in the place." It was not easy to +find at Quebec proper accommodation for unmarried young women living +away from home. Nairne writes in August, 1797, that he and Christine +each paid $1.00 a day in Quebec where they lodged, although they mostly +dined and drank tea abroad. "The town gentry of Quebec are vastly +hospitable Civil and well-bred but no such a thing as an invitation to +stay in any of their houses." At length a Mr. Stewart<span class="pagenum"><a id="page108" name="page108"></a>Pg 108</span> opened his doors. +He must, Nairne wrote, be paid tactfully for the accommodation he +furnishes. Things went better when later Miss Mabane, the daughter of a +high official of the Government, kept Christine with her at Quebec all +the winter of 1799-1800; no doubt Christine was pleased when Miss Mabane +would not allow her to go to Murray Bay even for the summer. Her elder +sister, Madie, appears to have been hoydenish and somewhat uncongenial +to a young lady so determined to be "genteel."</p> + +<p>In the winter time communication with the outside world was almost +entirely suspended. In case of emergency it was possible indeed to pass +on snow shoes by Cap Tourmente, over which there was still no road, and +so reach Quebec by the north shore. But this was a severe journey to be +undertaken only for grave cause. Partly frozen over, and often with +great floes of ice sweeping up and down with the tide, the river was +dangerous; the south shore, lying so well in sight, was really very +remote. Yet news passed across the river. On February 12th, 1797, +Malcolm Fraser, who was on the south shore, found some means of sending +a letter to Nairne. Anxious to get word in return he planned a signal. +He said that on March 6th he would go to Kamouraska, just opposite +Murray Bay, and build a fire. If Nairne answered by one fire Fraser +would be satisfied that nothing unusual had hap<span class="pagenum"><a id="page109" name="page109"></a>Pg 109</span>pened; if two fires were +made he would understand that there was serious news and would wish as +soon as possible to learn details. Signalling across the St. Lawrence +attained a much higher development than is found in Fraser's crude plan. +Philippe Aubert de Gaspé tells how the people on the south shore could +read what had happened on the north shore from Cap Tourmente to Malbaie. +On St. John's eve, December 26th, the season of Christmas festivities, +there was a general illumination. Looking then across the river to a +line of blazing fires the news was easily understood. "At Les +Eboulements eleven adults have died since the autumn, three of whom were +in one house, that of Dufour. All are well at the Tremblays; but at +Bonneau's some one is ill. At Belairs a child is dead,"—and so on. The +key is simple enough. The situation of the fire would indicate the +family to which it related. A fire lighted and kept burning for a long +time meant good news; when a fire burned with a half smothered flame it +meant sickness; the sudden extinguishing of the fire was a sign of +death; as many times as it was extinguished so many were the deaths; a +large blaze meant an adult, a small one a child. Before the days of post +and telegraph these signals were used winter and summer; so great an +obstacle to communication was the mighty tide of the St. Lawrence.<a name="FNanchor_16_16" id="FNanchor_16_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a></p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page110" name="page110"></a>Pg 110</span></p> + +<p>At all seasons but especially in winter the news that reached Malbaie +was of a very fragmentary character. With his kin in Scotland Nairne +exchanged only an annual letter but since each side took time and pains +to prepare it, the letter told more, probably, than would a year's bulk +of our hurried epistles. Newspapers were few and dear and only at +intervals did any come. Books too were scarce. Occasionally Nairne notes +those that he thought of buying—St. Simon's "Memoirs;" an account of +the Court of Louis XIV; "A Comparative View of the State and Facultys of +Man with those of the Animal World;" "Elegant Extracts or Useful and +Entertaining passages in prose," a companion volume to a similar one in +poetry, and so on. He writes gratefully, in 1799, to a friend in Quebec, +who had sent newspapers and sermons, both of which remotely different +classes of literature had furnished "great entertainment." From Europe +he is receiving the volumes of the new edition of the Encyclopædia +Britannica, still on the shelves at Murray Bay, and is thankful that +they were not captured by the French. "The older I grow the fonder I am +of reading and that book is a great resource." Our degenerate age gets +little "entertainment" out of sermons and usually keeps an encyclopædia +strictly for "reference"; obviously Nairne read it.</p> + +<p>The old soldier watched and commented upon developments which were the +fruit of seed he<span class="pagenum"><a id="page111" name="page111"></a>Pg 111</span> himself had helped to sow. He had fought to win Canada +for Britain; he had fought to crush the American Revolution. By 1800 he +sees how great Canada may become and is convinced that yielding +independence to the United States has not proved very injurious to Great +Britain. Though, in a short time, the United States was to secure the +great West by purchasing Louisiana from France, when Nairne died it had +not done so and in 1800 he could say that the United States "are small +in comparison of the whole of North America. They are bounded upon all +sides and will be filled up with people in no very great number of +years. Our share of North America is yet unknown in its extent. +Enterprising people in quest of furs travel for years towards the north +and towards the west through vast countries of good soil uninhabited as +yet ... [except] for hunting, and watered with innumerable lakes and +rivers, stored with fish, besides every other convenience for the use of +man, and certainly destined to be filled with people in some future +time. We have only [now] heard of one named Mackenzie<a name="FNanchor_17_17" id="FNanchor_17_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> who is +reported to have been as far as the Southern Ocean (from Canada) across +this continent to the West."<span class="pagenum"><a id="page112" name="page112"></a>Pg 112</span> Long before Canada stretched from the +Atlantic to the Pacific Nairne was thus dreaming of what we now see.</p> + +<p>Of war, then raging, Nairne took a philosophic view. "War may be +necessary," he writes in 1798, "for some very Populous countrys as any +crop when too thick is the better of being thinned." But it occurred to +him that the problem of over-population in Europe might have been solved +in a less crude manner. "It is strange," he says, "that there should be +so much of the best part of the globe still unoccupied, where the foot +of man never trod, and in Europe such destruction of people. It is +however for some purpose we do not, as yet, comprehend." Those were the +days when Napoleon Bonaparte's star was rising and when, in defiance of +England, led by Pitt, he smote state after state which stood in the path +of his ambition. Nairne's friend and business agent James Ker, an +Edinburgh banker, was obviously no admirer of Pitt, for he writes on +July 20th, 1797, of the struggle with revolutionary France which, though +it was to endure for more than twenty years, had already, he thought, +lasted too long:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>After a four years' war undertaken for the attainment of objects +which were unattainable, in which we have been gradually deserted +by every one of our allies except Portugal, ... too weak to leave +us; and after a most shameless extravagance and Waste of the public +money which<span class="pagenum"><a id="page113" name="page113"></a>Pg 113</span> all feel severely by the imposition of new and +unthought of taxes, we have again sent an ambassador to France to +try to procure us Peace.... If our next crop be as bad as our two +last ones God knows what will become of us. If it were not for the +unexampled Bounty and Charity of the richer classes the Poor must +have literally starved, but we have been favoured with a very mild +winter.</p></div> + +<p>In 1798 when Napoleon led his forces to Egypt and disappeared from the +ken of Europe, Nairne hopes devoutly that "he has gone to the Devil, or, +which is much the same thing, among the Turks and Tartars where he and +his army may be destroyed." After Nelson succeeded in his attack on the +French fleet at the Battle of the Nile Nairne rejoices that his country +is supreme on the sea, "By ruling the waves she will rule the wealth of +the world not by plunder and conquest but by wisdom and commerce and +increasing riches everywhere to the happiness of mankind." On March +20th, 1801, when Austria had just made with France the Peace of +Lunéville, Ker writes again to Nairne:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>We live in the age of wonders, sudden changes and Revolutions. The +French have now completely turned the tables on us. They have +forced Austria to a disastrous peace and Russia, Prussia, Denmark +and Sweden from being our friends and Allies are now uniting with +our bitter foes for our destruction, so that from having almost all +Europe on our side against France we have now the contest to +support <i>alone</i> against her <i>and almost all Europe</i> and nothing +prevents the ambitious French Republic from being conquerors of the +world but our little Islands and our<span class="pagenum"><a id="page114" name="page114"></a>Pg 114</span> invincible fleets. +Notwithstanding all this we do not seem afraid of invasion and a +large fleet under Sir Hide Parker and Lord Nelson is preparing to +sail for the Baltic to bring the northern powers to a sense of +their duty, and to break in pieces the unnatural coalition with our +inveterate foes, the foes of Religion, Property, true Liberty, +which but for our strenuous efforts would soon nowhere exist on +this Globe.</p></div> + +<p>In spite of what Ker says as to no fear of invasion, such a fear grew +really very strong in 1801, and, for a brief period, it seemed as if +Murray Bay might become a refuge for Nairne's kindred in the distressed +mother land. One of his sisters writes in an undated letter:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>We are much obliged to you for the kind of reception you say we +should have met with at Mal Bay had we fled there from the French +and I do assure you ... it was for some time a very great comfort +and relief to think we had resources to trust to. I for one, I am +sure, was almost frightened out of my wits, for a visit from these +monsters, even the attempt, tho' they had been subdued after +landing, was fearsome. I suspect you might have had more of your +friends than your own family to have provided for. The Hepburns I +know turned their thoughts toward you and all of us determined to +work for our bread the best way we could. But you might have no +small addition to your settlers; some of us poor old creatures +would have settled heavy enough I fear upon yourself and family. It +is a fine place Mal Bay turned by your account. What a deal of +respectable company. I am glad of it on your account. A very great +piece of good fortune to get Col. Fraser so near; I wonder he does +not marry Maidy, but she will think him too old. I think Christine +may do a great<span class="pagenum"><a id="page115" name="page115"></a>Pg 115</span> deal worse than spend the summer if not more at Mal +Bay. You are most amazingly indulgent to her. I wish she would make +a grateful return by bestowing more of her company on her friends +at home in a situation it would appear so pleasant. But she is a +good kind-hearted Lassie after all and I suppose when she has got +her full swing of Quebec she will be very well pleased to return +home.</p></div> + +<p>A legislature now sat at Quebec, the result of the new Constitutional +Act passed in 1791, and Nairne might have become a member. Murray Bay +then formed a part of what, with little fitness, had been called by the +English conquerors the County of Northumberland, no doubt because it lay +in the far north of Canada as Northumberland lies in the far north of +England. Two members sat in the legislature for this county. "I never +had any idea of trying to be one of them," writes Nairne in 1800, "but +succeeded in procuring that honour for a friend Dr. Fisher, who resides +in Quebec. He is rich and much flattered with it and is ready on all +occasions to speak."</p> + +<p>To Nairne, contrary to a general impression, the climate of Canada did +not seem to grow milder as the land was cleared. In any case the blood +of old age runs less hotly. Formerly the winter had its delights of +hunting excursions but now, he writes, these are all over. "The passion +I had formerly for hunting and fishing and wandering through the woods +is abated.... What with the cold hand of old age my former Winter +excursions<span class="pagenum"><a id="page116" name="page116"></a>Pg 116</span> into the woods seem impossible and no more now of fishing +and hunting which formerly I esteemed so interesting a business." He +writes again: "My employment is more in the sedentary way than formerly +and what from calls in my own affairs and calls from people here in +theirs, accounts to settle, &c., [I have] ... plenty of occupation. +Besides being a Justice of the Peace and Colonel of Militia ... I employ +myself without doors in farming, gardening, clearing and manuring land." +If we may credit the words of Bishop Hubert of Quebec written just at +this time (in 1794) the new liberties gained by the habitants did not +make the seigneur's task easier. The good bishop makes sweeping charges +of general dishonesty; of attempts to defraud the church of her tithe +and the seigneurs of their dues; of bitter feuds between families and +innumerable law suits. In such conditions Nairne, as a justice of the +peace, would have his hands full.</p> + +<p>His end was drawing very near. One of his sisters died in 1798. This +brought sad thoughts but he wrote: "I am very thankful to have found in +the world connexions who have produced such regards and sympathys. Time +seems not to be going slowly now-a-days but running fast. I hope we are +to have other times and to know one another hereafter." "I must make +haste now," he wrote later, in 1801, "to finish all improvements here +that may be possible as I will soon be finished<span class="pagenum"><a id="page117" name="page117"></a>Pg 117</span> myself. Crushed already +under a load of years of 7 times 10 really I find the last 2 years ... +heavier than 20 before that time." "The scenes of this life," he had +written to his old friend and neighbour Malcolm Fraser "are continually +varying like the elements, sometimes cloudy, sometimes sun shine; [it] +never lasts long one way or the other till night soon comes and we must +then lie down and die. Therefore all is vanity and vexation of spirit, +but God will help us and most certainly some time or other bless and +reward the friendly honest man."</p> + +<p>His last letter to his Scottish relations was intended to be a farewell:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p><i>Colonel Nairne to his Sister Miss M. Nairne From Murray Bay, 20th +April, 1802.</i></p> + +<p>My Dear Madie,—</p> + +<p>I shall see our friends in the world of spirits probably before any +of you; whatever darkness we are in here I have always convinced +myself that we shall meet again in a better place hereafter.</p> + +<p>Although I have enjoyed good health till past 70 years of age, the +agues of Holland and sometimes excessive fatigue have probably +weakened parts of my inward machinery that they are now wore out +and must soon finish their functions. I can have no reason to +expect to live longer than our father; I am chiefly uneasy that the +event may occasion grief to my sisters, yet it ought to be less +felt my being at a distance; a poor affair to grieve when it must +be all your fates to follow. I am happy that Mr. Ker understands my +circumstances and my last will, and that he will be so good and so +able to assist in settling it<span class="pagenum"><a id="page118" name="page118"></a>Pg 118</span> properly; I wish to follow his ideas +therein in case of any difficulty, and I am likewise perfectly +satisfied with all Mr. Ker's accounts with me. I write this letter +to you to go by the first ship in case I should not be able to +write later; I do not expect to be able to write to Robie Hepburn +nor to Mr. Ker; nothing I can tell now from this country can +entertain them; my mind is taken up with nothing but the +Friendship, which they know.... So soon as the weather is warmer I +intend to go to Quebec in order to obtain the best advice: I shall +not personally be so conveniently situated there, as here. I am +able yet to go out as far as a bank before the Door and to walk +through the rooms; indeed the arrangements and conveniences of this +house with the attendance and attention I receive are all in the +best manner I can possibly desire; ... it's enough to say that were +you here I think you would approve of them. Industry and neatness +prevail and everything nesessary [is] foreseen and provided for. No +wonder my wife and I agree so well now these thirty-five years as +she happens to be equal in every moral attribute which I pretend +to.... We are in friendship with everybody, because we do justice +impartially and really without vanity have assisted many persons in +forming farms and providing for the support of familys; although +thereby not in the way of enriching ourselves it affords perhaps as +much Satisfaction.</p> + +<p>This place certainly thrives exceedingly; although we may by such +exertions be recommending ourselves to the Father of all things, +how poor they appear in my eyes having read lately the Newspapers. +Most unreasonable are some men in Parliament to find fault with the +ministry of Pitt and Dundass who have steered the Vessel of the +State so successfully through such dangerous times and threatening +appearances. Every Briton I think has reason to be proud of his +Country which is raised higher than ever before not only in +national Character but in its prospects of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page119" name="page119"></a>Pg 119</span> Commerce and Wealth by +the Peace [the brief Peace of Amiens signed in March, 1802]. What +prodigious honour and glory has been acquired and bestowed upon our +Army of Egypt, exertions indeed on the most conspicuous theatre of +the World and at the most conspicuous period of the world. We +formerly thought ourselves sort of heroes by conquering Louisbourg +and Quebec but nothing must be compared to that of Egypt.... The +French troops have fought much better under their D^iacal +Republican government than under their King's and our troops not +only fight equally well as formerly, but our Generals and Officers +are much better writers; never have I read better wrote letters +than those describing these renown'd events.</p> + +<p>But pray allow me to sink into poetry to help to fill up this +paper; ... let me transcribe a letter in verse which is handed me +now by an old Soldier residing near us.<a name="FNanchor_18_18" id="FNanchor_18_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> He received it from an +acquaintance of his who is only a private soldier in the 26th +Regiment. That Regt. is now gone home; ... should it be at +Edinburgh pray invite James Stevenson to a dram of Whiskey for my +sake; though I do not know the man we had served together in the +American War and he shows the idea the private men had of me and +how a man of a slender education (I believe from Glasgow) can make +verses. The Canadians here, I believe, have the same opinion though +they are very far from making verses upon any subject whatever; it +is much more useful here to cut down trees which they can do with +great dexterity.</p> + +<p>Quebec, 25th April, 1800.</p> + +<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"> +<span class="i4">My worthy conty, gude Jock Warren,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Thou's still jocose and ay auld farren,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Gentle and kind, blythe, frank and free,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">And always unco' gude to me.<br /></span><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page120" name="page120"></a>Pg 120</span></p> +<span class="i4">And now thou's sold thy country ware<br /></span> +<span class="i4">And towards hame mean to repair.<a name="FNanchor_19_19" id="FNanchor_19_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a><br /></span> +<span class="i4">Accept these lines although but weak<br /></span> +<span class="i4">And read them for thy Comrade's sake.<br /></span> +<span class="i4">May plenty still around thee smile<br /></span> +<span class="i4">And God's great help thy foes beguile,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">In Wisdom's path be sure to tread<br /></span> +<span class="i4">And her fair daughter Virtue wed.<br /></span> +<span class="i4">My compliments and love sincere<br /></span> +<span class="i4">To all our friends both here and there,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">But in particular to him<br /></span> +<span class="i4">That's tall in body, long in limb,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Auld faithful Loyal, Johny Nairne,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Lang may he count you his ain bairne;<br /></span> +<span class="i4">By his example still be sway'd;<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Be his good precepts still obeyed;<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Revere this good and worthy man<br /></span> +<span class="i4">And always do the best you can.<br /></span> +<span class="i4">This is my wish and expectation,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">God granting you and me salvation.<br /></span> +<span class="i4">We ance were young but now we're auld,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Oour blood from heat commences cauld,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">A drop of whiskey warms the whole,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Renews the body, cheers the soul;<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Observing still due moderation,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">In order to prevent vexation,<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Proceeding on with cautious care<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Till Death with his grim face appear;<br /></span> +<span class="i4">Then with a conscience, just and true<br /></span> +<span class="i4">See Heaven's Glory, in your View.<br /></span> +</div></div> + +<p>My neighbour, Mr. Fraser, tells me that by my looks and speaking he +cannot think me so ill as imagined. You<span class="pagenum"><a id="page121" name="page121"></a>Pg 121</span> will think the same by my +writing the above. My distemper is owing to Gravelly Ulcers and it +is a great chance at my time of life to recover, so [we] should be +prepared for the worst.</p> + +<p>It is a satisfaction to me to have been able to write this letter, +such as it is. My thoughts are every day and every night with my +sisters and [I] figure myself frequently at your fireside. Remember +I am not to write any more unless I get a great deal better. [I] +shall refer you to Christine to correspond and to tell you all you +would wish to know from this country. And now I have nothing but +Compts. and love to send to all my friends—to Robie Hepburn as my +oldest and nearest my heart—my blessings to his family, as to the +Kers and Congaltons. And once more to Anny you and Mary and Mrs. +Ker and my Polly and Tom. God bless you all. I am truly my dear +Madie with much affection,</p> + +<p>Yours for aye,</p> + +<p><span class="smcap">John Nairne</span>.</p></div> + +<p>Nairne was not mistaken in his view that the end was near. He writes +about this time to his physician at Quebec (there was no practitioner at +Murray Bay) describing his symptoms and ends: "Now, dear Doctor, I dare +say you think some apologies necessary for my troubling you so +particularly with the complaints of an old man of 71, as his inward +machinery is probably wore out and irreparable." In a last vain hope +they took him to Quebec for medical care. But the machinery was, indeed, +"wore out," and at Quebec, on July 14th, 1802, he closed his eyes on a +world which, though it brought him labour and sorrow, he thought to be +very good.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page122" name="page122"></a>Pg 122</span></p> + +<p>Among his own letters is preserved the printed invitation to his +funeral:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>Quebec, <i>Wednesday, 14th July, 1802.</i></p> + +<p>Sir,—</p> + +<p>The favour of your company is requested to attend the Funeral of +the late Colonel Nairne, from No. 1 Grison Street, on Cape Diamond, +to the place of interment, on Friday next at one o'clock in the +afternoon.</p></div> + +<p>All that was most worthy in Quebec attended to do honour to his memory. +He was buried in the Protestant cemetery; long after his body was +removed to Mount Hermon Cemetery, to lie beside his son and +grandson—the last of his race.</p> + +<p>Nairne played his part with high purpose and integrity. Among his papers +at Murray Bay is a prayer, intended apparently for daily use, in which +he asks that he may be vigilant in conduct and immovable in all good +purposes; that he may show courage in danger, patience in adversity, +humility in prosperity. He asks, too, to be made sensible "how little is +this world, how great [are] thy Heavens, and how long will be thy +blessed eternity." It is the prayer of a strong soul facing humbly and +reverently the tasks of life.<a name="FNanchor_20_20" id="FNanchor_20_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a> He would have wished to found a +community English speaking and Protestant. But the forces of nature were +against him. The few English speaking people who came in (and they were +but a few scattered individuals) for the most<span class="pagenum"><a id="page123" name="page123"></a>Pg 123</span> part married French +wives. The children held the faith and spoke the tongue which they +learned at their mothers' knees. It was the course of nature, and always +we are foolish to quarrel with nature. A granite monument marks the +resting place where the good old man sleeps in the cemetery at Quebec, +but some memorial might well stand at Murray Bay, that those who look +out upon the majestic river, the blue mountains, the smiling valley +should have before them a reminder of the "friendly, honest man" who, a +century and a half ago, began to win their heritage from the +wilderness.<a name="FNanchor_21_21" id="FNanchor_21_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a></p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page124" name="page124"></a>Pg 124</span></p> +<h2>CHAPTER VI</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">Thomas Nairne, Seigneur of Murray Bay</span></h3> + +<h4>His Education in Scotland.—His winning character.—He enters the +army.—Malcolm Fraser's counsels to a young soldier.—Thomas +Nairne's life at Gibraltar.—His desire to retire from the +army.—His return to Canada in 1810-11.—His life at Quebec.—His +summer at Murray Bay, 1811.—His resolve to remain in the +army.—Beginning of the War of 1812.—Captain Nairne on Lake +Ontario.—Quebec Society and the proposed flight from danger to +Murray Bay.—Anxiety at Murray Bay.—The progress of the War.—An +American attack on Kingston.—Captain Nairne on the Niagara +frontier.—Naval War on Lake Ontario.—Nairne's description of a +naval engagement.—Sense of impending disaster at Murray Bay.—The +American advance on Montreal by the St. Lawrence.—Nairne's +regiment a part of the opposing British force.—The Battle of +Crysler's Farm.—Nairne's death.—His body taken to Quebec.—The +grief of the family at Murray Bay.—The funeral.</h4> + + +<p>At his father's death Thomas Nairne was the only surviving son. In 1791 +the father had written of this boy, born in 1787 and thus only four +years old: "Tom continues very stout but not easy to manage and [I] am +afraid it will be difficult to separate [him] from his mother. He does +not speak a word of English; neither do your sisters Mary (now called +Polly) or Anny speak any other language than French; but I<span class="pagenum"><a id="page125" name="page125"></a>Pg 125</span> intend to +send them all to Quebec next summer, where it's to be hoped they will +soon learn to understand a little English." So to Quebec Tom was sent to +begin his education. By 1798, when only eleven years old, he had gone to +the relatives in Scotland and Nairne's friend, Ker, writes of him: "I +think Tommie one of the sweetest tempered fine boys I ever saw and he +will, I doubt not, be the comfort and delight of you all." Polly was +there too—"a very good girl ... of great use to her Aunts to whom she +pays every attention." Tom, like his brother John, was carefully +instructed by his father. He must look after himself, dress, care for +his clothes, and keep clean, without troubling others. Especially must +he try to think clearly and speak distinctly—truly a sound beginning of +education. His brother's death in 1799 made him an important person, the +pride of his house. "There are many Tams now in this parish," wrote his +father in 1801, "even a part of it is named St. Thomas, all in +compliment to our Tom." At the time of his father's death in 1802, a boy +of fifteen, Tom was attending the Edinburgh High School. Before me lies +a coverless account book of octavo size in which are written by some +careful person, in clear round-hand, recipes, scraps of poetry, problems +in arithmetic and geometry, and among other things, "Tom's Expenses, +1796." A quarter at the High School costs 10/6, "Lattin books," 4/-, +school money is<span class="pagenum"><a id="page126" name="page126"></a>Pg 126</span> 3/-, a ferret 3d., and so on. His sister Polly's +expenses are entered in the same book and that young lady's outlay was +more formidable. Items for the milliner such as "making up a Bonnet. +3/6," (young ladies still wore bonnets) are frequent. Miss Polly spent +6/- on ear-rings. Once when she took a "Shaise" it cost her 2/-, while +"Chair Hire" is sometimes 1/6 and sometimes reduced to the modest +proportions of 9d. No doubt for her health's sake she bought for 1/- a +"Sacred Tincture" which, we may hope, did her good.</p> + +<p>Thomas Nairne was an attractive boy. He lived with his father's executor +and friend, James Ker, an Edinburgh banker, a wise, prudent, far-seeing, +man. Mr. Ker was married to Colonel Nairne's niece and he received Tom +as his own child. The boy was the inseparable companion of Ker's son +Alick. Tom won praises on all sides. An Aunt wrote seriously that she +had feared he was too good to live; and she comforted Nairne's grief at +his son John's death by the thought of what Tom will be to him. He is "a +happy chearful pleased little fellow always quiet at home"—but also +"happy and at home wherever he goes." So thoughtful, she adds, is he +that, entirely on his own motion, he deems it proper to write to his +mother; one of these letters is before me—beautifully written in a +large but well-formed schoolboy hand. "A very promising sweet young +man,"<span class="pagenum"><a id="page127" name="page127"></a>Pg 127</span> was the renewed judgment of his business-like guardian upon Tom +in 1803, when he was a boy of only sixteen. By that time, it was thought +that Tom had exhausted the advantages of the Edinburgh High School. The +Edinburgh accent of the day did not suit the taste of his fastidious +guardian, who hoped that in an English school a better manner of speech +might be acquired. Tom's cousin and companion, Alick Ker, a boy a few +years older, was going to school at Durham and thither also went Tom. +The lads "are the greatest friends in the world," wrote his watchful +aunt; "Alick does not know how to exist without Tom but Tom is more +independent of Alick, for he is not so shy." In an aunt's, perhaps +partial, view Tom was quicker and showed more application than Alick. +"Tom advances with great deliberation in his height," she writes, which +was very convenient, for, since Alick was older, Tom came in for Alick's +out-grown clothes and this saved expense.</p> + +<p>When the boy's school days were drawing to an end his future course was +the topic of much discussion. Tom's father had wished him to study law, +though not to practice it: in Canada, he thought, there was no lucrative +opening for any one trained in the law unless he was made a judge. Old +Malcolm Fraser, Tom's adviser after his father's death, would have had +him, for safety's sake, adopt a civilian life; he was the last male of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page128" name="page128"></a>Pg 128</span> +his house and therefore ought not to be exposed to a soldier's dangers. +Tom's Edinburgh friends wished him to become a Writer to the Signet or, +at any rate, to learn something about business since, as a landed +proprietor, he must be a man of affairs. But the youth took the matter +in his own hands. For his father's character and career he had always a +great reverence; soldier's blood was in his veins, and nature had her +way. Tom became a soldier and, when the school days are ended, we find +the boy, not yet eighteen, Lieutenant in the 10th Regiment of Foot. +Fraser wrote to Tom protesting against what he had done and from Maldon +Barracks, in Essex, on April 5th, 1805, Tom answers his godfather's +objections. Perhaps to add solemnity to his argument the old man had +assumed the tone of a valetudinarian and Tom replies: "I would fain hope +you had no reason for saying you would soon follow my dear Father. I +hope God will spare you to us since he has thought proper to take my +Father to Himself. Your loss would be irreparable, I having no other +person to protect my mother and sisters as I have chosen a line of life +in which I may never have the fortune of being near them." In spite of +Fraser's appeal, Tom's resolution to remain in the army was unshaken.</p> + +<p>It was an amazing era in Europe and well may Fraser have feared for the +young Lieutenant's<span class="pagenum"><a id="page129" name="page129"></a>Pg 129</span> safety. While the boy was writing, Napoleon +Bonaparte, with the lustre fresh upon him of a recent gorgeous +coronation at Paris as Emperor of the French, was gathering at Boulogne +a great army and hundreds of small boats with which this army might, he +hoped, be thrown across into England within twenty-four hours. That +country was very nervous but, for some reason, Tom's regiment, instead +of being kept at home to meet the invader, was sent to Gibraltar. Here +he remained inactive while world-shaking events were happening, while +Trafalgar and Austerlitz and Jena were fought, and Pitt stricken with +"the noblest of all sorrows," grief for the seeming ruin of his country, +told those about him to "roll up the map of Europe," and died +heartbroken. Not unnaturally at such a time Gibraltar seemed dull; a +miserable place, Tom thought, a prison on a large scale. His friends +wrote him letters containing an abundance of good advice, all of which +he took with becoming modesty. A letter from Fraser of this character is +still excellent reading; his counsels to the young soldier have added +weight when we remember that the author was with Wolfe at Louisbourg and +Quebec and now, nearly fifty years later, was still active in the +militia forces of Canada.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page130" name="page130"></a>Pg 130</span></p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p><i>Malcolm Fraser to Lieut. Thomas Nairne</i></p> + +<p><i>From Murray Bay, 7th October, 1805.</i></p> + +<p>My Dear Godson,—</p> + +<p>I had the very great pleasure of receiving yours of the 5th April +last at this place on the 15th September and as your sister Miss +Christine has wrote you I must refer you to her for the news of +Murray Bay. She left this for Quebec a few days ago and every thing +continues to go well here and I hope will do so. Your mother +improves your estate daily and if she lives ten years I am +convinced that she will make it worth double what it was ten years +ago and if after a peace, when I hope you will have a company, you +can get exchanged into a Regiment serving in this Country without +losing rank, you will by that means have an opportunity of +examining your own affairs here and it will give the greatest +pleasure to your mother and other relations and friends within your +native country, and particularly to me, should I happen to live so +long. Christine has I suppose wrote that you are now an uncle, your +sister Madie having been delivered of a fine boy about two months +ago, and I have the pleasure to tell you that she and her husband +seem to be very happy and, tho' I did not at first approve of the +match, that I am now quite reconciled to it as are all her friends +here, as well as those in Scotland as far as I can learn.</p> + +<p>Now as to yourself: tho' I had some objections to your going into +the army so very young, yet now that you have become a soldier, I +hope you will continue to follow the military life with ardour and +Emulation as far as lays in your power and that you will endeavour +to employ your spare time in acquiring the various accomplishments +necessary to become a good officer. I would by no means advise you +to avoid such innocent pleasures and amusements as are suitable to +your age and rank. But I pray<span class="pagenum"><a id="page131" name="page131"></a>Pg 131</span> you beware of being led astray or +going into any excess. I am very glad to find that the army is now +in general much less addicted to (what was falsely called) the +pleasures of the bottle than in former times, but you may still +meet with temptations in that way which I hope you'll guard +against. Try to resemble your late worthy father in temperance and +moderation as well as in punctuality and exactness in doing your +duty with strict subordination to your superiors, particularly to +the commanding officer of your corps, as it is by his +recommendation, commonly, that those under his immediate command +may expect promotion. You must by all means avoid getting into any +parties or factions against him, which I have known sometimes to +have unfortunately happened to others; but there can be hardly +anything more detrimental to the service as well as dishonourable +to the corps wherein it takes place. I would also recommend to you +..., in case you are engaged in any action, to beware of passing +judgment on the conduct of your Commanders, till at least you are +of an age and have acquired experience to entitle you to give your +opinion, as it is very common for a young man to be mistaken. You +must also avoid any dispute or difference with your brother +officers, for tho' there are unhappily some cases where a gentleman +<i>must</i> vindicate his honour yet where I have known such things +happen they might have been prevented <i>with honour</i> if the parties +had not allowed their passions to get the better of their reason; +and you must remember there is never honour to be acquired by being +quarrelsome, but the reverse, and that your life ought now to be +devoted to the service of your King and country. I know you will +not be sparing of it when occasion requires.</p> + +<p>I would also recommend to you to read useful books when you have +time and to acquire a competent knowledge of History, both Ancient +and Modern, especially that of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page132" name="page132"></a>Pg 132</span> country in whose service you +are engaged, as also such books as treat of your profession; and to +pay particular attention to the lives and actions of those who have +distinguished themselves in its service, who you will find to have +been in general as remarkable for their moral, as for their +military characters; and I hope you will endeavour to imitate them +and, tho' you may not acquire the rank, you must remember that you +cannot become a <i>good general</i> or even a good officer without first +acquiring a competent knowledge of your profession. For this +purpose (tho' I never had any proper knowledge of those matters +myself yet I am sensible of my deficiency) I would have you study +and read such books as treat of fortification and encampments; and +as you are still very young I imagine you may soon acquire a +competent knowledge by such reading, suitable to avail yourself of +it on any emergency.</p> + +<p>I must now recommend you to keep those who may be under your +command in that degree of subordination and obedience which the +service requires. But you must never forget that your inferiors, +even the Private Man who serves in the ranks, is your fellow +soldier and fellow-man, and that you are bound to show him every +attention and humanity in your power. This was one of the many good +qualities for which your father was remarkable, for which he was +beloved by all ranks; and I hope you will imitate him. I must now +conclude by recommending to you to let me hear from you once a +year, at least, or oftener if an opportunity offers. Nothing can +give more pleasure than to hear good accounts of you to</p> + +<p>Your affectionate godfather,</p> + +<p><span class="smcap">Malcolm ffraser</span>.</p> + +<p>In short you must never forget that you may at times become +responsible for the lives and honour of those under your command as +well as for your own, and, it may even<span class="pagenum"><a id="page133" name="page133"></a>Pg 133</span> happen, for that of your +King and Country, in some degree, and that you are to act +accordingly. All this with more and much better you may read or +hear from others; but I flatter myself that you will not think the +less of it as coming from <i>me</i>.</p></div> + +<p>It must be admitted that the soldier's ideal in that age for the British +army was as high as our own. We are accustomed to think that a hundred +years ago drunkenness was hardly accounted a vice. Perhaps it was not in +civil life, but in the army, in young Nairne's time, sobriety was the +rule. Writing on May 20th, 1807, he says that few in the army resort to +drink, as a pleasure, even at Gibraltar, where wine is cheap and +plentiful; the allowance in the regiment after dinner is but one-third +of a bottle, and only now and then when there are guests is it usual to +depart from this allowance. The deadly dullness and idleness of +Gibraltar were its chief defects, the young officer thought.</p> + +<p>There had been futile talk of peace. On August 13th, 1806, Ker wrote to +Murray Bay from Edinburgh: "We expect to hear of Peace between this +country and France. The Earl of Lauderdale has been sent to Paris to +treat. But what sort of peace can we make with Bona Parte?" What sort +indeed? Peace was not to come during Tom Nairne's lifetime. He was +getting ready meanwhile for an enlarged career. At Gibraltar he pressed +his guardian to purchase him a captaincy.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page134" name="page134"></a>Pg 134</span> Those were the bad old days +when promotion in the army went largely by purchase and Tom had been +Lieutenant for little more than a year when, at a cost of £1,000, Ker +bought for him the desired rank; he attained to this dignity at the age +of nineteen. The purchase strained his resources severely but his family +got some comfort out of the thought that he was advancing. There was an +excellent library at Gibraltar and he had good opportunities for +self-improvement of which he promised to avail himself. But the promise +was hardly realized. At any rate Tom gave a very poor account of his own +doings for, after he had returned to England, he wrote to his mother +(from Chelmsford Barracks on March 19th, 1808) a not very flattering +account of himself at Gibraltar:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>Only figure to yourself a rock, about two miles and a half in +length and scarcely the fifth part of that in breadth, and then +most likely you will not be so much astonished at my making the +above comparison [of Gibraltar to a prison], from which you may +wisely suppose that those unfortunate beings who had the misfortune +of being shut up in it led a most inactive and stupid life.... +However, to give the Devil his due, I must not omit to observe that +it contained a most excellent Library, by which means officers +might improve themselves greatly and spend their leisure hours to +their credit, provided they were desirous of doing so; particularly +as nothing existed in that place to take off their attention from +study; and I make no doubt but some young men had the sense to +profit by that favourable opportunity. At the same time [I] am +extremely sorry to inform you your promising son did not, in any<span class="pagenum"><a id="page135" name="page135"></a>Pg 135</span> +shape whatever, and am much concerned to add that he spent a very +idle life whilst there, doing nothing else the live-long day than +riding or lounging; which I presume you will think was a complete +disgrace to any man of a liberal education, in which I perfectly +agree with you.... I sincerely hope and trust that he [your son] +will mend as he becomes older and wiser.</p></div> + +<p>Tom confesses himself at this time "a complete idle, good for nothing +fellow," but he disarms his mother's reproaches when he adds that he is +chiefly occupied in thinking of her and of his large estate in Canada +where he longs to be. It had for him a new attraction, since his cousin +Alick Ker was just going out to Canada, a Captain on the staff of Sir +James Craig, the new Governor, who was related to the Kers. For the time +Tom's family was content that he should be at Gibraltar, where he was +safe, and where, too, as Ker prudently says, "he lives cheaper than he +could in England, has a genteel [how the age loved that word!] society +and the use of a large Library." He rode on the sandy beach; sometimes, +until the coming of the French troops, the British officers were allowed +to ride into Spain.</p> + +<p>These diversions all came to an end on August 26th, 1807, when Tom +turned his back on Gibraltar for good. Incredible as it may now seem, +the voyage to England took nearly a month; he arrived on the 24th of +September. The young man had been turning over seriously his future +prospects. In a letter to his mother he makes some<span class="pagenum"><a id="page136" name="page136"></a>Pg 136</span> enquiry about his +own probable income from his estate. While protesting that he is himself +"a Devilish ugly fellow" he has some thought of getting his mother to +choose a "rib" for him and, presumptuous as it may seem, she must be +handsome. He was thinking now of a civilian career. At Gibraltar he had +found that he was short-sighted, and long sight seemed a necessity to a +soldier. But Fraser, to whom he poured out his woe, answered that +short-sightedness need not interfere with his efficiency; Colonel Nairne +had been short-sighted and yet, withal, a successful officer; the +question of sight would matter only if he was in command, in face of the +enemy, and, even then, he could get assistance. Fraser advised him to +stay in the army until he attained the rank of a field officer, when he +might retire on half pay to his estate at Murray Bay, "extensive but not +valuable in proportion." In truth Tom, tired of the army, was home-sick. +He says to Fraser that he is "feeling an indescribable degree of anxiety +to see my dearest mother, sisters, and yourself, not forgetting to +include my estate, where I often figure myself, strutting about like +unto a mighty Bashaw; which peaceful idea I sincerely hope will be +realized, some day or other, if it pleases God to spare me so long; ... +my only desire is now that blessed time may be near at hand or even that +I could afford to set out to Murray Bay without any further delay.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page137" name="page137"></a>Pg 137</span> +However it is proper to drown that wish, for the present, amongst the +noise of arms, as the whole world is up against us, and my assistance, +though little enough, God knows, may be of some use. At all events it +would be tasting the sweets of this life before I had ever felt the +miseries of it." He ends by asking that nothing of which he is possessed +may be spared "towards making Alick Ker pass a pleasant time in Canada."</p> + +<p>The fear which the old aunt had ingenuously expressed that Tom might +prove too good to live was happily belied, for he appears to have been a +sufficiently idle young fellow, though, as his watchful guardian wrote, +"a good economist"; the same guardian thought this extremely opportune, +since "Bona Parte," with all Europe under his heel, was making it lively +for the fortunate islands, and forcing them to levy a tax of 10% on +incomes. "This tax," writes the indignant banker, "is one of the many +blessed fruits of the French Revolution, and of the horrible tyranny and +perfidy of their rascally Emperor."</p> + +<p>Not long did Tom remain in England. Soon he was off with his regiment to +Sicily, at this period garrisoned by British troops, and saved by a +strip of inviolate sea from the grasp of the master of Italy. The +sojourn in Sicily must have been dull. He was stationed at Syracuse, but +his school training had not gone deep enough to interest him in +Thucydides's marvellous story<span class="pagenum"><a id="page138" name="page138"></a>Pg 138</span> of the siege of that place or in the +antiquities of Sicily. The chief surviving record of his sojourn in +Sicily is an account from his washerwoman, "Mrs. De Lass," dated at +Syracuse the 8th of March, 1809. His distaste for the army was now +complete. His sister Polly had ended her school days and, by a fortunate +circumstance, had gone out to Canada "under the protection of Sir +William Johnstone's lady" and to Canada Tom was himself resolved to go. +Early in 1810, he was back in Edinburgh, taking a few weeks' holiday +with the Kers, resolved to go on half pay at once, if possible, or, +failing this, to sell out, and after a delay of fourteen or fifteen +months, to go home to Murray Bay. The intervening time he intended to +spend in the study of farming; he had almost completed a plan for going +into Berwickshire to reside with a farmer and thus equip himself as a +land owner. His friends thought him changeable. "The Captain," wrote Ker +on the 30th of March, 1810, "is a sweet tempered good young man but he +wants steadiness.... I fear that after trying to be a farmer at Murray +Bay he may tire and want to return to the army." So serious was Tom +about his future bucolic life that he wrote to his sister Christine, as +he had written before to his mother, to ask whether she did not think he +should look round for a wife; such a companion would be necessary, he +thought, if he settled down as a farmer in Canada. We can imagine that +the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page139" name="page139"></a>Pg 139</span> proposition, from a youth of twenty-three, caused some dismay among +the occupants of the Manor House at Murray Bay; but Tom was soon +professing himself something of a woman hater and he never married.</p> + +<p>His return to Murray Bay followed quickly. By a fortunate, or perhaps, +in view of the tragic fate awaiting poor Tom, unfortunate, chance, +instead of going on half-pay, he was able to exchange from the 10th +Regiment of Foot to the Newfoundland Regiment. The chief reason for the +exchange was that the Newfoundland Regiment was ordered to Canada, where +Tom could get leave of absence to pay a long visit to Murray Bay and +learn how its life would suit him. So, in the autumn of 1810, the young +man was in Canada, which he had not seen since childhood. To Murray Bay +he soon paid a flying visit; the longer leave of absence would come +later. His competent, busy, prudent and affectionate old mother welcomed +him with open arms. He had thought of himself as a young Bashaw +strutting round among the people of his seigniory. No doubt they were +much interested to see the young Captain; but his duties soon called him +back to Quebec, from which place on December 3rd, 1810, he writes to his +mother:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>I have this moment finished drinking tea, all alone.... You have +totally spoiled my relish for anything except for Murray Bay; my +notions of things in general appear to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page140" name="page140"></a>Pg 140</span> be entirely changed. Murray +Bay while viewed only in perspective afforded me a sort of pleasing +reflection; but now that I have a nearer view and enjoyed its +comforts my ideas have experienced a complete revolution. So you +see what your society and most kind loving treatment have effected. +You may therefore rest assured that no stone will be left unturned +to try to get back in order that we may remain together in this +world as long as it may please the Almighty to permit us. On my +arrival here at 2 o'clock p.m. I proceeded to the Upper Town in +order to look out for a bed, concerning the getting of which I had +entertained my doubts being, <i>tout ensemble</i>, a queer figure, +having on my covered handkerchief, thick great coat, Canadian +boots, and round hat; in short at the first essay I was refused by +a "No room in the house, Sir," a common reply given to those whose +unfortunate appearance happens not exactly to please the harsh and +scrutinizing eye of the lord of the mansion. I then turned my +frozen steps towards this house of hospitality where after +explaining <i>mon besoin</i> to the waiter he scrupulously and +critically eyed me from top to toe, from head to foot, then turned +on his heel to go to his master and report accordingly. During his +absence I commenced a serious inspection of self to find if +possible what had attracted his attention so pointedly towards my +toes, when I observed the cause to be the silver chain of my +over-alls peeping out from under my great-coat; which, no doubt, +was the reason of having received a favourable answer; for on his +re-entrance he asked me to sit down and I finally engaged a room.</p></div> + +<p>On January 9th, 1811, Tom wrote to say that a man had arrived from +Murray Bay but without letters:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>"What the Devil has come over those sisters of mine? Pray are they +still behind the stove patching their old<span class="pagenum"><a id="page141" name="page141"></a>Pg 141</span> stockings? No time +forsooth—Rediculous—Could not the lazy wretches have only wrote +me the scratch of a pen merely to wish me a good New Year? Mr. +McCord to be sure mumbles something about time; it is highly +diverting to have country lasses talk about want of time, +particularly those I am now speaking of, unless they have greatly +altered for the better since I saw them last, and turned their +hands to cow-keeping, tending of poultry, or something of that +description; but I'll be bound for it they still employ themselves +with nothing else except perching behind the stove, growling, and +driving carriols."</p></div> + +<p>He exhorts his sisters to take long walks in the fine cold weather. Then +he dips into politics. There is to be an election at Murray Bay for the +county of Northumberland and Mr. Bouchette, a Canadian, had asked for +the interest of Tom as seigneur. He regrets that he cannot himself offer +to stand since he is unsettled in plans, "and totally unacquainted with +the language of the country"; a strange comment on the fact that in +early youth he had known only French. The habitant had recently secured +the right to vote but already pleased himself in exercising it. Though, +as Tom says, "Dr. La Terrière of the adjacent seigniory of Les +Eboulements, the Curés, and the Devil knows who" all wished Bouchette +elected and Tom was himself anxious that a habitant should not be +chosen, Bouchette failed and a habitant was sent to Quebec to represent +the district in the Legislature.</p> + +<p>Tom's letters written during the winter of 1810-1811 are full of the +gossip and events of the time<span class="pagenum"><a id="page142" name="page142"></a>Pg 142</span> in Quebec. He is now obviously keen for +self-improvement, and, in the manner of his father, for the improvement +of others also; while congratulating Polly on the better style of her +letters which are now "sprightly", he corrects her spelling. Among other +things he is trying to complete a proper inscription for his father's +tomb. He sends for the title deeds of his property in order that he may +do homage to the governor Sir James Craig, and shows a lively interest +in the management of his estate. His father's old friend, Colonel +Fraser, was visiting Quebec which, more than fifty years earlier, he had +helped to win for Britain but where now, it is somewhat sad to think, he +has, as Tom says, very few acquaintances. So the young Captain spends +two or three hours daily with the Colonel and finds that he has many +interesting subjects to talk with him about. He drives with him into the +country. He enquires about a house in Quebec which his mother had some +thought of buying and talks of a trip to Montreal to buy a horse to send +to Murray Bay. In the letters home Christine, "Rusty" is the special +object of his teasing. She has been accustomed to spend the winters at +Quebec, but is now at Murray Bay, and he asks how she likes the dull +country at this season. "She never says anything about it, which is in +her favour.... I trust that through the means of Picquet you contrive to +keep her rusty dollars moving." Tom's ab<span class="pagenum"><a id="page143" name="page143"></a>Pg 143</span>sence from Murray Bay was soon +to end. On March, 23rd, 1811, he wrote joyously that he has got leave of +absence for six months, and is coming "to my own dear Murray Bay." +Christine had been dangerously ill and he is naturally anxious to be at +home.</p> + +<p>So behold the young seigneur disporting himself at Murray Bay in the +spring of 1811. Old Malcolm Fraser, at the manor of Mount Murray just +across the bay, kept a watchful eye on the godson who, he had begun to +fear, was not proving wholly satisfactory. The cause of Fraser's +misgiving is not clear but he lectured Tom with tactful insight. Of his +own career the young officer was now beginning to take a new view. +During the long holiday at Murray Bay he had time to taste its pleasures +and to learn its chief interests. He went out fishing and shooting; he +sailed and rowed on the river; he occupied himself in the daily business +of the seigniory, for which his competent mother had so long cared; she +was now building a mill which would probably add to Tom's revenues. He +made friends with the curé Mr. Le Courtois. This gentleman, a French +émigré, who found a refuge in Canada, had thrown himself with great +devotion into the rough life of a missionary among the scattered +peoples, Canadians and Indians alike, of his remote parish. He was a man +of culture and remained always a valued counsellor of the Protestant +family in the Manor<span class="pagenum"><a id="page144" name="page144"></a>Pg 144</span> House.<a name="FNanchor_22_22" id="FNanchor_22_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a> But, in spite of all the interests and +friendships at Murray Bay, Tom soon found that the little community +hardly needed him. Every thing was well looked after, prosperous and +promising. He would be only a fifth wheel to the coach and, before long, +he had made up his mind that he had better stick to his military career.</p> + +<p>Without doubt Tom was a young man of winning character. Malcolm Fraser, +having studied him and lectured him, reconsidered his unfavourable +estimate, and wrote to Ker on the 10th of October, 1811: "I think him +incapable of any immoral or mean action; ... he seems to hearken to the +lectures of his old Godfather tho' not perhaps always delivered in the +most delicate Style." To his mother he was a tender son, and for his +father's memory he showed a filial reverence. One of his first acts on +arriving in Canada had been to arrange for the erection in Quebec of a +proper monument in his memory—something that others had long talked +about and which Tom brought to completion, but which has, alas, long +since disappeared. Tom was in truth a man of action, and to action in +the larger world he now turned. Towards the end of September, 1811, at +the time when, to-day, Murray Bay's summer sojourners turn reluctantly +homeward from the crisp autumn air and from the mountain sides beginning +to show the season's glowing tints,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page145" name="page145"></a>Pg 145</span> Captain Nairne set out from the +Manor House to join his regiment at Quebec. He had in mind a plan to go +back to Europe and to get to Spain or Portugal for a share in the +Peninsular War then raging. Fraser, now in his 79th year, writes on +October 10th, 1811, his advice that the young man "should continue on +full pay till he attains the rank of Major, by brevet or otherwise, and +then, if he chooses, he may exchange and retire on the half of whatever +full pay he holds at the time, and as soon as such exchange can be +accomplished with decency and propriety." War with the United States was +now impending, hardly a fitting time for a young man to withdraw from +the army, and Fraser points out that "in the present situation of public +affairs and at his age and fitness for service" Tom's retirement would +be hardly decent. "Next to my own nearest connections," he continues, +"my chief attention will be paid to Captain Nairne and the other +connections of his late Father with whom I had the happiness to live in +Friendship and intimacy from our first meeting (1757) till his Decease +(1802) and I trust we shall meet again in a future state."</p> + +<p>The young man thus returned to his military duties with his old friend's +benediction and restored confidence. But to the family the plan for a +military career was a sore disappointment. His sister Christine, its +woman of the world, and the one most in touch with the Canadian society<span class="pagenum"><a id="page146" name="page146"></a>Pg 146</span> +of the time, was keen that Tom should live at Murray Bay. To her +entreaties he answers on October 6th, 1811, that there is no earthly use +for him at Murray Bay where everything is so well looked after that his +presence would do more harm than good. Time would hang heavy on his +hands if he were always employed in fishing, shooting and navigating the +river. It is better, he says, that he should continue in his present +position and he intends to withdraw his application for half pay. When +Christine returns to the charge and urges that Murray Bay is not to be +despised the young man retorts that he never said it was and answers her +with some dignity:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>It will ill become me to despise the favourite residence of a +person for whom I have at all times testified the greatest love +esteem and respect. Indeed I think my behaviour hitherto might have +spared me such a severe remark.... You charge me with being +inconsistent and changeable, in which opinion you are not, I +believe, singular; but until you point out to me where I have been +so, I shall till then, plead not guilty in my own mind.</p></div> + +<p>War was now brooding over Canada—the fratricidal War of 1812. But for +the time Quebec was gay. There was hardly a week without a private ball, +Tom wrote in February, 1812; and the assemblies, dinners and suppers +were innumerable. He chaffs his sister Christine, whose rheumatic pains +had apparently become a kind of family joke, and says that, since they +are the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page147" name="page147"></a>Pg 147</span> enemies of high kicking, her inability longer for this pastime +"is partly the cause of her sounding a retreat to the peaceful shades +and grottoes of Murray Bay." Polly, the other unmarried sister, was more +content to be at Murray Bay, with results that led to a family tragedy +as we shall see later. Her brother pictures her driving his nag with her +carriole through the country; so reckless is she that she is sure to run +down some one. "Does she, proud and high, still continue hopping away to +the country weddings?" His request that Pope's Works and <i>The Spectator</i> +be sent to him seems to indicate a serious turn of mind. He is sending +to Murray Bay <i>The Lady of the Lake</i> and <i>The Lay of the Last Minstrel</i> +whose middle-aged author was just turning from poetry to win +unprecedented success as a writer of fiction. In the spring he goes out +shooting for snipe nearly every day; and he sends to Murray Bay for his +fishing tackle. When a fellow officer falls ill he sends him down to +Murray Bay for a month.</p> + +<p>Soon came a more active life. War with the United States was near and +Canada was getting ready. In May, 1812, Malcolm Fraser, led to Quebec +from Murray Bay and the intervening parishes what militia he could +muster. At the same time, he was made a commissioner to administer the +oaths of allegiance: in extreme old age the veteran was ready again to +do what he could. The Newfoundland regiment, to which<span class="pagenum"><a id="page148" name="page148"></a>Pg 148</span> Tom belonged, was +ordered to the interior. The storm cloud drew near and burst on June +19th, 1812, in the form of a declaration of war by the United States on +Great Britain. The Americans intended to pour troops into Upper Canada, +but sparsely settled at that time, and quickly to occupy it. The +frontier on the Niagara River was the chief danger point and the +Newfoundland Regiment was sent up to Lake Ontario to aid in the defence. +On July 3rd, 1812, Tom writes from Kingston in Upper Canada. The news +has reached him that war has been declared; and already, busy with the +task of placing men and supplies where they will be most needed, he has +been the length of Lake Ontario in the <i>Royal George</i>; staying two days +at York, now Toronto; going thence to Niagara and then sailing back to +Kingston. At Kingston there are 1,000 militia and Carleton Island, +(where Tom's father had commanded in the War of the American Revolution) +has been taken by the British—an inglorious success for its garrison +consisted of but three veterans and some women. The adjacent Indians, +says the young Captain, "are anxious to be at the Yankees with their +Toma-hawks." Altogether some exciting campaigns were in prospect and Tom +was glad that his family was "snug at Murray Bay."</p> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image08" name="image08"></a><a href="images/08large.jpg"> + <img src="images/08.jpg" + alt="SKETCH MAP OF LAKE ONTARIO AND R. ST. LAWRENCE TO ILLUSTRATE WAR OF 1812" + title="SKETCH MAP OF LAKE ONTARIO AND R. ST. LAWRENCE TO ILLUSTRATE WAR OF 1812" /></a> +</div> + +<p>There, remote and isolated, they seemed indeed safe—so safe that, to +share the security, a general descent of their friends seemed imminent. +At<span class="pagenum"><a id="page149" name="page149"></a>Pg 149</span> Quebec there was, for a time, something like a panic. "Every one +here," wrote Mrs. Hale to Miss Nairne "is in a complete state of anxiety +and suspense, not at all knowing whether we shall be attacked, or what +may become of us. I have just now seen Colonel Fraser, who assures me I +shall be welcome at your mother's house, in case we should be obliged to +leave Quebec. [He] advised my writing for fear you should have +applications from other quarters.... Many ladies are going to +England.... My spirits are so depressed that I cannot pretend to amuse +you with any anecdotes." Murray Bay offered its hospitality with great +heartiness and Mr. Hale wrote, "I believe all Quebec mean to move +towards you if necessary, so you must prepare."</p> + +<p>Quebec was in a flutter of successive excitements, now certain that it +was invulnerable, now fearing an immediate descent of the enemy, and +always longing for peace. In England the Orders in Council which +provoked the war were now revoked, and Malcolm Fraser wrote that this +must soon bring peace in America, especially since New England and New +York were against the war. Miss Nairne's friend in Quebec, Judge +Bowen<a name="FNanchor_23_23" id="FNanchor_23_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a>, wrote to her in November, 1812, announcing the armistice for +six months, arranged some time before, and assuring the ladies at Murray +Bay that<span class="pagenum"><a id="page150" name="page150"></a>Pg 150</span> all cause for anxiety was now past,—an illusive hope for the +armistice was not ratified by President Madison and the war went on. We +get echoes of social jealousies that may now amuse us. Sir James Craig, +the late Governor, had repressed sternly the aspirations of the French +element and had been specially friendly with the Nairne circle; he was +indeed a cousin of the Nairnes' relative by marriage, James Ker. But now +with Sir George Prevost as Governor things were changed. Sir George came +from Halifax and Quebec society looked with green-eyed jealousy upon his +"Halifax people." "They are not the right sort," Judge Bowen wrote to +Christine Nairne:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>It will be long before we meet a staff like Sir James Craig's +gentlemanly men.... The castle affords no delight but to the +Halifax people. They are all Gods, the Quebecers all Devils. As for +me I have no desire to be deified.... Would you believe it Pierre +Bedard [a French Canadian leader whom Sir James Craig had clapped +into prison] is now Judge of the Court of King's Bench at Three +Rivers. Would that poor Sir James<a name="FNanchor_24_24" id="FNanchor_24_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a> could raise his head to take +a view of the strange scenes daily occurring here; but it is better +he should be spared the Loathsome sight. What it will end in I dare +scarcely express.</p></div> + +<p>In these days there was ceaseless anxiety at Murray Bay. "We are all +here in a complete state of suspense," wrote Christine Nairne, "...<span class="pagenum"><a id="page151" name="page151"></a>Pg 151</span> My +brother is now in Upper Canada doing duty as a marine officer on board +the <i>Royal George</i>. We are in the utmost anxiety about him but on the +Almighty we rely for preservation in these horrid times." Echoes came of +stirring events. Tom wrote of General Brock's succeeds in capturing +Detroit and with it the American General Hull and his whole army. A +little later the Detroit garrison was sent to Montreal and Captain +Nairne, doing duty on the <i>Royal George</i>, carried General Hull—"the +extirpating General" he called him in view of dire threats that Hull had +made as to what he should do—with 200 prisoners from Niagara to +Kingston and then in batteaux down the River St. Lawrence on the way to +Montreal, through whose streets the Canadian militia marched their +prisoners to the strains of "Yankee Doodle." Elated with the success +against General Hull, Tom now expected to hear any day that the American +fort at the mouth of the Niagara River had been taken by General Brock. +He heard a much sadder tale. Instead of awaiting attack the Americans +became the aggressors and crossed the river into Canada. In a successful +attempt to dislodge them from Queenston Heights the gallant Brock was +slain. The invaders were driven back; but all Canada mourned for Brock. +Mrs. Bowen wrote to Christine Nairne, "I am sure you will have deeply +felt the loss of poor General Brock. He was al<span class="pagenum"><a id="page152" name="page152"></a>Pg 152</span>ways a great favourite of +yours as well as mine. Salter Mountain spoke in the highest terms of him +in his sermon last Sunday."</p> + +<p>As the war became more grim in character Captain Nairne formed a fixed +resolve to see it through to the end. On October 5th, 1812, he writes +from Kingston that in response to his former request he had just +received notice of having been put on half pay. With this release he +might now have retired to the serenity of Murray Bay. But, even though +he had not changed his mind, this would have been to turn his back on +fighting when men were most needed. So when Captain Wall of the 49th +Regiment broke his leg, and was thus rendered unfit for service, with +him Nairne effected an exchange. "I could not reconcile myself to the +idea of sneaking down to Murray Bay and forsaking my post at the present +critical period," he wrote to Fraser. That old soldier was delighted at +Tom's spirit and made this note at the foot of the letter which +announced this action:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>Point Fraser, [Murray Bay], Oct. 23rd, 1812: I do hereby certify +that my Godson Captain Thomas Nairne has, as I think, acted as +becomes him and very much to my satisfaction—Malcolm ffraser.</p></div> + +<p>From Prescott on the 29th of October, 1812, Tom wrote to his mother of +his delight at being once more a regular "in that distinguished old +corps the 49th." It was indeed a fine regiment.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page153" name="page153"></a>Pg 153</span> Brock had led it in +North Holland and in 1801 it had been on board the fleet at Copenhagen +with Hyde Parker and Nelson; it is now the Berkshire Regiment and the +name "Queenston" where its commander, Brock, fell, is on its flag. +Though a soldier not a sailor, Tom had now one gunboat and three armed +batteaux under his command, and, when writing, he had just arrived at +Prescott with the American prisoners taken in the gallant action at +Queenston where Brock was killed. His tone is serious and tender. "When +the war is over I trust in God we shall all have a happy meeting again +at Murray Bay, perhaps never more to part during our stay in this +world." It was now his plan that if he should outlive the war he would +go to Edinburgh, find a wife and settle himself on his property without +loss of time. A few days later, on November 15th, he writes from +Kingston of a lively incident in which he has taken part. With six +schooners and an armed tug, the <i>Oneida</i>, of 18 guns, all full of +troops, the Americans had appeared before the place. At 4 o'clock on the +morning of the 10th the adjutant of the 49th came into Tom's barrack +room to arouse him with the news that the enemy was thought to be +landing a force five or six miles above the town. "He lit my candle," +says Tom, "and left. I immediately jumped out of bed, dressed myself in +a devil of a hurry and sallied forth to the Barrack yard where I found +three<span class="pagenum"><a id="page154" name="page154"></a>Pg 154</span> Companies of the 49th under arms, Gunners preparing matches and +artillery horses scampering out of the yards with field pieces." He was +soon sent to hold a bridge about three miles west of the town. The ships +kept up a fierce cannonade for some time but it was so briskly returned +that in the end they drew away having lost four men. But they had +command of the lake, a supremacy not to be challenged until a British +Commodore, Sir James Yeo, arrived in the following summer.</p> + +<p>In his letters at this time Nairne speaks of his heavy expenses and says +that even if the opportunity came to visit Murray Bay he could not go +for lack of money. So he begs his mother to build all the mills and +houses she can, and thus to make the profits which he sorely needs. He +complains of hearing from home so rarely: "You have only wrote once, I +believe, since I came to the Upper Country. What in the name of wonder +are you all about? I hope Yankey Doodle has not run off with you. I am +sure there can be no complaints of my being negligent in this way."</p> + +<p>The scene changed rapidly. Early in February, 1813, Nairne was sent to +Niagara. Here for a time he was stationed at Fort George. The Americans +were now menacing Fort Erie on the Canadian side of the Niagara River. +But things were looking well for the British. On January 22nd the +British Colonel Procter defeated the American General Winchester at +Frenchtown<span class="pagenum"><a id="page155" name="page155"></a>Pg 155</span> near Detroit and made him and 500 of his men prisoners. Now +young Nairne talked even of "extirpating" General Harrison whom the +English were attacking in what is now the state of Ohio. But again high +hopes were dashed. General Harrison succeeded in forcing the British to +evacuate Detroit; then he invaded Canada, and before the campaign of +1813 was over he defeated the British badly at the river Thames in what +is now Western Ontario. Meanwhile about Niagara there was some lively +campaigning. In March Nairne describes an exciting night journey in +sleighs from Fort George to Chippewa near Niagara Falls where an +American landing was feared. Echoes of more distant wars reach this +remote frontier. This was the winter of Napoleon's terrible retreat from +Moscow and word comes, "glorious news certainly if true," that 140,000 +French have been captured by the Russians.</p> + +<p>Nearer home the chronicle was less glorious. The American fleet appeared +before York (Toronto), burned the Parliament Buildings and public +records, and carried off even the church plate, and the books from the +library, of Upper Canada's capital, acts avenged by the burning of +Washington later in the war. Flushed with success, the Americans now +prepared to attack Fort George in overwhelming force. The 49th, Nairne's +regiment, were the chief defenders. The attack came on May 27th, 1813. +There was sharp and bloody<span class="pagenum"><a id="page156" name="page156"></a>Pg 156</span> fighting. Greatly outnumbered, the British +were beaten; so hastily did they evacuate the fort that Nairne and +others lost their personal effects. He writes, somewhat ruefully, that +he has now only the clothes on his back and his watch, a purse, a family +ring, and some trinkets. But this had its compensations; now he could +carry everything in a haversack and blanket. Even paper, pens and ink +are hardly to be got; he is writing on the last bit of paper he is +likely to have for some time.</p> + +<p>For many weeks the young man took his share in this campaigning in the +Niagara peninsula. The British headquarters were by this time at +Burlington Heights at the head of Lake Ontario, half way between Fort +George and York, the ruined capital. By June the British had turned on +the foe with vigour. On June 6th they rather stumbled into victory at +Stoney Creek, capturing two American Generals, Winder and Chandler. On +June 7th a British squadron, under Sir James Yeo, appeared off +Burlington Heights, bombarded the American camp on the shore at Forty +Mile Creek and compelled a retreat towards Fort George. Soon the British +were menacing the enemy in Fort George itself. Nairne's letters, watched +for, we may be sure, at Murray Bay with breathless interest, recount the +incidents of the campaign. At Beaver Dam, only a dozen miles or so from +Fort George, Lieutenant Fitzgibbon of Nairne's regiment, the 49th, +entrapped an advancing party<span class="pagenum"><a id="page157" name="page157"></a>Pg 157</span> of Americans and, by the clever use of 200 +Indian allies, filled them with such dread of being surrounded and +massacred by the savages that nearly 600 Americans surrendered to little +more than one-third of their number. These same wild Indians in their +war paint were enough, Nairne thought, "to frighten the Black Deil +himsel'," and their proximity in the campaign is one of many causes for +which he thanks Heaven that the plague of war is so far removed from +Murray Bay; even if it lasted for years, it would still not reach that +remote haven, he says. Meanwhile Murray Bay can help him. Two pairs of +socks, one flannel and one linen shirt, have been the modest increases +to his wardrobe since the hasty exit from Fort George many weeks before. +He begs his sisters to make him some shirts and socks, but not many, +since on the marches, usually made at night, he has to carry all his +belongings on his own back. The charge of a too elaborate transport +service sometimes brought against the British army in modern campaigns +seems to have no place in the War of 1812. The British, few in number +and defending an immense area, had to do killing work. Nairne says that +his men were able only rarely even to take off their accoutrements.</p> + +<p>With the arrival of Yeo's squadron the war was again half military, half +naval. Yeo was a brilliant young officer and the remote waters of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page158" name="page158"></a>Pg 158</span> Lake +Ontario witnessed some clever naval tactics. The small fleets were +evenly matched. Chauncey, the American commander, was very cautious and +would not fight unless he could get the advantage of his longer range of +guns, while Yeo, if he fought at all, preferred to fight at close +quarters; so they manœuvred for position, each declaring that the +other could not be brought to bay. On August 3rd, 1813, Nairne wrote +from Burlington Heights to Malcolm Fraser. In an earlier letter that +veteran had expressed the desire of dancing at Tom's wedding and Tom had +told him, with the prophetic saving clause "should I outlive this war," +that to see his friend of eighty years dancing would be a considerable +inducement to marry. He hopes that they may soon discuss the war "over a +good bottle of your Madeira at Mount Murray."</p> + +<p>He calls Burlington Heights the stronghold of Upper Canada. "The +situation we have chosen is by nature a strong position being bounded on +the east by Burlington bay, on the south by a commanding battery, ditch +and parapet, this being the only side bounded by the mainland; on the +west by a morass and creek; on the north by the continuation of this +same creek, which here discharges itself into Burlington bay. The height +of the land above the level of the water all round is upwards of 100 +feet and the only side therefore necessary to fortify is the south, +which I assure you is pretty strongly so." Here was the chief<span class="pagenum"><a id="page159" name="page159"></a>Pg 159</span> British +supply depôt and Nairne had just been sent thither to aid in repelling a +menace from the American fleet. He had brought his force from Ten Mile +Creek, in boats, on the open lake, and the journey, lasting all day, was +ticklish enough. All the time the American fleet was in pursuit and it +reached the narrow gateway to Burlington Bay only an hour and a half +after Captain Nairne entered. The enemy intended to storm the heights, +and landed 800 men for that purpose; but finding the position too +strong, they re-embarked their force at daylight on August 1st, and bore +away for York (Toronto) where they wrought new havoc in that undefended +and "much to be pitied town."</p> + +<p>On August 20th Nairne writes, still from Burlington Heights. This, his +last letter, gives a dramatic account of a running fight between the +rival fleets, in the dark, illuminated, however, by the flashes from +their cannon:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>It was a moment of great anxiety with us when the two fleets lay in +sight of each other, the one wishing to avoid coming to hard knocks +and the other straining every nerve to be at it. I rode 20 miles to +see the hostile squadrons, and, for nearly two days, had the +pleasure of observing their movements from the mountain at Forty +Mile Creek, and I must confess I never saw a more gratifying or +more interesting sight. At 11 o'clock on the night of the last day +that I was there (the 10th inst.) Sir James Yeo contrived to bring +them [the Americans] to a partial engagement and for an hour and a +half the Lake opposite the <i>Leo</i> ap<span class="pagenum"><a id="page160" name="page160"></a>Pg 160</span>peared to be in a continual +blaze. I remained in a state of uncertainty as to the result till +daylight when I observed the Yanky fleet steering for Fort George +with two Schooners less than they had the evening before, and our +fleet steering towards York with two additional sail. [They were +the <i>Julia</i> and the <i>Growler</i>.] The Americans have besides lost two +of their largest Schooners, which upset from carrying a press of +sail, when our fleet was in chase of them.</p></div> + +<p>While this dramatic fighting is going on before his eyes Nairne's one +regret is that his present quarters are "completely out of the way of +broken heads."</p> + +<p>Meanwhile at Murray Bay events were happening. Colonel Fraser was kept +busy. Some of the French Canadians already showed a restiveness that +ended in open rebellion in 1837 and these misguided people now dreamed +of using the war with the United States as an opportunity for throwing +off the British yoke. At Murray Bay traitorous meetings were held. +Fraser watched them closely and caused a number of the habitants to be +imprisoned for a time on a charge of treason. For an old man of eighty +he showed amazing vigour. His neighbours of the Nairne household were +now in great trouble. Tom's elder sister by five years, Mary, the +sprightly "Polly" of his letters, had brought grief to her family. She +made a clandestine marriage with a habitant, the news of which, the +young man, in his last letter preserved to us, wrote, "nearly bereft me +of my senses." In those anxious days of domestic difficulty and of war +the old mother and her two<span class="pagenum"><a id="page161" name="page161"></a>Pg 161</span> remaining daughters at the Manor House had +assuredly enough to think of. Then came Fate's sharpest blow. The +tradition is still preserved at Murray Bay that on November 11th, 1813, +Mrs. Nairne, the Captain's mother, was in the kitchen at Murray Bay, +when suddenly a sound like the report of a gun came up as it were from +the cellar. She put her hands to her head, cried "Tom is killed," and +sank fainting into a chair. The day and the hour were, it is said, noted +by those about her.</p> + +<p>By this time Thomas Nairne's regiment had passed from Burlington Heights +to Kingston, at the opposite end of Lake Ontario, some two hundred miles +away. The St. Lawrence River had now become the chief danger point for +Canada. On October 21st the American General Wilkinson, with 8,000 men, +left Sackett's Harbour near the east end of Lake Ontario, opposite +Kingston, in boats, to descend the St. Lawrence and attack Montreal—the +identical plan that the British had found so successful in 1760. In +addition, as fifty years earlier, another American force was to advance +through the country bordering on Lake Champlain so that the two armies +might unite before Montreal. From the first the American plans went ill. +The more easterly force met with ignominious defeat by a handful of +French Canadians at Chateauguay. Wilkinson did little better. British +troops, among them Nairne's<span class="pagenum"><a id="page162" name="page162"></a>Pg 162</span> regiment, were hurried down the river under +Colonel Morrison to harass, if possible, Wilkinson's rear and to fire +upon his 300 boats from the points of vantage on the shore. After a slow +descent, day after day, on the night of November 10th the rear of the +American force, under General Boyd, landed and encamped near Crysler's +farm, a short distance above the beginning of the Long Sault Rapids on +the St. Lawrence, to descend which needed caution. As the American rear +was some distance from the vanguard, the British, though much inferior +in numbers, thought the time favourable for attack. On the morning of +the 11th when General Boyd was about to begin his day's march forward, +the British, some 800 against a force of 1800, advanced in line. Their +right was on the river and the line extended to a wood about 700 yards +to the left. The American general did not refuse the gage of battle and +a sharp fight followed. Boyd tried to outflank the British left and +Nairne's company was sent forward to charge for one of the enemy's guns. +When well in advance it was checked by a deep ravine lying between the +two armies and the American cavalry made a movement to cut off the +advancing party. The pause was fatal to Thomas Nairne. A musket ball +entered his head just above the left ear; he died instantly and without +pain. The British won the day. After a fierce fight the enemy fled to +their boats, embarked in great<span class="pagenum"><a id="page163" name="page163"></a>Pg 163</span> disorder and fled down the river. Their +generals, when they could hold a council, decided that the attack on +Montreal must be abandoned.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile dead on the field of battle lay Thomas Nairne. When the action +was over and the enemy had retired, his fellow officers bethought them +of the body of their companion lying stark where he fell. Already some +sinister visitor had been upon the spot for his watch was stolen—"as +was not unusual on such occasions," wrote Nairne's Commanding-officer, +Colonel Plenderleath, grimly. They dug a grave; Colonel Plenderleath +stooped over the body to cut off for those who loved him a lock of hair +falling over the dead face, and then, without a coffin, they laid him in +the earth. But before the grave was filled a member of the Canadian +militia stepped forward. He said that he had known Nairne's father, and +begged that, for the esteem and veneration which he bore that gallant +soldier, he might be allowed time to provide a coffin for his son. A +rough box was hastily prepared. In this the body was placed and once +more lowered into the grave and there, a few yards from where he fell, +the mortal remains of Thomas Nairne were committed to the earth with the +solemn rites of the Anglican Church.</p> + +<p>The next day Colonel Plenderleath, who was not two yards away when +Captain Nairne fell, wrote to Judge Bowen what words of comfort he could +for Nairne's friends:</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page164" name="page164"></a>Pg 164</span></p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>He was a gallant officer of most amiable Manners and +Disposition.... It may be of some comfort to his family that he has +fallen in the honourable service of his country. We obtained a +complete victory, having beaten a force greatly superior to ours, +driven him from the field of battle, and captured one Gun and +several Prisoners.</p></div> + +<p>If Nairne fell Canada was saved and the gallant young officer did not +die in vain.</p> + +<p>News travelled slowly in those days but bad news has swifter wings than +good; a week after Thomas Nairne fell the particulars of his death had +reached Quebec. It was Judge Bowen's painful duty to send to Murray Bay +the intelligence he had received from Nairne's Colonel. He wrote to Mr. +Le Courtois, the curé, giving the sad news and adding "I understand that +the enemy have since crossed over to their own side.... Would to God +their visit had fallen upon any other head than that of our poor +friends." He begged Mr. Le Courtois, who, himself an exile from France +because of the Revolution, had witnessed many sad days, to be the +minister of consolation at this time. "You will, I am sure be the friend +of the distressed and instil into their bosoms that peace which, I am +afraid, nothing but your assistance and time can restore to them." Mr. +Le Courtois was to hand to Miss Nairne a touching and wise letter from +Bowen. "Do not, my dear Miss Nairne," he wrote, "give way to feelings +but too natural upon a trying moment like this but rather<span class="pagenum"><a id="page165" name="page165"></a>Pg 165</span> exert +yourself to speak comfort and consolation to your dear Mother. Recall to +her that we are all but sojourners here on earth and that he is but gone +before to those blessed mansions of eternal peace and happiness where +she will one day meet him never to part again." Old Malcolm Fraser sent +the sad news to Tom's friends in Scotland. "I am not fit to write much," +he said, but he found comfort in the thought that the young Captain died +gallantly and that the enemy "must have suffered great loss of men, as +they were entirely drove off the Field and they lost a piece of cannon. +But, alas! all this can afford little consolation to his good and +afflicted mother."</p> + +<p>Nairne's body was not allowed to remain where he had fallen. Judge Bowen +thought he ought to lie at Quebec beside his soldier father and this was +also in accord with Mrs. Nairne's wishes. Colonel Morrison, the officer +in command on the field where Nairne fell, had already been transferred +to the garrison at Quebec and every attention was paid to the task. +Bowen ordered a strong oak coffin, large enough to contain that in which +Nairne was buried, and with this itself in an outer box a man was sent +to bring back the body. He bore a letter from the Bishop of Quebec to +the clergyman who had buried Nairne. All was carried out as arranged. A +second time Nairne's body was taken from the grave where it had been +laid and its bearer began his long<span class="pagenum"><a id="page166" name="page166"></a>Pg 166</span> winter journey to Quebec. The sleigh +with its sad burden, a moving dark speck on a white background, made its +slow way along the wintry roads and by the shores of the ice bound St. +Lawrence. We can picture the awed solemnity with which the French +Canadian peasants heard the story of Nairne's fall as his body rested +for the night in inn or farm yard. On January 20th, 1814, Bowen wrote to +Mr. Le Courtois that the body would arrive by Saturday as it was at +Berthier on the previous day when the stage passed.</p> + +<p>The funeral took place at one o'clock on the 26th of January, 1814. Of +the people of Murray Bay a single unnamed habitant was present, a man +detained by Bowen in Quebec that he might witness the ceremony and carry +back an account of it to his home. "I examined the body," wrote Bowen +briefly of what must have been a grim task, "with the assistance of my +friend Buchanan and there cannot now be the smallest doubt as to the +identity of it. He was buried poor Fellow in the Cloathes he wore when +killed. His Regimental Jackit and shoes which were put into his coffin I +found in it upon opening it and have taken them out and will preserve +them for his poor friends if so melancholy a Remembrance of him should +be desired by them." The lock of hair cut off by Colonel Plenderleath at +the funeral was brought to Quebec by young Sewell, one of Nairne's +companions; the remainder of his effects, sent<span class="pagenum"><a id="page167" name="page167"></a>Pg 167</span> forward in a box, seem +to have been lost on the way. At the funeral the six senior Captains in +Quebec were his pall bearers and the mourners were fellow officers of +the 49th and Quebec friends of his family—well-known names—Caldwell, +McCord, Stewart, Hale, Mountain, Dunn and Bowen himself. A great crowd +was present. "Never," wrote Bowen to Miss Nairne, "was a funeral at +Quebec more generally attended." The death of the young officer was too +tragic not to call forth the sympathy of a wide circle. Eulogies were +pronounced upon him and they said only what was true—that a soldier, +brave, lovable and promising had fallen on the field of honour.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page168" name="page168"></a>Pg 168</span></p> +<h2>CHAPTER VII</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">A French Canadian Village</span></h3> + +<h4>Life at Murray Bay after Captain Nairne's death.—Letters from +Europe.—Death of Malcolm Fraser.—Death of Colonel Nairne's widow +and children.—His grandson John Nairne, seigneur.—Village +life.—The Church's influence.—The habitant's tenacity.—His +cottage.—His labours.—His amusements.—The Church's missionary +work in the villages.—The powers of the bishop.—His +visitations.—The organization of the parish.—The powers of the +<i>fabrique</i>.—Lay control of Church finance.—The curé's tithe.—The +best intellects enter the Church.—A native Canadian clergy.—The +curé's social life.—The Church and Temperance Reform.—The +diligence of the curés.—The habitant's taste for the +supernatural.—The belief in goblins.—Prayer in the family.—The +habitant as voter.—The office of Churchwarden.—The Church's +influence in elections.—The seigneur's position,—The habitant's +obligations to him.—Rent day and New Year's Day.—The seigneur's +social rank.—The growth of discontent in the villages.—The evils +of Seigniorial Tenure.—Agitation against the system.—Its +abolition in 1854.—The last of the Nairnes.—The Nairne tomb in +Quebec.</h4> + + +<p>With the death of Thomas Nairne almost end the dramatic events in the +history of the family. It remains briefly to bring this to its +conclusion, and to add to it some general account of a village of French +Canada in the past and in the present. Captain Nairne's mother was now +the owner of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page169" name="page169"></a>Pg 169</span> the property and it continued in her competent hands until +her death in 1828. "Polly's" marriage had taken that daughter away and, +though there was a reconciliation, no longer was the Manor House her +home. Mrs. McNicol (with her husband and children) and Christine Nairne +still lived there with the widow of Colonel Nairne, and life went on +much as before, save that its interests were now narrowed to Murray Bay; +no more was there an outside career, such as the young Captain's, to +watch.</p> + +<p>When Thomas Nairne was killed the struggle against Napoleon in Europe +had reached a supreme crisis. Occasional letters to Murray Bay give +glimpses of great events. On March 16th, 1814, an Edinburgh friend +writes to Christine: "The Castle was fired to-day in honour of the +successes of our allies in France who have again routed Bonaparte, who +has retreated to Paris. His enemies are within twenty-five miles of that +capital so we must hope that the Tyrant's fate is at the Crisis and that +we shall soon enjoy the blessings of a permanent peace; much has Bony to +answer for." Ker wrote a little later from Edinburgh to say that +Bonaparte "is now a prisoner on board of one of our 74 gun ships," and +to express the hope that by his fall Britons will soon get quit of the +property tax.</p> + +<p>On March 17th, 1815, we hear from another correspondent of the renewed +firing of the Castle<span class="pagenum"><a id="page170" name="page170"></a>Pg 170</span> guns at Edinburgh, this time to announce the +arrival from America of the ratification of Peace with the United +States. "We only regret this had not been settled before the disastrous +affair at New Orleans where we have lost so many brave men and able +generals, but such are the horrors of war." Just as this peace came in +America renewed war broke out in Europe. "That monster Bonaparte a +fortnight since landed and raised the standard of rebellion in the south +of France. The accounts from there are very contradictory." On March +22nd the news seems better. "Troops are assembling in defence of France +and the traitor does not seem to have any adherents, so we would fain +hope all may go well." The writer, a Miss Beck, sends, for the amusement +of Murray Bay, the book "Guy Mannering," which is "in very high repute +... the author unknown, but very generally thought to be Walter Scott, +the Poet."</p> + +<p>The hope that all would go well in regard to Bonaparte was soon +dissipated. Ker wrote on April 10th, 1815, a bitter letter:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>We were flattering ourselves with being at Peace with the whole +world when like a thunderbolt, the tremendous news of the monster +Buonaparte's Escape from Elba, his landing and rapid progress +through France, and the second Expulsion of the unhappy Bourbons +burst upon us!... We have the immediate prospect of being involved +in a bloody and interminable war, the consequences of which no man +can foretell. The French army, Marshalls, and Generals have covered +themselves with indelible Dis<span class="pagenum"><a id="page171" name="page171"></a>Pg 171</span>grace and shewn themselves, what I +always thought them, the most perfidious and perjured traitors and +miscreants that the world ever produced, and the rest of the French +Nation are a set of the most unprincipled Knaves and Cowards that +ever were recorded in history. I trust however that their +punishment is at hand and that the Almighty will speedily hurl +vengeance on their guilty heads. Among other evils, a new tax on +Property, with additions, is said to be in immediate contemplation +and God knows how we shall bear all the accumulating Burdens to +which this Country must be subjected.</p></div> + +<p>Just at this time came old Malcolm Fraser's end. At the age of 82 he +died on June 17th, 1815, the day before the battle of Waterloo. He had +entered the army in 1757 and apparently was still serving in the +Canadian militia at the time of his death so that his military career +covered well nigh sixty years. One instruction given in his will is +characteristic; it is that his body might "be committed to the earth or +water, as it may happen, and with as little ceremony and expense as may +be consistent with decency." His removal was a heavy blow to the family +at the Manor House. It was Christine who kept most in touch with the +outside world and to her the letters of the period are nearly all +addressed. They contained the gossip of Quebec,—how in December, 1814, +a Mr. Lyman—"a bad name for a true story to come from,"—had brought +word of peace negotiations at Ghent; news of General Procter's Court +Martial and of a fee of £500 paid to Andrew<span class="pagenum"><a id="page172" name="page172"></a>Pg 172</span> Stuart, one of the lawyers +in the case. The letters are few and in 1817 they cease altogether. +During the spring of the year Christine had been ailing. On a June day +she drove out for an airing and, as she alighted from the carriage, +expired instantly. The feeling of the Protestant family towards the +Roman Catholic Church is shown in the fact that she left a small legacy +to the curé, Mr. Le Courtois.</p> + +<p>There now remained but two daughters. In May, 1821, "Polly" died in +Quebec at Judge Bowen's house. Her old mother followed in 1828. Of +Colonel Nairne's large family but one child remained, Mrs. McNicol. Her +husband, Peter McNicol, appears to have been a quiet and retiring man +and of him we hear little. He was an officer in the local militia and, +in 1830, became a Captain in the second Battalion of the County of +Saguenay. There were two sons, Thomas and John. Thomas, the elder, was +to get the estate at Murray Bay; for John India was talked of; but his +mother could not let him go—"our family has been too unlucky by going +there." In 1826, when a youth of twenty, Thomas made a tour in Europe. +Then, or later, the young man fell into dissipated habits and he died in +early manhood. There remained only John. When he came of age in 1829 he +too travelled in Europe; in April he was at Rome and there saw the +newly-elected Pope, Pius VIII. He returned to Canada quite a man of the +world and for a time lived in<span class="pagenum"><a id="page173" name="page173"></a>Pg 173</span> Quebec, engaged in business. But in 1834 +when his father Peter McNicol died<a name="FNanchor_25_25" id="FNanchor_25_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a> John's prospects changed. The +seigniory belonged to his mother, during her lifetime, but he was the +heir. It seemed desirable that the name of the first seigneur should be +continued and, in 1834, by royal warrant, John McNicol adopted the name +and arms of Nairne. Once more was there a John Nairne. In 1837 we find +him empowered to take the oath of allegiance from the habitants—to show +that they were not in sympathy with the rebel Papineau. His mother, the +old Colonel's last surviving child, died in 1839. She was a kindly +woman, of genial temper, with a fine faculty for friendship; so intimate +was she with Malcolm Fraser's daughter that she wrote "I do believe, nay +am sure, she has not a thought with which I am not made acquainted." She +never lost her sympathy with young people and her delight in their +"innocent gaiety."</p> + +<p>As in 1762, so now again in 1839, a John Nairne ruled at Murray Bay. The +young seigneur soon took a wife. In 1841 he married Miss Catherine +Leslie, of a well known Canadian family, a bride of only seventeen, and +then settled down at Murray Bay to live the life of a country gentleman. +He became Colonel in the militia, took some part in politics on the +Conservative side, and studied<span class="pagenum"><a id="page174" name="page174"></a>Pg 174</span> agriculture. He was resolved to keep up +the dignity of his position and set about rebuilding the manor house. +The work was begun in 1845 and completed by the autumn of 1847; the new +structure with little change is the present Manor. It is of stone +covered with wood, a capacious dwelling with some fine rooms, and +admirably suited to its purpose. To John Nairne an heir was born in 1842 +and named John Leslie Nairne and the prospect seemed excellent for the +final establishment of a Nairne dynasty in the seigniory. But, alas, +this was not to be. The child died in his third year and the last of the +Nairnes ruled at Murray Bay knowing that with himself the family should +become extinct.</p> + +<p>We must turn now to study the type of community of which he was the +chief. A singular type it is, French in speech, Roman Catholic in faith, +half feudal in organization, in a land British in allegiance, if not in +origin. Long the determined rival of the Briton in America the French +Canadian, though worsted in the struggle, remains still unconquered in +his determination to live his own separate life and pursue his own +separate ideals. When the British took Canada they fondly imagined that +in a few years a little pressure would bring the French Canadians into +the Protestant fold.<a name="FNanchor_26_26" id="FNanchor_26_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> Immediately after the conquest prepar<span class="pagenum"><a id="page175" name="page175"></a>Pg 175</span>ations +for this gradual absorption were made. The Roman Catholics were to be +undisturbed but, as soon as a majority in any parish was Protestant, a +clergyman of that faith would be appointed and the parish church would +be given over to the Protestant worship. The minority would, it was +hoped, acquiesce, and, in time, adopt the creed of the majority. The +most illuminating comment upon these expectations is the fact that, +during the half century after the conquest, Protestantism made probably +not more than half a dozen converts among the Canadians, while of +Protestants coming to the country during that time hundreds went over to +the Church of Rome. In other ways too the type in French Canada has +proved curiously persistent. A Lowland Scot of twenty-five married an +Irish woman of twenty-three and went to live in a French Canadian +parish. Hitherto they had spoken only English but after twenty-five +years they could not even understand it when heard. They explained that +at first they spoke English to each other but when the children went to +school they used only French. So the parents yielded "<i>C'était les +enfants, M'sieu!</i>"</p> + +<p>A modern critic of France<a name="FNanchor_27_27" id="FNanchor_27_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> has announced, as a sounding paradox, that +the French, even of present-day anti-clerical France, are a profoundly +religious people. Certainly this appears in France's efforts in Canada. +When the Roman Catholic faith was<span class="pagenum"><a id="page176" name="page176"></a>Pg 176</span> first planted there the ground was +watered with the blood of martyrs, done to death by brutal savages. At +the very time when in France Pascal's satire and scorn were making the +spiritual sincerity of the Jesuits more than doubtful, in Canada these +same Jesuits were dying for their faith almost with a light heart. They +and others, like-minded, won New France for the Catholic Church and to +that Church the conquered habitant has since clung with a tenacity +really heroic. He accepts its creed, he believes in its clergy. Whatever +license of conduct marked the clergy of France in the bad days before +the Revolution, the clergy in Canada during the 300 years of its history +have been notable for a severity in morals so austere that hardly once +in that long period has there been a whisper of scandal. In consequence, +they have always retained the respect of the people and to-day, in every +village, the curé commands extraordinary influence.</p> + +<p>It may be that to the Church chiefly does the habitant owe the +preservation of his identity. Inferior to the heretic conqueror in +social status, the habitant yet retained in religion the sense of his +own superiority. Was he not a member of an ancient body, in the presence +of which Protestantism represented a mushroom growth of yesterday? The +Church taught him that wealth, honour, and worldly power were not always +given to the faithful; they had the truer riches of spir<span class="pagenum"><a id="page177" name="page177"></a>Pg 177</span>itual +privileges and spiritual hopes. What mattered the pride of life in the +face of these eternal treasures? So the habitant went his way. Led by +his teachers he showed striking tenacity of character. He would not +follow the customs of the English. He looked with suspicion upon their +methods. Even in agriculture, where he had everything to learn, he would +not imitate him. Their language he would not learn, their religion he +abhorred; so he remained, and he remains still, true to his own +traditions, a Gallic island in the vast Anglo-Saxon sea of North +America.</p> + +<p>The habitant has not proved a pliable person. The very name shows his +sense of his own dignity. Though he held his land under feudal tenure he +would not accept a designation that carried with it some sense of the +servile status of the feudal vassal in old France. So the Canadian +peasant, a feudal tenant <i>en censive</i> or <i>en roture</i>, yet wished not to +be called <i>censitaire</i> or <i>roturier</i>, names which he thought degrading; +he preferred to be called a habitant, an inhabitant of the country, a +free man, not a vassal. The designation obtained official recognition in +New France and has come to be the characteristic word for the French +Canadian farmer among English-speaking people.</p> + +<p>In other respects too the Canadian has been hardly less assertive. +Earlier writers, while they call him obliging, honest and courteous, +speak also of his self-conceit, boastfulness, fondness for<span class="pagenum"><a id="page178" name="page178"></a>Pg 178</span> drink. At +Malbaie Nairne found him defiant when his spirit was aroused. Not less +tenacious than the men were the women. Malcolm Fraser tells how when he +was stationed at Beaumont, near Quebec, in January, 1761, he sent one of +his men to cut wood on the property of a certain habitant, the man +himself consenting. But Madame, his wife, was not pleased. She abused +Fraser, called him opprobrious names, and, in a war of words, remained, +he admits, mistress of the field. The wrathful virago carried her appeal +to Murray in Quebec, who, she said, had passed many officers under the +rod and Fraser found himself called upon to explain the matter. In a +petition he humbly begs that some "recompence" (of punishment of course) +may be made to the woman for "the insolent expressions used by her as +well against the general, as the officers, who have the honour to serve +under His Excellency."</p> + +<p>Even when he knows only rude frontier life the French Canadian often +retains something of the politeness and deference in manner of the +nation from which he springs. But, unlike them, he has retained little +sense of what is artistic. No thought of beauty of situation seems to +determine his choice of the site for his dwelling. What he has in mind +is protection from the prevailing wind, if this is possible, and, for +the rest, convenience. So he puts his house close to the highway, in +many cases even abutting upon it.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page179" name="page179"></a>Pg 179</span> He shows no taste in grouping his +farm buildings. He plants few trees and his house stands bare and +unattractive by the road side. The absence of trees near his dwelling is +sometimes accounted for by the need, in earlier times, of clearing away +everything that might offer a chance of ambush to his Indian enemies. If +this is the true origin of the habit, an instinct survives long after +the need which developed it has disappeared. The houses are persistent +in type and nearly always of wood. The principle doorway opens into the +living room, usually of a good size. It is kitchen, diningroom, parlour, +often even workshop. In this chamber cooking, sewing, repairing of +tools, all the varied family activities, take place. One large guest +chamber or two small bedrooms open off it. In the corner there is a rude +staircase and up under the sloping roof are two more rooms; one a +bed-room probably with three or four beds, the other a general lumber +room. Often there are two families in a household. As always with the +French, family feeling is very strong. As soon as they are old enough +the elder sons may go out into the world; it is usually a younger son +whom the father selects to remain with him on the family property. This +son is free to marry and to him, when the old father dies, the land goes +on condition that he will always keep the door open to members of the +family who may seek its refuge. It is not easy to see how so small a +cottage can dis<span class="pagenum"><a id="page180" name="page180"></a>Pg 180</span>charge these hospitable functions; in addition to adults +there are often, in a French Canadian family, from ten to fifteen, +sometimes twenty or twenty-five children. Through the long winters, +doors and windows remain closed. The family gets on without fresh air +and it gets on also without baths.</p> + +<p>Since there are often many hands to do the work habitant farming is +greatly diversified. But improvements come only slowly. Some of the most +fertile areas in Quebec have been half ruined because the habitant would +not learn the proper rotation of crops. Of the value of fertilizing he +has had only a slight idea. His domestic animals are usually of an +inferior breed, except perhaps the horses. Of these he is proud and, no +matter how poor, usually keeps two, an extravagance for which he was +rebuked by successive Intendants under the French régime. In recent +times the French Canadian farmer has been making great progress. He is +pre-eminently a handy man. Though his versatility is lessening, to this +day, in some of the remoter villages, he buys almost nothing; he is +carpenter, farmer, blacksmith, shoemaker; and, if not he, his wife is +weaver and tailor. The waggon he drives is his handiwork; so is the +harness; the home-spun cloth of his suit is made by his wife from the +wool of his own sheep: it is an excellent fabric but, alas, the young +people now prefer the machine-made cottons and cloths<span class="pagenum"><a id="page181" name="page181"></a>Pg 181</span> of commerce and +will no longer wear homespun. Sometimes the habitant makes his own +boots, the excellent <i>bottes sauvages</i> of the country. The women make +not only home-spun cloth, but linen, straw hats, gloves, candles, soap. +When there are maple trees, the habitant provides his own sugar; he +makes even the buckets in which the sap of the maple tree is caught. +Tobacco grows in his garden, for the habitant is an inveterate smoker: +sometimes the boys begin when only five years old or less. The women and +the girls, indeed, do not smoke and an American visitor, who declares +that he saw pretty French Canadian brunettes of sixteen puffing clouds +of smoke as they worked in the harvest field, is solemnly rebuked by a +French Canadian writer; the brunettes must have been Indian women.<a name="FNanchor_28_28" id="FNanchor_28_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a></p> + +<p>Though nearly all the children now go to school, yet reading can hardly +be considered one of the amusements of the habitant. In the +neighbourhood of Malbaie, at least, rarely does one see other than books +of devotion in a habitant household; the book-shelf is conspicuous by +its absence. Of course newspapers are read but many of the habitants are +still illiterate, or nearly so, and read nothing. Not less gay are they +for this deprivation. They are endless talkers, good story tellers, and +fond of song and dance. They have preserved some of the popular songs of +France,—<span class="pagenum"><a id="page182" name="page182"></a>Pg 182</span><i>Malbrouck s'en va-t-en guerre</i>, <i>En roulant ma Boule +roulant</i>, <i>A la Claire Fontaine</i>, and others—and these airs simple, +pleasing, a little sad, have become characteristic of French Canada. +Nearly every house has its violin, often home-made, and though this +music is rude it suffices for dancing. But some of the bishops are as +severe in regard to dancing as is the Methodist "Book of Discipline" and +in their dioceses the practise is allowed only under narrow +restrictions. The short Canadian summer makes that season for the +habitant one of severe labour. Winter, though it has its own labours, +such as cutting wood, is the great season of social intercourse. For a +long time the habitant would not consider a mechanic his social equal; +perhaps, still, the daughters of a farmer would spurn the advances of +the village carpenter. But whatever the social distinctions, baptisms, +marriages, anniversaries, are made the occasions for festivity. There +are <i>corvées récreatives</i>, such as parties gathered for taking the husks +off Indian corn, when there is apt to be a good deal of kissing as part +of the game. At New Year, the <i>jour de l'an</i>, the feasting lasts for +three days. Hospitality is universal and it is almost a slight not to +call at this time upon any acquaintance living within a distance of +twenty miles. Every habitant has his horse and sleigh and thinks little +of a long drive.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page183" name="page183"></a>Pg 183</span></p> + +<p>Often in the foreground of the habitant's life, always in the background +at least, stand the Church and the priest. Malbaie, like a hundred other +populous, present-day Roman Catholic parishes, was nursed in the first +instance by the travelling missionary. In winter he could go on snow +shoes but his usual means of travel in a country, covered by forests, +but with a net-work of lakes and rivers, was by canoe. Malbaie could be +reached either from Tadousac, at the mouth of the Saguenay, one of the +earliest mission stations in Canada, or from Baie St. Paul in the other +direction. The St. Lawrence was oftentimes a perilous route. Its waves +rise at times huge as those of Ocean itself; a frail canoe could only +hug the shore and at times would be storm bound for days. The missionary +travelled usually with an attendant. They carried a portable chapel with +the vessels necessary for the celebration of the mass. We have a +description of the arrival of one of these missionaries, the Abbé Morel, +as long ago as in 1683, at Rivière Ouelle where one now takes the ferry +to cross to Murray Bay. A group of people stand on the shore watching a +small black object round a distant point. As it comes nearer they see it +is a birch bark canoe, paddled by two men. In a short time the bow of +the canoe has touched the sandy beach where stands the waiting group. As +the figure in the bow rises a long black cassock falls down to his<span class="pagenum"><a id="page184" name="page184"></a>Pg 184</span> +feet; he is the long expected missionary come to celebrate mass. With +the sun sinking behind the mountains of the north shore, a kind of +triumphal procession escorts the missionary to one of the neighbouring +houses. The evening is spent in preparation for the service of the +morrow. The priest hears confessions and imposes penances. At daybreak +on the following morning the people begin to gather, some coming by land +from the neighbouring clearings, others, in birch bark canoes, from +points more distant. Perhaps fifty persons gather before the house. +Meanwhile in its best room the portable altar has been arranged. Silence +falls upon the people as they enter the door. The mass begins; after the +gospel the priest preaches a practical sermon with impressive solemnity. +The mass over, a second service, vespers, soon follows. Then the people +separate. Before the priest leaves he says the office of the dead over a +grave made, it may be, many weeks ago, he baptizes children born since +his last visit, and perhaps marries one or more bashful couples. "How +beautiful upon the mountains," says a Canadian historian of the work of +these devoted men, "are the feet of those who bring the gospel of +peace."<a name="FNanchor_29_29" id="FNanchor_29_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a> Such a scene we may be sure was enacted many a time for the +benefit of the scattered sheep at Malbaie before and after the arrival +of Colonel Nairne.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page185" name="page185"></a>Pg 185</span></p> + +<p>It was not until 1797 that these occasional services ceased and Murray +Bay secured a resident priest. Then was fully established in the parish +the imposing church system that to-day probably retains its original +vigour more completely in the Province of Quebec than in any other +country in the world. At its head is the diocesan bishop. Subject only +to the distant authority of the Pope he reigns supreme. With one or two +exceptions, such as that of the curé of Quebec, he appoints and he can +remove any and every priest in his diocese, a right, it is said, almost +never exercised arbitrarily. He fixes the tariff to be paid for masses. +It is he who determines whether such a practise as, for instance, +dancing shall be permitted in the diocese. He watches over the Church's +rights and gives the alarm when a political leader proposes anything +that seems to menace them. If a newspaper adopts a course dangerous to +the Church it has often happened that the bishop gives it one or two +warnings; in case of continued obstinacy his last act is to forbid the +faithful to read the paper; and since most of them will obey, this +involves ruin for the recalcitrant journal.</p> + +<p>The bishop visits each parish at least every third year and sometimes +even annually. A mounted cavalcade will probably meet him as he crosses +its boundary. A procession is formed. The roads have been cleared and +decorated with boughs of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page186" name="page186"></a>Pg 186</span> ever-green trees stuck in the ground. The +people watch the cavalcade from their doors and all kneel as the +procession passes. The bishop goes at once to the church where he gives +his benediction and holds confirmation. He remains for some days. There +is daily communion and spiritual instruction. He inspects +everything—the church and its furnishings, the registers, the accounts, +the inventory of effects, the cemetery. He has already given notice that +he is ready to hear any complaints or grievances even against the curé. +We may be sure that when he comes there is a general clearing up of +parochial difficulties. A wise bishop is a great peacemaker; an +arbitrary one commands an authority not lightly to be disregarded.</p> + +<p>The church that towers over the humble cottages of a French Canadian +village invariably seems huge. But we need to remember how large are the +parishes and how few in number relatively are the churches; it is +probable that in English-speaking Canada there are half a dozen +churches, or more, to every one in the Province of Quebec. In all +Canada, rural and urban, there is probably not a Protestant parish to +which are attached as many, or perhaps half as many, people as the five +thousand who dwell in the parish of St. Etienne de la Malbaie, one of +secondary importance in the Province of Quebec. In a whole diocese there +are often not more than forty or<span class="pagenum"><a id="page187" name="page187"></a>Pg 187</span> fifty parishes. In the country the +churches are usually built at intervals of not more than three leagues +(nine miles) so that no one may have to travel more than a league and a +half to mass. The life of the people centres in the Church. In its +registers, kept with great accuracy, is to be found the chief record of +the village drama, the story of its births, marriages and deaths. True +to the tastes of old France the French Canadian has an amazing interest +in family history, and genealogies, based upon these ample records, are +closely studied. In the olden days the habitant brought his savings to +be kept in the Church's strong chest. The church edifice, its pictures +and its other furnishings, are things in which to take pride. Each +village aspires to have its own chime of bells. To chronicle baptisms, +marriages, burials, anniversaries, the chimes are rung for a longer or +shorter time according to the fee paid. Every day one hears them often +and a considerable revenue must come from this source. Whatever the +habitant knows of art, painting, sculpture, music, he learns from the +Church and it is all associated with religious hopes and fears. +"Dwellers in cities," says a French Canadian writer, "have concerts, +theatres, museums; in the rural communities it is the Church that +provides all this. During her services the most fervent among the +faithful taste by anticipation the joys of heaven and murmur, enchanted: +'Since here all<span class="pagenum"><a id="page188" name="page188"></a>Pg 188</span> is so beautiful in the house of the Lord how much more +so will it be in his paradise!'"<a name="FNanchor_30_30" id="FNanchor_30_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a></p> + +<p>Thus it happens that here the parish and its church have a significance +not felt where, as now in practically all English speaking countries, +each community represents a variety of religious beliefs. At Malbaie, as +in dozens of other parishes, there is not, except in summer, a single +Protestant. So strong is the pressure of religious and social opinion, +that even persons with no belief in Christianity are constrained to join +outwardly at least in the church services. In the villages, at least, +nearly every one confesses and partakes of the communion many times in +the year; at Easter there are practically no abstentions from the +sacrament. With this unanimity it has been possible to establish by +legislation a most elaborate system providing for the support of the +priests, for keeping up cemeteries and other parish needs. Elsewhere +left largely to voluntary action, in Quebec such duties become a tax on +the community as a whole. Whether a parishioner likes it or not, he +must, if the taxpayers so determine, pay his share for building a church +or for other similar expenditure decided upon.</p> + +<p>We will suppose that a new residence for the priest is desired. A +majority of ratepayers must address to the bishop of the diocese a +petition with a plan of what is proposed. The commission<span class="pagenum"><a id="page189" name="page189"></a>Pg 189</span> of five +members which exists in every diocese then gives ten days' public notice +in order that objectors may have every opportunity to express their +views. When, in the end, a decision to build is reached, the +commissioners announce this by public proclamation. The next step is for +the ratepayers of the parish to meet and vote the necessary money. +Trustees are then appointed to carry out the work with power to collect +the required funds from the Catholic ratepayers. This assessment is a +first charge on the land; it must be divided into at least twelve equal +instalments and the payments are spread over not less than three, or +more than eight, years. To be quite safe the trustees levy fifteen per +cent. more than the estimated cost. If ready money is not on hand for +the work the church property may be mortgaged. When the building is +completed the trustees render their accounts with vouchers and take oath +that they are correct. All is precise, clearly defined, business-like.</p> + +<p>No expenditure of money can be made for building without the consent of +the people. Always in French Canada a trace of old Gallican liberties +has remained, in the power over Church finances left in the hands of +churchwardens (<i>marguillers</i>) elected by the people. But in the old days +when the habitant was more ignorant and less alert than now he is, no +doubt the voice in this respect might be the voice of the churchwarden, +but the hand<span class="pagenum"><a id="page190" name="page190"></a>Pg 190</span> was the hand of the curé. No doubt, also, it is still true +that any project upon which the curé sets his heart he will in the end +probably get a majority of the parishioners to adopt. But he must +persuade the people. Sometimes they oppose his plan strenuously and +feeling runs high. Then when a churchwarden is elected, as one is +annually, the curé may have his candidate, the opposing party theirs. At +Malbaie recently there was a sharp difference of opinion between the +curé and the people on a question relating to the cemetery. The parties +divided on the choice of a churchwarden and the curé's candidate was +defeated.</p> + +<p>Yet the curé's position is one of great strength and authority. He has +his own income uncontrolled by the <i>fabrique</i>, which is master of the +rest of the church finances. The curé's tithe consists of one +twenty-sixth of the cereals produced by the parishioners. A further +tithe he has: the twenty-sixth child born to any pair of his +parishioners is by custom brought to the priest and he rears it; +sometimes, strange to say, this tithe is offered! From his tithe on +cereals the income is not large; at Malbaie it is probably never more +than from $1000 to $1200 a year; sometimes much less. The average income +of a curé is not more than $600. It is the custom for the parishioner to +deliver duly at the priest's house one twenty-sixth of his grain and in +the autumn a great<span class="pagenum"><a id="page191" name="page191"></a>Pg 191</span> array of vehicles may be seen making their way +thither. Usually there is considerable variety in the grain thus brought +but sometimes the curé is almost overwhelmed by a single product such as +peas; one of their number, thus paid, the neighbouring clergy christened +the "<i>curé des pois</i>." The French Canadian farmer is often narrowly +penurious and if he will not pay, as sometimes happens, the curé rarely +presses him or takes steps to recover what the law would allow. In any +case a bad harvest is likely to leave the curé poor. Changes in the type +of farming may also curtail his income. Of the products of dairy farming +he gets no share, yet it is a creditable fact that many priests have +urged their people to adopt this kind of farming. Fees for weddings +which, in Protestant Churches, go usually to the minister, are in the +Province of Quebec handed over to the general church fund. Of course the +priest has sources of income other than the tithe. He receives fees for +masses but the sums chargeable for these ceremonies are determined by +the bishop; the priest himself has no power of undue exaction. There is +indeed no evidence of a desire for such exaction. Whatever personal +differences may arise, the French Canadian curé is usually one in +thought and aim with his people. Wherever he goes he is always +respectfully saluted. To him the needy turn and there are heavy calls +upon his charity. Few curés have any surplus income. They keep up<span class="pagenum"><a id="page192" name="page192"></a>Pg 192</span> a +large house and have constant need of one or more horses. Most curés, it +is said, die poor.</p> + +<p>It is the complaint in Great Britain and the United States that, rather +than enter the Christian ministry, the best intellects are seeking +secular pursuits. This is not the case in the Province of Quebec. The +curés watch the promising boys in the schools. The Church has many +boarding schools where boys are led on step by step to the final one of +entering the priesthood. A promising boy, if he needs it, is given a +scholarship. When the time comes he is sent to complete his education at +Rome or elsewhere. The Church has selected him, trained him in her +service, and, for the rest of his life, his best powers are at her call. +Every family is ambitious to have a representative in the priesthood and +this becomes the most notable thing not merely in the family but also in +the parish. The Province of Quebec has many parish histories. These +volumes are rather dreary reading, it must be admitted, consisting +chiefly of the record of the building or improvement of the church and +of the coming and the going of the curés. But one chief record is always +found—that of the sons of the parish who have entered the priesthood. +They are its glory. Not merely pride in the success of their offspring +leads parents to wish for a son in the priesthood. He may bring to them +more substantial benefits. He is the interpreter of sacred mysteries, +the intercessor in some re<span class="pagenum"><a id="page193" name="page193"></a>Pg 193</span>spects between God and man, and he will plead +for them in the court of Heaven.</p> + +<p>This ambition to get sons into the priesthood has made it possible now +for the Church to rely wholly upon priests Canadian in origin. Not +always was this the case. After the British conquest it was not easy to +get priests. The British government frowned upon the introduction of +priests from France, still Britain's arch-enemy. Irish priests were +thought of, but they could not speak French and, besides, the Bishop of +Quebec did not find in them the submissive obedience of the Canadian +priest. For a time it was seriously proposed to supply Canada with +priests from Savoy, since of them Britain could have no political fears. +But for the time the French Revolution solved the question. Emigré +priests, driven from France, could be in Canada no political danger to +Great Britain since, like her, they desired the overthrow of the +existing French government. So a good many emigré priests were brought +out, among them Mr. Le Courtois, so long the curé of Malbaie. This +movement soon spent itself. In time the Church in Canada had a number of +seminaries for training priests and it now levies a heavy tithe upon the +best intellects of the country. Recently a new emigration of French +priests to Canada has taken place. But they have not been wholly +welcome; their tone is not quite that of the Canadian priesthood; +sometimes they<span class="pagenum"><a id="page194" name="page194"></a>Pg 194</span> assume patronizing airs and they are felt to be +foreigners. I have even heard a French Canadian priest say in broken +English to a Protestant from the Province of Ontario: "I feel that I +have more in common with you than I have with the French priests who are +flocking into this country."</p> + +<p>The Canadian curé is the priest always. Unlike the clergy in other parts +of Canada he wears his cassock even when he goes abroad; one sees dozens +of these black robes in the streets, on the steamers and trains. He does +not share in the amusement of other people. In Quebec Anglican clergymen +play golf and tennis; probably if a curé did so he might be called to +account by the bishop. Occasionally priests ride bicycles, but even this +is looked upon with some suspicion. Into general society the priests go +but little. They come together in each other's presbyteries for mutual +counsel and to celebrate anniversaries, such as the 25th year of the +ordination of one of their number. The large presbyteries, which one +sees even in remote parishes, are necessary to house the visiting clergy +on such occasions. They assist each other when their parishes have +special fêtes. But their social intercourse is chiefly with each other. +The courtly abbé of old France, a universal guest in salons and at +dinner tables, is hardly found at all in the Province of Quebec. Nor is +the scholar usual. Even in small parishes there are rarely less than 500 +or 600 communicants and the calls<span class="pagenum"><a id="page195" name="page195"></a>Pg 195</span> upon the curé's time are heavy. There +are, of course, priests of literary tastes; as there are those with a +taste for art, to whom are due the occasional good pictures found in the +parish churches. Some priests interest themselves in agriculture and +give wise guidance to their people. But behind everything is the solemn, +severe, exacting, conception of the priest's high function as the medium +of God's speech to man. He is almost sexless—a being apart consecrated +to an awe-inspiring office. A mother will sometimes quiet an unruly +child by threatening the portentous intervention of the curé.</p> + +<p>Yet he is the universal friend. His relation to his people is not merely +official; it is affectionate, personal. The confessional makes him +familiar with the intimate details of nearly every one's life. On all +the joyous and sad crises, at births, marriages, and deaths, he is at +hand with sympathy, comfort and support. When he goes on a journey he +looks up not merely his own but his parishioners' friends and is welcome +everywhere. He is the general counsellor, the reconciler of family +quarrels, the arbitrator in differences, the guardian of morals. The +seigneur at Malbaie found the priest enquiring as to the manner in which +the male and female servants of the Manor were lodged.</p> + +<p>Colonel Nairne thought that the Church was too willing to see the people +remain ignorant; with<span class="pagenum"><a id="page196" name="page196"></a>Pg 196</span> her the primary virtue is obedience. But it is +not less true that on moral questions, such as sobriety and purity, the +Church has always shown great vigilance and zeal. In the old days there +was a mighty struggle between the Bishop of Quebec and the governor +Frontenac as to the sale of intoxicating liquors, and the Church is +still keen for temperance. It is due to her that public drinking places +are unknown in most Canadian villages. At Murray Bay it happened +recently that, by some lapse in vigilance, the party favourable to the +granting of licenses got the upper hand. The results were immediate and +deplorable. Summer visitors frequently found their drivers under the +influence of liquor and the habitant, usually courteous and respectful, +was now often rude and quarrelsome. The sudden fall made one realize how +slight might be the strength of virtue due merely to the absence of +temptation. The Church saw the danger. In the following winter she began +a systematic temperance campaign. For some ten days daily services were +held at which eloquent denunciations of intemperance roused the people. +Every effort was made to ensure attendance at these services and the +parish church, a great structure, was well filled daily. Hundreds signed +the pledge and by the next summer all was changed. No one was licensed +to sell liquor and the community was<span class="pagenum"><a id="page197" name="page197"></a>Pg 197</span> sober. If the relapse had been +rapid it must be admitted that the recovery was not less so.</p> + +<p>The curé and his assistants do their work with the precision and +regularity of a business man in his office. They watch education, and +have their own educational ideals. In the public schools of the +English-speaking world in America, manners and religion receive, alas, +but slight attention. But in Quebec one need only pass along a country +road to see that the children are taught respect and courtesy. The chief +subject of instruction is religion and to prepare the children for the +first communion seems to be the main aim of education. In the parish the +priest is never far away. Nearly always one or other of the clergy is at +the presbytery to answer calls of urgency, and their duties begin at an +early hour. "I am very busy until nine o'clock in the morning," a curé +once said to me. My comment was that most of us are only beginning the +serious duties of the day at that hour. "But I am tired by that time," +he said, rather sadly, "for already, so early in the day, I have heard +much of human sin." The people come early in the morning to confess and +by nine o'clock the curé was weary of the tale of man's frailty. +Thursday is his day of recreation. Only on that day usually does he +leave his parish and then he always arranges that a neighbouring priest +shall be within call. This oversight is not spasmodic; it is persistent, +alert, universal, and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page198" name="page198"></a>Pg 198</span> hardly varies with the individual curé. In human +society there is no institution more perfectly organized than the Roman +Catholic Church and in Quebec her traditions have a vitality and vigour +lost perhaps in communities more initiated. Of course not every one +accepts or heeds the curé's ministry. Many a <i>mauvais sujet</i> is careless +or even defiant but, when his last moments come, at his bedside stands +the priest to show to the repentant sinner the path of blessedness, and, +when he is gone, his wayward course will give ground to call the living +to earlier obedience.</p> + +<p>In the Canadian parishes faith is simple, with a pronounced taste for +the supernatural. In the year 1907 a Jesuit priest, M. Hudon, published +at Montreal the life of Marie Catherine de Saint Augustin, 1632-1668, a +Quebec nun. This devout lady lived in an atmosphere charged always with +the supernatural. She knew of events before they happened; with demons +who tempted her she had terrific combats; she read the thoughts of +others with divine insight. Perhaps the climax of her experiences is +found when she has regularly, as confessor and mentor, the Jesuit father +and martyr Brébœuf, dead for some years. M. Hudon declared that he +had submitted the evidence for these wonders to all the tests that +modern scientific canons could require and that they were undoubtedly +true. The Archbishop of Quebec, Mgr. Begin, wrote a prefatory note +approving<span class="pagenum"><a id="page199" name="page199"></a>Pg 199</span> of the teaching of the book, and adding that Mother Marie +Catherine's life could not fail to be an inspiration to young girls to +live nobly. This simple belief in the constant occurrence of the +supernatural is not found only in the remoter parishes of the Province +of Quebec as a French Canadian writer seems to indicate;<a name="FNanchor_31_31" id="FNanchor_31_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> it appears +everywhere. All Christians believe in a God who shapes human events and +hears and answers prayer. But many, Catholic and Protestant alike, +believe that the energy of God, in response to man's appeal, is applied +through the ordinary machinery of nature's laws. Modern thought is +pervaded with the conception of nature's rigour. I have seen good +Catholics shrug their shoulders at the wonders narrated by Marie +Catherine de Saint Augustin. But others, and these not only the +ignorant, think that this attitude shows the lack of a deeper faith. +Must God and his saints, they ask, be confined within the narrow +framework of nature's laws? Cannot He do all things?</p> + +<p>So it is not strange that the Canadian peasant dwells in a world charged +with the supernatural. Night furnishes the opportunity for goblins to be +abroad; the flickering lights on the marshes are goblin fires. Then, +too, the vagrant dead wander about restlessly, sinful souls refused +entrance to Heaven until they have sought and secured adequate prayers +for their pardon and<span class="pagenum"><a id="page200" name="page200"></a>Pg 200</span> relief. To cross a cemetery at night might attract +the fatal vengeance of the dead thus disturbed. The grumbling mendicant +at the door may really be an evil spirit bent on mischief. With a few, +magic and the gift of the evil eye are still dreaded forces and it is +well to know some charm by which evil may be averted. Since night is the +time of danger, if abroad then be watchful; if at home close doors and +windows, ere you go to sleep. I was once on a fishing expedition with +habitant guides when we had to share the same <i>cabane</i>. The air becoming +insufferable, I got up quietly, opened the door and went back to bed. +Presently I heard one of the guides steal softly to the door and close +it. When I thought he was asleep I opened it again. But in vain; once +more it was closed. In the morning nothing was said about it. Certainly +not cold was what he feared, for the weather was hot. I do not think it +was the mosquitoes. Was it the goblins?</p> + +<p>A simpler and touching faith is common. Every one has noticed in the +Province of Quebec the numerous crosses by the way side. These Calvaires +are of rough wood, usually eight or ten feet high; sometimes with the +cross are the dread implements of Christ's pain—the crown of thorns, +the hammer and nails, the executioner's ladder, the Roman soldier's +spear. Often at the foot is a box for alms to help the forgotten dead +who are in<span class="pagenum"><a id="page201" name="page201"></a>Pg 201</span> purgatory. As the habitant passes them he usually lifts his +hat. The Calvaires are a kind of domestic altar to which the people +come. In the summer evenings one may see a family grouped about them in +prayer. When there is need for special prayers, several families will +come across the fields to meet at the Calvaire. Dr. Henry, of whom more +later, tells how at Malbaie some eighty years ago he found in the +cottages social family worship night and morning. It is to be feared +that the present generation at Malbaie is less devout, corrupted it may +be by the heretic visitors' bad influence and example. But still the +guide with whom one goes camping rarely neglects his evening devotions. +In some families prayer sanctifies all the actions of the day. There is +prayer at rising, prayer at going to bed. Though here, as in France, +women are spoken of as only <i>créatures</i>, the mother is usually better +educated than the father and often leads these devotions, the others +joining in the responses. Before meals is recited a prayer, usually the +<i>Benedicite</i>. There is often a family oratory and here at the +appropriate seasons, in the month consecrated to the special family +saint and guardian, in May, the Virgin's month, in June, that of the +Sacred Heart, in November, "the month of the dead," special prayers are +said. On Sunday evenings the family chant the Canticles. The Church's +feasts are marked by festal signs such as the laying of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page202" name="page202"></a>Pg 202</span> best rugs +on the floor. If there is drought groups gather frequently at the +Calvaires to pray for rain. Occasionally such supplications have a +curiously commercial basis in frugal minds. A habitant's wife, learning +that a near neighbour had made an offering to the curé for prayers for +rain, declared that she would give nothing, since if rain fell on the +neighbour's farm it would not stop there: "<i>S'il mouille chez les +Pierrot Benjamin, il mouillera ben icitte</i>."<a name="FNanchor_32_32" id="FNanchor_32_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a></p> + +<p>In each year, if he chooses, the habitant has a good many chances to +cast his vote. The Church, the greatest institution of the village has +its annual election—that for a churchwarden; of the three churchwardens +one retires every year. An annual election there is also for the +municipal council, two or three of whose members retire each year. This +body looks after the highways, the granting of licenses to sell +spirituous liquors and so on. Annually also are elected school +commissioners, who have charge of education. The municipal council and +the school commission are comparatively new institutions in the Province +of Quebec. They have been borrowed from the Anglo-Saxon world, but the +habitant takes kindly to the elector's privileges and struggles are +sometimes keen. The innovation of the ballot not having been adopted, as +yet, in municipal elections, the voting is open. Every voter must thus<span class="pagenum"><a id="page203" name="page203"></a>Pg 203</span> +show his preferences and when a moral question, such as the licensing of +drinking places, is before the electors this open voting aids the +Church's influence. Usually the curé is an ardent temperance man and to +vote for a license against his wishes, made known perhaps from the +pulpit, needs great strength of conviction. It thus happens that a very +large number of parishes in the Province of Quebec have no licensed +drinking places.</p> + +<p>Of offices in the gift of the village voter those in the Church are the +most highly esteemed. To be a municipal councillor or a school +commissioner is indeed all very well. But the village council is not +really very important. It spends only a few hundred dollars a year and +to keep up the roads is not an exciting task. The village council rarely +has even the "town hall" usual in other communities; it meets in the +"salle publique," or the vestry, of the Church, or in the school house. +The school commissioners too have no very dazzling work to do. The curé +is sometimes their chairman and thus in some degree they come under the +control of the Church. The commissioners appoint the teachers in the +schools and keep up the school buildings, but their outlay is also very +small, for the salaries of teachers, usually women, are appallingly low. +The really important elective office in the parish is that of +churchwarden (<i>marguiller</i>). In the church<span class="pagenum"><a id="page204" name="page204"></a>Pg 204</span> the churchwardens have a +special seat of honour assigned to them. They control the temporalities +and may beard even the curé himself. Large sums of money pass through +their hands. They receive the pew rents,—and every habitant has a pew; +they receive the voluntary offerings. It often happens that the Church +accumulates large sums of money and that, if the building of a +<i>presbytère</i> or parish church is decided upon, there is enough on hand +to pay for it outright. The municipal council and the schoolboard, on +the other hand, are always poor. The habitant watches their taxation +with a parsimonious scrutiny and it is a thankless task to carry on +their work.</p> + +<p>Municipal interests represent of course only a part of the village's +political thought. In provincial politics, federal politics, there is +often in Quebec an interest keener even than in other parts of Canada. +It would be too much to say that the habitant has a wide outlook on +public questions; but the village notary and the village doctor are +likely to have political ambitions and rivalry becomes acute; often +indeed the curse of the village is the professional politician. At times +in Quebec politics have been closely associated with religion and always +the bishops are persons to be reckoned with. Their attitude has ever +been that, if the policy of one or the other party seems to be inimical +to the Church, they have the right to direct Catholic electors to vote +against<span class="pagenum"><a id="page205" name="page205"></a>Pg 205</span> such a party. From the point of view of British supremacy in +French Canada it would be a mistake to say that the bishops in a +political rôle have always been mischievous. After the conquest they +soon became the most staunch supporters of the authority of George III +and through the Church the British conqueror was able to reach the +people. When the American Revolution began, the bishops were strenuous +for British connection and from the pulpits came solemn warnings against +the Americans. Again in Britain's war on Revolutionary France the +Canadian bishops were with her, heart and soul. They ordered <i>Te Deums</i> +when Nelson destroyed the French fleet at the battle of the Nile, and +over Trafalgar there were great rejoicings. After Waterloo we find in +French Canada perhaps the most curious of all the thanksgivings; at +Malbaie, as elsewhere, a <i>Te Deum</i> was sung and the people were told in +glowing terms of the victory of the "immortal Wellington" which had +covered "our army" with glory and ended a cruel war. Later, in the days +of Papineau, the Church opposed rebellion; she has since opposed +annexation to the United States. She has also helped to preserve order. +If a crime was to be detected, the curé read from the pulpit a demand +that any one, who could give information to further this end, should do +so. Solemn excommunication was pronounced against offenders; to make the +warning impressive the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page206" name="page206"></a>Pg 206</span> priest would drop to the ground a lighted candle +and put it out with his foot; so would God extinguish the offenders thus +denounced, and those who abetted their crimes.</p> + +<p>Since the Church has aided the state, not unnaturally she expected some +special favours in return. She got them in the days of the early British +governors of Canada. Sir Guy Carleton, afterwards Lord Dorchester, +secured for the Church the legal power to levy the tithe on Catholics +and practically all the other privileges she had enjoyed under the old +régime. The bishops tended to become more and more active in politics +and this reached a climax in 1896. With great heat the bishops threw +themselves into the attack on the Liberal party, because it would not +support the Church's demands for her own separate schools in Manitoba, +supported by taxes levied on Roman Catholics by the state. Some of the +bishops went too far in denunciation; an appeal against their action was +carried by Catholics to the Pope and the offenders were rebuked. The +incident showed that in politics the habitant knows his own mind, for he +gave an overwhelming support to the party on which the bishops were +warring. Since then many a habitant draws a sharp distinction between +the spiritual and the political claims of the bishops. Their full +spiritual authority he does not doubt; in politics he thinks his own +opinion as good as theirs.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page207" name="page207"></a>Pg 207</span></p> + +<p>If in spiritual matters the Church led it was intended that in temporal +affairs too the habitants should always have guidance. An old world +flavour seems to pervade the relations between seigneur and vassal in a +French Canadian parish. The seigneur was himself the vassal of the +crown, bound to do humble homage at the capital when he received his +grant. We have a detailed account of the ceremony as performed, perhaps +for the first time under British rule. On December 23rd, 1760, in the +morning one Jacques Noël, a seigneur, accompanied by royal notaries, +proceeded to the government house in Quebec. He knocked at the principal +entrance and, when a servant appeared, Noël asked if His Excellency +James Murray, the Governor, was at home. The servant replied that His +Excellency was within and that he would give him notice. On being +admitted to the presence of the Governor, Noël with head uncovered, and, +to symbolize his humble obedience, wearing neither sword nor spur, fell +on his knees before him and declared that he performed faith and homage +for the seigniory to which, on his father's death, he had become the +heir. He then took an oath on the gospels to be faithful to the king and +to be no party to anything against his interests; to hold his own +vassals to the same obedience; and to perform all other duties required +by the terms of his holding.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page208" name="page208"></a>Pg 208</span></p> + +<p>The Crown required very little of the seigneur and so, in truth, did the +seigneur of his tenants. Their annual payment of <i>cens et rentes</i> rarely +amounted to more than a very few dollars. When it fell due in the autumn +they were given abundant notice. Still in the Canadian parishes, when +the Sunday morning mass is over, the crier stands on a raised platform +near the church door, the people gather round, and the announcement is +made of tithes and taxes due, of articles lost or found, of anything +indeed of general interest to the community. It was in this way that as +St. Martin's day, November 11th, approached the people were reminded of +the falling due of the <i>cens et rentes</i>. The meaning of the two terms is +somewhat obscure. The <i>cens</i> was a trifling payment by the <i>censitaire</i> +in recognition of the seigneur's position and rights as landowner; while +the <i>rentes</i> represented a real rental based in some degree on the +supposed value of the land. But the rate was usually conventional and +very small. In early Canada the river was the highway and upon it +therefore every settler desired to have a frontage. There was, also, +greater safety from Indian attacks in having the houses close together +at the front of the farms. So these became long narrow strips, with the +houses built so close together that the country side often seems like a +continuous village. The habitant paid usually in <i>cens et rentes</i> twenty +sols (about twenty cents) for each<span class="pagenum"><a id="page209" name="page209"></a>Pg 209</span> arpent (192 feet) of frontage; +instead of cash usually he might pay in kind—a live capon or a small +measure (demi-minot) of grain for each arpent. He paid also about one +cent of rent for each superficial acre. Thus for a farm of 100 acres, +with two arpents of frontage, a habitant might pay $1.00 in cash and two +capons. If each of 400 such tenants paid for their frontage in capons, +800 of these fowls would he brought to the seigneur's barn-yard each +autumn!</p> + +<p>Though payment was due on November 11th, the habitants usually waited +for the first winter days when the sleighing had become good. In many of +the sleighs, hastening with the merry sound of bells over the wintry +roads to the manor house, there would be one or two captive capons or a +bag or two of grain. M. de Gaspé has described how on such an occasion +the seigneur, or some member of his family for him, would be found by +the tenant "seated majestically in a large arm chair, near a table +covered with green baize cloth." Here he received the payments, or in +many cases only excuses for non-payment. The scene outside was often +animated, for the fowls brought in payment of the rent, with legs tied +but throats free, would not bear their captivity in silence. Rent day +was a festal occasion, but the great day in the year at the manor house +was New Year's Day. Then the people came to offer their respects to the +seigneur and Nairne speaks<span class="pagenum"><a id="page210" name="page210"></a>Pg 210</span> of the prodigious consumption of whiskey and +cakes at such a time. The seigneur was usually god-father to the +first-born of the children of his tenants. It is a pretty custom among +French Canadians for the children to go on New Year's Day, which is a +great festival, to the chamber of their parents in the early morning and +kneel before the bed for their benediction. To the seigneur as to a +parent came on this day his god-children and we have it from M. de +Gaspé, an eye witness, that on one occasion he saw no less than one +hundred of these come to call upon the seigneur at the manor house! In +the old days the people came also on the first day of May to plant the +May-pole before his door and to dance round it.</p> + +<p>Some of the seigneurs were as poor as their own <i>censitaires</i> and, like +them, toiled with their hands. But usually there was a social gulf +between the cottage and the manor house. Even the Church marked this. +The seigneur had the right to a special pew; he was censed first; he +received the wafer first at the communion; he took precedence in +processions, and was specially recommended from the pulpit to the +prayers of the congregation. Caldwell, who was seigneur of Lauzon +opposite Quebec, used to drive through his great seigniory in state, +half reclining on the cushions of his carriage and with a numerous +following. If on a long drive he stopped at a farm house, even for the +light refreshment of a drink of milk, he never<span class="pagenum"><a id="page211" name="page211"></a>Pg 211</span> paid the habitant with +anything less than a gold coin. I once asked a habitant, who remembered +the old days, whether the seigneur really was such a very great man in +the village. He replied, with something like awe in his voice, +"<i>Monsieur, il était le roi, l'empereur, du village</i>."</p> + +<p>The ministrations of the manor house were often patriarchical and +beneficent; the seigneur's wife was like the squire's wife in an English +village. In time this relation aroused resentment. Some villager's son +with a taste for business or letters made his way in the world, got into +touch with more advanced thought, and when he came back to the village +was not so willing as formerly to touch his hat to the seigneur and +accept an inferior social status as a matter of course. M. de Gaspé +tells how he often accompanied Madame Taché, in her own right +co-seigneuress of Kamouraska, opposite Malbaie, in her visits to the +people on the seigniory. She took alms to the poor, and wine, cordials, +delicacies to the sick and convalescent. "She reigned as sovereign in +the seigniory," he says, "by the very tender ties of love and of +gratitude." When she left the village church after mass on Sunday the +habitants, most of whom drove to church in their own vehicles, would +wait respectfully for her to start and then follow her in a long +procession, none of them venturing to pass her on the road. At the point +where she turned from the high-way up the avenue<span class="pagenum"><a id="page212" name="page212"></a>Pg 212</span> leading to the manor +house, each habitant, as he passed, would raise his hat, although only +her back was in view disappearing in the direction of the house.</p> + +<p>But early in the 19th century this spirit was changing:</p> + +<div class="blockquot"><p>One day I was myself witness, says M. de Gaspé, of a violation of +this universal deference. It was St. Louis's day, the festival of +the parish of Kamouraska. As usual Madame Taché, at the close of +mass, was leading the long escort of her <i>censitaires</i>, when a +young man, excited by the frequent libations of which in the +country many are accustomed to partake during the parish fêtes,—a +young man, I say, breaking from the procession passed the carriage +of the seigneuress as fast as his horse would go. Madame Taché +stopped her carriage and turning round towards those who followed +her cried in a loud voice:</p> + +<p>"What insolent person is this who has passed before me?"</p> + +<p>An old man went up to her, hat in hand, and said with tears in his +voice:</p> + +<p>"Madame, it is my son who unfortunately is tipsy, but be sure that +I shall bring him to make his apologies and meanwhile I beg you to +accept mine for his boorishness."</p> + +<p>I ought to add that the whole parish spoke with indignation of the +conduct of the young man. The delinquent had committed a double +offence. He had been rude to their benefactress, and besides, +violating a French Canadian custom, he had passed a carriage +without asking permission.<a name="FNanchor_33_33" id="FNanchor_33_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a></p></div> + +<p>This must have been before 1813 for in that year this good Madame Taché +died: even so early<span class="pagenum"><a id="page213" name="page213"></a>Pg 213</span> was youth restive under the old traditions of +deference and subordination. Already some even of the seigneurs were +saying that the system retarded settlement. It would have suited the +seigneurs to have their holdings converted into freehold, for then they +could have held the unsettled land as their own property instead of +being under obligation to grant it for a nominal rental to +<i>censitaires</i>. But to make this conversion would have been too kind to +the seigneurs; so the matter dragged on for a long time.</p> + +<p>The grievances of the habitant against the seigneurs were numerous, some +of them real, some fanciful. It seemed anomalous that, in a British +colony in the nineteenth century, there should be men holding great +tracts of land with rights over their tenants, as some authors have +seriously claimed, extending from the power of trying them for petty +offences to that of inflicting the death penalty. This last right was, +in any case, only nominal and was never exercised by any seigneur in +Canada; but even the claim that it existed shows how high were the +authority and privilege of the seigneur. A right like the <i>corvée</i> had a +sinister meaning. One of the greatest hardships of the old régime, in +France it meant that, on demand, the peasant must drop his own work to +join in making highways, in carrying from one place to another the +effects of a regiment, and other unwelcome tasks, all without pay.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page214" name="page214"></a>Pg 214</span> In +Canada it was milder. The seigneur levied a <i>corvée</i> of so many days' +labour, which he employed on the useful task of improving the highway. +Some seigneurs required that at the times they chose, the habitants +should work for them a certain number of days, usually six, in each +year. They could even make the habitants work without pay at building a +manor house; a few of the massive stone mansions still fairly numerous +in the Province of Quebec were constructed by such labour. Not +unnaturally the habitant came to feel it odious and humiliating to be +obliged thus to give his labour at another's order.</p> + +<p>The seigneuries too were often broken up. In Canada there is no law of +primogeniture and, at a seigneur's death, the land went to daughters as +well as to sons. Few of the old seigniorial families remained on their +original estates. In time those who held the property came to think that +a rental of about a cent an acre was not enough. In the days of French +rule they could not have increased it; but the old custom, they claimed, +did not apply under British sovereignty. So these charges were often +increased; in time instead of a penny the habitant had to pay +three-pence, six-pence, and even eight-pence, an acre; the seigneurs, as +a judge put it, showed an excellent knowledge of arithmetical +progression. Thus the <i>cens et rentes</i> began to bring in a real income. +So did the <i>lods et ventes</i>, the tax of one-<span class="pagenum"><a id="page215" name="page215"></a>Pg 215</span>twelfth of the price of +whatever land the habitant sold. In early days land was rarely sold. But +when towns and villages had grown up on seigniorial estates, a good deal +of buying and selling took place and there stood always the seigneur +demanding in every transaction his share of the selling price. If the +land was sold two or three times in a year, as might well happen, each +time the seigneur got his share of one-twelfth. If the occupier had +built on the land a house at his own cost, none the less did the +seigneur, who had done nothing, get his large percentage on the selling +value of these improvements. This was a real grievance. To avoid paying +the seigneur's claim a price, lower than that really paid, was sometimes +named in the deed, and this led to perjury. To protect themselves the +seigneur used his <i>droit de retrait</i> the right for forty days of himself +taking the property at the price named. This involved vexation and delay +and increased discontent. Moreover the seigneur's right to <i>lods et +ventes</i> stood in the way of a ready transfer of property between members +of the same family.</p> + +<p>There were other causes of discontent. The seigneur had the <i>droit de +banalité</i>, the banal rights, under which in France the habitant must use +the seigneur's wine-press, his oven and his mill. In Canada no wine was +made, so the seigneur's winepress did not exist. Some attempts were made +to force the habitant to bake his bread in<span class="pagenum"><a id="page216" name="page216"></a>Pg 216</span> the seigneur's oven but what +would do in a compact French village, where fuel was scarce, became +absurd in Canada; the picture is ludicrous of a habitant carrying a +dozen miles, over rough roads, to the seigneur's oven, unbaked dough +which might be hard frozen <i>en route</i>. Moreover new inventions made +ovens common and cheap so that the habitant could afford to have his +own. The seigneur's oven thus caused no grievance. Not so however the +seigneur's mill. In the early days when the seigneur had the sole right +to build a mill this became for him, in truth, a duty sometimes +burdensome; for, whether it would pay or not, the government forced him +to build a mill or else abandon the right. But in time the mill proved +profitable and to it the peasant must bring his wheat. There might be a +good mill near his house, while the seigneur's mill might be a dozen +miles away and even then might give poor service; yet to the seigneur's +mill he must go. If it was a wind-mill, nature, by denying wind, might +cause a long delay before the flour should be ready. As time went on, +some seigneurs claimed or reserved a monopoly in regard to all mills; +grist mills, saw mills, carding mills, factories of every kind. Canada +in time exported flour, but the seigneur's rights stood in the way of +the free grinding of the wheat for this trade. The habitant might have +on his land an excellent mill site with water power convenient, but he<span class="pagenum"><a id="page217" name="page217"></a>Pg 217</span> +could not use it without the seigneur's consent. More than this the +seigneur often reserved the right to take such a site to the extent of +six arpents for his own use without any compensation to the habitant.</p> + +<p>In many cases the seigneur might freely cut timber on the habitant's +land to erect buildings for public use,—church, presbytery, mill, and +even a manor house. The rights to base metals on the property he also +retained. The eleventh fish caught in the rivers was his. He might +change the course of streams or rivers for manufacturing purposes; he +alone could establish a ferry; his will determined where roads should be +opened. Some seigneurs were even able to force villages and towns to pay +a bonus for the right to carry on the ordinary business of buying and +selling. So it turned out that if the habitant's crop failed he had +little chance to do anything else without the seigneur's consent; he is, +says the report of a Commission of Enquiry in 1843, "kept in a perpetual +state of feebleness and dependence. He can never escape from the tie +that forever binds to the soil him and his progeny; a cultivator he is +born, a mere cultivator he is doomed to die." No doubt this plaint is +pitched in a rather high key. But in time the burden of grievances was +generally felt and then the seigniorial system was doomed.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page218" name="page218"></a>Pg 218</span></p> + +<p>In the days of the last John Nairne political agitation became an old +story at Malbaie. We get echoes of meetings held in the village to +support the cause of the idol of habitant radicalism, Louis Joseph +Papineau; in 1836 ninety-two resolutions drawn up by him and attacking +the whole system of government in Canada appear to have met with +clamorous approval from the assembled villagers. Papineau was himself a +seigneur and did not assail the system. But after his unsuccessful +rebellion in 1837-38 the attack on the seigneurs intensified. We know +little of what happened at Malbaie but the end came suddenly. In 1854, +after an election fought largely on this issue, the Parliament of Canada +swept away the seigniorial system. The habitants then became tenants +paying as rent the old <i>cens et rentes</i>. They could not be disturbed as +long as this trifling rent was paid. Moreover at any time they might +become simple freeholders by paying to the seigneur a sum of money +representing their annual rent capitalized on a six per cent, basis. The +term seigneur is still used but is now a mere honorary title. No longer +does his position give him the authority of a magistrate; no longer must +the habitants grind their corn at his mill; no longer can he claim <i>lods +et ventes</i> when land is sold. For the loss of these rights he was paid +compensation out of the public treasury.<a name="FNanchor_34_34" id="FNanchor_34_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a></p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page219" name="page219"></a>Pg 219</span></p> + +<p>With the abolition of the seigniorial system ends too the story of the +Nairne family. In 1861, exactly one hundred years after Colonel Nairne +first visited Malbaie, died his grandson and the last of his +descendants, John McNicol Nairne, son of Colonel Nairne's eldest +daughter Magdalen. This last Nairne left the property absolutely to his +widow, tied only by the condition that it was to go to her male issue if +she had such, even by a second marriage. In 1884, she too died +childless, and bequeathed the property to an old friend, both of herself +and of her husband, Mr. W.E. Duggan. Had Mr. Duggan not survived Mrs. +Nairne the property was to go to St. Matthew's Church, Quebec. Mr. +Duggan occupied it, until his death in 1898, when it passed by will to +his half-brother, Mr. E.J. Duggan, the present seigneur.<a name="FNanchor_35_35" id="FNanchor_35_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a></p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page220" name="page220"></a>Pg 220</span></p> + +<p>It is a sad story this of the extinction of a family. Both Thomas Nairne +and his father were buried at first in the Protestant cemetery at +Quebec. But not there permanently were they to lie, and many years ago +they found a resting-place in a new tomb in Mount Hermon Cemetery. On a +lovely autumn day in 1907 I made my way in Quebec to the spot where the +Nairnes are interred. In the fresh cool air it was a pleasure to walk +briskly the three miles of the St. Louis road to the cemetery. One +crossed the battle field of the Plains of Abraham where, within a few +months, a century and a half ago, Britain and France grappled in deadly +strife. The elder Nairne saw that field with its harvest of dead on +September 13th, 1759, and, in the following April, he saw its snow +stained with the blood of brave men who fell in Murray's battle with +Lévis. In May, 1776, he marched across it in victorious pursuit of the +fleeing American army. At Mount Hermon I readily found the Nairne tomb. +It lies on the slope of the hill towards the river. Through the noble +trees gleamed the mighty tide of the St. Lawrence. A great pine tree +stands near the block of granite that marks the Nairne graves and a +gentle breeze through its countless needles caused that mysterious +sighing which is perhaps nature's softest and saddest note. One's +thoughts went back to the brave old Colonel who wrought so well and had +such high hopes for his posterity<span class="pagenum"><a id="page221" name="page221"></a>Pg 221</span> to the soldier son, remembered here, +who died in far distant India; and to the other soldier son who fell in +Canada upon the field of battle. He was the last male heir of his line. +The name and the family are now well-nigh forgotten. The inscriptions on +the tomb, reared by a friend, connected with the Nairnes by ties of +friendship only, not of blood, are themselves the memorial of the rise +and extinction of a Canadian family.<a name="FNanchor_36_36" id="FNanchor_36_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a></p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page222" name="page222"></a>Pg 222</span></p> +<h2>CHAPTER VIII</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Coming of the Pleasure Seekers</span></h3> + +<h4>Pleasure seeking at Murray Bay.—A fisherman's experience in +1830.—New visitors.—Fishing in a mountain lake.—Camp life.—The +Upper Murray.—Canoeing.—Running the rapids.—Walks and +drives.—Golf.—A rainy day.—The habitant and his visitors.</h4> + + +<p>In the Middle Ages mankind in pursuit of change of air and scene and of +bodily and spiritual health went on pilgrimage to some famous shrine; in +modern times dwellers in cities, in a similar pursuit, go in summer to +some beautiful spot by sea, or lake, or mountain. To many these places +then become as sacred as was the saint's shrine of an earlier age. Busy +men have leisure there to be idle, to read, to enjoy companionship, to +pursue wholesome pleasures. Such a spot has Murray Bay become to many. +Their intrusion was not looked upon with favour by those who wished to +preserve the old simplicity, but it could not be resisted. More than a +hundred years ago Colonel Nairne and Colonel Fraser had parties of +guests in the summer that must have made the two manor houses lively +enough. The beauty of the place, its coolness when Quebec and Montreal +suffered from sweltering heat in the short Canadian summer, the +simplicity and charm of its life, proved alluring. There was also +excellent<span class="pagenum"><a id="page223" name="page223"></a>Pg 223</span> sport. Salmon and trout abounded. Though time has brought +changes, in some seasons the salmon fishing is still excellent and, in +all the world, probably, there is no better trout fishing than in the +upper waters of the Murray and in some of the lakes.</p> + +<p>Thus it happened that the earliest annals of pleasure seeking at Murray +Bay relate to fishing. It is at least possible that more than two +hundred years ago the Sieur de Comporté tried his fortune as a fisherman +in the lake that bears his name. A hundred and fifty years ago, as we +have seen, Captain Nairne and his guest Gilchrist had such excellent +salmon fishing that Gilchrist thought this sport alone worth a trip +across the Atlantic. Many other fishing expeditions to Malbaie there +must have been and, fortunately, a detailed narrative of one of them, +made in 1830, has been preserved. The fishermen were Major Wingfield and +Dr. Henry—attached to the 66th regiment at Montreal.</p> + +<p>They went by steamer from Montreal to Quebec and an American General on +board jeered at them for travelling three hundred miles to catch fish +which they could buy in the market at their door! When they reached +Quebec they found no steamer for Murray Bay,—hardly strange as then the +steamboat was comparatively new. Three days they waited at Quebec until +at length they bargained with the captain of a coasting schooner<span class="pagenum"><a id="page224" name="page224"></a>Pg 224</span> bound +for Kamouraska, on the south shore of the St. Lawrence, to land them at +Malbaie. The weather was stormy, the ship nearly foundered, and the +eighty miles of the journey occupied no less than four days and nights. +The fishermen had brought with them a quarter of cold lamb, a loaf, and +a bottle of wine, but, before the journey was over, sheer hunger drove +them to the ship's salt pork and to sausages stuffed with garlic. Rather +than take refuge below among "thirty or forty dirty habitants from +Kamouraska" they stuck to the deck and encamped under the great sail, +but the rain fell so heavily that they could not even keep their cigars +alight. At length "with beards like Jews," cold, wet, half-starved and +miserable, they reached their destination. As they landed at Murray Bay +they saw a salmon floundering in a net, bought it, and carried it with +them to the house of a man named Chaperon where they had engaged +lodgings. Here, says Dr. Henry, the sensation of being clean and +comfortable in their host's "pleasant parlour" was delicious. The tea, +the toast, the dainty prints of fresh butter were all exquisite "after +rancid pork and garlic," and he declares that they ate for two hours and +consumed "some half gallon of thick cream and half a bushel of new laid +eggs." Under their window bloomed a rose bush in full flower. Murray Bay +was at its best.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page225" name="page225"></a>Pg 225</span></p> + +<p>On Monday morning, July 5th, 1830, the two fishermen engaged a +<i>calèche</i>, and a boy named Louis Panet drove them up the Murray River. +The present village church was already standing, "a respectable church," +says Dr. Henry, "with its long roof and glittering spire and a tall elm +or two"; the elms, alas, have disappeared and now there are only +willows. A wooden bridge crossed the Murray and its large abutments +loaded with great boulders told of formidable spring floods sweeping +down the valley. A recent "éboulement" or land slide had blocked the +road along the river and men were still busy clearing away the rubbish. +Eight or ten miles up the river at the fall known as the Chute, still a +favourite spot for salmon fishing, they had magnificent sport. One Jean +Gros, in a crazy canoe, took them to the best places for casting the +fly. The first salmon weighed twenty-five pounds and they had to play it +for three-quarters of an hour. That evening when they returned to M. +Chaperon's, to feast once more, they had five salmon weighing in all one +hundred and five pounds and forty-five sea trout averaging three pounds +each. No wonder Gilchrist has said such fishing was worth a trip across +the Atlantic! The blot on the day's enjoyment was that in the July +weather they were pestered with flies.</p> + +<p>Excellent sport continued from day to day. Once Jean Gros lost his hold +of the pole by<span class="pagenum"><a id="page226" name="page226"></a>Pg 226</span> which he controlled the canoe and it drifted helplessly +towards a rapid, Henry all the time playing a salmon. The man was +alarmed and knelt to mumble prayers but Henry caught up a board thrown +from the shore, gave him a whack with it on the back and shouted: +"<i>Ramez! Sacré! Ramez!</i>" The effect was electrical. The old fellow +seized the board, paddled with it like mad, steered down the rapid, and +Henry finally landed his salmon. Day after day the two fishermen drove +up to the Chute to fish until, after a fortnight, the river fell and the +salmon ceased to rise; then they went down in a large boat to Rivière +Noire, said never yet to have been fished with a rod, slept at night on +the sandy beach, but had no luck. Henry tells of an annoyance at Malbaie +that still continues; mongrel dogs ran after their <i>calèche</i>; sometimes +one would try to seize the horse by the nose and nearly cause a +run-away. Each cur pursued the vehicle and barked himself hoarse, and +then, when he retired, his neighbour would take up the task. At length, +after this experience had been frequently renewed, they decided to +retaliate. One black shaggy beast had made himself specially obnoxious; +with his thick wooly fur he did not mind in the least being struck by +the whip. So one day Dr. Henry got ready the salmon gaff and, as the +brute darted out at them, skilfully hooked him by the side. The driver +whipped up his horse, which seemed<span class="pagenum"><a id="page227" name="page227"></a>Pg 227</span> to enjoy the punishment of his +enemy, and the vehicle went tearing along the road, the dog yelling +hideously as he was dragged by the hook. The people ran to the doors +holding up their hands in astonishment. The Doctor soon shook off the +dog and he trotted home little the worse. Next day when he saw the +fisherman's calèche coming he limped into the house "as mute as a fish" +with his tail between his legs.</p> + +<p>Dr. Henry thought Murray Bay an earthly paradise. The people in this +"secluded valley" were the most virtuous he had ever seen. Flagrant +crime was unknown,—doors were never locked at night. There was no need +of temperance reform; "whole families pass their lives without any +individual ever having tasted intoxicating fluids." The devout people, +he says, had social family worship, morning and evening; the families +were huge, fifteen to twenty children being not uncommon; when a young +couple married the relations united to build a house for them; and so +on. Unfortunately we know from other sources that conditions were not as +idyllic at Murray Bay as Dr. Henry describes; but it was, no doubt, a +simple and virtuous community.</p> + +<p>In time its isolation was to disappear before invaders like Dr. Henry, +in pursuit of pleasure. So gradual was the change that we hardly know +when it came. By 1850 there was a little summer colony mostly from +Quebec and Montreal. Soon<span class="pagenum"><a id="page228" name="page228"></a>Pg 228</span> a few came from points more distant. As means +of transport on the St. Lawrence improved a great many travellers passed +Murray Bay on their way to the Saguenay. Tadousac, at its mouth, was +already well known and an occasional stray visitor stopped off at Murray +Bay to see what it was like. The accommodation offered was rude enough, +no doubt, but perhaps less rude than one might suppose. At Pointe au Pic +stood a substantial stone house. This was turned into a hotel and known +some fifty years ago as Duberger's house. There were besides a few other +houses for summer visitors. Thus, long ago, was there tolerable comfort +at Murray Bay. In any case visitors soon found that the place had +abundant compensations even for discomfort. They came and came again. +Friends came to visit them and they too learned to love the spot. Some +Americans from New York chanced to find it out and others of their +countrymen followed; by 1885 already well established was the now +dominant American colony.</p> + +<p>The influx has limited and restricted but has not destroyed the old +diversion of fishing. There are still many hundreds of lakes in the +neighbourhood on which no fisherman has ever yet cast a fly. But nearly +all the good spots within easy range are now leased or owned by private +persons and clubs; no longer may the transient tourist fish almost where +he pleases. All the better for this<span class="pagenum"><a id="page229" name="page229"></a>Pg 229</span> restriction is the quality of the +fishing. What magnificent sport there is in some of those tiny lakes on +the mountain side and what glorious views as one drives thither! To +reach Lac à Comporté, for instance, one crosses the brawling Murray, +drives up its left bank for a mile or so and then heads straight up the +mountain side. Turning back one can see the silver gleam of the small +river winding through its narrow valley until lost in the enveloping +mountains. From points still higher one looks northwestward upon the +mountain crests worn round ages ago, some of them probably never yet +trodden by the foot of man. Most are wooded to the top but there are +bare crags, a glowing purple sometimes in the afternoon light; but the +prevailing tone is the deep, deep blue, the richest surely that nature +can show anywhere. Along the road where we are driving stretch the +houses of the habitants and sometimes, to survey the passing strangers, +the whole family stands on the rude door-step. They rarely fail in a +courteous greeting, with a touch still of the manners of France.</p> + +<p>Two or three days spent on one of these wild mountain lakes, such as Lac +à Comporté, is as pleasant an experience as any one can have. The walk +is beautiful from the last cottage where the vehicles are left and the +two or three men are secured who shoulder the packs with the necessary +provisions. At first the forest path is hewn<span class="pagenum"><a id="page230" name="page230"></a>Pg 230</span> broadly in a straight line +but it soon narrows to a trail winding up the mountain side. The way is +rough; one must clamber over occasional boulders and turn aside to avoid +fallen trees. The white stems of birches are conspicuous in the forest +thicket. After a stiff climb we have passed over the shoulder of the +mountain; the path is now trending downward and at length through the +arch of green over the pathway one catches the gleam of the lake. The +pace quickens and in a few minutes we stand upon the shore of a lovely +little sheet of water with a shore line perhaps three miles long, lying +in the mountain hollow. Evening is near and, half an hour later, each +fisherman is in a boat paddled softly by a habitant companion. In a +thousand places the calm water is disturbed by the trout feeding busily; +they often throw themselves quite clear of the water and, when the sport +has well begun, at a single cast one occasionally takes a trout on each +of his three flies. Before it is dark the whole circuit of the lake has +been made and a goodly basket of trout is the result.</p> + +<p>A camp at evening is always delightful. The tired fishermen lie by the +cheery fire while the men prepare the evening meal, to consist chiefly +of the trout just caught. They have the vivacity and readiness of their +race: rough habitants though they are their courtesy is inborn, +inalienable. After the meal is over silence often falls<span class="pagenum"><a id="page231" name="page231"></a>Pg 231</span> on the group of +three or four by the fire. Every one is tired and at barely nine o'clock +it is time for bed. Before each of the two or three small tents standing +some distance apart by the water's edge the men have built a blazing +fire which throws its light far out over the tiny lake. All round rise +the mountains, now dark and sombre; a sharp wind is blowing and as one +stands alone looking out over the water there comes a sense of chill; +for a moment the mountain solitude seems remote, melancholy and +friendless: with something like a shiver one turns to the cheerful fire +before the tent. Here blankets are spread on sweet scented boughs of +<i>sapin</i>; the bed is hard, but not too hard for a tired man and one +quickly falls asleep.</p> + +<p>Other fishing expeditions at Murray Bay take one farther afield and into +more varied scenes. In its upper stretches, three thousand feet above +the sea, the Murray River flows through a level country before it +plunges into mountain fastnesses, almost impregnable in summer, for a +long and troubled détour, to emerge at length into this last valley. To +reach this flat upland one must drive through a beautiful mountain pass +with great heights towering on either side of the winding roadway. In +the upper river the fishing is still unsurpassed. Of small trout there +are vast numbers, excellent for the table, but in the deep pools are +also huge trout, ranging in weight from three<span class="pagenum"><a id="page232" name="page232"></a>Pg 232</span> to eight pounds. The +surrounding country is open; there are only clumps of scrubby timber; +and the plain is covered with deep moss readily beaten into a hard path +upon which the foot treads silently. Here the bears come to feed upon +the berries and the Canadians have called the plain prettily the "Jardin +des Ours." Other sport than trout fishing there is. In season the +caribou and the moose are abundant—but that is a sportsman's tale by +itself.</p> + +<p>Fishing and hunting are not the sole diversions. As long ago as in 1811, +when young Captain Nairne came here fresh from Europe, the boating +attracted him and he spent much time on the bay and the river. No doubt +the young seigneur was soon skilful in the art of paddling a canoe. In +those days there were real Indians and no other canoes than those of +birch bark; now these have well-nigh disappeared and, indeed, few +visitors at Murray Bay, use any kind of a canoe. The pastime is thought +too dangerous for all but the initiated. Amid these mountains, winds +rise quickly and beat up a sea, and it is well to keep near the shore. +The rising tide sweeps like a mill race over the bar at the mouth of the +bay and when one has passed out to the great river it is like being +afloat on the open sea. On perfectly calm days we may go far out to be +swept up with the tide; but it is both safer and pleasanter to glide +along close to shore under the shadow of the cliffs, around sharp<span class="pagenum"><a id="page233" name="page233"></a>Pg 233</span> +corners, dodging in and out among boulders submerged, or now being +submerged, by the rising tide. The successive sandy beaches are each +backed by high cliffs. The river is a shining, spangled, surface of +light blue and white, reflecting the sky sprinkled with fleecy clouds. +Here a chattering stream, the Petit Ruisseau, falls over white rocks to +lose itself in the sand. Far ahead now one can see the Church of Ste. +Irénée perched on a level table-land, two or three hundred feet above +the river. Soon a dark green line on the high birch-clad shore marks the +gorge by which the Grand Ruisseau flows to the St. Lawrence. At its +mouth is a good place to land and make tea. The canoes are drawn up on a +sandy beach under the shadow of cliffs, a medley of red and grey and +brown. Near by, the Grand Ruisseau, a fair sized brook, babbles in its +bed crowded with great boulders. A wild path, part of it including steps +from rock to rock in the bed of the stream itself, leads to a lovely +little cascade where, in white foam, the water falls into a deep dark +pool. One hurries to visit it and then, with the evening shadows falling +and the narrow gorge becoming sombre, it is wise to hasten back. As one +steps out from the wooded path to the shore of the great river the scene +is enchanting. The river's shining surface is perfectly smooth. Far +across it is a dark-blue serried line of mountains. Houses, twenty miles +distant, stand out white<span class="pagenum"><a id="page234" name="page234"></a>Pg 234</span> in the last light of the sun. From the +tin-covered spire of a church far away, the flash of the rays comes back +like the glow of fire. Standing in shadow we look out on a realm of +light:</p> + +<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"> +<span class="i0">"As when the sun prepared for rest<br /></span> +<span class="i0">Hath gained the precincts of the West,<br /></span> +<span class="i0">Though his departing radiance fail<br /></span> +<span class="i0">To illuminate the hollow vale,<br /></span> +<span class="i0">A lingering light he fondly throws<br /></span> +<span class="i0">On the fair hills, where first he rose."<br /></span> +</div></div> + +<p>The shore is strangely silent; one hears only the occasional puffing of +the white whale or the sad cry of the loon.</p> + +<p>A thrilling diversion is that of running the rapids in the Murray River. +The canoe is sent up by <i>charette</i> and after luncheon it is a walk or +drive of eight or nine miles up the river to the starting point—a deep, +dark-brown pool, which soon narrows into a swift rapid, the worst in all +the stretches to the river's mouth. Formerly a procession of half a +dozen canoes would go through the rapid with light hearts, but, long +ago, when the river was very high, a canoe upset here and one of its +occupants was never seen alive again. As one paddles out into the pool +and is drawn into the dark current moving silently and swiftly to the +rapid the heart certainly beats a little faster. The water's surface is +an inclined plane as it flows over the ledge of rock. Straight ahead the +current breaks on a huge black rock in a cloud of<span class="pagenum"><a id="page235" name="page235"></a>Pg 235</span> white foam. One must +sweep off to the right, with the great volume of the water, and need +catch only a little spray in swinging safely past the danger point. +Then, in the waves caused by the current, before the canoe is quite +turned "head-on" a wave may curl over the bow and leave the occupants +kneeling in half an inch of water. In such a case it is wise to land and +empty the canoe. In the next rapid, a tangled maze, the water is shallow +and skill is required to wind in and out among the rocks and find water +enough to keep afloat. Then the canoe slips over a ledge with plenty of +water and the only care is to curve sharply to the left with the current +before it strikes the bank straight ahead. The whole trip down the river +occupies two glorious hours. There are short stretches of smooth and +deep water; then the river contracts and pours with impetuous swiftness +down a rocky slope. Sometimes trees stand close to the river; then there +are bare grey banks of clay; then smiling fields sloping gently up to +the high land; at times the canoe is in shade, then in the flashing +sunlight. The river grows milder as it nears its mouth but the +excitement does not end until we float under the bridge at Malbaie +village and lift the canoe over the boom fastened there to catch logs in +their descent. To paddle home in calm water across the bay seems tame +after dancing for two hours on that tossing current.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page236" name="page236"></a>Pg 236</span></p> + +<p>Of course there are many walks and drives—on the whole the most +delightful of Malbaie's diversions. The favourite walk is to "Beulah." A +generation that does not read its Bible as it should may need to be told +that Beulah is the name of the land no more desolate in which the Lord +delighteth; some Bible reader so named a spot on the mountain where one +looks out far, far, afield in every direction for immense distances. It +may be reached by a forest path straight up the mountain side from +Pointe au Pic. We go through spruce and birch woods till we reach an +opening where we look out northward on rounded mountain tops blue, +silent, immeasurable, spreading away, one might almost fancy to the +North Pole itself, so endless seems their mass. On beautiful turf +through woods, then by a cow path across a bog, the path leads until a +bare hill top lies full in view. This is Beulah. Standing there one +seems to have the whole world at one's feet. When Petrarch had climbed +Mount Ventoux, near Avignon, the first man for half a century to do so, +the scene overwhelmed him; thoughts of the deeper meaning of life rose +before his mind; he drew from his pocket St. Augustine and read: "Men go +about to wonder at the height of the mountains and the mighty waves of +the sea, and the wide sweep of rivers and the circuit of the ocean and +the revolution of the stars, but themselves they consider not." I never +stand on<span class="pagenum"><a id="page237" name="page237"></a>Pg 237</span> "Beulah" without thinking of this passage. Far away to the +distant south shore, and up and down the river we can survey a stretch +of eighty or ninety miles. We stand in the midst of a sea of mountains +and look landward across deep valleys in all directions with the ranges +rising tier on tier beyond.</p> + +<div class="figcenter"> + <a id="image09" name="image09"> + <img src="images/09.jpg" + alt="The Golf Links at Murray Bay" + title="The Golf Links at Murray Bay" /></a><br /> + <span class="caption"><span class="smcap">The Golf Links at Murray Bay</span></span> +</div> + +<p>Among diversions for men golf, in spite of a certain reaction, has still +the chief place. The club house is on the west shore of the bay. One +plays out northward. The players zigzag here and there among curious +earth mounds formed by the eddying swirl of water when the river's +current held high carnival over these level stretches. Then the course +leads up to the higher slope and mounts steadily, until, at the farthest +hole, a considerable height has been reached. As one turns back towards +the river he faces a wonder scene of changing grey and blue and green +and white. The smoke of passing steamers floats lazily in the air; they +take the deep channel by the south shore and are a dozen miles away. It +is usually a silent world that one looks out upon; but when there is a +north-east wind great green waves come rolling in upon the sandy shore +of the bay and fill the air with their undertone.</p> + +<p>Even the rainy days have their own pleasures. One is glad of its excuse +to sit before a crackling fire of birch wood and read. When the rain has +ceased and the sun comes out, looking across to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page238" name="page238"></a>Pg 238</span> Cap à l'Aigle and up +the river valley one sees new beauties. The mist disperses slowly. First +it leaves bare the rounded mountain tops; they stand out dark, massive, +with bases shrouded still in fleecy white. When the sun grows strong, +river and valley are soon clear again, though the outlines are still a +little softened. Up over the sand and boulders of the bay comes the +rising tide changing sombre brown to shining blue. It rushes noisily +across the bar at the bay's mouth a few hundred yards away.</p> + +<p>The visitors to this beautiful scene gather year by year from places +widely separated and form in this remote village a society singularly +cosmopolitan. English, French, Americans, Canadians, all mingle here +with leisure to meet and play together. For a time far away seems the +hard world of competition. Rarely do newspapers arrive until at least +the day after publication; the telegraph is used only under urgent +necessity; as far as possible business is excluded. The cottages are +spacious enough but quite simple, with rooms usually divided off only by +boards of pine or spruce. Very little decoration makes them pretty. +Gardening has a good many devotees; the long day of sunshine and in some +seasons the abundant rain of this northern region help to make +vegetation luxurious. If one drives he may take a <i>planche</i>—the +convenient serviceable "buck-board,"—still unsurpassed for a country<span class="pagenum"><a id="page239" name="page239"></a>Pg 239</span> +of hills and rough roads. But to me at least the <i>calèche</i> is the more +enjoyable. It comes here from old France, a two-wheeled vehicle, with +the seat hung on stout leather straps reaching from front to back on +each side of the wooden frame. It is not a vehicle for those sensitive +to slight jars. The driver sits in a tiny seat in front and one is +amazed at the agility with which even old men spring from this perch to +walk up and down the steep hills. Their ponies are beautiful little +animals, specially fitted by a long development for work in this hilly +country. So well do they mount its heights that travellers repeat an +unconfirmed tradition of their having been known to climb trees!</p> + +<p>It is not strange that in our happy summer days we acquire a deep +affection for this northern region, its brilliant colouring, its crisp +air. Not its least charm is in the cheerful and kindly people. One would +not have them speak any other tongue than their French, preserving here +archaic usages, with new words for new things, influenced of course by +English, but still the beautiful language of an older France than the +France of to-day. The people have their own tragedies. One sees pale +women, over-worked. The physician's skill is too little sought; the +country ranges are very remote; it is difficult and expensive to get +medical aid; and there are deformed cripples who might have been made +whole by skill applied in time.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page240" name="page240"></a>Pg 240</span> Consumption too is here a dread +scourge, though against it a strenuous campaign has now begun. Many +children are born but too many die. Still, most of the people live in +comfort and they enjoy life—enjoy it probably much more than would an +Anglo-Saxon community of the same type.</p> + +<p>We who are among them in the summer are citizens of another and an +unknown world. New York and Chicago, Boston and Washington, Toronto and +Montreal are to us realities with one or other of which, in some way, +each of us is linked. To this simple people they are all merely that +outer world whence come their fleeting visitors of summer, as out of the +unknown come the migrant birds to pause and rest awhile. We bring with +us substantial material benefits; but it is not clear that our moral +influence is good. Leaving his farm the habitant brings to the village +his horse and calèche to become a hired <i>charretier</i>. He often gets good +fares but there is much idle waiting. Bad habits are formed and regular +industry is discouraged. The curé finds Malbaie a difficult sphere. We +alone get unmixed benefit from this fair scene, its days of glad +serenity, and of almost solemn stillness, when even a bird's note is +heard but rarely.</p> + +<p>Because all that concerns it interests us I have tried to put together +from scattered fragments the story long forgotten of the past of +Malbaie. In it there is abundance of the tragedy never<span class="pagenum"><a id="page241" name="page241"></a>Pg 241</span> remote from +man's life: if the telling of the tale has been a pleasure it has proved +not less a sad pleasure. But the story adds only a deeper meaning to our +beautiful playground. After all it is man and his activities which give +to nature's scenes their deepest interest; Quebec's chief charm is due +to Wolfe and Montcalm, St. Helena's to Napoleon. The shaggy mountain +crests which we view from our valley, the glistening blue river, the +strong north-east wind which clouds the sky, turns the river to grey, +and sprinkles its surface with white caps,—all are full for us of +joyous beauty. But how much less of interest would there be did the +white spire of the village church not peep out above the green trees up +the bay to tell of man's weakness and his hopes! The story of the brave +old soldier who peopled this valley, the pathetic tragedy of his +successor's fate, add something here to the bloom of nature. It may be +that the chief service of the chequered and half-forgotten past when it +speaks is to show how vain and transient is all we think and +plan,—"what shadows we are and what shadows we pursue." But be it so. +One would not miss from life this last joy of knowing what it really +means.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page243" name="page243"></a>Pg 243</span></p> +<h2>AUTHORITIES</h2> + + +<p><a href="#page1"><span class="smcap">Chapter I.</span></a>—For Jacques Cartier see his Voyages of 1535-36, in +French (Ed. D'Avezac) Paris, 1863, translated into English (Ed. Baxter), +New York, 1906. For Champlain see his Œuvres (Ed. Laverdière) Quebec, +1870. Bourdon's Act of Faith and Homage is in Canadian Archives, Series +M., Vol. I, p. 387. M. B. Sulte gives an account of the Carignan +Regiment in the Proc. and Trans. of the Royal Society of Canada for +1902. The account of the Sieur de Comporté in France is in Canadian +Archives Series B., F., 213, p. 46; that of the auction sale of his +property is in a MS. preserved at Murray Bay, while a record of the sale +of Malbaie to the government is in Canadian Archives, Series M., Vol. +LXV, p. 75. "The Jesuit Relations and Allied Documents" (Ed. Thwaites) +(Cleveland, 1900), Vol. LXIX., pp. 80 <i>sqq.</i> contains the account of +Malbaie in 1750. The authority for the burning of Malbaie in 1759 is Sir +James M. Le Moine, "The Explorations of Jonathan Oldbuck," Quebec, 1889, +based upon documents printed by "T.C." in <i>L'Abeille</i>, Nov. and Dec., +1859. Standard histories of the time such as Parkman's "Montcalm and +Wolfe" give references to authorities for the events of the Seven Years' +War.</p> + +<p><a href="#page22"><span class="smcap">Chapter II.</span></a>—The "Dictionary of National Biography" contains +good articles on Lord Lovat, General Murray, &c., with references to +authorities. Alexander Mackenzie's "History of the Frasers of Lovat" +(Inverness, 1896) is the most recent detailed history of the family. +MacLean, "An Historical Account of the Settlement of Scotch Highlanders +in America," (Cleveland, 1900), contains valuable information. The +portion of the chapter relating to Malbaie is based upon MSS. preserved +there in the Murray Bay Manor House.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page244" name="page244"></a>Pg 244</span></p> + +<p><a href="#page40"><span class="smcap">Chapter III.</span></a>—MS. material preserved at Murray Bay.</p> + +<p><a href="#page62"><span class="smcap">Chapter IV.</span></a>—Much original material relating to the Siege of +Quebec in 1775-76 has been published by the Literary and Historical +Society of Quebec. To be specially noted are the two volumes of +documents on the "Blockade of Quebec in 1775-76 by the American +Revolutionists, (Les Bostonnais)" Edited by F.C. Würtele (Quebec, 1905 +and 1906). Two or three works have been written recently on the episode +from the American point of view: Codman, "Arnold's Expedition to Quebec" +(New York, 1901); Justin H. Smith, "Arnold's March from Cambridge to +Quebec, a critical study, together with a reprint of Arnold's Journal," +(New York, 1903); Justin H. Smith, "Our Struggle for the Fourteenth +Colony," 2 Vols. (New York, 1907). The story of Nairne's part in the war +is based chiefly upon MS. material preserved at Murray Bay. The incident +of the escaped prisoners is told in Nairne's reports; to Captain +Matthews, Secretary to Haldimand, on the 14th of May, 1780, and to Major +Le Maistre, on the 5th of June. These are at Murray Bay. A further +report to Matthews on the 3rd of June is preserved at Ottawa; Canadian +Archives, Series B, Vol. 73, p. 130. Mr. James Thompson was in charge of +the building of the houses for the prisoners and tells of their escape +in his MS. Diary.</p> + +<p><a href="#page93"><span class="smcap">Chapter V.</span></a> and <a href="#page124"><span class="smcap">Chapter VI.</span></a> are based upon MSS. at +Murray Bay.</p> + +<p><a href="#page168"><span class="smcap">Chapter VII.</span></a>—M. Léon Gérin has given an exhaustive analysis of +the life of the habitant in "L'Habitant de Saint Justin," published in +the Proc. and Trans, of the Royal Society of Canada for 1898 (Ottawa, +1898). M. J.-E. Roy's "Histoire de la Seigneurie de Lauzon," of which +five volumes have been published (the last, Levis, Quebec, 1904) is the +most detailed and authoritative account of a Canadian Seigniory. Vol. IV +deals especially with the life of the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page245" name="page245"></a>Pg 245</span> habitants. Philippe Aubert de +Gaspé's "Les anciens Canadiens," (Quebec, 1863), and his "Mémoires" +(Ottawa, 1866), contain much that is interesting on the life of a +Canadian manor. So also do H.R. Casgrain's "Une Paroisse Canadienne au +XVIIe Siècle," Œuvres Completes, Vol. I (Montreal, 1884), and +Parkman's "The Old Régime in Canada," (Boston, 1893). W. Bennett Munro's +"The Seigniorial System in Canada," (New York, 1907), and his "Documents +relating to Seigniorial Tenure in Canada," (Toronto, 1908), cover +adequately the whole subject, and contain, in addition, abundant +references to further authorities. The "Mandements des Evêques de +Québec," (Ed. Têtu and Gagnon), in six volumes, the first published in +1887, contain much of interest in regard to the attitude of the Church +to the people. The Second Part of "The Report of the Commission charged +with revising and consolidating the General Statutes of the Province of +Quebec," (Quebec, 1907), outlines the legal aspects of the school and +Church systems. M. André Seigfried's "Le Canada, Les Deux Races," +(Paris, 1906), translated into English under the title of "The Race +Question in Canada," (London, 1907), is a passionless analysis of +religious and political thought in the Province of Quebec.</p> + +<p><a href="#page222"><span class="smcap">Chapter VIII.</span></a>—The account of fishing at Murray Bay in 1830 is +by Walter Henry; "Events of a Military Life," 2 Vols. (London, 1843). +The chapter is based chiefly upon personal observation.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page247" name="page247"></a>Pg 247</span></p> +<h2>APPENDICES</h2> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page249" name="page249"></a>Pg 249</span></p> +<h2>APPENDIX A (p. <a href="#page31">31</a>)</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Journal of Malcom Fraser, First Seigneur of Mount Murray, +Malbaie</span></h3> + + +<p>Malcolm Fraser was a young man of about twenty-six when he kept his +diary of Wolfe's campaign against Quebec. It shows that already he had +considerable powers of observation and very definite opinions. No doubt +Fraser preserved a record of events in the campaign earlier than those +of 1759; and it seems likely that the habit of recording his experiences +would also have been kept up in later life. When, some time before 1860, +were made the extracts from Fraser's Journal upon which the present +notes are based, the original remained in the possession of his son the +Hon. John Malcolm Fraser. The extracts were published by the Literary +and Historical Society of Quebec in 1868 and have been used by Parkman +and other historians, who usually, however, confuse Fraser with his +commanding officer Colonel Simon Fraser. The extracts have long been out +of print. I have not been able to trace the original MS. or any other +Journal of Fraser, except a brief and quite valueless one preserved at +Mount Murray. In one of his later letters, written fifty years after +this Journal, Fraser speaks of his reluctance to handle the pen. But +this did not keep him from writing in a beautiful round hand many long +letters and making also copies for his own use.</p> + +<p>Early in the spring of 1859 a great British fleet had arrived in America +from England and a squadron under Admiral Holmes had gone to New York to +embark the Highlanders and other regiments wintering there to pro<span class="pagenum"><a id="page250" name="page250"></a>Pg 250</span>ceed +to Quebec. The place of rendezvous was Louisbourg. Fraser's Journal +begins on May 8th, 1759, with the departure of the regiments from Sandy +Hook, the fleet consisting of about twenty-eight sail. The Highlanders +had taken part in the siege and capture of Louisbourg in the previous +year but had gone to New York for the winter. On May 17th the fleet +sailed into Louisbourg Harbour after "a very agreeable and quick +passage" of nine days. Patches of snow lay still on the ground and on +the 29th of May Louisbourg Harbour was so full of ice that boats could +not pass from the ships to shore. "I suppose," says Fraser, "the ice +comes from the Gulf and river of St. Lawrence," regions he was in time +to be very familiar with. He hears that a Lieutenant has shot himself on +one of the men of war "for fear I suppose the French should do it. If he +was wearied of life, he might soon get out of it in a more honourable +way."</p> + +<p>On Monday, June 4th, after much bustle of preparation, the fleet set +sail for Quebec. "I take it to consist of about 150 sail," says Fraser; +so great was the array that to count the ships was almost impossible. +They numbered in fact nearly 300, a huge force. On June 13th the fleet +anchored at Bic in the St. Lawrence River. As they came up the river +Fraser noted that the north shore was but little inhabited, a defect +which, within a few years, he was himself to try to remedy in part. On +June 23rd a whole division of the fleet anchored near Isle aux Coudres +as Jacques Cartier had done more than two hundred years earlier.</p> + +<p>Arrived before Quebec the Highlanders were sent to Point Levi where, on +July 1st, they pitched their tents. The next day Fraser's company +established itself in the Church of St. Joseph there. The Canadians were +carrying on guerilla warfare, firing on the British from the woods and +Fraser was shocked at the horrid practise of scalping. He writes on July +2nd:</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page251" name="page251"></a>Pg 251</span></p> + +<p>"While we were out, I observed several dead bodies on the road, not far +from our Camp; they were all scalped and mangled in a shocking manner. I +dare say no human creature but an Indian or Canadian could be guilty of +such inhumanity as to insult a dead body."</p> + +<p>He was to see worse atrocities committed on his own side. On July 10th, +still at Point Levi, he writes of the doings of a company of the +colonial scouting force, the Rangers, commanded by Captain Gorham, who +soon after desolated Malbaie.</p> + +<p>"A party of our Rangers having been sent out on this side of the river +(the south), on the 9th they took one man prisoner and two boys (his +children) having followed him a little way, making a great noise, were +in a most inhuman manner murdered by those worse than savage Rangers, +for fear, as they pretend, they should be discovered by the noise of the +children. I wish this story was not fact, but I'm afraid there is little +reason to doubt it:—the wretches having boasted of it on their return, +tho' they now pretend to vindicate themselves by the necessity they were +under; but, I believe, this barbarous action proceeded from that +cowardice and barbarity which seems so natural to a native of America, +whether of Indian or European extraction. In other instances, those +Rangers have hitherto been of some use, and showed in general a better +spirit than usual. They are for the most part raised in New England."</p> + +<p>On Friday, July 13th, the scene changed. Wolfe was planning an attack on +Montcalm's camp and Fraser writes: "I was sent orderly officer to the +Camp, at Montmorency, where I had an opportunity of seeing our own, and +the French posts nigh the Fall. The river is fordable below the Fall at +low water." On July 24th, 350 of the Highlanders under Col. Simon Fraser +were sent down the river to bring in prisoners and cattle. The Highland +leader met<span class="pagenum"><a id="page252" name="page252"></a>Pg 252</span> with misfortune. On July 26th Fraser writes: "Lieut. +Alexander Fraser, Junior, returned to camp from the detachment which +marched with the Col. on the 24th. He brings news of the Colonel's +having been wounded in the thigh, by an unlucky shot from a small party +of Canadians who lay in ambush and fired on the detachment out of a +bush, and then retired. In the evening, the Col. came to camp with Capt. +McPherson, who was wounded by the same shot, and the ball lodged in his +thigh; but it is thought neither of their wounds are (<i>sic</i>) dangerous. +There was not another man of the detachment touched." Next day the rest +of the detachment "returned with three women and one man prisoners, and +above two hundred head of cattle."</p> + +<p>On the following night July 28th, the French tried to destroy the +British fleet by a fire ship. "This night the French sent down a large +fire raft which they did not set fire to till they were fired on by some +of the boats who are every night on the watch for them above the +shipping. Our boats immediately grappled it, and tho' it burnt with +great violence, they towed it past all the shipping without any damage." +We know from other sources that one of the sailors engaged in dragging +away the fireship likened it to having "hell-fire in tow."</p> + +<p>Fraser records on Tuesday, July 31st, the disastrous attempt by the +British to carry by a frontal attack Montcalm's entrenchments along the +Beauport shore. The attack failed partly through the rashness of the +Grenadiers who dashed forward prematurely. For this Wolfe rebuked them +but he commended the cool steadiness of the Highlanders. Some 700 +British casualties were the results of the attack. When the British drew +off they left many of their men fallen on the shore. Fraser says: "I +observed some men coming down from the trenches where some of our people +lay killed; we imagined they were Indians who were sent to scalp them, +after the whole had retreated."</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page253" name="page253"></a>Pg 253</span></p> + +<p>At once after the disaster, the Highlanders were moved back to their old +camp at Point Levi. Some idle days followed. But, on August 15th, a +detachment which included Fraser was sent to the Island of Orleans. It +was bent on the work of desolating the Canadian parishes, the people of +which still persisted in warring on the British. On Thursday, August +16th, the detachment, consisting of about 170 officers and men, marched +the length of the Island of Orleans and on the 17th it crossed to St. +Joachim—the fertile flats lying almost under the shadow of Cap +Tourmente: Fraser was drawing near to the Malbaie country. He writes: +"Friday, 17th August.—Crossed from the Isle of Orleans to St. Joachim. +Before we landed we observed some men walking along the fences, as if +they intended to oppose us and on our march up to the Church of St. +Joachim, we were fired on by some party's of the Enemy from behind the +houses and fences, but upon our advancing they betook themselves to the +woods, from whence they continued popping at us, till towards evening, +when they thought proper to retire, and we kept possession of the +Priest's house, which we set about fortifying in the best manner we +could." They remained quietly at St. Joachim for some days. But they +were getting ready for the grim task of desolating the parishes lying +between St. Joachim and Montmorency. Fraser tells the story with +soldier-like brevity, but obviously he hated the work.</p> + +<p>"Thursday, 23rd.—We were reinforced by a party of about one hundred and +forty Light Infantry, and a Company of Rangers, under the command of +Captain Montgomery of Kennedy's or forty-third Regiment, who likewise +took the command of our detachment, and we all marched to attack the +village to the west of St. Joachim, which was occupied by a party of the +enemy to the number of about two hundred, as we supposed, Canadians and +Indians. When we came pretty near the village, they fired<span class="pagenum"><a id="page254" name="page254"></a>Pg 254</span> on us from +the houses pretty smartly; we were ordered to lie behind the fences till +the Rangers, who were detached to attack the Enemy from the woods, began +firing on their left flank, when we advanc^d briskly without great +order; and the French abandoned the houses and endeavoured to get into +the woods, our men pursuing close at their heels. There were several of +the enemy killed, and wounded, and a few prisoners taken, all of whom +the barbarous Captain Montgomery, who commanded us, ordered to be +butchered in a most inhuman and cruel manner; particularly two, who I +sent prisoners by a sergeant, after giving them quarter, and engaging +that they should not be killed, were one shot, and the other knocked +down with a Tomahawk (a little hatchet) and both scalped in my absence, +by the rascally sergeant neglecting to acquaint Montgomery that I wanted +them saved, as he, Montgomery, pretended when I questioned him about it; +but even that was no excuse for such an unparalleled piece of barbarity. +However, as the affair could not be remedied, I was obliged to let it +drop. After this skirmish we set about burning the houses with great +success, setting all in flames till we came to the church of St. Anne's, +[the now famous shrine of St. Anne de Beaupré], where we put up for this +night, and were joined by Captain Ross, with about one hundred and +twenty men of his company.</p> + +<p>"Friday, 24th August.—Began to march and burn as yesterday, till we +came to Ange Gardien where our detachment and Captain Ross, who had been +posted for some days at Chateau Richer, joined Colonel Murray with the +three companies of Grenadiers of the 22nd, 40th and 45th Regiments, +where we are posted in four houses which we have fortified so as to be +able, we hope, to stand any attack which we can expect with small arms.</p> + +<p>"Saturday, 25th.—Busy felling the fruit trees, and cutting the wheat to +clear round us.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page255" name="page255"></a>Pg 255</span></p> + +<p>"Sunday, 26th.—The same.</p> + +<p>"Monday, 27th August.—I hear Brigadier Murray has returned with his +detachment, having had all the success expected of the detachment. We +received orders to march to-morrow to Chateau Richer. Some men were +observed skulking in the corn, round the houses we possessed; upon +which, some of our people fired from one of the houses, when the whole +took the alarm and continued firing from the windows and loopholes for +about ten minutes. For my own part I can't say I could observe any of +the Enemy, but as we had one man killed, and most of the men affirmed +they saw men in the Corn, I can't doubt but there were a few of the +Enemy near us."</p> + +<p>So the record goes on. On August 30th the detachment was busy fortifying +itself in the Church at Château Richer near Quebec. On the next day +orders came to burn the houses there but not the church and return at +once to Montmorency. At Ange Gardien, on the way, General Murray, after +whom Murray Bay is named, joined them with his detachment. As they +marched along the force burned all the houses and was soon back in camp +at Montmorency. They had left a trail black with desolation between that +point and Cap Tourmente. Captain Gorham completed the tale of woe by +destroying Baie St. Paul and Malbaie. Hardly a house was left between +Montmorency and the Saguenay.</p> + +<p>But all this was only side-play. The crisis of the campaign was now +near. On September 3rd Wolfe abandoned the camp at Montmorency. Fraser +writes: "The Army at Montmorency decamped this day, and crossed to the +Island of Orleans, and from thence to Point Levy, without molestation +from the French, tho' they must have known some time ago that we +intended to abandon that post."</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page256" name="page256"></a>Pg 256</span></p> + +<p>Wolfe was now massing as many troops as possible above Quebec on the +south side of the river. On September 6th, 600 of the Highlanders, +together with the 15th and the 43rd, marched six miles above Point Levi +and there embarked on board the ships. Fraser says: "We are much +crowded; the ship I am in has about six hundred on board, being only +about two hundred and fifty tons." On the 7th and 8th it rained and the +men must have been very uncomfortable in their narrow quarters. For some +days still they remained in this condition. Meanwhile were issued to the +men careful instructions as to what they should do. The army was to drop +down the river in small boats, and to attempt to make a landing on the +north shore.</p> + +<p>On the evening of September 12th came the final effort so carefully +planned. "About nine o'clock, the night of the 12th, we went into the +Boats as ordered." Fraser says that a shore battery began to fire on the +British boats about 4.0 A.M. before they landed and that the landing at +the Foulon to climb to the Heights was made at daybreak.</p> + +<p>"Thursday, 13th September, 1759.—The Light Infantry under the command +of Colonel Howe, immediately landed and mounted the hill. We were fired +on in the Boats by the Enemy who killed and wounded a few. In a short +time, the whole army was landed at a place called 'Le Foulon,' (now +Wolfe's Cove) about a mile and a half above the Town of Quebec, and +immediately followed the Light Infantry up the hill. There was a few +tents and a Picket of the French on the top of the hill whom the Light +Infantry engaged, and took some of their Officers and men prisoners. The +main body of our Army soon got to the upper ground after climbing a hill +or rather a precipice, of about three hundred yards, very steep and +covered with wood and brush. We had several skirmishes with the<span class="pagenum"><a id="page257" name="page257"></a>Pg 257</span> +Canadians and Savages, till about ten o'clock, when the army was formed +in line of battle, having the great River St. Lawrence on the right with +the precipice which we mounted in the morning; on the left, a few +houses, and at some distance the low ground and wood above the General +Hospital with the River St. Charles; in front, the Town of Quebec, about +a mile distant; in the rear, a wood occupied by the Light Infantry ... +and the third Battalion of the Royal Americans.... The Army was ordered +to march on slowly in line of battle, and halt several times, till about +half an hour after ten, when the French began to appear in great numbers +on the rising ground between us and the Town, and [they] having advanced +several parties to skirmish with us, we did the like. They then got two +Iron field pieces to play against our line. Before eleven o'clock, we +got one brass field piece up the Hill, which being placed in the proper +interval began to play very smartly on the Enemy while forming on the +little eminence. Their advanced parties continued to annoy us and +wounded a great many men. About this time, we observed the Enemy formed, +having a bush of short brush wood on their right, which straitened them +in room, and obliged them to form in columns. About eleven o'clock, the +French Army advanced in columns till they had got past the bush of wood +into the plain, when they endeavoured to form in line of Battle, but +being much galled by our Artillery, which consisted of only one field +piece, very well served, we observed them in some confusion. However +they advanced at a brisk pace till within about thirty or forty yards of +our front, when they gave us their first fire, which did little +execution. We returned it, and continued firing very hot for about six, +or (as some say) eight minutes, when the fire slackening, and the smoke +of the powder vanishing, we observed the main body of the Enemy +retreating in great confusion towards the Town, and the rest towards<span class="pagenum"><a id="page258" name="page258"></a>Pg 258</span> +the River St. Charles. Our Regiment were then ordered by Brigadier +General Murray to draw their swords and pursue them, which I dare say +increased their panic but saved many of their lives, whereas if the +artillery had been allowed to play, and the army advanced regularly +there would have been many more of the Enemy killed and wounded, as we +never came up with the main body. In advancing, we passed over a great +many dead and wounded, (french regulars mostly) lying in the front of +our Regiment, who,—I mean the Highlanders,—to do them justice, behaved +extremely well all day, as did the whole of the army. After pursuing the +French to the very gates of the Town, our Regiment was ordered to form +fronting the Town, on the ground whereon the French formed first. At +this time the rest of the Army came up in good order. General Murray +having then put himself at the head of our Regiment, ordered them to +face to the left and march thro' the bush of wood, towards the General +Hospital, when they got a great gun or two to play upon us from the +Town, which however did no damage, but we had a few men killed and +Officers wounded by some skulking fellows with small arms, from the +bushes and behind the houses in the suburbs of St. Louis and St. John's. +After marching a short way through the bush, Brigadier Murray thought +proper to order us to return again to the high road leading from Porte +St. Louis, to the heights of Abraham, where the battle was fought, and +after marching till we got clear of the bushes, we were ordered to turn +to the right, and go along the edge of them towards the bank, at the +descent between us and the General Hospital, under which we understood +there was a body of the Enemy who no sooner saw us than they began +firing on us from the bushes and from the bank; we soon dispossessed +them from the bushes and from thence kept firing for about a quarter of +an hour on those under cover of the bank; but as they exceeded us +greatly in num<span class="pagenum"><a id="page259" name="page259"></a>Pg 259</span>bers, they killed and wounded a great many of our men, +and killed two Officers, which obliged us to retire a little, and form +again, when the 58th Regiment with the 2nd Battalion of Royal Americans +having come up to our assistance, all three making about five hundred +men, advanced against the Enemy and drove them first down to the great +meadow between the Hospital and town and afterwards over the River St. +Charles. It was at this time and while in the bushes that our Regiment +suffered most: Lieutenant Roderick, Mr. Neill of Bana, and Alexander +McDonell, and John McDonell, and John McPherson, volunteer, with many of +our men, were killed before we were reinforced; and Captain Thomas Ross +having gone down with about one hundred men of the 3rd Regiment to the +meadow, after the Enemy, when they were out of reach, ordered me up to +desire those on the height would wait till he would come up and join +them, which I did, but before Mr. Ross could get up, he unfortunately +was mortally wounded in the body, by a cannon ball from the hulks, in +the mouth of the River St. Charles, of which he died in great torment, +but with great resolution, in about two hours thereafter.</p> + +<p>"In the afternoon, Mons. Bougainville, with the French Grenadiers and +some Canadians, to the number of two thousand who had been detached to +oppose our landing at Cap Rouge, appeared between our rear and the +village St. Foy, formed in a line as if he intended to attack us; but +the 48th Regiment with the Light Infantry and 3rd Battalion Royal +Americans being ordered against him, with some field pieces, they fired +a few cannon shot at him when he thought proper to retire.</p> + +<p>"Thus ended the battle of Quebec, the first regular engagement that we +... fought in North America, which has made the king of Great Britain +master of the capital of Canada, and it is hoped ere long will be the +means of sub<span class="pagenum"><a id="page260" name="page260"></a>Pg 260</span>jecting the whole country to the British Dominion; and if +so, this has been a greater acquisition to the British Empire than all +that England has acquired by Conquest since it was a nation, if I may +except the conquest of Ireland, in the reign of Henry the 2nd.</p> + +<p>"The Enemy's numbers I have never been able to get an exact account of. +We imagined them seven or eight thousand: this has been disputed since. +However, I am certain they were greatly superior to us in numbers, as +their line was equal to ours in length, tho' they were in some places +nine deep, whereas ours was no more than three deep. Add to this, their +advanced parties and those in the bushes, on all hands, I think they +must exceed five thousand.</p> + +<p>"Our strength at the utmost did not exceed the thousand men in the line, +exclusive of the 15th Regiment and 2nd Battalion Royal Americans, who +were drawn up on our left, fronting the River St. Charles, with the 3rd +Battalion Royal Americans and Light Infantry in the rear, and the 48th +Regiment, who were drawn up between our main body and the Light Infantry +as a Corps of Reserve. So that I am pretty certain our numbers did not +exceed four thousand men, the Regiments being very weak, most of them +under three hundred men each.</p> + +<p>"We had only about five hundred men of our Army killed and wounded, but +we suffered an irreparable loss in the death of our commander the brave +Major General James Wolfe, who was killed in the beginning of the +general action; we had the good fortune not to hear of it till all was +over.</p> + +<p>"The French were supposed to have about one thousand men killed and +wounded, of whom five hundred killed during the whole day, and amongst +these Monsieur le Lieutenant Général Montcalm, the commander in chief of +the French Army in Canada, one Brigadier General, one Colonel and +several other Officers. I imagined there had<span class="pagenum"><a id="page261" name="page261"></a>Pg 261</span> been many more killed and +wounded on both sides, as there was a heavy fire for some minutes, +especially from us.</p> + +<p>"We had of our Regiment three officers killed and ten wounded, one of +whom Captain Simon Fraser, afterwards died. Lieutenant Archibald +Campbell was thought to have been mortally wounded, but to the surprise +of most people recovered; Captain John McDonell thro' both thighs; +Lieut. Ronald McDonell thro' the knee; Lieutenant Alexander Campbell +thro' the leg; Lieutenant Douglas thro' the arm, who died of this wound +soon afterwards; Ensign Gregorson, Ensign McKenzie and Lieutenant +Alexander Fraser, all slightly. I received a contusion in the right +shoulder or rather breast, before the action became general, which +pained me a good deal, but it did not disable me from my duty then, or +afterwards.</p> + +<p>"The detachment of our Regiment consisted, at our marching from Point +Levi, of six hundred men, besides commissioned and non-commissioned +Officers; but of these, two Officers and about sixty men were left on +board for want of boats, and an Officer and about thirty men left at the +landing place; besides a few left sick on board, so that we had about +five hundred men in the action. We suffered in men and Officers more +than any three Regiments in the field. We were commanded by Captain John +Campbell; the Colonel and Captain McPherson having been unfortunately +wounded on the 25th July, of which they were not yet fully recovered.</p> + +<p>"We lay on our Arms all the night of the 13th September.</p> + +<p>"Friday, 14th September.—We got ashore our tents and encamped our +Regiment on the ground where they fought the battle yesterday. He[re] we +are within reach of the guns of the town.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page262" name="page262"></a>Pg 262</span></p> + +<p>"Saturday, 15th September.—We were ordered to move our Camp nigh the +wood, at a greater distance from the Town. We are making advanced +redoubts within five hundred yards of the town."</p> + +<p>Such is Fraser's account of the struggle on the Plains of Abraham and of +the conduct of the Highlanders in their first pitched battle in North +America. The resolute preparations to attack Quebec produced their +effect. On September 18th the fortress surrendered. A little later the +army broke up the camp outside the walls and marched into the town. The +outlook was certainly not cheerful: "Most of the houses are destroyed +and we have but a very dismal prospect for seven or eight months, as +fresh provisions are very scarce, and every other thing exorbitantly +dear." A little later the fleet sailed away and General Murray with a +small force was left in a hostile country to hold Quebec through a long +and bitterly cold winter. He established two out-posts, one at Ste. Foy, +the other at Lorette, and then the army bent all its energies to meet +the foes, cold, disease and the French. Fighting the cold was terrible +work. Fraser writes:</p> + +<p>"December 1st.—The Governor ordered two weeks wood to be issued to the +Garrison. It is thought we shall have a great deal of difficulty in +supplying ourselves with fuel this winter. The winter is now very +severe.</p> + +<p>"December 20th.—The winter is become almost insupportably cold. The men +are notwithstanding obliged to drag all the wood used in the Garrison on +sledges from St. Foy, about four miles distance. This is a very severe +duty; the poor fellows do it however with great spirit, tho' several of +them have already lost the use of their fingers and toes by the +incredible severity of the frost, and the country people tell us it is +not yet at the worst. Some men on sentry have been deprived of speech +and sensation in a few minutes, but hitherto, no person has lost his +life, as<span class="pagenum"><a id="page263" name="page263"></a>Pg 263</span> care is taken to relieve them every half hour or oftener when +the weather is very severe. The Garrison in general are but +indifferently cloathed, but our regiment in particular is in a pitiful +situation having no breeches, and the Philibeg is not all calculated for +this terrible climate. Colonel Fraser is doing all in his power to +provide trowsers for them, and we hope soon to be on a footing with +other Regiments in that respect.</p> + +<p>"January, 1760.—Nothing remarkable during this month. The duty is very +severe on the poor men; we mount every day a guard of about one hundred +men, and the whole off duty with a subaltern officer from each Regiment +are employed in dragging fire wood; tho' the weather is such that they +are obliged to have all covered but their eyes, and nothing but the last +necessity obliged any men to go out of doors."</p> + +<p>Early in February the St. Lawrence froze over. On February 13th the +British established a force in the Church at St. Joseph at Point Levi +but it was attacked by the French and then, on February 24th, Murray +sent a rescue party. The Highlanders and the 28th went across on the ice +and nearly intercepted the retreat of the French force, which was driven +off. The kilted Highlanders marching on the ice in the bitter winter +weather make an interesting picture. But by this time, no doubt, they +were not bare-legged!</p> + +<p>Towards the end of March there was much illness and Fraser writes: "The +Scurvy, occasioned by salt provisions and cold, has begun to make fierce +havock in the garrison, and it becomes every day more general. In short, +I believe there is scarce a man of the Army entirely free from it." On +the 24th of April he writes again: "Great havock amongst the Garrison +occasioned by the Scurvy, &c.; this is the more alarming, as the General +seems certain that the French are preparing to come and attack the +place, and will he says, be here in a very few days."</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page264" name="page264"></a>Pg 264</span></p> + +<p>Of the garrison of 5653 no less than 2312 were on the sick list, when, +on the 26th, came the great crisis of the defence of Quebec:</p> + +<p>"On the night of the 26th April, a man of the French army who, with some +others had been cast away in a boat that night, came down the river on a +piece of ice, and being taken up next morning at the Town, gave the +General information that the chevalier de Levi [Lévis] was within twenty +miles of us, with an army of about twelve thousand men, made up of +regulars, Canadians and savages.</p> + +<p>"27th April, 1760.—The Governor marched out, with the Grenadiers and +Piquets of the garrison, to support the Light Infantry which had taken +post some days before near Cap Rouge. By the time he got out, the +vanguard of the French army appeared; upon which, he thought it +adviseable to withdraw the Light Infantry, and all the other outposts, +and retire to Town; and for that purpose he sent orders to the 28th, +47th and 58th and Colonel Fraser's Regiment to march out to St. Foy and +cover his retreat; the 35th Regiment, 2nd Battalion Royal Americans +having been detached in the morning to prevent the enemy, in case they +attempted to land at Sillery or any other place near the Town. The +retreat was accordingly effected without any loss, tho' the enemy were +so nigh as to skirmish with our rear till we got within half a league of +the Ramparts.</p> + +<p>"On the 28th April, 1760, about eight o'clock in the morning, the whole +Garrison, exclusive of the Guards, was drawn up on the parade, and about +nine o'clock we marched out of Town with twenty pieces of Field +Artillery, that is, two to each Regiment. The men were likewise ordered +to carry a pick axe or spade each. When we had marched a little way out +of Town, we saw the advanced parties of the Enemy nigh the woods, about +half a league distant from us. When we were about three-quarters of a +mile out of Town,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page265" name="page265"></a>Pg 265</span> the General ordered the whole to draw up in line of +Battle, two deep, and take up as much room as possible. Soon thereafter, +he ordered the men to throw down the intrenching tools, and the whole +Army to advance slowly, dressing by the right, having drawn up the 35th +Regiment and 3rd Battalion Royal Americans in our rear as a corps of +reserve, with one hundred men (in a redoubt which was begun by us a few +days preceding) to cover our retreat in case of necessity. In this +order, we advanced, about one hundred paces, when the canonading began +on our side, and we observed the French advanced parties retiring, and +their main body forming in order of Battle at the edge of the wood, +about three hundred paces distant we continued canonading and advancing +for some minutes. The enemy, on their side, played against the left of +our army, where our Regiment happened to be, with two pieces of cannon +and killed and wounded us some men. The affair begun now to turn +serious, when the General ordered the Light Infantry, who were posted on +the right of our army, to attack five companies of French Grenadiers who +they obliged to retire, but they being supported by a large column of +the enemy, the Light Infantry were in their turn obliged to give way, +which they doing along the front of our line on the right (as I am told) +hindered our men on the right from firing for some minutes which gave +the enemy full time to form. On the left, matters were in a worse +situation. The company of Volunteers of the garrison, commanded by +Captain Donald McDonald of our Regiment, and Captain Hazen's company of +Rangers who covered the left flank of our army having been almost +entirely destroyed, were obliged to give way; by this means the left of +the 28th Regiment was exposed, and this obliged them to give ground +after an obstinate resistance; Colonel Fraser's Regiment was next them +to the right, and being in danger of being surrounded, and at the same +time ex<span class="pagenum"><a id="page266" name="page266"></a>Pg 266</span>tremely galled by a fire from the Bushes in front and flank, +were under a necessity of falling back instantly, when Colonel Fraser +who commanded the Left Brigade consisting of the 28th, 47th and his own +Regiment, sent orders to the 47th to retire; they were drawn up with a +small rising ground in their front, which till then covered them pretty +much from the enemy's fire, but as most of the Regiment to the right, as +well as the two Regiments to the left of them, had by this time retired, +it was absolutely necessary for the 47th to quit that ground, otherwise +they must inevitably have been surrounded in a few minutes. Most of the +Regiments attempted to carry off their artillery, but the ground was so +bad with wreaths of snow in the hollows, that they were obliged to +abandon them, after nailing them up, as well as the intrenching tools. +Every Regiment made the best of their way to Town, but retired however +in such a manner that the enemy did not think proper to pursue very +briskly, otherwise they must have killed or made prisoners many more +than they did. Our loss was about three hundred killed, and about seven +hundred wounded, and a few Officers and men made prisoners. We had about +three thousand in the field, one-third of whom had that very day, come +voluntarily out of the Hospitals; of these, about five hundred were +employed in dragging the cannon, and five hundred more in reserve, so +that we could have no more than two thousand in the line of battle, +whereas the enemy must have had at least four times as many, beside a +large body in reserve, and notwithstanding their great superiority we +suffered very little in the retreat; some Regiments attempted to rally, +but it was impossible to form in any sort of order with the whole, till +we got within the walls.</p> + +<p>"Our Regiment had about four hundred men in the field near one half of +whom had that day come out of the Hospital, out of their own accord. We +had about sixty killed<span class="pagenum"><a id="page267" name="page267"></a>Pg 267</span> and forty wounded, and of thirty-nine officers, +Captain Donald McDonald who commanded the volunteer company of the army, +and Lieutenant Cosmo Gordon who commanded the Light Infantry company of +our Regiment, were both killed in the field; Lieutenant Hector McDonald +and Ensign Malcolm Fraser died of their wounds, all very much regretted +by every one who knew them. We had twenty-three more Officers wounded; +of this number was Colonel [Simon] Fraser, who commanded the left wing +of the army, and it was with great pleasure we observed his behaviour +during the action, when he gave his orders with great coolness and +deliberation. He was touched at two different times; the first took him +in the right breast but having his cartouche box slung, it luckily +struck against the star of it and did not penetrate tho', otherways, +must infallibly have done his business. The second, he got in the +retreat, but striking against the cue of his hair, he received no other +damage than a stiffness in his neck for some days. [Fraser then adds +this tribute to Lord Lovat's son:] Here I cannot help observing that if +any unlucky accident had befallen our Colonel, not only his Regiment +must have suffered an irreparable loss, but I think I can, without any +partiality say, it would be a loss to his Country. His behaviour this +winter in particular to his Regiment has been such, as to make him not +only esteemed by them, but by the Garrison in general. Captain Alexander +Fraser of our Regiment, was wounded in the right temple, and thought +very dangerous, the rest are mostly flesh wounds. I received a musket +ball in the right groin, which was thought dangerous for three or four +days, as the ball was supposed to be lodged, but whether it has wrought +out in walking into Town, or did not penetrate far enough at first to +lodge, or is still in, I cannot say, but in twenty days I was entirely +cured, and the wound which was at first but small was entirely closed +up.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page268" name="page268"></a>Pg 268</span></p> + +<p>"When we marched out, we thought the General did not intend to give the +French battle; and as he ordered the Army to carry out intrenching +tools, we thought he meant to throw up works on the rising ground, +before the Town, if the Enemy should not choose to attack him that day; +but, it seems he changed his mind on seeing their situation, which gave +him all the advantage he could desire with such an inferior Army and +where, if the Enemy ventured to attack him, he could use his Artillery, +on which was his chief dependence, to the best purpose: having a rising +ground, whereon he might form his Army and plant his Cannon, so as to +play on the Enemy as they advanced for about four hundred or five +hundred yards, with round shot, and when they came within a proper +distance the grape shot must have cut them to pieces. However, it seems +he observed the enemy, some formed at the edge of the wood, some +forming, and the rest marching from St. Foy. The bait was too tempting, +and his passion for glory getting the better of his reason he ordered +the Army to march and attack the enemy, as he thought, before they could +form, in a situation the most desired by them and ought to be avoided by +us, as the Canadians and Savages could be used against us to the +greatest advantage in their beloved (if I may say element) woods. It +would give me great pleasure to relate something more to the advantage +of this gentleman who is, in many respects, possessed of several +virtues, and particularly all the military ones, except prudence, and +entirely free of all mercenary principles; but, as his conduct on this +occasion is universally condemned by all those who are not immediately +dependent on him, truth obliges me to state matters as I believe, they +really stood; more especially as it is not said he advised with any of +those who had a right to be consulted before such a step should be +taken. Nay, it is said: that the preceding night, at a meeting with the +different Command<span class="pagenum"><a id="page269" name="page269"></a>Pg 269</span>ants of the Corps, he declared his intention of +fortifying himself on the heights and not to attack the Enemy, unless he +should be forced to it, which we were persuaded of by his orders to +carry out intrenching tools. We had very little chance of beating an +Army four times our number [an exaggeration: they were not twice as +numerous] in a situation where we could scarce act; and if the Enemy had +made a proper use of their advantage, the consequences must have proved +fatal to us, as they might have got betwixt us and the Town, cut off our +retreat, and by that means ruined us to all intents." [It will hardly be +denied that the young officer is rather severe upon his future friend +and patron, General Murray.]</p> + +<p>"Our situation became now extremely critical: we were beat in the field, +by an army greatly superior in numbers, and obliged to rely on what +defence we could make within the walls of Quebec, which were hitherto +reckoned of very little consequence against a superior army.</p> + +<p>"The French that very night after the Battle opened trenches within six +hundred yards of the walls, and went on next, 29th April, with their +works pretty briskly. For the first two days after the battle there was +very little done by us; and on the 1st of May, the largest of our block +houses (small square redoubts of Logs musquet proof) was blown up by +accident, and Captain Cameron of our Regiment and a subaltern of the +48th with several men, dangerously burnt and bruised. On the 3rd day +after the battle, the General set about to strengthen or (I may say) +fortify the Town, and the men worked with the greatest alacrity. In a +few days there were about one hundred additional guns mounted, with +which our people kept an incessant fire on the enemy, and retarded their +works very much.</p> + +<p>"On the 9th May, the Leostaff Frigate, Captain Dean, arrived from +England, and brought us news from thence,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page270" name="page270"></a>Pg 270</span> and informed us that there +was a squadron in the River, which might be expected every tide to our +assistance. This added greatly to the spirits of the Garrison, and our +works were carried on briskly. The General seemed resolved from the +first to defend the place to the last. This, nobody doubted, and every +one seemed to forget their late misfortune, and to place entire +confidence in the General's conduct, which all must acknowledge very +resolute, when reduced almost to an extremity.</p> + +<p>"On the 11th May, the French opened two Batteries mounting thirteen +guns, and one or two mortars. Their heavy metal consisted of one +twenty-four and two eighteen pounders, the rest were all light. They did +not seem to confine their fire entirely to any particular part of the +Walls, otherwise I believe they might in time have made a breach, and +their fire was not very smart. We were masters of a much superior fire, +and annoyed the besiegers at their batteries very much. Their fire +became every day more and more faint, and it was generally believed they +intended to raise the seige.</p> + +<p>"On the 16th May, in the evening the Vanguard, commodore Swanton, and +Diana Frigate, Captain Schomberg, arrived from England, and next +morning, 17th May, 1760, they and the Leostaff attacked the two French +Frigates that lay at anchor in the Bay, above Cape Diamond; which when +they first observed, they made as if they intended to engage, but on our +ships approaching nearer, they set sail up the river; but one of them +ran ashore immediately, and our Frigates soon got up with theirs, and +obliged them also to run aground and thereafter destroyed them. One ship +however escaped out of their reach, and unluckily, the Leostaff, after +all was over, ran on a rock, sunk and was entirely lost.</p> + +<p>"That very night several deserters came into the Town, and informed that +most part of the French army had<span class="pagenum"><a id="page271" name="page271"></a>Pg 271</span> marched, the Trenches being guarded by +their Grenadiers only. About twelve o'clock at night, the General sent +out a party who found the Trenches entirely abandoned and next morning, +18th May, 1760, we found ourselves entirely freed of very disagreeable +neighbours, having left behind all their artillery, with a great part of +their ammunition, Camp equipage and baggage. What made them retreat with +such precipitation we could not guess; but, it seems they were seized +with a panic. It appears they allowed the savages to scalp all the +killed and most part of the wounded, as we found a great many scalps on +the bushes.</p> + +<p>"I have been since informed by Lieutenant McGregor, of our Regiment, who +was left on the field wounded, and narrowly escaped being killed, having +received two stabs of a bayonet from two French Regulars, that he saw +the savages murdering the wounded and scalping them on all sides, and +expected every moment to share the same fate, but was saved by a French +Officer, who luckily spoke a little English."</p> + +<p>Thus ends Fraser's narrative of the two sieges of Quebec. He served in +the third siege, that of 1775-76, and was still alive in 1812-15 to give +counsel when Quebec was again menaced by the Americans.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /> +<h2>APPENDIX B (p. <a href="#page38">38</a>)</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">Title-deed of the Seigniory of Murray Bay Granted To Captain John +Nairne of the</span> 78th <span class="smcap">Regiment, April</span> 27th, 1762</h3> + + +<p>By the Honourable James Murray, Esquire, Governor of Quebec, &c.</p> + +<p>Whereas it is a national advantage and tends to promote the cultivation +of lands within the province to en<span class="pagenum"><a id="page272" name="page272"></a>Pg 272</span>courage His Majesty's natural-born +subjects settling within the same:</p> + +<p>For these purposes, and in consideration of the faithful services +rendered by John Nairne, Esquire, Captain in the 78th Regiment of Foot, +unto His Majesty, I do hereby give, grant, and concede unto the said +Captain John Nairne, his heirs, executors, and administrators for ever, +all that extent of land lying on the north side of the river St. +Lawrence from the Cap aux Oyes, limit of the parish of Eboulemens, to +the south side of the river of Malbaie, and for three leagues back, to +be known hereafter, at the special request of said John Nairne, by the +name of Murray's Bay; firmly to hold the same to himself, his heirs, +executors, and administrators for ever, or until His Majesty's pleasure +is further known, for and in consideration of the possessor's paying +liege homage to His Majesty, his heirs and successors, at his castle of +St. Lewis in Quebec on each mutation of property, and, by way of +acknowledgment, a piece of gold of the value of ten shillings, with one +year's rent of the domain reserved, as customary in this country, +together with the woods and rivers, or other appurtenances within the +said extent, right of fishing or fowling on the same therein included +without hindrance or molestation; all kind of traffic with the Indians +of the back country hereby specially excepted.</p> + +<p>Given under my hand and seal at Quebec, this 27th day of April, 1762.</p> + +<p>(Signed) <span class="smcap">Jas. Murray</span>.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page273" name="page273"></a>Pg 273</span></p> +<h2>APPENDIX C (p. <a href="#page78">78</a>)</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Siege of Quebec in</span> 1775-76</h3> + +<h4><span class="smcap">colonel nairne to miss m. nairne</span></h4> + + +<p><i>Quebec, 14th May, 1776.</i></p> + +<p>The New England rebels were very successful on their first arrival in +this Province having got most of the Canadians in their interest. They +took the two Regiments (which were all the regular troops in the +Province) prisoners, made themselves masters of the Town of Montreal and +all the Forts and the whole open country. Flushed with this success they +came before our Capital (Quebec) where their main army was joined by a +reinforcement of six hundred men who had marched straight through the +Woods from Boston where scarcely any body had ever passed before and +thought utterly impracticable for a body of men. The suburbs about +Quebec which were extensive (now in ruins) were not all destroyed at the +first arrival of the enemy so that in two places they annoyed us with +their Riflemen though they only killed a very few. They also (though in +the Winter) got a Battery of five guns against the Town but [it] was +silenced by a superior fire from our Ramparts. They also bombarded the +Town in the night with small shell till the 31st December when about two +hours before day they made a general attack with their whole force upon +the Ramparts, their two principal attacks being against the two +extremitys of the low Town. Their General (Montgomery) an Irish +gentleman who had been a Captain in our army possessing extraordinary +qualifications fitting him for such a Command led the attack against a +very strong post in the low town. Our Cannon (six pieces) loaded with +grape shot, did not begin to fire till the enemy was within the distance +of twenty yards, which with the musketry of the guard at the same time +made terrible havoc. Their General with<span class="pagenum"><a id="page274" name="page274"></a>Pg 274</span> four of his officers lay slain +in one heap within twenty and others within ten yards of our +fortifications by which that attack was wholly frustrated and all that +part of their army retired in confusion. The attack upon the other +extremity of the low Town was made with six hundred men. At first they +had success though that turned out at last to their ruin. They forced +our advanced post where we had four pieces of cannon, afterward got +possession of another barrier and forced their way through a narrow +street to the last barrier, which if they had gained they would have +been in the low Town. At the same time the Governor ordered a sally out +at a Gate they had passed to follow their track in the snow (that was +then deep) and fall upon them behind. That we should open a Gate and +attack them when attacked ourselves was a thing very unexpected so that +finding they were stopped at the last barrier and thus attacked behind +they were obliged to take shelter in the houses of the narrow street and +at last gave themselves up prisoners to the number of about four hundred +and fifty amongst whom were thirty-two officers of all ranks from +Colonels to Ensigns. The morning of the attack I happened to have the +Piquet and guessing by the flashes in the air (in the dark) that it was +musketry at the other side of the town, tho' we heard no report, had the +Piquet drawn out upon the Ramparts at our alarm post, before the firing +came round that length, which it soon did and we fired away upon these +people as they passed along that way, which they were obliged to do to +get to the low Town. About break of day Major Caldwell came round with +some men, and took me with part of the Piquet along with him to the low +Town. When we got there the enemy had got on as far as the inner Barrier +and [had] a Ladder on both sides of it. There the Battle raged till the +Enemy falling back got into Houses. Some time after the Sorti coming +behind them put an end to the affair.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page275" name="page275"></a>Pg 275</span> It was the first time I ever +happened to be so closely engaged as we were obliged to push our +bayonets. It is certainly a disagreeable necessity to be obliged to put +one another to death especially those speaking the same language and +dressed in the same manner with ourselves. Only these mad people had a +large piece of white linen or paper upon their foreheads with the words +"Liberty or Death" wrote upon it. The Garrison in general behaved +remarkably well consisting in all of about 1400 men, mostly the town +Militia and sailors with 200 of Maclean's corps which were only raised +last summer. They certainly did their duty with much patience during a +severe winter of six months. In the day time we wrought a great deal at +the fortifications and shovelling the snow and in the night even those +not upon duty durst not sleep but with Clothes and accoutrements on and +by whole Companys in one House to be the more ready, for, upon our +vigilance, everything depended. For the last month the Enemy had two +Batterys of four Guns each, playing on the Town with red hot Balls, in +hope to set it on fire but luckily did very little harm. They also made +use of a fire ship in order to burn our shipping in the Harbour, which +would have communicated the flames to the Town, at the same time +intending to escalade the Walls, for which purpose they laid numbers of +ladders all round in our sight which had the effect to keep us more upon +our Guard. This fire ship got very near the Harbour but a Cannon being +fired that was well directed the men that were in her left her a little +too soon so that the tide carried her clear past the town without doing +the least harm and disappointed them of their attack for which their +whole army was prepared. Thus from the 14th of November last we passed +one dreary night after another either watching or making Rounds and +Patrole upon an extent of works of upwards of three miles round, till +the 6th of May when we had the agreeable<span class="pagenum"><a id="page276" name="page276"></a>Pg 276</span> sight of Commodore Douglass +with a Ship of War and two Frigates arriving in the Bason with part of +the 29th Regiment on board. And the same day with only the reinforcement +of about 300 Regular Troops the Gates were thrown open and the whole +garrison (except those on Guard) poured out, drove off the Enemy's +advanced Guards and marched forward near two miles clear out upon the +plain (our former field of Battles last war) with three pieces of cannon +in our front that fired away at some partys of men at a distance. This +Sally, so unexpected and the two Frigates [being] under sail at the same +time up the River; [and the enemy] being ignorant of our numbers and +suspecting probably that there was a force on board the Frigates which +might by taking possession of a strong post above cut off their retreat, +their whole army took to their heels (it is said about 3000 men) leaving +all their Artillery stores, baggage and provisions which fell into our +hands. I suppose they will retreat to Montreal where they expect strong +reinforcements from New England. We will probably soon follow them +though our Corps may possibly be left to garrison Quebec. General +Carleton has gained honour by his behaviour this winter. He showed +himself a brave steady officer careful not to expose rashly the lives of +his men, in short a chief whom we esteem and cheerfully obey. Lieut. +Colonel Maclean has likewise great merit in having contributed much to +the preservation of this place by his forwarding the reparations of the +fortifications and his indefatigable care and trouble in the directing +the duty of the Garrison, together with his management in every shape as +a good officer. He was here the second in Command and seemed the fittest +man in the world for the place he occupied. There were also several old +Officers who happened to be here and were of great service as Major +Caldwell who distinguished himself very much, Major Cox, two Captain +Frasers and several others.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page277" name="page277"></a>Pg 277</span></p> + +<p>Mr. Wauchope who you will wish to hear of is very well. He has done +Lieutenant's duty this winter in Maclean's Regiment, is a good officer +and went through some severe Duty with great perseverance.</p> + + +<p>Yours, &c., &c.,</p> + +<p>J.N.</p> + + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /> +<h2>APPENDIX D (p. <a href="#page98">98</a>)</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">Memorandum For Ensign John Nairne, 5th April</span>, 1795</h3> + + +<p>1st. You ought to read the Articles of War.</p> + +<p>2nd. To pay the greatest attention to all orders from your Superior +Officers.</p> + +<p>3rd. Take care to have your own Orders strictly obeyed by those who are +under your Command but before you give any Order, be sure it is right +and necessary.</p> + +<p>4th. Attend the Parades, and learn without delay the different motions +and words of Command and every part of the Duty of a Subaltern officer +when upon guard; also when under Arms with the whole Battalion, or +otherwise.</p> + +<p>5th. Be always ready and willing to go upon every military duty that may +be ordered. Never think you do too much in that way; the more the better +and the more honourable.</p> + +<p>6th. Be careful in doing the Company Duty, in such a manner, that the +Soldiers may be kept in excellent Order and everything belonging to +them; as their Arms, Accoutrements, Ammunition, Necessarys, Dress, +Messing, etc., according as may be regulated by the standing Orders of +the Regiment, or that may be most agreeable to your Captain or +Lieutenant Commanding the Company; also not only to know every man of +the Company by Name,<span class="pagenum"><a id="page278" name="page278"></a>Pg 278</span> but, as soon as possible, to know their several +Characters and Dispositions that each may be encouraged, cherished, or +punished, as he deserves. You ought every day, or very frequently to +wait on your Captain, or Lieutenant Commanding the Company, in order to +report to him upon these matters, and to know if he has any directions +or Commands for you.</p> + +<p>7th. Endeavour all you can to learn the Adjutant's Duty: To be able to +Exercise the Company (or even the Battalion) in the Manual, their +Manoeuvres and the firings.</p> + +<p>8th. Make yourself fit for paying the Company, and to be exact in +keeping Accounts, so that you may be capable of even being paymaster to +a Regiment.</p> + +<p>9th. You ought to practice writing Court-Martials, Returns, and Reports +of all sorts, Acquittance Rolls, Muster Rolls, and Letter Writing; +taking always great pains to have a good hand of writ and to spell well.</p> + +<p>10th. It is also recommended to you to study Engineering and Drawing; To +read Military Books, The occurrences and news of the time and History, +etc.; Never to leave anything undone which you think ought to be done; +in short, not to lose or misspend time, but constantly [to] endeavour to +gain knowledge, and improvement, and to exert yourself in being always +steady and diligent in the Execution of every part of your Duty.</p> + +<p>11th. No doubt you will soon get Acquainted with all the officers of the +Regiment, and to know the Companys the Subaltern Officers belong to, +likewise to know the Names and Characters of all the non-Commissioned +officers, and the Companys they belong to, even most of the private men +and what Companys they are in. You ought to have a Book of Quarters (or +List of the Army) and learn the Number, and any thing else Remarkable of +each Regiment; also concerning the Generals, and Field Officers, and the +Rules and Regulations of the Army.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page279" name="page279"></a>Pg 279</span></p> + +<p>N.B.—Never be ashamed to ask questions at any of your Brother Officers +in order to gain information. The Sergeants of your Company will furnish +you with any Rolls, Lists or Returns you may have occasion for +respecting the Regt.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /> +<h2>APPENDIX E (p. <a href="#page104">104</a>)</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The "Porpoise" (Beluga or White Whale) Fishery on the St. +Lawrence</span></h3> + + +<p>The so-called "porpoise" of the St. Lawrence is in reality the French +<i>marsouin</i>, the English beluga, a word of Russian origin, signifying +white. The Beluga (<i>Delphinapterus leucas</i>), is a real whale with its +most striking characteristic the white, or rather cream-coloured, skin +described by some writers as very beautiful. Like the narwhal it has no +dorsal fin. Though the smallest member of the whale family it is +sometimes more than twenty feet long; but usually ranges from thirteen +to sixteen feet. The young are bluish black in colour and may be seen +swimming beside their mother who feeds them with a very thick milk. +These young grow rapidly and become mottled and then white as they grow +older. The beluga is peculiar to northern regions where the water is +cold: when one is seen at the mouth of an English river it is a subject +of special note. There are numbers in Hudson Bay and they have been +found in the Yukon River, it is said, 700 miles from its mouth, whither +they went no doubt after salmon or other fish.</p> + +<p>Jacques Cartier saw the beluga disporting itself off Malbaie nearly 400 +years ago and in summer it is still to be seen there almost daily. It is +never alone. One sees the creatures swimming rapidly in single file. +They come<span class="pagenum"><a id="page280" name="page280"></a>Pg 280</span> to the surface with a prolonged sigh accompanied by the +throwing of a small jet of water; the perfectly white bodies writhe into +view as the small round heads disappear. Sometimes the beluga makes a +noise like the half suppressed lowing of oxen and, since the aquatic +world is so silent, sailors have christened the beluga, for this slender +achievement, the "sea canary." It is a playful creature and is +apparently attracted by man's presence. Before its confidence in him was +shaken it used to linger about wharves and ships. But, in spite of the +extremely small aperture of its ear, it is very sensitive to sound and +modern man with his fire arms and clatter of machinery frightens it +away. In 1752 the Intendant Bigot issued special instructions to check +the use of firearms on the point at Rivière Ouelle, in order that the +beluga might not be frightened, to the ruin of the extensive fishery +that has existed there for more than two hundred years. Its sight, touch +and taste are also well developed but it has no olfactory nerve and is +apparently without the sense of smell. The creature has qualities that +we should hardly expect. It has been tamed and almost domesticated. The +enterprising Barnum exhibited in New York a beluga which drew a boat +about in his aquarium. At Boston another beluga from the St. Lawrence +drew about a floating car carrying a woman performer. It knew its keeper +and at the proper time would appear and put its head from the water to +be harnessed or to take food. This beluga would take in its mouth a +sturgeon and a small shark confined in the same tank, play with them and +allow them to go unharmed. It would also pick up and toss stones with +its mouth.</p> + +<p>The beluga is greedy. In the early spring, when he is thin and half +starved, capelin and smelt in great numbers come to spawn along the +north and south shores of the St. Lawrence. With high tide comes the +beluga's chance to feed on the spawning fish and he will rush in quite +near<span class="pagenum"><a id="page281" name="page281"></a>Pg 281</span> to shore for his favourite food. So voracious is he that with the +fish he takes quantities of sand into his stomach. In eight or ten days +he will eat enough to form from five to eight inches of fat over his +whole body. "The facility with which he thus grows fat is explained," +says the Abbé Casgrain, "by the easy assimilation of such food and by +the considerable development of his digestive apparatus."</p> + +<p>No doubt the beluga enjoys himself hugely. But Nemesis awaits him. His +fish diet has a soporific effect; gorged with food he becomes stupid and +is easily taken. Man's trap for him is simple and ingenious. A century +and a half ago it was to be seen at Pointe au Pic and to-day it is in +operation at Rivière Ouelle on the south side of the river. The weir or +fishery for the beluga must be on a large scale and is expensive to keep +up; it is for this reason that when the number of these creatures +declined it was no longer possible to maintain the fishery at Pointe au +Pic. At Rivière Ouelle annually more than 7000 stakes, from 18 to 20 +feet long, are necessary to keep in repair the fishery which is almost +entirely destroyed each year by ice. Beginning at the shore a line of +stakes is carried out into the river placed perhaps a foot apart to form +a rough semi-circle about a mile and a third long. The stakes curve back +to the shore leaving however a passage of perhaps 1000 feet open between +the farther end and the shore. This outer end of the weir is completed +by a smaller circle of stakes, so arranged as to make entrance easy by +following within the line of stakes, but exit difficult. The distance +between high and low water mark at Rivière Ouelle is about a mile and a +half and along this great stretch of beach the small fish come in great +numbers to spawn. There is a considerable point at the mouth of the +little Rivière Ouelle. The wide beach, bare at low water, and this point +furnish an admirable combination for the beluga fishery. At high tide +the beluga comes rushing in near to<span class="pagenum"><a id="page282" name="page282"></a>Pg 282</span> shore after his prey, sometimes in +water so shallow that his whole body comes into view. In his progress +along the shore he is checked by the stakes reaching out from the point, +so close together that he cannot get through. The stakes sway with the +current and sometimes strike together making considerable noise. Early +whalers thought the beluga would try to pass by squeezing between the +stakes and to prevent this they fastened the stakes together with ropes. +But this was not necessary. Frightened by the noise the timid beluga's +instinct leads him to make for the open water. He dashes across the +semi-circle of the fishery only to be checked by the line of stakes on +its outer edge. The line like a wall he follows, looking for an opening, +and may be led insensibly into the labyrinthine circle at its end from +which he will hardly escape. If he heads back towards shore where he +came in, he is frightened by the shallow water which he disregarded only +when in pursuit of his prey. Where was shallow water indeed he may now +find dry land for the tide is running out. So the creature becomes +bewildered. He swims about slowly, as it were feeling his way, or +disappears at the bottom, to be stranded when the tide goes out and thus +becomes the prey of his enemy, man.</p> + +<p>Some old belugas are very cunning; they are called by the French +Canadian the <i>savants</i>, the knowing ones, and seem to understand the +wiles of the fisherman. They warn off the others and so foil the design +against them. But greediness proves often their destruction. From +over-feeding year after year they become fat and stupid and they too are +likely in time to be taken. The less knowing beluga has usually slight +chance of escape when once he encounters the line of stakes stretching +out from the point and, since they follow each other blindly, if one is +taken a whole troop is likely to meet the same fate.</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page283" name="page283"></a>Pg 283</span></p> + +<p>The Abbé Casgrain, who, since his childhood was spent at the Manor House +at Rivière Ouelle, was long familiar with the "porpoise" fishery, +describes the scene witnessed there by him on May 1st, 1873. It was a +glorious day and the belugas appeared in greater numbers than for many +years. They swarmed off the mouth of the Rivière Ouelle. At high tide +they came in, skirting the rocks within a stone's throw of shore and +devouring greedily the innumerable small fish. The surface of the +shallow water in which they swam was white with their gleaming bodies. +When they puffed they spurted jets of water into the air which fell in +spray that sparkled in the sunlight. The Abbé then describes how the +creatures became entrapped in the fishery. Instances of the mother's +devotion are recorded. They have been known to wait outside the stakes +for their young, caught within, and to allow themselves to be stranded +and killed rather than leave their offspring.</p> + +<p>When the tide is low the slaughter begins. In the season of the spring +tide the water at Rivière Ouelle retreats so far that the entrapped +"porpoises" are left high and dry in the fishery and are readily killed. +But in the season of neap tides enough water is left for them to swim +about within the semi-circle of stakes. Boats are taken into the fishery +through the outer line of stakes and then begins a regular whale hunt +within a very circumscribed area. If the belugas are numerous their +captors have not a moment to lose for the creatures may escape with the +next tide. And numerous they sometimes are; 500 have been taken in a +single tide; at Rivière Ouelle, about 1870, 101 were killed in one night +by only four men. They had not expected such a host and had no time to +send for help before the tide should rise again.</p> + +<p>The captors are armed with barbed harpoons and with spears. The harpoon +is sometimes thrown at the beluga<span class="pagenum"><a id="page284" name="page284"></a>Pg 284</span> from a considerable distance. When +struck the creature rushes to the surface, plunges and rolls to get +free. He never defends himself but thinks only of flight. It is an +accident if a boat is upset by the stroke of its tail; such accidents +sometimes happen but the victim gets little more than a soaking, much to +the merriment of his companions. The harpooned beluga will make off at +full speed dragging in his wake the assailant's boat which flies over +the face of the water, boiling with the mighty strokes of the monster's +tail. Soon the water is red for each beluga sheds eight or ten gallons +of blood. When he is tired the boat is drawn in closer by the rope +fastened to the animal. As opportunity offers the spear is used and, +driven home by a strong hand, it sometimes goes clear through the body. +A skilful man will quickly strike some vital spot; otherwise the beluga +struggles long.</p> + +<p>"Picture if possible," says the Abbé, "the animation of the beluga hunt +when a hundred of them are in the weir, when twenty-five or thirty men +are pursuing them, when five or six boats dragged by the creatures are +ploughing the enclosed waters in every direction, when the spears are +hurled from all sides and the men are covered with the blood which +gushes out in streams. Some years ago the passengers of a passing +steamer from Europe were witnesses of such a scene and showed their keen +interest by firing a salvo of cannon."</p> + +<p>When the belugas have been killed the next task is to get them to shore. +The work must be done quickly for the next tide will stop all work and +may sweep the animals away. Horses are brought and the bodies are +dragged ashore or partly floated with the aid of the rising tide. The +task of cutting up and boiling follows immediately. Workmen with long +knives take off the skin and separate the blubber from the flesh. The +Abbé Casgrain describes the process in detail. In the end the blubber is +cut up<span class="pagenum"><a id="page285" name="page285"></a>Pg 285</span> into small pieces and boiled in huge caldrons. The poor never +fail to come for their share of the catch and, with proverbial charity, +the Company carrying on the operations never send them away empty. "The +share-holders" says the Abbé Casgrain, "are convinced that the success +of their labours depends upon the gifts which they make to God, and +their generosity merits His benediction," Many a habitant goes home with +a mass of blubber in his pot or hooked to the end of a stout branch.</p> + +<p>The fishery is old and has been very profitable. La Potherie describes +the industry as it existed at Kamouraska in 1701: that at Rivière Ouelle +is found in 1707 and it remained in the hands of the heirs of the +original promoters until, in 1870, it was found necessary to form them +into an incorporated company. The oil is highly valued. It is very clear +and has good lubricating qualities. Before the universal sway of +petroleum it was much used for lighting purposes; an ordinary lamp would +burn for 72 hours without going out. The Abbé Casgrain says that a +barrel of the oil is worth from 100 to 200 dollars and since each beluga +would yield not less than a barrel the value of the fishery in a good +season is evident. The skin is very thick and of extraordinary strength. +It has no grain and will take a beautiful polish.</p> + +<p>[Beddard, "A Book of Whales" (London, 1900), pp. 244 <i>sqq.</i></p> + +<p>Sir Harry Johnston, "British Mammals," (London, 1903), pp. 22 <i>sqq.</i></p> + +<p>La Potherie, "Histoire de l'Amérique Septentrionale," (Paris, 1703), +Vol. 1, Lettre X., pp. 273 <i>sqq.</i></p> + +<p>Casgrain, "Une Paroisse Canadienne au XVIIe Siècle," Œuvres, Vol. 1, +pp. 530 <i>sqq.</i></p> + +<p>Casgrain, "Eclaircissements sur La Pêche aux Marsouins," Ib. p. 563 +<i>sqq.</i>]</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page286" name="page286"></a>Pg 286</span></p> +<h2>APPENDIX F (p. <a href="#page122">122</a>)</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Prayer of Colonel Nairne</span></h3> + + +<p>(There are several versions of parts of the Prayer. It is, I think, +partly copied from some other source, partly Nairne's own composition.)</p> + +<p>We believe in Thee our God; do thou strengthen our faith; We hope in +thee; confirm our hope; we repent of all our Sins; but do thou increase +our repentance. As our first beginning we worship thee; as our +benefactor we praise thee; and as our supreme protector we pray unto +thee that it may please thee, O God, to guide and lead us by thy +Providence, to keep us in obedience to thy justice, to comfort us by thy +mercie, and to protect us by thy Almighty power. We submit to thee all +our thoughts, words, and deeds, as well as our afflictions, pains, and +sufferings, and in thy name and for thy sake [we desire] to bear all +adversity with patience. We will nothing but what thou Willest, because +it is agreeable to thee. Give us grace that we may be attentive in +prayer, vigilant in our Conduct, and immovable in all good purposes. +Grant, most merciful Lord, that we may be true and just to those who put +their trust in us, that we may be Courteous and kind to all men, and +that in both our words and actions we may show them a good example. +Dispose our hearts to admire and adore thy goodness, to hate all errours +and evil ways. Assist us, most gracious God, in subduing our passions, +covetousness by liberality, anger by mildness, and lukewarmness by zeal +and fervency. Enable us to Conduct ourselves with prudence in all +transactions, to show courage in danger, patience in adversity, in +prosperity an humble will. Let thy Grace illuminate our understanding. +Direct our will and bless our souls. Make us diligent in curbing all +irregular affections and Zealous in imploring thy Grace, careful in +keeping thy Command<span class="pagenum"><a id="page287" name="page287"></a>Pg 287</span>ments and constant in working out our own salvation.</p> + +<p>We humbly beseech thee, O Lord, to assist us in keeping our temper and +passions under due restraint to reason and to virtue, so as not only to +contribute to our internal peace of mind, honour, and reputation in this +life, but also to our eternal Comfort and happiness in the life to come; +and to defend us, O Lord, from the arts and subtilties which designing +men may work against us in order to lead us into evil or idle purposes. +Finally, O God, make us sensible how little is this world, how great thy +Heavens and how long will be thy blessed eternity. O! that we may well +prepare ourselves for Death and obtain of thee, O God, eternal life +through the merits of Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /> +<h2>APPENDIX G (p. <a href="#page144">144</a>)</h2> + +<h3><span class="smcap">The Curés of Malbaie</span></h3> + + +<p>Of the early missionaries I have found no record, though no doubt one +could be compiled from the episcopal archives. The registers at Malbaie +do not begin until 1790 but I find a note that in 1784 there were +sixty-five communicants. Isle aux Coudres, Les Eboulements and Malbaie +were then united under one curé, M. Compain, who lived at Isle aux +Coudres. He served Malbaie from 1775 to 1788. This curé has a share in +the legend of Père de La Brosse, which, since it is characteristic of +the region, is worth repeating.</p> + +<p>Père de La Brosse was a much loved and saintly missionary priest, +dwelling in his later years at Tadousac. On the evening of April 11th, +1872, he played cards at Tadousac at the house of one of the officers of +the post. Rising to go at about nine o'clock he said to the company:</p><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page288" name="page288"></a>Pg 288</span></p> + +<p>"I wish you good night, my dear friends, for the last time; for at +midnight I shall be a dead man. At that hour you will hear the bell of +my chapel ring. I beg you not to touch my body. To-morrow you will send +for M. Compain at Isle aux Coudres. He will be waiting for you at the +lower end of the island. Do not be afraid if a storm comes. I will +answer for those whom you shall send."</p> + +<p>At first the company thought the good father was joking. None the less +did they become anxious to see what should happen. Watch in hand they +waited for the hour named. Exactly at midnight the bell of the chapel +rang three times. They ran to the chapel and there found Père de La +Brosse upon his <i>prie-dieu</i> dead.</p> + +<p>The next day, Sunday, a south-east wind blew with violence. Huge +white-capped waves made the great river so dangerous that the employés +of the post refused to undertake the journey to Isle aux Coudres of +forty or fifty miles in a canoe over a raging sea. But the chief clerk +at the post said to them: "You know well that the Father never deceived +you. You ought to have confidence in his word. Is there no one among you +who will carry out his last wish?"</p> + +<p>Then three or four men agreed to go. When they put their canoe in the +water, behold a wonder! To the great surprise of every one the sea +subsided so that before them lay a pathway of calm water. To their +further amazement, they made the journey to Isle aux Coudres with +incredible rapidity. As they neared the shore they could see M. Compain +walking up and down, a book in his hand. When they were within hearing +distance he called out "Père de La Brosse is dead. You come to get me to +bury him. I have been waiting an hour for you." When the canoe touched +the shore M. Compain embarked and they carried him to Tadousac. At Isle +aux Coudres the bell of the chapel had distinctly sounded three times<span class="pagenum"><a id="page289" name="page289"></a>Pg 289</span> +at midnight as at Tadousac. M. Compain knew what it meant for Père de La +Brosse had told him what he told his friends at Tadousac. Other church +bells in the neighbourhood also rang miraculously on that night. Père de +La Brosse had said while curé at Isle Verte, "If I die elsewhere than +here, you will have certain knowledge of the fact at the moment of my +death."</p> + +<p>The legend, the rather obscure motive of which is to emphasize the +saintly virtues of Père de La Brosse, is believed even to this day by +many simple people, hundreds of whom know it by heart. But some are +skeptical. "I should have been able to give more certainty to this +tradition," says M. Mailloux, the historian of Isle aux Coudres and also +its curé, "had I been able to make more extended investigation. +Meanwhile," he adds naïvely, "my investigations suffice to give a high +idea of the virtues of this admirable missionary."</p> + +<p>There is little to record of the careers of curés at Malbaie subsequent +to M. Compain. Often the annals of the good are not exciting and this is +eminently true of these virtuous teachers. M. Charles Duchouquet was +curé of Isle aux Coudres and served Malbaie in 1790. In 1791 he was +succeeded by M. Raphael Paquet who lived at Les Eboulements. The first +curé resident at Malbaie was M. Keller who came in 1797. When he went +away in 1799 M. J.-B.-A. Marcheteau who was curé of Les Eboulements and +lived there, served Malbaie. In 1807 M. Marcheteau was succeeded by M. +Le Courtois, the second resident curé, a French émigré who remained at +Malbaie until 1822 and was, as we have seen, an intimate friend of the +Nairne family. For a long time M. Le Courtois carried on missionary work +among the Indians. In 1822 M. Duguay became curé; he went to Malbaie +after being curé at Isle aux Coudres. In 1832 he was succeeded by M. +Zephérin Lévêque who, in 1840, was followed by M.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page290" name="page290"></a>Pg 290</span> Alexis Bourret. This +curé was something of a scholar. He read the Greek fathers in the +original which is, I fancy, very unusual among the priests of Canada. In +1847 M. Beaudry became curé and in 1862 he was followed by M. Narcisse +Doucet. It was under M. Doucet that the great influx of summer visitors +began. Naturally they desired to have their own Protestant service on +Sunday and M. Doucet did all he could to prevent their getting a place +of worship. Protestantism having disappeared from Malbaie the curé was +not anxious to see it revived. But the last Mrs. Nairne, a Protestant, +then ruled at the Manor House, and she gave for the purpose of +Protestant worship the admirable site of the present Union Church. M. +Doucet was a man of considerable culture. The parish church, first built +in 1806, was remodelled in his time as also was the <i>presbytère</i>; he +built, too, the convent for girls. In 1891 M. B.-E. Leclercq became +curé—a good man of the peasant type, who retired in 1906 and died at +Malbaie in the following year. The present energetic curé is M. Hudon.</p> + +<p>[For Père de La Brosse, see Casgrain, Œuvres, Vol. 1, "Une Excursion +a L'Ile aux Coudres"; Mailloux, "Histoire de L'Isle aux Coudres" +(Montreal, 1879). M. Mailloux has particulars about some of the curés +named above. The dates for the successive curés are found in the +registers at Malbaie.]</p> + + + +<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class="pagenum"><a id="page291" name="page291"></a>Pg 291</span></p> +<h2>INDEX</h2> + + +<ul> +<li>Abraham, Plains of, <a href='#page30'>30</a>, <a href='#page69'>69</a>, <a href='#page74'>74</a>, <a href='#page81'>81</a>, <a href='#page123'>123</a>, <a href='#page258'>258</a>, <a href='#page262'>262</a>.</li> + +<li>Amherst, General, <a href='#page34'>34</a>.</li> + +<li>Amiens, Peace of, <a href='#page119'>119</a>.</li> + +<li>Ange Gardien, <a href='#page254'>254</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>.</li> + +<li>Arnold, Colonel Benedict, <a href='#page66'>66</a>-<a href='#page70'>70</a>, <a href='#page76'>76</a>, <a href='#page78'>78</a>, <a href='#page81'>81</a>.</li> + +<li>Augustine, St., <a href='#page236'>236</a>.</li> + +<li>Austerlitz, Battle of, <a href='#page129'>129</a>.</li> + +<li>Avignon, <a href='#page213'>213</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Baie St. Paul, <a href='#page2'>2</a>, <a href='#page9'>9</a>, <a href='#page16'>16</a>, <a href='#page20'>20</a>, <a href='#page64'>64</a>, <a href='#page89'>89</a>, <a href='#page183'>183</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>.</li> + +<li>Barnum, P.T., <a href='#page280'>280</a>.</li> + +<li>Baxter, J.P., <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Bazire, Marie, <a href='#page11'>11</a>.</li> + +<li>Beaudry, Père, <a href='#page290'>290</a>.</li> + +<li>Beauport, <a href='#page252'>252</a>.</li> + +<li>Beaupré, <a href='#page16'>16</a>.</li> + +<li>Beaver Dam, <a href='#page156'>156</a>.</li> + +<li>Beck, Miss, <a href='#page170'>170</a>.</li> + +<li>Bedard, Pierre, <a href='#page150'>150</a>.</li> + +<li>Begin, Mgr., <a href='#page198'>198</a>.</li> + +<li>Begon, M., Intendant, <a href='#page14'>14</a>.</li> + +<li>Belairs, <a href='#page109'>109</a>.</li> + +<li>Belmont Seigniory, <a href='#page36'>36</a>.</li> + +<li>Beluga Fishery on the St. Lawrence, <a href='#page279'>279</a>-<a href='#page285'>285</a>.</li> + +<li>Bencoolen, India, <a href='#page59'>59</a>.</li> + +<li>Berthier, <a href='#page9'>9</a>, <a href='#page69'>69</a>.</li> + +<li>Bic, <a href='#page250'>250</a>.</li> + +<li>Bigot F., Intendant, <a href='#page18'>18</a>, <a href='#page280'>280</a>.</li> + +<li>Blackburn, Hugh, <a href='#page54'>54</a>, <a href='#page55'>55</a>.</li> + +<li>Bleakley, Mrs., <a href='#page106'>106</a>.</li> + +<li>Bonaparte, Napoleon, <a href='#page112'>112</a>, <a href='#page129'>129</a>, <a href='#page133'>133</a>, <a href='#page155'>155</a>, <a href='#page169'>169</a>.</li> + +<li>Bonneau, <a href='#page10'>10</a>, <a href='#page11'>11</a>, <a href='#page109'>109</a>.</li> + +<li>Bonner, G.T., <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Boucher, Pierre, <a href='#page9'>9</a>.</li> + +<li>Bouchette, Mr., <a href='#page141'>141</a>.</li> + +<li>Bougainville, Col., <a href='#page29'>29</a>, <a href='#page51'>51</a>, <a href='#page259'>259</a>.</li> + +<li>Boulogne, <a href='#page129'>129</a>.</li> + +<li>Bourdon, Jean, <a href='#page8'>8</a>, <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Bourret, Père Alexis, <a href='#page290'>290</a>.</li> + +<li>Bowen, Judge E., <a href='#page149'>149</a>, <a href='#page150'>150</a>, <a href='#page163'>163</a>-<a href='#page167'>7</a>.</li> + +<li>Bowen, Mrs. E., <a href='#page151'>151</a>.</li> + +<li>Boyd, General, <a href='#page162'>162</a>.</li> + +<li>Brassard, <a href='#page54'>54</a>.</li> + +<li>Brébœuf, <a href='#page198'>198</a>.</li> + +<li>Brock, Gen. Sir I., <a href='#page151'>151</a>, <a href='#page153'>153</a>.</li> + +<li>Brosse, Père de la, <a href='#page287'>287</a>-<a href='#page289'>9</a>.</li> + +<li>Buchanan. Mr., <a href='#page166'>166</a>.</li> + +<li>Burlington Heights, <a href='#page156'>156</a>, <a href='#page158'>158</a>, <a href='#page161'>161</a>.</li> + +<li>Burlington Bay, <a href='#page158'>158</a>, <a href='#page159'>159</a>.</li> + +<li>Butler, Captain, <a href='#page86'>86</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Cacouna, <a href='#page88'>88</a>.</li> + +<li>Caldwell, Colonel, <a href='#page84'>84</a>, <a href='#page85'>85</a>, <a href='#page87'>87</a>, <a href='#page148'>148</a>.</li> + +<li>Cameron, Captain, <a href='#page269'>269</a>.</li> + +<li>Campbell, Lieut. Alex., <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>Campbell, Lieut. Archibald, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>Campbell, Capt John, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>Cap à l'Aigle, <a href='#page2'>2</a>, <a href='#page11'>11</a>, <a href='#page21'>21</a>, <a href='#page238'>238</a>.</li> + +<li>Cap aux Oies, <a href='#page2'>2</a>, <a href='#page11'>11</a>.</li> + +<li>Cap Rouge, <a href='#page259'>259</a>, <a href='#page264'>264</a>.</li> + +<li>Cap Tourmente, <a href='#page2'>2</a>, <a href='#page87'>87</a>, <a href='#page108'>108</a>, <a href='#page109'>109</a>, <a href='#page253'>253</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>.</li> + +<li>Cape Diamond, <a href='#page73'>73</a>-<a href='#page78'>78</a>, <a href='#page270'>270</a>.</li> + +<li>Carignan Regiment, <a href='#page9'>9</a>, <a href='#page34'>34</a>, <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Carleton, Sir Guy (Lord Dorchester) <a href='#page22'>22</a>, <a href='#page59'>59</a>, <a href='#page64'>64</a>, <a href='#page65'>65</a>, <a href='#page69'>69</a>-<a href='#page78'>78</a>, <a href='#page83'>83</a>, <a href='#page206'>206</a>, <a href='#page276'>276</a>.</li> + +<li>Carleton Island, <a href='#page84'>84</a>-<a href='#page87'>7</a>, <a href='#page148'>148</a>.</li> + +<li>Cartier, Jacques, <a href='#page56'>56</a>, <a href='#page244'>244</a>, <a href='#page250'>250</a>, <a href='#page279'>279</a>.</li> + +<li>Casgrain, Abbé H.R., <a href='#page245'>245</a>, <a href='#page281'>281</a>-<a href='#page285'>285</a>.</li> + +<li>Castle Dounie, <a href='#page24'>24</a>.</li> + +<li>Chambly, <a href='#page9'>9</a>.</li> + +<li>Champlain, Samuel de, <a href='#page6'>6</a>, <a href='#page7'>7</a>, <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Chandler, General, <a href='#page156'>156</a>.</li> + +<li>Chaperon, M., <a href='#page224'>224</a>, <a href='#page225'>225</a>.</li> + +<li>Château, Richer, <a href='#page254'>254</a>-<a href='#page255'>5</a>.</li> + +<li>Chateauguay, Battle of, <a href='#page161'>161</a>.</li> + +<li>Chaudière River, <a href='#page66'>66</a>.</li> + +<li>Chauncey, Commodore, <a href='#page158'>158</a>.</li> + +<li>Chelmsford, <a href='#page134'>134</a>.</li> + +<li>Cherry Valley, <a href='#page86'>86</a>.</li> + +<li>Chicoutimi, <a href='#page15'>15</a>.</li> + +<li>Chippewa, <a href='#page155'>155</a>.</li> + +<li>Cimon family, <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Clark, John, <a href='#page102'>102</a>.</li> + +<li>Clive, Lord, <a href='#page57'>57</a>.</li> + +<li>Colbert, <a href='#page8'>8</a>.</li> + +<li>Columbo, India, <a href='#page100'>100</a>, <a href='#page101'>101</a>.</li> + +<li>Compain, Père, <a href='#page287'>287</a>-<a href='#page289'>9</a>.</li> + +<li>Company of New France, <a href='#page7'>7</a>, <a href='#page8'>8</a>.</li> + +<li>Comporté, Philippe Gaultier, Sieur de, <a href='#page9'>9</a>-<a href='#page14'>14</a>, <a href='#page223'>223</a>, <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Comporté, La, <a href='#page15'>15</a>, <a href='#page16'>16</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page292" name="page292"></a>Pg 292</span></li> + +<li>Comporté, Lac à, <a href='#page12'>12</a>, <a href='#page229'>229</a>.</li> + +<li>Continental Congress, <a href='#page60'>60</a>, <a href='#page63'>63</a>.</li> + +<li>Contrecœur, <a href='#page89'>89</a>.</li> + +<li>Cook, Captain, <a href='#page22'>22</a>.</li> + +<li>Coquart, Father Claude Godefroi, <a href='#page16'>16</a>-<a href='#page18'>18</a>.</li> + +<li>Cornwallis, General, <a href='#page91'>91</a>.</li> + +<li>Cox, Major, <a href='#page276'>276</a>.</li> + +<li>Craig, Sir James, <a href='#page135'>135</a>, <a href='#page142'>142</a>, <a href='#page150'>150</a>.</li> + +<li>Crysler's Farm, Battle of, <a href='#page162'>162</a>.</li> + +<li>Culloden, Battle of, <a href='#page23'>23</a>, <a href='#page33'>33</a>, <a href='#page48'>48</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Dalrymple, Col., <a href='#page100'>100</a>.</li> + +<li>Dambourges, M., <a href='#page77'>77</a>.</li> + +<li>D'Avezac, Editor of Cartier's Works, <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Dean, Captain, <a href='#page269'>269</a>.</li> + +<li>De Lass, <a href='#page138'>138</a>.</li> + +<li>Detroit, <a href='#page151'>151</a>, <a href='#page155'>155</a>.</li> + +<li><i>Diana</i>, the, <a href='#page270'>270</a>.</li> + +<li>Dobie, Richard, <a href='#page106'>106</a>.</li> + +<li>Dorchester, Lord, (See Carleton, Sir Guy).</li> + +<li>Doucet, Père Narcisse, <a href='#page290'>290</a>.</li> + +<li>Douglas, Lieut., <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>Douglass, Commodore, <a href='#page276'>276</a>.</li> + +<li>Duchouquet, Père C., <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Dufour, Joseph, <a href='#page16'>16</a>-<a href='#page18'>18</a>, <a href='#page20'>20</a>, <a href='#page56'>56</a>, <a href='#page109'>109</a>.</li> + +<li>Duggan, E.J., <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Duggan, W.E., <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Duguay, Père, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Dundass, <a href='#page118'>118</a>.</li> + +<li>Durham, <a href='#page127'>127</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>East India Co'y, <a href='#page57'>57</a>, <a href='#page58'>58</a>.</li> + +<li>Edinburgh, <a href='#page94'>94</a>, <a href='#page95'>95</a>, <a href='#page101'>101</a>, <a href='#page119'>119</a>, <a href='#page125'>125</a>, <a href='#page127'>127</a>, <a href='#page128'>128</a>, <a href='#page133'>133</a>.</li> + +<li>Edinburgh Castle, <a href='#page26'>26</a>, <a href='#page169'>169</a>, <a href='#page170'>170</a>.</li> + +<li>Elibank, Lord, <a href='#page35'>35</a>.</li> + +<li>Emerson, Parson, <a href='#page67'>67</a>.</li> + +<li>Emery, Christiana, (Mrs. Nairne), <a href='#page56'>56</a>.</li> + +<li>Enos, Colonel, <a href='#page67'>67</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li><i>Fell</i>, the, <a href='#page70'>70</a>.</li> + +<li>Fisher, Dr., <a href='#page115'>115</a>.</li> + +<li>Fitzgibbon, Lieut, <a href='#page156'>156</a>.</li> + +<li>Forbes, Duncan, of Culloden, <a href='#page23'>23</a>.</li> + +<li>Fort Erie, <a href='#page154'>154</a>.</li> + +<li>Fort George, <a href='#page154'>154</a>-<a href='#page157'>157</a>, <a href='#page160'>160</a>.</li> + +<li>Forty Mile Creek, <a href='#page156'>156</a>, <a href='#page159'>159</a>.</li> + +<li>Foucault, Seigniory of, <a href='#page36'>36</a>.</li> + +<li>Foulon, Anse de, <a href='#page256'>256</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, Alex., Jr., <a href='#page252'>252</a>, <a href='#page261'>261</a>, <a href='#page267'>267</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, John Malcolm, <a href='#page219'>219</a>, <a href='#page249'>249</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, Malcolm, Seigneur of Mount Murray, <a href='#page21'>21</a>, <a href='#page28'>28</a>, <a href='#page30'>30</a>-<a href='#page41'>41</a>, <a href='#page49'>49</a>, <a href='#page54'>54</a>, <a href='#page55'>55</a>, <a href='#page65'>65</a>, <a href='#page74'>74</a>, <a href='#page75'>75</a>, <a href='#page82'>82</a>, <a href='#page92'>92</a>, <a href='#page93'>93</a>, <a href='#page95'>95</a>, <a href='#page101'>101</a>, <a href='#page105'>105</a>, <a href='#page106'>106</a>, <a href='#page108'>108</a>, <a href='#page114'>114</a>, <a href='#page117'>117</a>, <a href='#page120'>120</a>, <a href='#page127'>127</a>-<a href='#page132'>132</a>, <a href='#page136'>136</a>, <a href='#page142'>142</a>-<a href='#page147'>147</a>, <a href='#page149'>149</a>, <a href='#page152'>152</a>, <a href='#page158'>158</a>, <a href='#page160'>160</a>, <a href='#page165'>165</a>, <a href='#page171'>171</a>, <a href='#page178'>178</a>, <a href='#page219'>219</a>, <a href='#page222'>222</a>, "Journal," <a href='#page249'>249</a>-<a href='#page271'>271</a>, <a href='#page276'>276</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, Ensign Malcolm, killed, <a href='#page267'>267</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, Simon, Lord Lovat, <a href='#page24'>24</a>-<a href='#page26'>26</a>, <a href='#page243'>243</a>, <a href='#page267'>267</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, Colonel Simon, Commander of the 78th Regiment, <a href='#page25'>25</a>, <a href='#page26'>26</a>, <a href='#page31'>31</a>, <a href='#page32'>32</a>, <a href='#page249'>249</a>, <a href='#page251'>251</a>, <a href='#page252'>252</a>, <a href='#page261'>261</a>, <a href='#page264'>264</a>-<a href='#page267'>267</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, Simon, Explorer, <a href='#page26'>26</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, Simon, Captain, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraser, William, <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Fraserville, Seigniory of, <a href='#page39'>39</a>.</li> + +<li>Frenchtown, <a href='#page154'>154</a>.</li> + +<li>Frontenac, <a href='#page196'>196</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Gagnon, Mgr., <a href='#page245'>245</a>.</li> + +<li>Gaspé, Philippe Aubert de, <a href='#page109'>109</a>, <a href='#page209'>209</a>-<a href='#page212'>212</a>, <a href='#page245'>245</a>.</li> + +<li>Gaultier, Philippe, (See Comporté).</li> + +<li>Gérin, Léon, <a href='#page244'>244</a>.</li> + +<li>Gibraltar, <a href='#page129'>129</a>, <a href='#page133'>133</a>, <a href='#page134'>134</a>, <a href='#page135'>135</a>, <a href='#page136'>136</a>.</li> + +<li>Gilchrist, Mr., <a href='#page47'>47</a>, <a href='#page53'>53</a>, <a href='#page55'>55</a>, <a href='#page60'>60</a>, <a href='#page61'>61</a>, <a href='#page223'>223</a>, <a href='#page225'>225</a>.</li> + +<li>Glasgow, <a href='#page119'>119</a>.</li> + +<li>Goose, Cape, <a href='#page2'>2</a>.</li> + +<li>Gordon, Lieut. Cosmo, <a href='#page267'>267</a>.</li> + +<li>Gorham, Captain, <a href='#page20'>20</a>, <a href='#page34'>34</a>, <a href='#page36'>36</a>, <a href='#page251'>251</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>.</li> + +<li>Graeme, General, <a href='#page96'>96</a>.</li> + +<li>Gregorson, Ensign, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>Gros, Jean, <a href='#page225'>225</a>.</li> + +<li>"<i>Growler</i>", the, <a href='#page160'>160</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Haldimand, General, <a href='#page46'>46</a>, <a href='#page83'>83</a>, <a href='#page85'>85</a>, <a href='#page87'>87</a>, <a href='#page92'>92</a>.</li> + +<li>Hale, Mr. and Mrs., <a href='#page149'>149</a>.</li> + +<li>Halifax, <a href='#page150'>150</a>.</li> + +<li>Harrison, General, <a href='#page155'>155</a>.</li> + +<li>Hazen, Captain, <a href='#page265'>265</a>.</li> + +<li>Hazeur, François, <a href='#page12'>12</a>, <a href='#page13'>13</a>, <a href='#page14'>14</a>.</li> + +<li>Hazeur, J.T., <a href='#page15'>15</a>.</li> + +<li>Hazeur, P. de l'Orme, <a href='#page15'>15</a>.</li> + +<li>Henry, Dr., <a href='#page201'>201</a>, <a href='#page223'>223</a>-<a href='#page227'>227</a>, <a href='#page245'>245</a>.</li> + +<li>Hepburn, <a href='#page42'>42</a>, <a href='#page59'>59</a>, <a href='#page114'>114</a>, <a href='#page118'>118</a>, <a href='#page121'>121</a>.</li> + +<li>Higham, Mrs., <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Holmes, Admiral, <a href='#page249'>249</a>.</li> + +<li>Hubert, Bishop of Quebec, <a href='#page46'>46</a><span class="pagenum"><a id="page293" name="page293"></a>Pg 293</span></li> + +<li>Hudon, M., Jesuit, <a href='#page198'>198</a>.</li> + +<li>Hudon, Père, <a href='#page290'>290</a>.</li> + +<li>Hudson Bay, <a href='#page14'>14</a>, <a href='#page279'>279</a>.</li> + +<li>Hull, General, <a href='#page151'>151</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>India, <a href='#page96'>96</a>, <a href='#page99'>99</a>, <a href='#page100'>100</a>, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>Isle aux Coudres, <a href='#page2'>2</a>, <a href='#page6'>6</a>, <a href='#page46'>46</a>, <a href='#page64'>64</a>, <a href='#page250'>250</a>, <a href='#page287'>287</a>-<a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Isle aux Noix, <a href='#page82'>82</a>, <a href='#page83'>83</a>, <a href='#page84'>84</a>, <a href='#page91'>91</a>.</li> + +<li>Isle Verte, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Jena, Battle of, <a href='#page129'>129</a>.</li> + +<li>Jervis, John, Lord St. Vincent, <a href='#page22'>22</a>.</li> + +<li>Johnson, Dr. Samuel, <a href='#page35'>35</a>.</li> + +<li>Johnston, Sir John, <a href='#page85'>85</a>.</li> + +<li>Johnston, Sir William, <a href='#page138'>138</a>.</li> + +<li><i>Julia</i>, the, <a href='#page160'>160</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Kamouraska, <a href='#page89'>89</a>, <a href='#page108'>108</a>, <a href='#page211'>211</a>, <a href='#page212'>212</a>, <a href='#page224'>224</a>, <a href='#page285'>285</a>.</li> + +<li>Keller, Père, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Kennebec, River, <a href='#page66'>66</a>.</li> + +<li>Ker, Alick, <a href='#page126'>126</a>, <a href='#page127'>127</a>, <a href='#page135'>135</a>, <a href='#page137'>137</a>.</li> + +<li>Ker, James, <a href='#page98'>98</a>, <a href='#page112'>112</a>, <a href='#page114'>114</a>, <a href='#page117'>117</a>, <a href='#page118'>118</a>, <a href='#page121'>121</a>, <a href='#page125'>125</a>, <a href='#page126'>126</a>, <a href='#page133'>133</a>, <a href='#page134'>134</a>, <a href='#page137'>137</a>, <a href='#page138'>138</a>, <a href='#page144'>144</a>, <a href='#page150'>150</a>, <a href='#page169'>169</a>, <a href='#page170'>170</a>.</li> + +<li>Ker, Mrs., <a href='#page121'>121</a>.</li> + +<li>Kingston, <a href='#page148'>148</a>, <a href='#page151'>151</a>, <a href='#page152'>152</a>, <a href='#page153'>153</a>, <a href='#page161'>161</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>La Fouille, <a href='#page10'>10</a>.</li> + +<li>La Grange, <a href='#page56'>56</a>.</li> + +<li>La Motte-Saint-Heray, <a href='#page10'>10</a>.</li> + +<li>La Potherie, <a href='#page285'>285</a>.</li> + +<li>La Terrière, Dr., <a href='#page141'>141</a>.</li> + +<li>Lake Champlain, <a href='#page36'>36</a>, <a href='#page82'>82</a>, <a href='#page161'>161</a>.</li> + +<li>Lake Ontario, <a href='#page9'>9</a>, <a href='#page84'>84</a>, <a href='#page148'>148</a>, <a href='#page156'>156</a>, <a href='#page161'>161</a>.</li> + +<li>Lake St. John, <a href='#page15'>15</a>.</li> + +<li>Langan, Mrs., <a href='#page106'>106</a>.</li> + +<li>Lanoraye, <a href='#page10'>10</a>.</li> + +<li>Lauderdale, Earl of, <a href='#page133'>133</a>.</li> + +<li>Lauzon, Seigniory of, <a href='#page36'>36</a>, <a href='#page210'>210</a>.</li> + +<li>Laverdière, Editor of Champlain's Works, <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Le Courtois, Père, <a href='#page143'>143</a>, <a href='#page164'>164</a>, <a href='#page166'>166</a>, <a href='#page172'>172</a>, <a href='#page193'>193</a>, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Leclercq, Père, B.-E, <a href='#page290'>290</a>.</li> + +<li>Le Maistre, Major, <a href='#page244'>244</a>.</li> + +<li>Le Moine, Sir J.M., <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Les Eboulements, <a href='#page2'>2</a>, <a href='#page14'>14</a>, <a href='#page37'>37</a>, <a href='#page46'>46</a>, <a href='#page64'>64</a>, <a href='#page109'>109</a>, <a href='#page141'>141</a>, <a href='#page287'>287</a>, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li><i>Leo</i>, the, <a href='#page159'>159</a>.</li> + +<li><i>Leostoff</i>, the, <a href='#page269'>269</a>, <a href='#page270'>270</a>.</li> + +<li>Leslie, Miss C., <a href='#page173'>173</a>, <a href='#page221'>221</a>.</li> + +<li>Lévêque, Père, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Levis, <a href='#page36'>36</a>.</li> + +<li>Lévis, Marquis de, <a href='#page32'>32</a>, <a href='#page220'>220</a>, <a href='#page264'>264</a>.</li> + +<li>Longueuil, <a href='#page9'>9</a>.</li> + +<li>Lorette, <a href='#page262'>262</a>.</li> + +<li>Lotbinière, Père de, <a href='#page71'>71</a>.</li> + +<li>Louisbourg, <a href='#page29'>29</a>, <a href='#page42'>42</a>, <a href='#page119'>119</a>, <a href='#page129'>129</a>, <a href='#page221'>221</a>, <a href='#page250'>250</a>.</li> + +<li>Lovat, Baroness, <a href='#page24'>24</a>.</li> + +<li>Lovat, Lord, (See Fraser, Simon).</li> + +<li>Lyman, Mr., <a href='#page171'>171</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Mabane, Miss, <a href='#page108'>108</a>.</li> + +<li>McCord, Mr., <a href='#page141'>141</a>.</li> + +<li>McDonald, Capt. Donald, <a href='#page265'>265</a>, <a href='#page267'>267</a>.</li> + +<li>McDonald, Lieut. Hector, <a href='#page267'>267</a>.</li> + +<li>McDonnell, Alex., <a href='#page259'>259</a>.</li> + +<li>MacDonnell, Capt. John, <a href='#page86'>86</a>, <a href='#page259'>259</a>, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>MacDonnell, Lieut. Ronald, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>McGregor, Lieut., <a href='#page271'>271</a>.</li> + +<li>MacKenzie, Sir Alex., <a href='#page111'>111</a>.</li> + +<li>MacKenzie, Alex., author, <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>MacKenzie, Ensign, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>MacKinnon, Lieut., <a href='#page82'>82</a>-<a href='#page84'>4</a>.</li> + +<li>McLean, Col. Allan, <a href='#page65'>65</a>, <a href='#page275'>275</a>, <a href='#page276'>276</a>.</li> + +<li>McNicol, John, (See Nairne, John McNicol).</li> + +<li>McNicol, Peter, <a href='#page172'>172</a>, <a href='#page173'>173</a>.</li> + +<li>McNicol, Mrs. Peter, <a href='#page93'>93</a>, <a href='#page107'>107</a>, <a href='#page114'>114</a>, <a href='#page130'>130</a>, <a href='#page169'>169</a>, <a href='#page172'>172</a>, <a href='#page173'>173</a>, <a href='#page219'>219</a>, <a href='#page221'>221</a>, <a href='#page290'>290</a>.</li> + +<li>McNicol, Thomas, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>McPherson, Capt., <a href='#page252'>252</a>, <a href='#page259'>259</a>, <a href='#page261'>261</a>.</li> + +<li>Madawaska, Seigniory of, <a href='#page36'>36</a>.</li> + +<li>Madison, President, <a href='#page150'>150</a>.</li> + +<li>Mailloux, Père, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Maldon, <a href='#page128'>128</a>.</li> + +<li>Malteste, notary, <a href='#page52'>52</a>.</li> + +<li>Marchand, Louis, <a href='#page12'>12</a>.</li> + +<li>Marcheteau, Père, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Marie, Catherine de St. Augustin, <a href='#page198'>198</a>, <a href='#page199'>199</a>.</li> + +<li>Marlboro', India, <a href='#page57'>57</a>.</li> + +<li>Masson, Mr., <a href='#page106'>106</a>.</li> + +<li>Matthews, Captain, <a href='#page85'>85</a>, <a href='#page92'>92</a>, <a href='#page244'>244</a>.</li> + +<li>Micmac Indians, <a href='#page55'>55</a>.</li> + +<li>Mingan seigniory, <a href='#page14'>14</a>.</li> + +<li>Mississaga Indians, <a href='#page85'>85</a>.</li> + +<li>Mistassini, <a href='#page15'>15</a>.</li> + +<li>Mohawk Valley, <a href='#page85'>85</a>.</li> + +<li>Montcalm, Marquis de, <a href='#page19'>19</a>, <a href='#page241'>241</a>, <a href='#page251'>251</a>, <a href='#page252'>252</a>, <a href='#page260'>260</a>.</li> + +<li>Montgomery, General R., <a href='#page69'>69</a>-<a href='#page78'>78</a>, <a href='#page273'>273</a>.</li> + +<li>Montgomery, Capt., <a href='#page253'>253</a>, <a href='#page254'>254</a>.</li> + +<li>Montmorency, <a href='#page251'>251</a>, <a href='#page253'>253</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page294" name="page294"></a>Pg 294</span></li> + +<li>Morel, Abbé, <a href='#page183'>183</a>.</li> + +<li>Morgan, <a href='#page76'>76</a>.</li> + +<li>Morrison, Colonel, <a href='#page162'>162</a>, <a href='#page165'>165</a>.</li> + +<li>Mount Hermon Cemetery, <a href='#page122'>122</a>, <a href='#page123'>123</a>, <a href='#page220'>220</a>.</li> + +<li>Mount Murray Seigniory, <a href='#page21'>21</a>, <a href='#page38'>38</a>.</li> + +<li>Mount Ventoux, <a href='#page236'>236</a>.</li> + +<li>Mountain, Salter, <a href='#page152'>152</a>.</li> + +<li>Munro, W. Bennett, <a href='#page245'>245</a>.</li> + +<li>Murray, Alex., <a href='#page35'>35</a>.</li> + +<li>Murray, Admiral George, <a href='#page35'>35</a>.</li> + +<li>Murray, General James, <a href='#page30'>30</a>-<a href='#page38'>38</a>, <a href='#page42'>42</a>, <a href='#page43'>43</a>, <a href='#page51'>51</a>, <a href='#page178'>178</a>, <a href='#page207'>207</a>, <a href='#page243'>243</a>, <a href='#page254'>254</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>, <a href='#page258'>258</a>, <a href='#page262'>262</a>, <a href='#page272'>272</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Nairne, Anne, <a href='#page56'>56</a>, <a href='#page94'>94</a>, <a href='#page125'>125</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, Baron, <a href='#page27'>27</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, Christine, <a href='#page93'>93</a>, <a href='#page94'>94</a>, <a href='#page99'>99</a>, <a href='#page101'>101</a>, <a href='#page106'>106</a>-<a href='#page108'>108</a>, <a href='#page114'>114</a>, <a href='#page121'>121</a>, <a href='#page130'>130</a>, <a href='#page138'>138</a>, <a href='#page142'>142</a>, <a href='#page145'>145</a>, <a href='#page146'>146</a>, <a href='#page150'>150</a>, <a href='#page151'>151</a>, <a href='#page164'>164</a>, <a href='#page169'>169</a>, <a href='#page171'>171</a>, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, John, First Seigneur of Murray Bay, Chap's. <a href='#page1'>I</a>-<a href='#page93'>V</a>., <a href='#page178'>178</a>, <a href='#page184'>184</a>, <a href='#page195'>195</a>, <a href='#page209'>209</a>, <a href='#page219'>219</a>-<a href='#page223'>223</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, John, Mrs., <a href='#page56'>56</a>, <a href='#page149'>149</a>, <a href='#page161'>161</a>, <a href='#page165'>165</a>, <a href='#page168'>168</a>, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, John, Captain, <a href='#page93'>93</a>, <a href='#page94'>94</a>, <a href='#page95'>95</a>-<a href='#page101'>101</a>, <a href='#page221'>221</a>, <a href='#page277'>277</a>-<a href='#page279'>279</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, John Leslie, <a href='#page174'>174</a>, <a href='#page221'>221</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, John McNicol, <a href='#page172'>172</a>-<a href='#page174'>174</a>, <a href='#page218'>218</a>, <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, Magdalen (See McNicol, Mrs. Peter).</li> + +<li>Nairne, Mary (Polly), <a href='#page93'>93</a>, <a href='#page101'>101</a>, <a href='#page107'>107</a>, <a href='#page121'>121</a>, <a href='#page124'>124</a>, <a href='#page126'>126</a>, <a href='#page138'>138</a>, <a href='#page142'>142</a>, <a href='#page147'>147</a>, <a href='#page160'>160</a>, <a href='#page169'>169</a>, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, Miss, <a href='#page27'>27</a>, <a href='#page101'>101</a>, <a href='#page117'>117</a>, <a href='#page273'>273</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, Robert, <a href='#page57'>57</a>-<a href='#page59'>59</a>.</li> + +<li>Nairne, Captain Thomas, <a href='#page93'>93</a>, <a href='#page101'>101</a>, <a href='#page102'>102</a>, <a href='#page107'>107</a>, <a href='#page121'>121</a>, <a href='#page124'>124</a>-<a href='#page167'>167</a>, <a href='#page220'>220</a>, <a href='#page221'>221</a>, <a href='#page232'>232</a>.</li> + +<li>Neill, Mr., of Bana, <a href='#page259'>259</a>.</li> + +<li>Nelson, Lord, <a href='#page114'>114</a>, <a href='#page153'>153</a>, <a href='#page205'>205</a>.</li> + +<li>Newfoundland Regiment, <a href='#page139'>139</a>, <a href='#page147'>147</a>, <a href='#page143'>143</a>.</li> + +<li>New Orleans, Battle at, <a href='#page170'>170</a>.</li> + +<li>Niagara, <a href='#page148'>148</a>, <a href='#page151'>151</a>, <a href='#page154'>154</a>-<a href='#page156'>156</a>.</li> + +<li>Niagara Falls, <a href='#page155'>155</a>.</li> + +<li>Niagara River, <a href='#page148'>148</a>, <a href='#page154'>154</a>.</li> + +<li>Noël, Jacques, <a href='#page207'>207</a>.</li> + +<li>Northumberland County, <a href='#page115'>115</a>, <a href='#page141'>141</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li><i>Oneida</i>, the, <a href='#page153'>153</a>.</li> + +<li>Orleans, Island of, <a href='#page1'>1</a>, <a href='#page253'>253</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Panet, Louis, <a href='#page225'>225</a>.</li> + +<li>Papineau, L.J., <a href='#page205'>205</a>, <a href='#page218'>218</a>.</li> + +<li>Paquet, Père Raphael, <a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Parker, Sir Hyde, <a href='#page114'>114</a>, <a href='#page153'>153</a>.</li> + +<li>Parsons' House, <a href='#page82'>82</a>.</li> + +<li>Pitt, William, Earl of Chatham, <a href='#page23'>23</a>, <a href='#page26'>26</a>, <a href='#page34'>34</a>.</li> + +<li>Pitt, William, <a href='#page112'>112</a>, <a href='#page118'>118</a>.</li> + +<li>Pius VIII., Pope, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>Plassey, Battle of, <a href='#page57'>57</a>.</li> + +<li>Plenderleath, Colonel, <a href='#page163'>163</a>, <a href='#page166'>166</a>.</li> + +<li>Point Levi, <a href='#page80'>80</a>, <a href='#page250'>250</a>, <a href='#page251'>251</a>, <a href='#page253'>253</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>, <a href='#page256'>256</a>, <a href='#page261'>261</a>, <a href='#page263'>263</a>.</li> + +<li>Pointe au Fer, <a href='#page82'>82</a>, <a href='#page83'>83</a>.</li> + +<li>Pointe au Pic, <a href='#page47'>47</a>, <a href='#page104'>104</a>, <a href='#page228'>228</a>, <a href='#page236'>236</a>, <a href='#page281'>281</a>.</li> + +<li>Pointe aux Trembles, <a href='#page15'>15</a>.</li> + +<li>"Porpoise" Fishery (See Beluga).</li> + +<li>Prés de Ville Barrier, <a href='#page75'>75</a>.</li> + +<li>Prescott, <a href='#page152'>152</a>, <a href='#page153'>153</a>.</li> + +<li>Prevost, Sir George, <a href='#page150'>150</a>.</li> + +<li>Procter, General, <a href='#page154'>154</a>, <a href='#page171'>171</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Quebec Act, <a href='#page59'>59</a>-<a href='#page61'>61</a>.</li> + +<li>Quebec, Protestant Bishop of, <a href='#page48'>48</a>, <a href='#page50'>50</a>, <a href='#page165'>165</a>.</li> + +<li>Quebec, Roman Catholic Bishop of, <a href='#page45'>45</a>, <a href='#page51'>51</a>.</li> + +<li>Queenston Heights, <a href='#page151'>151</a>, <a href='#page153'>153</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Reeve, Colonel, <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Reeve, John Fraser, <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Reeve, Mrs., <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>Richelieu, Robert, <a href='#page70'>70</a>.</li> + +<li>Riedesel, General, <a href='#page89'>89</a>, <a href='#page91'>91</a>.</li> + +<li>Riverin, <a href='#page13'>13</a>.</li> + +<li>Rivière du Loup, <a href='#page36'>36</a>, <a href='#page39'>39</a>.</li> + +<li>Rivière Noire, <a href='#page37'>37</a>, <a href='#page226'>226</a>.</li> + +<li>Rivière Ouelle, <a href='#page183'>183</a>, <a href='#page280'>280</a>, <a href='#page281'>281</a>, <a href='#page283'>283</a>, <a href='#page285'>285</a>.</li> + +<li>Roderick, Lieut., <a href='#page259'>259</a>.</li> + +<li>Ross, Mr., <a href='#page43'>43</a>.</li> + +<li>Ross, Captain, <a href='#page254'>254</a>, <a href='#page259'>259</a>.</li> + +<li>Roy, J.E., <a href='#page244'>244</a>.</li> + +<li><i>Royal George</i>, the, <a href='#page148'>148</a>, <a href='#page151'>151</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Sackett's Harbour, <a href='#page161'>161</a>.</li> + +<li>Saguenay River, <a href='#page5'>5</a>, <a href='#page183'>183</a>, <a href='#page228'>228</a>, <a href='#page255'>255</a>.</li> + +<li>Saguenay County, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>Saint Anne de Beaupré, <a href='#page64'>64</a>, <a href='#page254'>254</a>.</li> + +<li>Saint Charles River, <a href='#page257'>257</a>, <a href='#page258'>258</a>, <a href='#page259'>259</a>, <a href='#page260'>260</a>.</li> + +<li>Sainte Foy, <a href='#page73'>73</a>, <a href='#page259'>259</a>, <a href='#page262'>262</a>, <a href='#page264'>264</a>.</li> + +<li>Sainte Irénée, <a href='#page233'>233</a>.</li> + +<li>Saint Jean Seigniory, <a href='#page36'>36</a>.</li> + +<li>Saint Joachim, <a href='#page253'>253</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a id="page295" name="page295"></a>Pg 295</span></li> + +<li>Saint Matthew's Church, Quebec, <a href='#page219'>219</a>.</li> + +<li>St. Roch's, Quebec, <a href='#page76'>76</a>, <a href='#page88'>88</a>.</li> + +<li>St. Roch, <a href='#page88'>88</a>.</li> + +<li>Sans Bruit Seigniory, <a href='#page36'>36</a>.</li> + +<li>Sault au Matelot, <a href='#page76'>76</a>, <a href='#page77'>77</a>.</li> + +<li>Schomberg, Capt., <a href='#page270'>270</a>.</li> + +<li>Scott, Sir Walter, <a href='#page27'>27</a>, <a href='#page170'>170</a>.</li> + +<li>Sewell, Mr., <a href='#page166'>166</a>.</li> + +<li>Sicily, <a href='#page137'>137</a>, <a href='#page138'>138</a>.</li> + +<li>Siegfried, André, <a href='#page245'>245</a>.</li> + +<li>Sillery, <a href='#page264'>264</a>.</li> + +<li>Smith, Justin H., <a href='#page244'>244</a>.</li> + +<li>Sorel, <a href='#page9'>9</a>, <a href='#page90'>90</a>, <a href='#page91'>91</a>.</li> + +<li>Soumande, Pierre, <a href='#page12'>12</a>.</li> + +<li>Stadacona, <a href='#page5'>5</a>.</li> + +<li>Sterling, <a href='#page56'>56</a>.</li> + +<li>Stevenson, James, <a href='#page119'>119</a>.</li> + +<li>Stewart, Andrew, <a href='#page172'>172</a>.</li> + +<li>Stewart, Lieut Chas., <a href='#page33'>33</a>.</li> + +<li>Stewart, Mr., <a href='#page107'>107</a>.</li> + +<li>Stoney Creek, <a href='#page156'>156</a>.</li> + +<li>Stuart, Prince Charles, <a href='#page22'>22</a>, <a href='#page27'>27</a>.</li> + +<li>Sulte, B., <a href='#page243'>243</a>.</li> + +<li>Swanton, Capt, <a href='#page270'>270</a>.</li> + +<li>Syracuse, <a href='#page137'>137</a>, <a href='#page138'>138</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Taché, Madame, <a href='#page211'>211</a>, <a href='#page212'>212</a>.</li> + +<li>Tadousac, <a href='#page6'>6</a>, <a href='#page7'>7</a>, <a href='#page14'>14</a>, <a href='#page15'>15</a>, <a href='#page19'>19</a>, <a href='#page88'>88</a>, <a href='#page183'>183</a>, <a href='#page228'>228</a>, <a href='#page287'>287</a>-<a href='#page289'>289</a>.</li> + +<li>Talon, Jean, <a href='#page8'>8</a>, <a href='#page11'>11</a>.</li> + +<li>Taschereau, Hon G., <a href='#page106'>106</a>.</li> + +<li>Ten Mile Creek, <a href='#page159'>159</a>.</li> + +<li>Têtu, Mgr. H., <a href='#page15'>15</a>, <a href='#page245'>245</a>.</li> + +<li>Thames River, Ontario, <a href='#page155'>155</a>.</li> + +<li>Thompson, James, <a href='#page244'>244</a>.</li> + +<li>Three Rivers, <a href='#page69'>69</a>, <a href='#page150'>150</a>.</li> + +<li>Toronto, <a href='#page148'>148</a>, <a href='#page155'>155</a>, <a href='#page159'>159</a>.</li> + +<li>Trafalgar, Battle of, <a href='#page129'>129</a>, <a href='#page205'>205</a>.</li> + +<li>Tremblay, <a href='#page109'>109</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Usburn, Mr., <a href='#page106'>106</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li><i>Vanguard</i>, the, <a href='#page270'>270</a>.</li> + +<li>Vaudreuil, Marquis de, <a href='#page34'>34</a>.</li> + +<li>Verchères, <a href='#page9'>9</a>, <a href='#page89'>89</a>.</li> + +<li>Villeneuve, Joseph, <a href='#page53'>53</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Wall, Captain, <a href='#page152'>152</a>.</li> + +<li>Walpole, Sir R., <a href='#page23'>23</a>.</li> + +<li>Warren, John, <a href='#page119'>119</a>.</li> + +<li>Washington, <a href='#page155'>155</a>.</li> + +<li>Washington, George, <a href='#page65'>65</a>.</li> + +<li>Waterloo, Battle of, <a href='#page205'>205</a>.</li> + +<li>Wauchope, Mr., <a href='#page277'>277</a>.</li> + +<li>Wellington, Duke of, <a href='#page205'>205</a>.</li> + +<li>West Indies, <a href='#page95'>95</a>.</li> + +<li>Wilkes, John, <a href='#page35'>35</a>.</li> + +<li>Wilkinson, General, <a href='#page156'>156</a>.</li> + +<li>Winchester, General, <a href='#page154'>154</a>.</li> + +<li>Winder, General, <a href='#page156'>156</a>.</li> + +<li>Wingfield, Major, <a href='#page223'>223</a>.</li> + +<li>Wolfe, General James, <a href='#page19'>19</a>, <a href='#page20'>20</a>, <a href='#page22'>22</a>, <a href='#page23'>23</a>, <a href='#page28'>28</a>, <a href='#page29'>29</a>, <a href='#page31'>31</a>, <a href='#page66'>66</a>, <a href='#page241'>241</a>, <a href='#page252'>252</a>, <a href='#page260'>260</a>.</li> + +<li>Wolfe's Cove, <a href='#page29'>29</a>, <a href='#page68'>68</a>, <a href='#page75'>75</a>, <a href='#page256'>256</a>.</li> + +<li>Wooster, General, <a href='#page81'>81</a>.</li> + +<li>Würtele, F.C., <a href='#page244'>244</a>.</li> +</ul> +<ul> +<li>Yeo, Sir James, <a href='#page154'>154</a>, <a href='#page156'>156</a>-<a href='#page159'>159</a>.</li> + +<li>York, Duke of, <a href='#page96'>96</a>.</li> + +<li>York (Toronto), <a href='#page148'>148</a>, <a href='#page155'>155</a>, <a href='#page156'>156</a>, <a href='#page159'>159</a>, <a href='#page160'>160</a>.</li> + +<li>Yorktown, <a href='#page91'>91</a>.</li> + +<li>Yukon River, <a href='#page279'>279</a>.</li> +</ul> + + + +<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> Exact information in regard to the brothers Hazeur, who +have a place in this story merely because they held the seigniory of +Malbaie, may be found in articles by Mgr. H. Têtu, in the <i>Bulletin des +Recherches Historiques</i> (Lévis, Quebec) for August, 1907, and the +following numbers. They were the Canon Joseph Thierry Hazeur, born in +1680, and Pierre Hazeur de L'Orme, born in 1682, both apparently at +Quebec. The younger brother took the name de L'Orme from his mother's +family. He was for many years the representative in France of the +Chapter of the Cathedral at Quebec, which held, from the Pope and the +King, four or five abbeys in France. His copious letters published by +Mgr. Têtu illustrate with some vividness details of the ecclesiastical +life of the time. For several years after the British conquest of Canada +the Quebec Chapter continued to receive the revenues of the Abbey of +Meaubec. The elder Hazeur, less able than his brother, was Curé at Point +aux Trembles. An invalid, he spent his later years chiefly in Quebec.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> Malcolm Fraser, an officer in the 78th Highlanders and +afterwards first seigneur of Mount Murray, one of the two seigniories +into which Malbaie was divided, was sent out on these ravaging +expeditions. Years after, some of Fraser's neighbours of French origin +rallied him on his capacity for devastation as shown at this time. See +Fraser's <i>Journal</i>, Appendix A, p. <a href='#page253'>253</a>, and the <i>Mémoires</i> of Philippe +Aubert de Gaspé, 1866, Ch. II.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_3_3" id="Footnote_3_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> The name Simon Fraser appears with credit more than once in +Canadian history. It was a Simon Fraser who crossed the Rocky Mountains +and first followed for its whole course the Fraser River named after +him.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_4_4" id="Footnote_4_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> Waverley, Chapter II.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_5_5" id="Footnote_5_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> See Appendix A., p. <a href="#page249">249</a>. "Journal of Malcolm Fraser, First +Seigneur of Mount Murray, Malbaie."</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_6_6" id="Footnote_6_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> See copy of the grant in Appendix B., p. <a href="#page271">271</a>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_7_7" id="Footnote_7_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> The Lake is no doubt Lake Nairne, the present Grand Lac.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_8_8" id="Footnote_8_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a> Diary of an English Officer. Proceedings of the Literary +and Historical Society of Quebec, 1871-72, p. 61.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_9_9" id="Footnote_9_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> See Appendix C., p. <a href="#page273">273</a>, for the text of his letter to his +sister describing the operations of the winter at Quebec. It is an able +review of the campaign.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_10_10" id="Footnote_10_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> Proceedings of the Literary and Historical Society of +Quebec, 7th Series, 1905, p. 75; "Blockade of Quebec," etc.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> The men's names were Peter Ferris, Squir Ferris, Claudius +Brittle (Sr.), Claudius Brittle (Jr.), Nathan Smith, Marshal Smith, +Justice Sturdevant, John Ward.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_12_12" id="Footnote_12_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> The book in which Nairne kept the accounts, with the names +of the recipients of the king's bounty, is still at Murray Bay.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_13_13" id="Footnote_13_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> It may be convenient to state at once the dates of the +births and deaths of each of these children: +</p> +<div class='center'> +<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="Children"> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Magdalen (Madie) (Mrs. McNicol)</td> + <td align='left'>born</td> + <td align='left'>1767</td> + <td align='left'>died</td> + <td align='left'>1839.</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Christine Nairne</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1774</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1817.</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>John Nairne</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1777</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1799.</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Mary (Polly) Nairne</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1782</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1821.</td> +</tr> +<tr> + <td align='left'>Thomas Nairne</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1787</td> + <td align='center'>"</td> + <td align='left'>1813.</td> +</tr> +</table></div></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_14_14" id="Footnote_14_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> See Appendix D., p. <a href="#page277">277</a>., for a formal memorandum drawn up +by Nairne for his son's guidance.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_15_15" id="Footnote_15_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> See Appendix E., p. <a href="#page279">279</a>. "The 'Porpoise' (Beluga or White +Whale) Fishery on the St. Lawrence."</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_16_16" id="Footnote_16_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> "Les Anciens Canadiens," Chapter IV.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_17_17" id="Footnote_17_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> Sir Alexander Mackenzie who accomplished in 1793 what was +then the astonishing feat of crossing the Rocky Mountains to the Pacific +Ocean and whose book, "Voyages from Montreal on the River St. Lawrence, +through the Continent of North America, to the Frozen and Pacific +Oceans," first published in 1801, attracted general attention, including +even that of Napoleon Bonaparte.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_18_18" id="Footnote_18_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> John Warren, the ancestor of the numerous family at Murray +Bay of that name.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_19_19" id="Footnote_19_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a> Warren, Nairne's neighbour, had been visiting Quebec +apparently for business reasons.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_20_20" id="Footnote_20_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20_20"><span class="label">[20]</span></a> See Appendix F., p. <a href="#page286">286</a>, for this Prayer of Colonel +Nairne.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_21_21" id="Footnote_21_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21_21"><span class="label">[21]</span></a> The inscription to be placed on Nairne's tomb was long a +subject of debate in the family. Two drafts remain at Murray Bay, both +copious in length, and neither like the inscription now to be found at +Mount Hermon Cemetery. (See p. <a href="#page221">221</a>.) In the taste of the time +inscriptions were expected to give a full account of the career of the +dead man. One of these inscriptions speaks of Nairne's "enjoying as a +reward of his services a gift of Land on the River St. Lawrence. He had +alike the merit and the happiness of converting a wild and uninhabited +desert into a flourishing colony of above 1000 inhabitants, who regarded +him as their Tender Friend and Patriarch. He died honoured with the +esteem of all who knew him." The other inscription mentions what, +otherwise, we should not have known, that Nairne received a wound on the +Plains of Abraham. It goes on in verse: +</p> +<div class="poem"><div class="stanza"> +<span class="i0">"Though 'gainst the Foe a dauntless Front he reared,<br /></span> +<span class="i0">Ne'er from his lips was aught assuming heard;<br /></span> +<span class="i0">Modest, though brave; though firm, in manners mild,<br /></span> +<span class="i0">Strong in resolve, though guileless as a child;<br /></span> +<span class="i0">To honor true, in probity correct;<br /></span> +<span class="i0">To falsehood [stern] and urgent to detect;<br /></span> +<span class="i0">To party strange, to calumny a foe;<br /></span> +<span class="i0">The good Samaritan to sons of woe;<br /></span> +<span class="i0">At a late hour he heard the fatal call,<br /></span> +<span class="i0">Obeyed and died, wept and deplored by all."<br /></span> +</div></div> +</div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_22_22" id="Footnote_22_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22_22"><span class="label">[22]</span></a> See Appendix G., p. <a href="#page287">287</a>. "The Curés of Malbaie".</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_23_23" id="Footnote_23_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23_23"><span class="label">[23]</span></a> Bowen's career was remarkable. He continued on the bench +until 1866, having held the office of a Judge in Canada for well nigh +sixty years.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_24_24" id="Footnote_24_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24_24"><span class="label">[24]</span></a> He had recently died, and it did not diminish the Nairnes' +interest in him that he left £5,000 to their relative Ker.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_25_25" id="Footnote_25_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25_25"><span class="label">[25]</span></a> He must have been a Roman Catholic for he was buried in +the churchyard at Murray Bay.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_26_26" id="Footnote_26_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26_26"><span class="label">[26]</span></a> We have seen (<i>ante</i> p. <a href="#page49">49</a>) how at Malbaie Colonel Nairne +expected that a Protestant missionary would soon make the community +Protestant.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_27_27" id="Footnote_27_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27_27"><span class="label">[27]</span></a> Professor Barrett Wendell, France of To-day, New York, +1907.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_28_28" id="Footnote_28_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28_28"><span class="label">[28]</span></a> Roy, Histoire de la Seigneurie de Lauzon, IV: 169, 170.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_29_29" id="Footnote_29_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29_29"><span class="label">[29]</span></a> The Abbé H.R. Casgrain: <i>Une Paroisse Canadienne au XVII. +Siècle</i>. <i>Œuvres</i>, Vol. I, pp. 483 <i>sqq.</i></p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_30_30" id="Footnote_30_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30_30"><span class="label">[30]</span></a> Roy, La Seigneurie de Lauzon, IV: 247.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_31_31" id="Footnote_31_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31_31"><span class="label">[31]</span></a> M. Léon Gérin in "L'Habitant de Saint-Justin", p. 202.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_32_32" id="Footnote_32_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32_32"><span class="label">[32]</span></a> Roy, La Seigneurie de Lauzon IV: 245.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_33_33" id="Footnote_33_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33_33"><span class="label">[33]</span></a> De Gaspé, <i>Mémoires</i>, p. 533, 4.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_34_34" id="Footnote_34_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34_34"><span class="label">[34]</span></a> Mr. Nairne claimed as compensation for his <i>lods et +ventes</i> £4,560, 9s. 6d., (Halifax currency) and for the banal rights +£3,400. He probably received considerably less. More than 400 dwellers +in the seigniory still pay the annual <i>cens et rentes</i>.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_35_35" id="Footnote_35_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35_35"><span class="label">[35]</span></a> Malcolm Fraser's seigniory, Mount Murray, remained +somewhat longer in the family of its original owner. On Fraser's death +in 1815 his eldest son William, who had become a medical practitioner +and a Roman Catholic, succeeded. He died without issue in 1830 and his +brother, John Malcolm Fraser, then fell heir to the seigniory. When he +died in 1860 the property passed by will to his two daughters, both +married to British officers. The elder, Mrs. Reeve, succeeded to the +manor house. The younger, Mrs. Higham, soon sold her share to the Cimon +family who became prominent in the district and one of whose members sat +in Parliament at Ottawa on the Conservative side. Mrs. Reeve died in +1879 leaving the use of the property to her husband, Colonel Reeve, for +his life. When he died in 1888, his son Mr. John Fraser Reeve, Malcolm +Fraser's great-grandson, became seigneur. In 1902 he sold the property +to the present seigneur, Mr. George T. Bonner, of New York, a Canadian +by birth. Though there are numerous living descendants of Malcolm +Fraser, Murray Bay knows them no more.</p></div> + +<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_36_36" id="Footnote_36_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36_36"><span class="label">[36]</span></a> Sacred to the memory of Lieutenant Colonel John Nairne, +First Seigneur of Murray Bay. This Gallant Officer during 38 years +distinguished himself as an able and brave Soldier. For simplicity of +manners as a man, for Intrepidity and humanity as a Soldier, and for the +virtues of a Gentleman, his memory will long be respected and cherished. +Born in Scotland, March 1, 1731. Died at Quebec, July 14, 1802. +</p><p> +Lieutenant Colonel Nairne first entered the Dutch Service where he +belonged to that distinguished Corps, the Scotch Brigade. He afterwards +entered the British Service where under Wolfe he was present at the +taking of Louisbourg and Quebec. He also served under Murray and +Carleton and distinguished himself in a most gallant manner when Quebec +was attacked by the Americans in the years 1775 and 1776. +</p><p> +And of his eldest son, Lieutenant John Nairne of the 19th Regiment of +Foot, who fell a victim to the climate of India when returning with the +victorious troops from the capture of Seringapatam in the 21st year of +his age; also of his youngest son, Captain Thomas Nairne, of the 49th +Regiment of Foot who bravely fell at the head of his Company in the +Battle at Chrysler's Farm in Upper Canada November 11, 1813, aged 26 +years. +</p><p> +Also of John Leslie Nairne, great grandson of Colonel Nairne, born July +23, 1842, died March 18, 1845; and of John Nairne, Esq., Grandson of +Colonel Nairne, born at Murray Bay, March 22nd, 1808, died at Quebec +June 8, 1861; and of his Widow, Maria Katherine Leslie, died at Quebec, +August 25, 1884, deeply regretted by her friends and by the poor of whom +she was the constant benefactress. +</p><p> +This monument is erected in affectionate remembrance of much kindness by +one who was privileged to enjoy their friendship during the best part of +his life.</p></div> + +</div> + + + + + + + +<pre> + + + + + +End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs +by George M. Wrong + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CANADIAN MANOR AND ITS SEIGNEURS *** + +***** This file should be named 16747-h.htm or 16747-h.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + https://www.gutenberg.org/1/6/7/4/16747/ + +Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Taavi Kalju and the Online +Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net. +Produced from page scans provided by Internet +Archive/Toronto Collection. + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at +https://gutenberg.org/license). + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org. + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at +https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at +809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email +business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact +information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official +page at https://pglaf.org + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit https://pglaf.org + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including including checks, online payments and credit card +donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + https://www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. + +*** END: FULL LICENSE *** + + + +</pre> + +</body> +</html> + diff --git a/16747-h/images/01.jpg b/16747-h/images/01.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..ee1cbb3 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/01.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/02.jpg b/16747-h/images/02.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..b2db903 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/02.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/02large.jpg b/16747-h/images/02large.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..4c00ffa --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/02large.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/03.jpg b/16747-h/images/03.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..8cd9b84 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/03.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/04.jpg b/16747-h/images/04.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..ee3e78c --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/04.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/05.jpg b/16747-h/images/05.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..6691e9a --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/05.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/06a.jpg b/16747-h/images/06a.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..b8e7bae --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/06a.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/06b.jpg b/16747-h/images/06b.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..1cc394e --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/06b.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/07.jpg b/16747-h/images/07.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..cbfa636 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/07.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/08.jpg b/16747-h/images/08.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..93dd0fb --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/08.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/08large.jpg b/16747-h/images/08large.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..0a9878e --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/08large.jpg diff --git a/16747-h/images/09.jpg b/16747-h/images/09.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..4726a73 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747-h/images/09.jpg diff --git a/16747.txt b/16747.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..8ebc816 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747.txt @@ -0,0 +1,8567 @@ +Project Gutenberg's A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs, by George M. Wrong + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + +Title: A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs + The Story of a Hundred Years, 1761-1861 + +Author: George M. Wrong + +Release Date: September 25, 2005 [EBook #16747] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ASCII + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CANADIAN MANOR AND ITS SEIGNEURS *** + + + + +Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Taavi Kalju and the Online +Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net. +Produced from page scans provided by Internet +Archive/Toronto Collection. + + + + + + + +[Illustration: COLONEL JOHN NAIRNE] + + + + +A CANADIAN MANOR +AND ITS SEIGNEURS + +THE STORY OF A HUNDRED YEARS +1761-1861 + + +BY + +GEORGE M. WRONG, M.A. +PROFESSOR OF HISTORY IN THE UNIVERSITY OF TORONTO + + +WITH ILLUSTRATIONS + + +TORONTO +THE BRYANT PRESS, LIMITED +1908 + + +COPYRIGHT, CANADA, 1908 +BY GEORGE M. WRONG + + + + +PREFACE + + +In spite of many pleasant summers spent at Murray Bay one had never +thought of it as having a history. The place and its people seemed +simple, untutored, new. Some of the other summer residents talked +complacently even of having discovered it. They had heard of Murray Bay +as beautiful and had gone to explore this unknown country. When this +bold feat was performed there was abundant recompense. Valley, mountain, +river and stream united to make Murray Bay delightful. The little summer +community grew. At first visitors lived in the few primitive hotels or +in cottages at Pointe au Pic, vacated for the time being by their +owners, who found temporary lodgings somewhere,--not infrequently in +their own out-buildings. The cottages left something to be desired, and, +gradually, the visitors bought land and built houses for themselves: +to-day dozens of them dot the western shore of Murray Bay. In due time +appeared tennis courts; then a golf links. Murray Bay had become, alas, +almost fashionable. + +It still seemed to have no past. True, near the village church, a +fair-sized house stood, embowered in trees, with a fine view out over +the bay and the wide St. Lawrence. A high fence shut in a beautiful old +garden, with a few great trees: as one drove past one got a glimpse of +shady walks and old-fashioned flowers. The extensive out-buildings near +this manor house, stables, carriage-house, dairy, showed that the +establishment was fairly large. There were sleek cattle in the farm +yard. On one of the out-buildings was a small belfry, with a bell to +summon the work-people from afar to meals, and this seemed like the +olden times when the seigneur fed his labourers under his own roof. On +making a formal call at the manor house one noted that some of the rooms +were of fine proportions and that a good many old portraits and +miniatures hung on the walls. This all spoke of a past; and yet of it +one asked little and knew nothing. + +Just across the bay stood another manor house; of stone, too, in this +case not concealed by a covering of wood. Thick walls crowned by a +mansard roof spoke of a respectable age. This manor house, also looked +out on the bay and across the St. Lawrence. One knew that it was named +Mount Murray Manor, while that on the right bank of the river Murray was +called Murray Bay Manor. It was said vaguely that a Colonel Fraser had +dwelt at Mount Murray and a Colonel Nairne at Murray Bay; but all that +one heard was loose tradition and there were no Nairnes or Frasers of +whom one might ask questions. One could see that, in both places, +something like an old world dignity of life had in the past been kept +up. + +Making a call at the Murray Bay Manor House, I was told one day of a +manuscript volume in which the first seigneur had copied some of his +letters. I begged to be allowed to spend an afternoon or two in looking +through it. I went and went again. To me the book was absorbing. It told +the story of the first people of British origin who went to settle at +Malbaie, which they named Murray Bay, just after the British conquest; +of the career of a soldier brother of Colonel Nairne who died in India +not long after Plassey; of campaigns fought by Colonel Nairne during the +period of the American Revolution; of his plans and hopes as the ruler +of the little community where he settled. When I had read the book +through, I asked if there was not something more. Yes, there were some +old letters, preserved in a lumber room at the top of the house. These +I was allowed to see. This task, too, was of great interest and I spent +the better part of a summer holiday reading, analyzing, and copying +letters. Some of them told of the schoolboy days, in Edinburgh, of the +old Colonel's son and heir, the second seigneur, of this son's life at +Gibraltar at the time when Trafalgar was fought, of his return to +Canada, of campaigns in the war of 1812. Then there were touching +letters from others to tell how he fell at the battle of Crysler's Farm. +So intimate were the letters that one experienced again the hopes and +fears of more than a century ago. In time, out of the dimness in which +all had been shrouded, Murray Bay's history became clear. Of course one +had to seek some information elsewhere, especially in attempting an +analysis of French Canadian village life. But the story told in this +volume is based chiefly on the papers read during that holiday. Not only +did they enable one to reconstruct the story of a spot made almost +sacred by the joys of many a delightful summer; they furnished, besides, +an outline of the tragic history of a Canadian family. Here at Murray +Bay, a century and a half ago, a brave and distinguished British officer +secured a great estate and made his home. In his letters we read almost +from day to day of his plans. He had a strong heart and a deep faith. He +reared a large family and built not merely for himself but for his +posterity. And yet, just one hundred years after he began his work at +Murray Bay, the last of his descendants was laid in the grave and the +family became extinct. It is the fashion of our modern fiction to end +the tale in sorrow not in joy. Perhaps the fashion has a more real basis +in fact than we like to think. At any rate this true story of the +seigneur of Murray Bay ends with the closed record of his family history +on a granite monument in Quebec. There is no one living for whom the +tale has the special interest that attaches to one's ancestors. + +I have received help from many but my deepest obligation is to Mr. E.J. +Duggan, the present seigneur of Murray Bay, for his great kindness in +permitting me to use the letters and papers in the Manor House. I owe +much to the Right Honourable Sir Charles Fitzpatrick, who has taught me, +in many holiday outings, most of what appreciation I have learned for +French Canadian village life, and has corrected errors into which I +should otherwise have fallen. So also have Mr. W.H. Blake, K.C., of +Toronto, a good authority on all that concerns life at Murray Bay, and +M. J.-Edmond Roy, Assistant Archivist at Ottawa, whose "Histoire de la +Seigneurie de Lauzon" and many other works relating to the Province of +Quebec entitle him to the rank of its foremost historical scholar. To +another authority on the seigniorial system in Canada, Professor W. +Bennett Munro, of Harvard University, I am much indebted for information +readily given. My colleagues Professor W.J. Alexander, Ph.D., of +University College, and Professor Pelham Edgar, Ph.D., of Victoria +College, Toronto, have given me the benefit of their discriminating +criticism. Dr. A.G. Doughty, C.M.G., Dominion Archivist, and the Rev. +Abbe A.E. Gosselin of Laval University, have responded with unfailing +courtesy to my numerous calls upon them, and Mr. John Fraser Reeve, the +great-grandson of Colonel Malcolm Fraser, who figures so prominently in +the story, has given me invaluable information about the Fraser family. +Dr. J.M. Harper and M. P.-B. Casgrain, of Quebec, and Mr. A.C. +Casselman, of Toronto, have also aided me on some difficult points. To +the Honourable Edward Blake, K.C., of Toronto, I am indebted for +reproductions of some of his paintings of scenes at Murray Bay, and to +the Honourable Dudley Murray, of London, England, for a photograph of +the portrait of General Murray preserved in the General's family. + +Toronto, _July, 1908_. + + + + +CONTENTS + + PAGE + +CHAPTER I + +THE FOUNDING OF MALBAIE + +The situation of Malbaie.--The physical features of +Malbaie.--Jacques Cartier at Malbaie.--Champlain at +Malbaie.--The first seigneur of Malbaie.--A new policy for +settling Canada.--The Sieur de Comporte, seigneur of +Malbaie, sentenced to death in France.--His career in +Canada.--His plans for Malbaie.--Hazeur, Seigneur of +Malbaie.--Malbaie becomes a King's Post.--A Jesuit's +description of Malbaie in 1750.--The burning of Malbaie by +the British in 1759. 1 + + +CHAPTER II + +THE TWO HIGHLAND SEIGNEURS AT MALBAIE + +Pitt's use of Highlanders in the Seven Years' War.--The +origin of Fraser's Highlanders.--The career of Lord +Lovat.--Lovat's son Simon Fraser and other Frasers at +Quebec.--Malcolm Fraser and John Nairne future seigneurs of +Malbaie.--The Highlanders and Wolfe's victory.--The +Highlanders in the winter of 1759-60.--Malcolm Fraser on +Murray's defeat in April, 1760.--The return of Canadian +seigneurs to France.--General Murray buys Canadian +seigniories.--Nairne and Fraser at Malbaie.--Their grants +from Murray. 22 + + +CHAPTER III + +JOHN NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + +Colonel Nairne's portrait.--His letters.--The first Scottish +settlers at Malbaie.--Nairne's finance.--His tasks.--The +cure's work.--The Scottish settlers and their French +wives.--The Church and Education.--Nairne's efforts to make +Malbaie Protestant.--His war on idleness.--The character of +the habitant.--Fishing at Malbaie.--Trade at +Malbaie.--Farming at Malbaie.--Nairne's marriage,--Career +and death in India of Robert Nairne.--The Quebec Act and its +consequences for the habitant. 40 + + +CHAPTER IV + +JOHN NAIRNE IN THE AMERICAN REVOLUTION + +Nairne's work among the French Canadians.--He becomes Major +of the Royal Highland Emigrants.--Arnold's march through the +wilderness to Quebec.--Quebec during the Siege, +1775-76.--The habitants and the Americans.--Montgomery's +plans.--The assault on December 31st, 1775.--Malcolm Fraser +gives the alarm in Quebec.--Montgomery's death.--Arnold's +attack.--Nairne's heroism.--Arnold's failure.--The American +fire-ship.--The arrival of a British fleet.--The retreat of +the Americans.--Nairne's later service in the War.--Isle aux +Noix and Carleton Island.--Sir John Johnson and the +desolation of New York.--Nairne and the American prisoners +at Murray Bay.--Their escape and capture.--Nairne and the +Loyalists.--The end of the War.--Nairne's retirement to +Murray Bay. 62 + + +CHAPTER V + +THE LAST DAYS OF JOHN NAIRNE + +Nairne's careful education of his children.--His son John +enters the army.--Nairne's counsels to his son.--John Nairne +goes to India.--His death.--Nairne's declining years.--His +activities at Murray Bay.--His income.--His daughter +Christine and Quebec society.--The isolation of Murray Bay +in Winter.--Signals across the river.--Nairne's +reading.--His notes about current events.--The fear of a +French invasion of England.--Thoughts of flight from +Scotland to Murray Bay.--Nairne's last letter, April 20th, +1802.--His death and burial at Quebec. 93 + + +CHAPTER VI + +THOMAS NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + +His education in Scotland.--His winning character.--He +enters the army.--Malcolm Fraser's counsels to a young +soldier.--Thomas Nairne's life at Gibraltar.--His desire to +retire from the army.--His return to Canada in 1810-11.--His +life at Quebec.--His summer at Murray Bay, 1811.--His +resolve to remain in the Army.--Beginning of the War of +1812.--Captain Nairne on Lake Ontario.--Quebec Society and +the proposed flight from danger to Murray Bay.--Anxiety at +Murray Bay.--The progress of the War.--An American attack on +Kingston.--Captain Nairne on the Niagara frontier.--Naval +War on Lake Ontario.--Nairne's description of a naval +engagement.--Sense of impending disaster at Murray Bay.--The +American advance on Montreal by the St. Lawrence.--Nairne's +regiment a part of the opposing British force.--The Battle +of Crysler's Farm.--Nairne's death.--His body taken to +Quebec.--The grief of the family at Murray Bay.--The +funeral. 124 + + +CHAPTER VII + +A FRENCH CANADIAN VILLAGE + +Life at Murray Bay after Captain Nairne's death.--Letters +from Europe.--Death of Malcolm Fraser.--Death of Colonel +Nairne's widow and children.--His grandson John Nairne, +seigneur.--Village Life.--The Church's Influence.--The +Habitant's tenacity.--His cottage.--His labours.--His +amusements.--The Church's missionary work in the +Village.--The powers of the bishop.--His visitations.--The +organization of the Parish.--The powers of the +_fabrique_.--Lay control of Church finance.--The cures' +tithe.--The best intellects enter the Church.--A native +Canadian clergy.--The cure's social life.--The Church and +Temperance Reform.--The diligence of the cures.--The +habitant's taste for the supernatural.--The belief in +goblins.--Prayer in the family.--The habitant as voter.--The +office of Churchwarden.--The Church's influence in +elections.--The seigneur's position.--The habitant's +obligations to him.--Rent day and New Year's Day.--The +seigneur's social rank.--The growth of discontent in the +villages.--The evils of Seigniorial Tenure.--Agitation +against the system.--Its abolition in 1854.--The last of the +Nairnes.--The Nairne tomb in Quebec. 168 + + +CHAPTER VIII + +THE COMING OF THE PLEASURE SEEKERS + +Pleasure seeking at Murray Bay.--A fisherman's experience in +1830.--New visitors.--Fishing in a mountain lake.--Camp +life.--The Upper Murray.--Canoeing.--Running the +rapids.--Walks and drives.--Golf.--A rainy day.--The +habitant and his visitors. 222 + + +AUTHORITIES 243 + + +APPENDICES + + +APPENDIX A (p. 31) The Journal of Malcolm Fraser, + First Seigneur of Mount Murray, + Malbaie. 249 + +APPENDIX B (p. 38) Title Deed of the Seigniory of + Murray Bay, granted to Captain + John Nairne. 271 + +APPENDIX C (p. 78) The Siege of Quebec in 1775-76. + Colonel Nairne's Narrative. 273 + +APPENDIX D (p. 98) Memorandum of Colonel Nairne, + 5th April, 1795, for his son + John Nairne in regard to + military duty. 277 + +APPENDIX E (p. 104) The "Porpoise" (Beluga or + White Whale) Fishery on the + St. Lawrence. 279 + +APPENDIX F (p. 122) The Prayer of Colonel Nairne. 286 + +APPENDIX G (p. 144) The Cures of Malbaie. 287 + + +INDEX 291 + + + + +LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS + + +COLONEL JOHN NAIRNE Frontispiece +(From the Oil Painting in the Manor House at Murray Bay.) + PAGE + +CAP A L'AIGLE FROM THE WEST SHORE OF MURRAY BAY 6 +(From the Water Colour by the late L.R. O'Brien, in the +possession of the Hon. Edward Blake, K.C.) + +VIEW ACROSS MURRAY BAY FROM THE CAP A L'AIGLE SHORE 21 +(From an Oil Painting by E. Wyly Grier, in the possession of +the Hon. Edward Blake.) + +GENERAL JAMES MURRAY 35 +(From an Oil Painting preserved in the General's Family.) + +THE MANOR HOUSE AT MURRAY BAY 74 +(From amateur photographs.) + +VIEW FROM POINTE AU PIC UP MURRAY BAY 102 +(From a Water Colour by the late L.R. O'Brien in the +possession of the Hon. Edward Blake.) + +THE GOLF LINKS AT MURRAY BAY 237 +(From a Photograph by W. Notman and Son, Montreal.) + + +MAPS + +THE ST. LAWRENCE FROM QUEBEC TO MURRAY BAY 1 + +SKETCH MAP OF LAKE ONTARIO AND THE RIVER ST. LAWRENCE TO +ILLUSTRATE THE WAR OF 1812-14 148 + + + + +[Illustration: THE ST. LAWRENCE FROM QUEBEC TO MURRAY BAY] + + + + +A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs + + + + +CHAPTER I + +THE FOUNDING OF MALBAIE + + The situation of Malbaie.--The physical features of + Malbaie.--Jacques Cartier at Malbaie.--Champlain at Malbaie.--The + first seigneur of Malbaie.--A new policy for settling Canada.--The + Sieur de Comporte, seigneur of Malbaie, sentenced to death in + France.--His career in Canada.--His plans for Malbaie.--Hazeur, + Seigneur of Malbaie.--Malbaie becomes a King's Post.--A Jesuit's + description of Malbaie in 1750.--The burning of Malbaie by the + British in 1759. + + +If one is not in too great a hurry it is wise to take the steamer--not +the train--at Quebec and travel by it the eighty miles down the St. +Lawrence to Malbaie, or Murray Bay, as the English call it, somewhat +arrogantly rejecting the old French name used since the pioneer days of +Champlain. This means an early morning start and six or seven hours--the +steamers are not swift--on that great river. Only less than a mile apart +are its rugged banks at Quebec but, even then, they seem to contract the +mighty torrent of water flowing between them. Once past Quebec the river +broadens into a great basin, across which we see the head of the +beautiful Island of Orleans. We skirt, on the south side, the twenty +miles of the island's well wooded shore, dotted with the cottages of +the habitants, stretched irregularly along the winding road. Church +spires rise at intervals; the people are Catholic to a man. Once past +this island we begin to note changes. Hardly any longer is the St. +Lawrence a river; rather is it now an inlet of the sea; the water has +become salt; the air is fresher. So wide apart are the river's shores +that the cottages far away to the south seem only white specks. + +Hugging the north shore closely we draw in under towering Cap Tourmente, +fir-clad, rising nearly two thousand feet above us; a mighty obstacle it +has always been to communication by land on this side of the river. Soon +comes a great cleft in the mountains, and before us is Baie St. Paul, +opening up a wide vista to the interior. We are getting into the Malbaie +country for Isle aux Coudres, an island some six miles long, opposite +Baie St. Paul, was formerly linked with Malbaie under one missionary +priest. The north shore continues high and rugged. After passing Les +Eboulements, a picturesque village, far above us on the mountain side, +we round Cap aux Oies, in English, unromantically, Goose Cape, and, far +in front, lies a great headland, sloping down to the river in bold +curves. On this side of the headland we can see nestling in under the +cliff what, in the distance, seems only a tiny quay. It is the wharf of +Malbaie. The open water beyond it, stretching across to Cap a l'Aigle, +marks the mouth of the bay. The great river, now twelve miles broad, +with a surging tide, rising sometimes eighteen or twenty feet, has the +strength and majesty almost of Old Ocean himself. + +As we land we see nothing striking. There is just a long wharf with some +cottages clustered at the foot of the cliff. But when we have ascended +the short stretch of winding road that leads over the barrier of cliff +we discover the real beauties of Malbaie. Before us lies the bay's +semi-circle--perhaps five miles in extent; stretching far inland is a +broad valley, with sides sloping up to rounded fir-clad mountain tops. +It is the break in the mountains and the views up the valley that give +the place its peculiar beauty. When the tide is out the bay itself is +only a great stretch of brown sand, with many scattered boulders, and +gleaming silver pools of water. Looking down upon it, one sees a small +river winding across the waste of sand and rocks. It has risen in the +far upland three thousand feet above this level and has made an arduous +downward way, now by narrow gorges, more rarely across open spaces, +where it crawls lazily in the summer sunlight:--_les eaux mortes_, the +French Canadians call such stretches. It bursts at length through the +last barrier of mountains, a stream forty or fifty yards wide, and flows +noisily, for some ten miles, in successive rapids, down this valley, +here at last to mingle its brown waters with the ice-cold, steel-tinted, +St. Lawrence. + +When the tide is in, the bay becomes a shallow arm of the great +river,--the sea, we call it. The French are better off than we; they +have the word "_fleuve_" for the St. Lawrence;--other streams are +"_rivieres_." Almost daily, at high water, one may watch small schooners +which carry on the St. Lawrence trade head up the bay. They work in +close to shore, drop their anchors and wait for the tide to go out. It +leaves them high and dry, and tilted sometimes at an angle which +suggests that everything within must be topsy-turvy, until the vessel is +afloat again. With a strong wind blowing from the north-east the bay is +likely to be, at high tide, an extremely lively place for the mariner; a +fact which helps perhaps to explain the sinister French name of Malbaie. +The huge waves, coming with a sweep of many miles up the broad St. +Lawrence, hurl themselves on the west shore with surprising vehemence, +and work destruction to anything not well afloat in deep water, or +beyond the highest of high water marks. At such a time how many a +hapless small craft, left incautiously too near the shore, has been +hammered to pieces between waves and rocks! + +Tired wayfarers surveying this remote and lovely scene have fancied +themselves pioneers in something like a new world. In reality, here is +the oldest of old worlds, in which pigmy man is not even of yesterday, +but only of to-day. This majestic river, the mountains clothed in +perennial green, the blue and purple tints so delicate and transient as +the light changes, have occupied this scene for thousands of centuries. +No other part of our mother earth is more ancient. The Laurentian +Mountains reared their heads, it may be, long before life appeared +anywhere on this peopled earth; no fossil is found in all their huge +mass. In some mighty eruption of fire their strata have been strangely +twisted. Since then sea and river, frost and ice, have held high +carnival. Huge boulders, alien in formation to the rocks about them, +have been dropped high up on the mountain sides by mighty glaciers, and +lie to-day, a source of unfailing wonder to the unlearned as to how they +came to be there. + +Man appeared at last upon the scene; the Indian, and then, long after, +the European. In 1535, Jacques Cartier, the first European, as far as we +know, to ascend the St. Lawrence, creeping slowly from the Saguenay up +towards the Indian village of Stadacona, on the spot where now is +Quebec, must have noted the wide gap in the mountains which makes the +Malbaie valley. Not far from Malbaie, he saw the so-called "porpoises," +or white whales, (beluga, French, _marsouin_) that still disport +themselves in great numbers in these waters, come puffing to the surface +and writhe their whole length into view like miniature sea-serpents. +They have heads, Cartier says, with no very great accuracy, "of the +style of a greyhound," they are of spotless white and are found, he was +told (incorrectly) only here in all the world. He anchored at Isle aux +Coudres where he saw "an incalculable number of huge turtles." He +admired its great and fair trees, now gone, alas, and gave the island +its name--"the Isle of Hazel Nuts"--which we still use. For long years +after Cartier, Malbaie remained a resort of its native savages only. +Perhaps an occasional trader came to give these primitive people, in +exchange for their valuable furs, European commodities, generally of +little worth. In time the Europeans learned the great value of this +trade and of the land which offered it. So France determined to colonize +Canada and in 1608, when Champlain founded a tiny colony at Quebec, the +most Christian King had announced a resolution to hold the country. Ere +long Malbaie was to have a European owner. + +[Illustration: CAP A L'AIGLE FROM THE WEST SHORE OF MURRAY BAY + +"A great headland sloping down to the river in bold curves."] + +As Champlain went up from Tadousac to make his settlement of Quebec he +noted Malbaie as sufficiently spacious. But its many rocks, he thought, +made it unnavigable, except for the canoes of the Indians, whose light +craft of bark can surmount all kinds of difficulties. Perhaps Champlain +is a little severe on Malbaie which, when one knows how, is navigable +enough for coasting schooners, but his observations are natural for a +passing traveller. In the years after Quebec was founded no more can be +said of Malbaie than that it was on the route from Tadousac to Quebec +and must have been visited by many a vessel passing up to New France's +small capital on the edge of the wilderness. In the summer of 1629 the +occasional savages who haunted Malbaie might have seen an unwonted +spectacle. Three English ships, under Lewis Kirke, had passed up the +river and to him, Champlain, with a half-starved force of only sixteen +men, had been obliged to surrender Quebec. Kirke was taking his captives +down to Tadousac when, opposite Malbaie, he met a French ship coming to +the rescue. A tremendous cannonade followed, the first those ancient +hills had heard. It ended in disaster to France, and Kirke sailed on to +Tadousac with the French ship as a prize. + +When peace came France began more seriously the task of settling Canada. +Though inevitably Malbaie would soon be colonized, it was still very +difficult of access. A wide stretch of mountain and forest separated it +from Quebec; not for nearly two hundred years after Champlain's time was +a road built across this barrier. Moreover France's first years of rule +in Canada are marked by conspicuous failure in colonizing work. The +trading Company--the Company of New France or of "One Hundred +Associates"--to which the country was handed over in 1633, thought of +the fur trade, of fisheries, of profits--of anything rather than +settlement, and never lived up to its promises to bring in colonists. +It made huge grants of land with a very light heart. In 1653 a grant was +made of the seigniory of Malbaie to Jean Bourdon, Surveyor-General of +the Colony. But Bourdon seems not to have thought it worth while to make +any attempt to settle his seigniory and, apparently for lack of +settlement, the grant lapsed. Even the Company of New France treasured +some idea that would-be land owners in a colony had duties to perform. + +After thirty years France at length grew tired of the incompetence of +the Company and in 1663 made a radical change. The great Colbert was +already the guiding spirit in France and colonial plans he made his +special care. Louis XIV too was already dreaming of a great over-sea +Empire. The first step was to take over from the trading Company the +direct government of the colony. The next was to get the right men to do +the work in New France. An excellent start was made when, in 1665, Jean +Talon was sent out to Canada as Intendant. He had a genius for +organization. Though in rank below the Governor he, with the title of +Intendant, did the real work of ruling; the Governor discharged its +ceremonial functions. Talon had a policy. He wished to colonize, to +develop industry, to promote agriculture. In his capacious brain new and +progressive ideas were working. He brought in soldiers who became +settlers, among them the first real seigneur of Malbaie. An adequate +military force, the Carignan regiment, came out from France to awe into +submission the aggressive Iroquois, who long had made Montreal, and even +Quebec itself, unsafe by their sudden and blood-thirsty attacks. +Travelling by canoe and batteau the regiment went from Quebec up the +whole length of the St. Lawrence, landed on the south shore of Lake +Ontario, and marched into the Iroquois country. With amazement and +terror, those arrogant savages saw winding along their forest paths the +glittering array of France. Some of their villages were laid low by +fire. The French regiment had accomplished its task; with no spirit left +the Iroquois made peace. + +A good many officers of the Carignan regiment, with but slender +prospects in France, decided to stay in Canada and to this day their +names--Chambly, Vercheres, Longueuil, Sorel, Berthier and others are +conspicuous in the geography of the Province of Quebec. Malbaie was +granted to a soldier of fortune, the Sieur de Comporte, who came to +Canada at this time, but apparently was not an officer of the Carignan +Regiment. His outlook at Malbaie cannot have been considered promising, +for Pierre Boucher, who in 1664 published an interesting account of New +France, declared the whole region between Baie St. Paul and the Saguenay +to be so rugged and mountainous as to make it unfit for civilized +habitation. But Philippe Gaultier, Sieur de Comporte, was of the right +material to be a good colonist. Born in 1641 he was twenty-four years of +age when he came to Canada. Already he had had some stirring adventures, +one of which might well have proved grimly fatal had he not found a +refuge across the sea. Comporte, then serving as a volunteer in a +Company of Infantry led by his uncle, La Fouille, was involved in one of +the bloody brawls of the time that Richelieu had made such stern efforts +to suppress. The Company was in garrison at La Motte-Saint-Heray in +Poitou. On July 9th, 1665, one of its members, Lanoraye, came in with +the tale of an insult offered to the company by a civilian in the town. +Lanoraye had been marching through the streets with a drum beating, in +order to secure recruits, when one Bonneau, the local judge, attacked +him, and took away the drum. Lanoraye rushed to arouse his fellow +soldiers. When Comporte and half a dozen other hot-heads had listened to +his tale, they cried with one voice, "Let us go and demand the drum. He +must give it up." So at eight or nine o'clock at night they set out to +look for Bonneau. They came upon him unexpectedly in the streets of the +town. He was accompanied by seven or eight persons with whom he had +supped and all were armed with swords, pistols or other weapons. When +Lanoraye demanded the drum, Bonneau was defiant and told him to go away +or he should chastise him. The inevitable fight followed. Comporte, +whose own account we have, says that it lasted some time and the results +were fatal. Comporte declares that he himself struck no blows but the +fact remains that two of Bonneau's party were so severely wounded that +they died. Comporte and the rest of the Company soon went to Canada. In +their absence he and others were sentenced to death. + +In Canada he appears to have behaved himself. In France a simple +volunteer, in New France he became an important citizen. Talon trusted +him and made him Quarter-Master-General. In 1672 Comporte received an +enormous grant of land stretching along the St. Lawrence from Cap aux +Oies to Cap a l'Aigle, a distance of some eighteen miles, including +Malbaie and a good deal more. About the same time he married Marie +Bazire, daughter of one of the chief merchants in the colony, by whom he +had a numerous family. So eminently respectable was he that we find him +churchwarden at Quebec. In time he retired from trade, in which he had +engaged, and became a judge of the newly established Court of the +Prevote at Quebec. This was not doing badly for a man under sentence of +death. But over him still hung this affair in France and, in 1680, he +petitioned the King to have the sentence annulled. For this petition he +secured the support of the families of the men killed in the quarrel +fifteen years earlier. In 1681 Louis XIV's pardon was registered with +solemn ceremonial at Quebec, and at last Comporte was no longer an +outlaw. + +He had plans to settle his great fief. Working in his brain no doubt +were dreams of a feudal domain, of a seigniorial chateau looking out +across the great river, of respectful tenants paying annual dues to +their lord in labour, kind, and money, of a parish church in which over +the seigniorial pew should be displayed his coat of arms. But if these +pictures inspired his fancy and cheered his spirit, they were never to +become realities. In 1687 he was, apparently, in need of money, and he +resolved to sell two-thirds of his interest in the seigniory of Malbaie. +The price was a pitiful 1000 livres, or some $200, and the purchasers +were Francois Hazeur, Pierre Soumande and Louis Marchand of Quebec, who +were henceforth to get two-thirds of the profits of the seigniory. Then, +in 1687, still young--he was only forty-six--Comporte died, as did also +his wife, leaving a young family apparently but ill provided for. His +name still survives at Malbaie. The portion of the village on the left +bank of the river above the bridge is called Comporte, and a lovely +little lake, nestling on the top of a mountain beyond the Grand Fond, +and unsurpassed for the excellence of its trout fishing, is called Lac a +Comporte; it may be that well-nigh two and a half centuries ago the +first seigneur of Malbaie followed an Indian trail to this lake and wet +a line in its brown and rippling waters. + +Comporte and his partners in the seigniory had planned great things. +They had begun the erection of a mill, an enterprise which Comporte's +heirs could not continue. So the guardian of the children determined to +sell at auction their third of the seigniory. The sale apparently took +place in Quebec in October, 1688. We have the record of the bids made. +Hazeur began with 410 livres; one Riverin offered 430 livres; after a +few other bids Hazeur raised his to 480 livres; then Riverin offered 490 +and finally the property was sold to Hazeur for 500 livres. Malbaie was +cheap enough; one third of a property more than one hundred and fifty +square miles in extent sold for about $100! In 1700 for a sum of 10,000 +livres ($2,000) Hazeur bought out all other interests in the seigniory +and became its sole owner. Its value had greatly improved in 22 years. + +Of Hazeur we know but little. He was a leading merchant at Quebec and +was interested in the fishing for "porpoises" or white whales. When he +died in 1708 he left money to the Seminary at Quebec on condition that +from this endowment, forever, two boys should be educated; for the +intervening two centuries the condition has been faithfully observed; +one knows not how many youths owe their start in life to the gift of +the former seigneur of Malbaie. There, however, no memory or tradition +of him survives. In his time some land was cleared. The saw mill and a +grist mill, begun by Comporte, were completed and stood, it seems, near +the mouth of the little river now known as the Fraser but then as the +Ruisseau a la Chute. Civilization had made at Malbaie an inroad on the +forest and was struggling to advance. + +On Hazeur's death in 1708 his two sons, both of them priests, inherited +Malbaie. Meanwhile the government developed a policy for the region. It +resolved to set aside, as a reserve, a vast domain stretching from the +Mingan seigniory below Tadousac westward to Les Eboulements, and +extending northward to Hudson Bay. The wealth of forest, lake, and +river, in this tract furnished abundant promise for the fur and other +trade of which the government was to have here a complete monopoly. +Malbaie was necessary to round out the territory and so the heirs of +Hazeur were invited to sell back the seigniory to the government. The +sale was completed in October, 1724, when the government of New France, +acting through M. Begon, the Intendant, for a sum of 20,000 livres +(about $4,000) found itself possessed of Malbaie "as if it had never +been granted," of a saw mill and a grist mill, of houses, stables and +barns, gardens and farm implements, grain, furniture, live stock, +cleared land, cut wood and all other products of human industry there +in evidence.[1] + +Within the reserve, in addition to Malbaie, were a number of trading +posts--Tadousac, Chicoutimi, Lake St. John, Mistassini, &c. In this +great tract the government expected to reap large profits from its +monopoly of trade with the Indians. Some of the fertile land was to be +used for farms which should produce food supplies for the posts. The +Intendant had sanguine hopes that the profit from trade and agriculture +would aid appreciably in meeting the expense of government. It was, we +may be well assured, an expectation never realized. + +We get a glimpse of Malbaie in 1750 as a King's post. There were two +farms, one called La Malbaie, the other La Comporte. The two farmers +were both in the King's service and, in the absence of other diversions, +quarrelled ceaselessly. The region, wrote the Jesuit Father Claude +Godefroi Coquart, who was sent, in 1750, to inspect the posts, is the +finest in the world. He reported, in particular, that the farm of +Malbaie had good soil, excellent facilities for raising cattle, and +other advantages. Only a very little land had been cleared, just enough +wheat being raised to supply the needs of the farmer and his assistants. +The place should be made more productive, M. Coquart goes on to say, and +the present farmer, Joseph Dufour, is just the man to do it. He is able +and intelligent and if only--and here we come to the inherent defect in +trying to do such pioneer work by paid officials who had no final +responsibility--he were offered better pay the farm could be made to +produce good results. The old quarrel with the farmer at La Comporte had +been settled; now the farmer of Malbaie was the superior officer, +rivalry had ceased, and all was peace. + +Coquart gives an estimate of the farming operations at Malbaie which is +of special interest as showing that, if the old regime in Canada did not +produce good results, it was not for lack of criticism. Better cattle +should be raised, he says; at Malbaie one does not see oxen as fine as +those at Beaupre, near Quebec, or on the south shore. The pigs too are +extremely small, the very fattest hardly weighing 180 pounds; in +contrast, at La Petite Riviere, above Baie St. Paul, the pigs are huge; +one could have good breeds without great expense; it costs no more to +feed them and [a truism] there would be more pork! Of sheep too hardly +fifty are kept at Malbaie through the winter; there should be two or +three hundred. From the two farms come yearly only thirty or forty pairs +of chickens. + +Father Coquart's census is as rigorous and unsparing of detail as the +Doomsday Book of William the Conqueror. He tells exactly what the +Malbaie farm can produce in a year; the record for the year of grace +1750 is "4 or 6 oxen; 25 sheep, 2 or 3 cows, 1200 pounds of pork, 1400 +to 1500 pounds of butter, one barrel of lard,"--certainly not much to +help a paternal government. The salmon fishery should be developed, says +Coquart. Now the farmers get their own supply and nothing more. Nets +should be used and great quantities of salmon might be salted down in +good seasons. Happily, conditions are mending. The previous farmer had +let things go to rack and ruin but now one sees neither thistles nor +black wheat; all the fences are in place. Joseph Dufour has a special +talent for making things profitable. If he can be induced to continue +his services, it will be a benefit to his employer. But he is not +contented. Last year he could not make it pay and wished to leave. +Nearly all his wages are used in the support of his family. He has three +grown-up daughters who help in carrying on the establishment, and a boy +for the stables. The best paid of these gets only 50 livres (about $10) +a year; she should get at least 80 livres, M. Coquart thinks. Dufour has +on the farm eight sheep of his own but even of these the King takes the +wool, and actually the farmer has had to pay for what wool his family +used. Surely he should be allowed to keep at least half the wool of his +own sheep! If it was the policy of the Crown to grant lands along the +river of Malbaie there are many people who would like those fertile +areas, but there is danger that they would trade with the Indians which +should be strictly forbidden. So runs M. Coquart's report. It was +rendered to one of the greatest rascals in New France, the Intendant +Bigot, but he was a rascal who did his official tasks with some +considerable degree of thoroughness and insight. He knew what were the +conditions at Malbaie even if he did not mend them. + +After 1750 the curtain falls again upon Malbaie and we see nothing +until, a few years later, the desolation of war has come, war that was +to bring to Canada, and, with it, to Malbaie, new masters of British +blood. After long mutterings the war broke out openly in 1756. In those +days the farmer at Malbaie who looked out, as we look out, upon the +mighty river would see great ships passing up and down. Some of them +differed from the merchant ships to which his eye was accustomed. They +stood high in the water. Ships came near the north shore in those days +and he could see grim black openings in their sides which meant cannon. +Already Britain had almost driven France from the sea and these French +ships, which ascended the St. Lawrence, were few. Then, in 1759, +happened what had been long-expected and talked about. Signal fires +blazed at night on both sides of the St. Lawrence to give the alarm, +when not French, but British ships, sailed up the river, a huge fleet. +They stopped at Tadousac and then slowly and cautiously filed past +Malbaie. On a summer day the crowd of white sails scattered on the +surface of the river made an animated scene. In wonder our farmer and +his helpers watched the ships silently advance to their goal. There were +39 men-of-war, 10 auxiliaries, 70 transports and a multitude of smaller +craft carrying some 27,000 men; it was the mightiest array Britain had +ever sent across the ocean. New France was doomed. + +The French fought bravely a campaign really hopeless. Montcalm massed +his chief force at Quebec and there awaited attack. In vain had he +appealed to France for further help; he was left unaided to struggle +with a foe who had command of the sea, whose fleet could pass up and +down before Quebec with the tide and keep the French guards for twenty +miles in constant nervous tension as to where a landing might be made. +Wolfe carried on his work relentlessly. He warned the Canadians that he +would ravage their villages if they did not remain neutral. Neutral it +was almost impossible for them to be for the French urged them in the +other direction. With stern rigour, Wolfe meted out to them his +punishment. He sent parties to burn houses and destroy crops and Malbaie +was not spared. On August 15th, 1759, Captain Gorham reported to Wolfe +that with 300 men, one half of them Rangers from the English colonies, +the other half Highlanders, he had devastated the north shore of the St. +Lawrence. The soldiers did their work thoroughly. From Baie St. Paul, +the last considerable village east of Quebec, they went on thirty miles +to Malbaie where they destroyed almost all of the houses. We do not know +whether the competent Dufour was still the farmer at Malbaie. But all +the fine pictures of better cattle, better pigs and sheep, better +farming, better fishing, ended with the applying of the British +soldiers' torch to the wooden buildings: much of the settlement went up +in smoke. Some of the cattle, pigs and sheep found their way perhaps to +Wolfe's commissariat. But a good many were left and no doubt they are +the ancestors of many of the cattle, sheep and pigs we see at Malbaie +still. This first visit of Americans and Highlanders to Malbaie has its +special interest. A few years later Highlanders came again, not to +destroy but to settle, and to become the ancestors of families that to +this day show their Highland origin in their names and in their +faces, but never a trace of it in their speech or in their customs.[2] +The Americans were longer in coming back. But, after more than a hundred +years they, too, were to come again, not to destroy but in a very +literal sense to build; their many charming cottages now stretch along +the shore of the Bay that looks across to Cap a l'Aigle. + +[Illustration: VIEW ACROSS MURRAY BAY FROM THE CAP A L'AIGLE SHORE + +(The farther point: Cap aux Oies, the nearer Pointe au Pic)] + +[Footnote 1: Exact information in regard to the brothers Hazeur, who +have a place in this story merely because they held the seigniory of +Malbaie, may be found in articles by Mgr. H. Tetu, in the _Bulletin des +Recherches Historiques_ (Levis, Quebec) for August, 1907, and the +following numbers. They were the Canon Joseph Thierry Hazeur, born in +1680, and Pierre Hazeur de L'Orme, born in 1682, both apparently at +Quebec. The younger brother took the name de L'Orme from his mother's +family. He was for many years the representative in France of the +Chapter of the Cathedral at Quebec, which held, from the Pope and the +King, four or five abbeys in France. His copious letters published by +Mgr. Tetu illustrate with some vividness details of the ecclesiastical +life of the time. For several years after the British conquest of Canada +the Quebec Chapter continued to receive the revenues of the Abbey of +Meaubec. The elder Hazeur, less able than his brother, was Cure at Point +aux Trembles. An invalid, he spent his later years chiefly in Quebec.] + +[Footnote 2: Malcolm Fraser, an officer in the 78th Highlanders and +afterwards first seigneur of Mount Murray, one of the two seigniories +into which Malbaie was divided, was sent out on these ravaging +expeditions. Years after, some of Fraser's neighbours of French origin +rallied him on his capacity for devastation as shown at this time. See +Fraser's _Journal_, Appendix A, p. 253, and the _Memoires_ of Philippe +Aubert de Gaspe, 1866, Ch. II.] + + + + +CHAPTER II + +THE TWO HIGHLAND SEIGNEURS AT MALBAIE + + Pitt's use of the Highlanders in the Seven Years' War.--The origin + of Fraser's Highlanders.--The career of Lord Lovat.--Lovat's son + Simon Fraser and other Frasers at Quebec.--Malcolm Fraser and John + Nairne, future seigneurs at Malbaie.--The Highlanders and Wolfe's + victory.--The Highlanders in the winter of 1759-60.--Malcolm Fraser + on Murray's defeat in April, 1760.--The return of Canadian + seigneurs to France.--General Murray buys Canadian + seigniories.--Nairne and Fraser at Malbaie.--Their grants from + Murray. + + +The great British fleet which has passed up beyond Malbaie to Quebec is +important for our tale. It carried men who have since become world +famous; not only Wolfe but Jervis, afterward Lord St. Vincent, Cook, the +great navigator, Guy Carleton, who saved Canada for Britain during the +American Revolution, and many others of lesser though still considerable +fame. But for Malbaie the most interesting men in that great array were +those connected with the 78th, or Fraser's, Highlanders. On the decks of +the British ships were hundreds of these brawny, bare-legged and kilted +sons of the north, speaking their native Gaelic, and on occasion +harangued by their officers in that tongue. A few years earlier many of +them had served under Prince Charles Stuart to overthrow, if possible, +King George II, and the house of Hanover; now they were fighting for +that King against their old allies the French. Unreal in truth had been +the rising in behalf of the Stuarts. Scotland had no grievances: she did +not wish to dissolve the union with England, and if the tyranny of any +royal house troubled her it was that of the Stuarts, alien from most +Scots in both religious and political thought. But when, in 1745, some +of the chieftains called out their clansmen, loyalty made these heed the +summons, though half-heartedly. The same devotion was now given to the +house of Hanover. Years earlier Duncan Forbes of Culloden, one of the +noblest and wisest Scots of his age, had urged Walpole to call the +Highlanders to fight Britain's battles. The hint was not then taken but +later, Pitt, the greatest war minister Britain has ever had, revived +Forbes's plan. Some Highland regiments were formed. The Highland dress +that had been proscribed after Culloden as the brand of treason was now +given its place in Britain's battle array: ever since it has played +there its creditable part. Wolfe called his Highland companions in arms +the most manly lot of officers he had ever seen. + +The Highland regiment that came with Wolfe to Quebec was known as +Fraser's Highlanders because recruited chiefly from that ancient and +powerful Scottish clan. In the rising of 1745 the Frasers had supported +the Stuart cause and they suffered when that cause was lost. In 1747 +the head of the clan, Simon Fraser, Lord Lovat, an old man of 80, +perished on the scaffold for his treason. The details of Lovat's career +are amazing. In one aspect he was a wild, half barbarous Highland +chieftain, in another one of the polished gentlemen and courtiers of his +time. He was devoured by the ambition to be the most powerful man in +Scotland. In that age others, more reputable than Fraser, found it wise +to stand well with both royal houses, but he surpassed them all in +tortuous treachery. In the rising of 1715 he was on the Whig side; in +1745 he was forced at last to come out openly for the Stuarts. For +neither side did he really care: he was merely serving his own ends. +Considering his deeds it is a wonder that he so long escaped the +scaffold. When he was a young man a certain Baroness Lovat stood in the +way of his own claims to be the heir to the title of Lovat; so he +offered to marry this lady's daughter and thus end the dispute. When his +advances were refused he determined to use force and seized Lady Lovat's +residence, Castle Dounie, only to find that the young lady had been +spirited away. He resolved on the spot to marry her mother who was in +the castle. She was a widow of thirty-four, he a man of thirty, so the +disparity of age was not great. Stories of what happened vary, but it is +said that in the dead of night a clergyman was brought to Lady Lovat's +chamber and she was forced to go through the form of marriage, the +bag-pipes playing in the next room to drown her cries. The lady was +connected with the great house of Atholl who warred on Fraser with fire +and sword. Outlawed, he escaped to the Continent to survive for half a +century of intrigue and treason. + +Though profligate, cruel, treacherous and avaricious, so smooth was +Lovat's address, so profound his knowledge of Scotland, and so strong +his hold upon his own clansmen, that he always remained a man to be +reckoned with. Since he served on the Hanoverian side in 1715 George I +granted a pardon for his many offences; for his treason in 1745 George +II let him go to the block. His last days in London were like those of a +dying saint. He wrote to his son Simon Fraser, who led Fraser's +Highlanders at Quebec in 1759, a beautiful spiritual letter. To the +Major of the Tower he said he was going to Heaven where, he added, "very +few Majors go." He was gay on his last morning:--"I hope to be in heaven +by one o'clock or I should not be so merry now,"--and expressed his pity +for those who "must continue to crawl a little longer in this evil +world." He took what he called an eternal farewell from some of those +about him: "we shall not meet again in the same place; I am sure of +that." He practised kneeling at the block so that he might do it with +dignity on the scaffold. A great crowd assembled to witness his +execution and a platform fell killing several people. "The more +mischief, the better sport," said Lord Lovat grimly, but he wondered +that so many should come to see the taking off of his "old grey head." +He carefully felt the edge of the executioner's axe to make sure that it +was sharp. + +No doubt there was a touch of madness in Lord Lovat but the Fraser clan +was devoted to him. By his treason all his honours and estates were +forfeited. At the time his heir, Simon Fraser, only twenty-one years +old, was a prisoner in the Castle of Edinburgh, attainted for high +treason. But so good was his conduct that in 1750 he received a pardon. +Then, a penniless man, he was called to the Scottish Bar. But another +career was in store for him. Some years later when Pitt formed his +design to use the Highlanders in the Seven Years' War he made Simon +Fraser Colonel of a battalion, to be raised on the forfeited estates of +his family and from the clan of which he was head. Success was +instantaneous. Within a few weeks Fraser was at the head of some 1500 +men. They wore the Highland dress, with a sporran of badger's or otter's +skin and carried musket and broadsword; some of them wore a dirk at +their own cost. Among the officers were no less than five Simon +Frasers,[3] three or four each of Alexander Frasers and John Frasers, +and a good many other Frasers, among them a young Ensign, Malcolm +Fraser, destined to rule one of the seigniories at Malbaie for more than +half a century. Other Scottish names also appear, Macnabs, Chisholms, +Macleans, and among them John Nairne who, like Malcolm Fraser, spent the +best part of his life at Malbaie. + +The head of the Nairne clan, a John Nairne, third Baron Nairne, had +fought for the Stuarts in 1745. He died an exile in France. Of how close +kin to him was the young Highland Officer, John Nairne, who settled +later at Malbaie, we do not know. His family was of course Jacobite. In +"Waverley" Sir Walter Scott mentions a Miss Nairne with whom he says he +was acquainted, and this lady appears to have been one of the sisters of +Captain John Nairne. In 1745, as the Highland army rushed into +Edinburgh, Miss Nairne was standing with some ladies on a balcony, when +a shot, discharged by accident from a Highlander's musket, grazed her +forehead. "Thank God," she said, "that the accident happened to me whose +principles are known; had it befallen a Whig [the name then identified +with the anti-Jacobite party] they would have said it was done on +purpose."[4] At Murray Bay there is still a miniature portrait of Prince +Charlie given it is said by himself to Miss Nairne. + +Before fighting under Wolfe John Nairne had followed the Dutch flag. +Just before the rising of 1745, when a youth of only 17, he, like a +great many others of his countrymen, is found serving in the well known +"Scots Brigade"; many years later at Malbaie, he tells in his letters, +of old companions in this service with well known Scottish names--Bruce, +Maclean, Seton, Hepburn, Campbell, Dunbar, Dundass, Graham, and so on. +In the pay of Holland Nairne remained for some nine years. He made, he +says, "long voyages" possibly to the Dutch possessions in the far East. +But he was glad of the chance to serve his own land which came when +Britain, embarked upon the Seven Years' War, was anxious to recall her +banished sons and to find soldiers, Scots or of any other nationality, +who would fight her battles. So John Nairne left the Dutch service to +join the 78th Highlanders and henceforth his loyalty to the house of +Hanover was never questioned. From the first, since Scotland offered +only a poor prospect of a career, Nairne may have thought of remaining +in the new world when the war should end. The Highlander of that day, +like the Irishman, found better chances abroad than at home. Unlike +Nairne, Malcolm Fraser, a younger man, had not seen foreign service. The +two met for the first time when, in 1757, they both joined the 78th +Highlanders. Soon they became fast friends and for nearly half a century +they were to live in the closest relations. + +Fraser's Highlanders had landed at Halifax in Nova Scotia in June, 1757. +Their dress seemed unsuited to both the severe winters and the hot +summers of North America and a change of costume was proposed; but +officers and men protested vehemently and no change was made. During the +campaigns in America the Highlanders boasted, not with entire truth as +we shall see, that they with their bare legs enjoyed better health than +those who wore breeches and warm clothing. At Louisbourg they did well. +At Quebec a Highland officer's knowledge of French proved a great boon. +When, in the darkness of the momentous morning of September 13th, 1759, +Wolfe's boats were drifting down with the tide close to the north shore +near Quebec, intending to land and scale the heights at what is now +Wolfe's Cove, a French sentry called out sharply from the bank, "_Qui +vive?_" A Highland officer, who had served in Holland, was able to reply +"_France!_" without betraying his nationality. + +"_A quel regiment?_" demanded the sentry. + +"_De la reine_," answered the Highlander, giving the name of a +well-known French regiment commanded by Bougainville; and then he added +in a low voice, "_Ne faites pas de bruit; ce sont les vivres_"--for a +convoy with provisions was expected by the French. The Highlanders were +at the forefront in the stiff climb up the heights which proved to be +Wolfe's master stroke. Malcolm Fraser has left his own account of that +morning's work. The troops, he says, had been in the boats since nine +o'clock on the previous night. At about twelve they had set out with a +falling tide and they landed just as day was breaking. The light +infantry struggled up the hill first, the French meanwhile firing on the +boats, killing and wounding some of the occupants; but "the main body of +our army soon got to the upper ground, after climbing a hill or rather a +precipice, of about three hundred yards, very steep and covered with +wood and brush." By ten the army was drawn up in order of battle,--"in a +masterly manner," John Nairne said later,--on the Plains of Abraham, the +bag-pipes of the Highlanders screaming a wild defiance to the foe. Then +followed that brief death grapple, fatal to the leader on each side. +Fraser and his Highlanders, we are told, rushed at the enemy with their +broadswords in such irresistible fury that they were driven with a +prodigious slaughter into the town. The Highlanders suffered as much +after the battle as in it, for General Murray led them to reconnoitre in +the direction of the General Hospital and a good many were shot by the +French from bushes and from houses in the suburbs of St. Louis and St. +John. To the French the Highlanders seemed especially ferocious, +possibly owing to the wild music of their pipes, their waving tartans, +their terrible broadswords, and perhaps, also, their partially naked +bodies. They were indeed christened "the savages of Europe." + +Not many days after Wolfe's victory the Highlanders marched into Quebec +with the victorious army. The French garrison was sent away to Europe, +the British fleet itself soon followed, and the conquerors, with General +Murray in command, settled down to face for the first time the rigours +of a winter at Quebec. The Highlanders suffered terribly. One suspects +that, in spite of their protests, the Highland costume was ill-suited to +meet the severity of the climate; and, in any case, the army was +ill-fed, ill-housed, and overworked. Malcolm Fraser kept a journal,[5] +but Nairne, the other future seigneur at Malbaie, the most methodical of +men, was less ready with the pen and appears to have made no chronicle +of those slow but momentous days. The bitter weather was the dread +enemy. Fraser tells how men on duty lost fingers and toes and some were +even deprived of speech and sensation in a few minutes through "the +incredible severity of the frost.... Our regiment in particular is in a +pitiful situation having no breeches. Nothing but the last necessity +obliged any man to go out of doors." Colonel Simon Fraser is, he adds, +doing his best to provide trousers. Pitying nuns observed the need and +soon busied themselves knitting long hose for the poor strangers. The +scurvy carried off a good many. In April, 1760, of 894 men in Fraser's +Highlanders not fewer than 580 were on the sick list and it was a wan +and woe-begone host that set itself grimly to the task of meeting the +assault on Quebec for which the French under Levis had been preparing +throughout the winter. + +When it came on April 28th, 1760, the Highlanders were not wanting. +Instead of fighting behind Quebec's crazy walls Murray marched his men +out to the Plains of Abraham to meet the enemy in the open. On ground +half covered by snow, with here and there deep pools of water from the +heavy rain of the previous day, the two armies grappled in what was +sometimes a hand to hand conflict. Of the British one-third had come +from the hospital to take their places in the ranks. The proportion of +the Highlanders who did this was even greater; half of them rose on that +day from sick beds. It proved a dark day for Britain. Murray was +defeated, losing about one-third of his army on the field. Four of the +Highland officers were killed, twenty-three were wounded, among them +Colonel Simon Fraser himself. Malcolm Fraser was dangerously wounded; +but he tells us gleefully that within twenty days he was entirely cured. +Nairne seems to have gone through the fight without a hurt. It was +surely by a strange turn of fortune that men, some of whom fought +against George II in '45 and had been condemned as traitors, should +fifteen years later shed their blood like water for the same sovereign. +Malcolm Fraser was disposed to be critical of Murray's tactics. He ought +to have stood like a wall on the rising ground near Quebec, says Fraser; +but "his passion for glory getting the better of his reason he ordered +the army to march out and attack the enemy ... in a situation the most +desired by them and [that] ought to be avoided by us as the Canadians +and Savages could be used against us to the greatest advantage in their +beloved ... element, woods." Nearly half a century later when Malcolm +Fraser was giving advice to a young officer, Nairne's son, he advised +him not to be too critical of the actions of his superiors. The +confident young diarist of 1760 had meanwhile learned reserve. But he +was not alone among the Highlanders in his criticism of Murray. A Murray +led at Culloden in April, 1746, as at Quebec in April, 1760. Lieutenant +Charles Stewart was wounded in both battles; as he lay in Quebec +surrounded by brother officers he said, "From April battles and Murray +generals, Good Lord deliver me." It is to General Murray's credit that, +when the remark was repeated to him, he called on his subordinate to +express the hope for better luck next time. + +A little later Quebec was saved by the arrival of a British fleet and +the French fell back on Montreal. Murray followed them but the +Highlanders remained in garrison at Quebec, apparently because, with +half the officers and men invalided, they could make but a poor muster +for active campaigning. It thus happened that Nairne and Fraser did not +share the glory of being present at the fall of Montreal. There, on a +September day in 1760, the Governor of Canada, the Marquis de Vaudreuil, +handed over to General Amherst, the Commander-in-Chief in America of the +armies of Great Britain, the vast territory which he had ruled. It was +not certain, albeit the great Pitt was resolved what to do, that, when +the war ended, the country would not be handed back to France. The +French officers professed, indeed, to believe that a peace was imminent +by which France should save what she held in America. Meanwhile, +however, they and their regiments were to be sent to France. The few +residents at Malbaie whom Captain Gorham had spared, looking out across +the river in October, 1760, saw it dotted with the white sails of many +ships outward bound. Though they floated the British flag, their decks +were crowded with the soldiers of France now carried home by the +triumphant conqueror. + +But more than the soldiers went back to France. Rather than live under +the sway of the British, many civilians also left Canada, among them +some of the seigneurs of Canadian manors. Land was cheap in Canada and +it is not to be wondered at that young British officers, seeking their +fortune, should have thought of settling in the country. A hundred +years earlier French officers of the Carignan Regiment had abandoned +their military careers to become Canadian seigneurs. In the end John +Nairne and Malcolm Fraser took up this project most warmly and in their +plan to get land they had the support of their commanding officer, +General Murray. Murrays, Nairnes and Frasers had all fought on the +Jacobite side in 1745; and we know how the Scots hold together. + +[Illustration: GENERAL JAMES MURRAY] + +James Murray, son of a Scottish peer, Lord Elibank, was himself still a +young man of only a little more than thirty,--a high-spirited, brave, +generous and impulsive officer. His family played some considerable part +in the life of the time and they were always suspected of Jacobite +leanings. Murray's brother, Lord Elibank, was a leader among the +Scottish wits of his day. Dr. Johnson's famous quip against the Scots +when he defined oatmeal as a food in England for horses and in Scotland +for men was met by Elibank's neat retort: "And where will you find such +horses and such men?" Another brother, Alexander, was a forerunner of +John Wilkes the radical; the cry of "Murray and Liberty" was heard in +London long before that of "Wilkes and Liberty." A third brother, George +became an admiral. General James Murray sometimes described himself as a +soldier of fortune. He was certainly not rich. Yet now when many of the +Canadian seigneurs sold their manors, in some way Murray was able to +purchase half a dozen of these vast estates. He bought that of Lauzon +opposite Quebec on which now stands the town of Levis and half a dozen +villages. He bought St. Jean and Sans-Bruit (now Belmont), near Quebec, +Riviere du Loup and Madawaska, on the lower St. Lawrence, and Foucault +on Lake Champlain. + +To Nairne and Fraser, brave young Scots, who had done good service, +Murray was specially attracted. Nairne, though only a lieutenant, till +1761, when he purchased a captaincy, was his junior by but a few years; +Lieutenant Malcolm Fraser was three years younger than Nairne. The young +men were seeking their fortunes but since they had very little money to +buy estates, as Murray did, they could not expect to get land in the +more settled parts of the country. For them Malbaie was a promising +field and in September, 1761, they went down to have a look at it. The +property was vested in the government, for which Murray could act. It +was not wholly untrodden wilderness, for some land was cleared and a +good deal of live stock still remained. The houses too had not been +entirely destroyed by Gorham's men. The war had not yet ended. It was +still uncertain whether Britain would hold Canada. But, for the moment, +there was little to do. It was possible that in Canada further +opportunities of military service would not be wanting. As seigneurs in +Canada the young officers would retain rank as gentlemen and would not +sink to the social level of mere cultivators of the soil. The experience +too of founding settlements in the Canadian wilderness had +compensations. Good sport was always to be had. They could pay at least +annual visits to Quebec for a few weeks, and were, perhaps, hardly more +remote from the cultivated world than some of the chieftains in their +own Scottish Highlands. + +The survey of Malbaie must have proved satisfactory. It is true, as the +young officers said, that there was an over-abundance of "mountains and +morasses," with good land scattered only here and there. But in their +formal proposals to Murray they made this fact the plea for the grant of +a larger area. Nairne apparently had greater resources than Fraser and, +being now a captain, was his senior in rank. He asked for the more +important tract lying west of the little river at Malbaie and stretching +to the seigniory of Les Eboulements, Fraser for that lying east of the +river and stretching some eighteen miles along the St. Lawrence to the +Riviere Noire. The grants were to extend for three leagues into the +interior. They were to be held under seigniorial tenure but Nairne asked +for 3000 acres of freehold and Fraser for 2000. They thus close their +petition to Murray: "This [request], if his Excellency is pleased to +grant, will make the proposers extremely happy, and they shall forever +retain the most grateful remembrance of his bounty; and [they] hope his +Excellency will be pleased in the grant to allow them to give the lands +to be granted such a name as may perpetuate their sense of his great +kindness to them." They got what they asked for. It may indeed be +doubted whether Murray had any right to allot huge areas of land in a +country which had not yet been ceded finally to Great Britain, but any +defects of title in this respect were corrected long after by new grants +under the great seal. As it was, Murray wrote on a sheet of ordinary +foolscap, still preserved at Murray Bay, a brief deed of the land[6] +and, behold, the two young officers have become landed proprietors! To +their request for permission to use Murray's name, in grateful +remembrance of his kindness, he also assented. Nairne's seigniory was to +be called Murray's Bay and Fraser's Mount Murray. The grants were made +because "it is a national advantage and tends to promote the cultivation +of lands within the province to encourage His Majesty's natural-born +subjects settling within the same"; and the consideration was "the +faithful services" rendered by the two officers. + +A good deal of stock and farm implements remained at Malbaie and this +the new proprietors arranged to buy, giving in payment their promissory +notes, Nairne's for L85, 6s. 8d., currency and Fraser, who got only +one-third, his for L42, 13s. 4d. They seem to have had a good deal for +their money. There were a score and a half or so of cattle, four or five +horses, (one of them twenty-two years old), twenty sheep, fourteen pigs, +besides chickens and other living creatures. In addition there were +waggons and other farm appliances, most of them probably old and of +little use, though they must have helped to tide over the first +difficult days when everything would have to be provided. + +On getting his grant Nairne retired from the army on half pay, but +Fraser remained on active service for many years still. Thus Nairne was +the more continuously resident at Murray Bay and in its development he +played the greater part. Fraser's interests were divided, not only +between Murray Bay and the army, but also between Murray Bay and another +seigniory which he secured on the south side of the river at Riviere du +Loup and known as Fraserville. For us therefore the interest at Murray +Bay now centres chiefly in Nairne and his family. + +[Footnote 3: The name Simon Fraser appears with credit more than once in +Canadian history. It was a Simon Fraser who crossed the Rocky Mountains +and first followed for its whole course the Fraser River named after +him.] + +[Footnote 4: Waverley, Chapter II.] + +[Footnote 5: See Appendix A., p. 249. "Journal of Malcolm Fraser, First +Seigneur of Mount Murray, Malbaie."] + +[Footnote 6: See copy of the grant in Appendix B., p. 271.] + + + + +CHAPTER III + +JOHN NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + + Colonel Nairne's portrait.--His letters.--The first Scottish + settlers at Malbaie.--Nairne's finance.--His tasks.--The cure's + work.--The Scottish settlers and their French wives.--The Church + and Education.--Nairne's efforts to make Malbaie Protestant.--His + war on idleness.--The character of the habitant.--Fishing at + Malbaie.--Trade at Malbaie.--Farming at Malbaie.--Nairne's + marriage.--Career and death in India of Robert Nairne.--The Quebec + Act and its consequences for the habitant. + + +In the dining room of the Manor House at Murray Bay Nairne's portrait +still hangs. It was painted, probably in Scotland, when he was an old +man, by an artist, to me unknown. The face is refined, showing +kindliness and gentleness in the lines of the mouth, and revealing the +"friendly honest man" that he aspired to be. His nose is big and in +spite of the prevailing gentleness of demeanour the thin lips, pressed +together, indicate some vigour of character. He has the watery eye of +old age and this takes away somewhat from the impression of energy. It +is not a clever face but honest, rather sad, and unmistakeably Scottish +in type. Nairne wears the red coat of the British officer and a wig in +the fashion of the time. The portrait might be one of a frequenter of +court functions in London rather than that of a hardy pioneer at Murray +Bay, who had carried on a stern battle with the wilderness. + +Nairne was a good letter writer. To his kin in Scotland he sent from the +beginning voluminous annual epistles. They are not such as we now write, +hurriedly scratched off in a few minutes. With abundant time at his +disposal Nairne could write what must have occupied many days. When +written, the letters were sometimes copied in a book almost as large as +an office ledger. It is well that this was done, for in this book is +preserved almost the sole record of the life at Murray Bay of a century +and a half ago. The pages are still fresh and the handwriting, while not +that of one much accustomed to use the pen, is clear and vigorous. The +zeal for copying letters was intermittent. There are gaps, covering many +years. Then, for a time, not only the letters sent, but those received, +are copied into the book. In the long winter evenings there was not much +to do. Malcolm Fraser, it is true, lived just across the river at the +neighbouring manor house. But Malcolm was more usually away than not. +Besides, as one grows older, there is no place like one's own fireside +of a winter evening. So our good seigneur read and dozed and wrote and +we are grateful that he has told us so much about past days. + +Nairne's first visit to Malbaie was, as we have seen, in the autumn of +1761, when he took possession of his seigniory. Not until the following +year was the formal grant made by Murray. Long afterwards, in 1798, +writing to a friend, Hepburn, in Scotland, Nairne recalled his arrival +at his future home. "I came here first in 1761 with five soldiers [alas, +we do not know their names!] and procured some Canadian servants. One +small house contained us all for several years and [we] were separated +from every other people for about eighteen miles without any road." He +contrasts this with what he sees about him at the time of writing--a +parish with more than five hundred inhabitants, with one hundred men +capable of bearing arms, grist mills, fisheries, good houses and barns, +fertile fields, a priest, a chapel, and so on. The five soldiers of whom +Nairne speaks were no doubt men of the 78th Highlanders and ancestors of +a goodly portion of the population of Malbaie at the present time. +Perhaps some of them had fought at Culloden; certainly all fought at +Louisbourg and Quebec. + +In the first days at Murray Bay Nairne was in debt. In 1761, probably to +purchase his captaincy, he had incurred a considerable obligation to his +friend General Murray; where Murray got L400 to lend him is a mystery, +for he was himself always pressed for funds. With everything to do at +Murray Bay, mills to be built, roads to be opened, a manor house to be +constructed, it was not easy to get together any money; for years the +debt hung like a mill-stone round Nairne's neck. But he had always a +certain, if small, revenue in his half pay and, in time, he acquired, +chiefly by inheritance, what was, for that period in Canada, a +considerable fortune. In 1766, when Nairne was in Scotland, General +Murray, who had himself just arrived from Canada, wrote urgently to ask +for payment. Murray owed to a Mr. Ross L8,000 and could not borrow one +shilling in England on his estates in Canada; so he said "delay will be +a very terrible disappointment to me." But this disappointment he had to +bear. In 1770 the debt was still unpaid and may have remained so for +some years longer. Happily the friendship between the former comrades +was not impaired by their financial relations. Murray promised to put +Nairne in the way of being "very comfortable and easy" in Canada, if he +would follow his advice, but nothing came of his offer. For some years +after 1761 Nairne thought of returning to Scotland, whither ties of kin +drew him strongly. But his father's death in 1766 or 1767 helped to +weaken these ties. In any case Scotland offered no career and he must do +something to pay the debt to Murray and to provide for himself. + +Nairne's chief task as seigneur was to put settlers on his huge tract. +The seigneur, indeed, discharged functions similar to those of a modern +colonization company, but with differences that in some respects favour +the older system. Now-a-days the occupier buys the land and the +colonization company gets the best possible price for what it has to +sell; it can hold for a rise in value and, if it likes, can refuse to +sell at all. Nairne had no such powers. Under the law, if a reputable +person applied for land, he must let him have it. Settlers required no +capital to buy their land, and, as long as they paid their merely +nominal rent, they could not be disturbed in their holdings. The rent +amounted to about one cent an acre, and some twenty cents or a live +capon for each of the two or three arpents of frontage which a farm +would have. The rent charge was uniform and depended not upon the +quality of the land or upon the individual seigneur but upon what was +usual in the district; moreover, under the French law, no matter how +valuable the land became, the rent could not be increased and, though so +trifling, it was rarely required until the settler's farm had begun to +be productive. Sometimes in a single year Nairne would put as many as +twenty brawny young fellows on his land to hew out homes for themselves. +Each of them got a tract of about one hundred acres and, as the annual +rental received for a dozen farms would be hardly more than twenty +dollars, the seigneur reaped no great profit from his tenants. It was +only when a tenant sold a holding, that the seigneur secured any +considerable sum. To him then went one-twelfth of the price. The other +chief source of profit, as settlement increased, was from the +seigneur's mill. To it all the occupiers of his land must bring their +grain and pay a fixed charge for its grinding. In scattered settlements +the mill brought little profit and was a source of expense rather than +of income. But, as population increased, this "_droit de banalite_" +became valuable. The mill at Malbaie was, in time, very prosperous. + +In Canada the seigneur was not the oppressor of his people but rather +their watchful guardian. He planned roads and other improvements, +checked abuses, and enforced justice. At his side stood, usually, the +priest. The moment a parish was established a cure was entitled to the +tithe; near every manor house, the village church was sure to spring up. +Even when, as at Malbaie, the priest and the seigneur were not of the +same faith they were often fast friends. Nairne's relations were good +with the neighbouring cure, when, at length, Malbaie had a resident +priest. Each village would thus usually have at least two men of some +culture working together for its spiritual and temporal interests. Both +remained in touch with the outside world; the priest with his bishop at +Quebec, the seigneur with the representative there of the sovereign. +Upon each change of governor Nairne was required to appear at Quebec to +render fealty and homage. With head uncovered and wearing neither sword +nor spur he must kneel before the governor, and take oath on the +Gospels to be faithful to the king, to be party to nothing against his +interests, to perform all the duties required by the terms of his +holding, and, especially, to appear in arms to defend the province if +attacked. We find Nairne excused by General Haldimand in 1781 from +discharging this ceremony, but only because he was away on active +service. + +When Nairne settled at Murray Bay he was unmarried and so, no doubt, +were the soldiers he brought with him. Only after five or six years did +he himself find a wife but we may be sure that his men did not wait so +long. What more natural than that they should marry the French Canadian +servants of whom Nairne speaks? A visitor at Murray Bay is struck with +names like McNicol, Harvey, Blackburn, McLean, and one or two others +that have a decidedly North British ring. Some, if not all, are names of +one or other of the half dozen soldiers who settled at Murray Bay in +Nairne's time. There was no disbanding there of a regiment, as tradition +has it. In time the 78th Highlanders were disbanded, but certainly not +at Murray Bay, and, though hundreds of them remained in Canada, only a +few individual soldiers came to Nairne's settlement. Already when he +arrived French Canadians were there and from the first the community was +prevailingly French and Catholic. In 1784 when joined with Les +Eboulements and Isle aux Coudres under a single priest Malbaie already +had 65 communicants. As likely as not some even of the Highlanders were +Catholics. In any case their children became such and spoke French, the +tongue of their mothers; even Nairne's own children spoke only French +until they went to Quebec to school. + +When, from time to time, a missionary priest visited the place he +baptized children of Catholic and Protestant alike, including even the +children of the Protestant family in the manor house. The only religious +services that the people ever shared in were those of the Roman Catholic +Church. Nairne would have wished it otherwise. He held sturdy Protestant +views, and wished to bring in Protestant settlers. On one or more of his +visits to Scotland he made efforts to induce Scots to move to Canada. +But he met with no great success. A Scottish friend, Gilchrist, who had +visited Nairne at Murray Bay, writes, in 1775, to express hope that he +will not encourage French settlers who will rob him, who have +"disingenuous, lying, cheating, detestable dispositions," and are the +"banes of society." He adds, "I am glad you give me reason to believe +you are to carry over some industrious honest people from hence with +you. I am convinced 'twere easy by introducing a few such [to bring +about that] the dupes to the most foolish and absurd religion now in the +world might be warmed out and your quiet as well as interest established +from Point au Pique to the Lake."[7] The Roman Catholic faith had more +vitality than Nairne's correspondent supposed. It was Protestantism that +should in time be "warmed out" of Murray Bay. + +To prevent this Nairne did what he could; for a long time he entertained +hopes not only that the Protestants at Murray Bay might be held to their +faith but also that the Roman Catholics would be led into the Protestant +fold. His chief complaint against the Roman Catholic Church was in +regard to education. There was woeful ignorance. Nairne was in command +of the local militia and he found that officers of militia, and even a +neighbouring seigneur, could not read. When Roman Catholic services were +held at Murray Bay, as they were regularly before he died, the tongue +was one that the people did not understand. At the services there was +nothing "but a few lighted candles, in defyance of the sun, and the +priest singing and reading Latin or Greek.... None of us understands a +word." He complains of "the greatest deficiency in preaching sentiments +of morality and virtue." Indeed, very few of the priests could preach or +say anything in public beyond the Latin mass. Nairne tried to secure +better means of educating his people. Probably earlier also, but +certainly in 1791, he was writing to the Anglican Bishop of Quebec to +help him to do something. He lives, he says, in "the most Northerly and, +I believe, the poorest parish on the Continent of America." The people +cannot read and have no literary amusement. Their idle days they spend +in drunkenness and debauchery and he wishes something done for them. Ten +years later Nairne is returning to the charge. There are five Protestant +families in the neighbourhood. They cannot even be baptized except by +the cure. They cannot get any Protestant instruction; so the Protestant +children are reared Roman Catholics. Nairne wished to have a Protestant +clergyman established at Murray Bay; he could make that place his +headquarters and carry on missionary work in the neighbouring parishes. +But the five Protestant families at Murray Bay soon became three, for +Nairne says, in 1801, that his and Colonel Fraser's families and one +other man, an Englishman, are the only remaining Protestants. He and +Fraser, he adds, are growing old and, in any case, it was doubtful +whether the Englishman would attend service. + +Yet Nairne still begged for a Protestant missionary. He desired most of +all a free school. The teacher should be, he says, French but able also +to preach in English; there was now no school at Murray Bay; a free +school and a church system which would release the people from paying +tithes could work wonders and, probably, most of the people would soon +become Protestants. Knowing the tenacity with which the French +Canadians have clung to their faith, it seems hardly likely that +Nairne's dreams would have been realized. At any rate nothing was done. +At that time there were hardly more than a dozen Anglican clergymen in +all Canada and the Bishop of Quebec had no one to spare to look after +the few scattered sheep at Murray Bay. On the other hand the rival +Church did not forget her own. Long before the British conquest +occasional services had been held at Malbaie and these were continued, +with some regularity, until a resident priest came in 1797. The visiting +priests worked hard. They were, Nairne says, "industrious in private to +confess the people, especially the women, which branch of their duty is +deemed most sacred and necessary." Against this tremendous power of the +confessional, Protestantism had nothing that could be called an opposing +influence. When a Protestant died he might not, of course, be buried in +the Roman Catholic burial ground. For these outcast dead Nairne set +aside a plot near his own house, where, still, under a little clump of +trees, their bones lie, neglected and forgotten. Not more than half a +dozen Protestants were ever buried there and this shows that even the +Protestant pioneers were few in number; hardly one of their children +remained outside the Roman Church. + +Nairne thought the Canadians not too prone to industry and he deplored +the multitude of religious holidays that gave an excuse for idleness. +In a year there were not less than forty, in addition to Sundays, and on +some of the holidays, such as that of the patron saint of the parish, +there were scenes of great disorder. Nairne wrote on the subject to the +Roman Catholic Bishop of Quebec asking him to take steps to ensure that +the people might come to think it not sinful but virtuous to work for +six days in the week. The Bishop promised consideration of the matter. +Already it had been under debate and in the end the Bishop gave orders +that labour might continue on most of the Church's festivals; that of +the patron saint of the parish was in time abolished. Nairne thus helped +to bring about a considerable industrial reform. But beyond this he +achieved little. + +The French Canadians, who occupied his vacant acres, have shown both a +marvellous tenacity for their own customs and also a fecundity that has +enabled people, numbering 60,000 at the time of the British conquest, to +multiply now to some 2,500,000, scattered over the United States and +Canada. To govern them has never been an easy problem. Nairne says that +the French officer, Bougainville, who had known the Canadians in many +campaigns, called them at Murray's table a brave and submissive people; +he thought they needed the strong hand of authority and added that he +was sure the British method of government would soon spoil them. Under +the French regime they had had no gleam of political liberty. For twenty +years before the conquest France had exacted from them the fullest +possible measure of military service. The British ended this and brought +liberty. Its growth is sometimes so rapid as to be noxious, and, no +doubt, some of those who came to Nairne's domain gave him much trouble. +"No people," Nairne said of them, "stand more in awe of punishment when +convinced that there is power to inflict it, as none are so easily +spoiled as to be mutinous by indulgences." Some of them showed striking +intelligence: in 1784 we find Nairne recommending for appointment as +Notary one Malteste (no doubt the well-known name Maltais is a later +form) as a "remarkable honest, well-behaved countryman with more +education than is commonly to be found with one in his station." The +dwellers at Malbaie were for the most part a quiet people entirely +untouched by the movements of the outside world. "Nothing here," wrote +Nairne in 1798, "is considered of importance but producing food to +satisfy craving Stomachs, which the people of this cold and healthy +country remarkably possess, and to feed numbers of children.... They +have no other ambition or consideration whatever but simply to procure +food and raiment for themselves and their numerous families." + +They had a very clear idea of their rights. Nairne's grant conferred +upon him those of fishing and hunting. But the inhabitants declared that +when land was once granted, the seigneur lost all control over the +adjoining waters. Nairne wished, for instance, to prohibit the spearing +of salmon at night by the Canadians, with the aid of torches or +lanterns. But they had never been hampered by such restrictions and, +when Nairne tried to check them, they said that they would not be +hindered. It was in vain that he said "I had rather have no power at all +and no seigneurie at all [than] not to be able to keep up the rights of +it." When, in 1797, he ordered one Joseph Villeneuve to cease the +"flambeau" fishing at night, the fellow "roared and bellowed" and set +him at defiance; no less than twenty companions joined him in the +fishing. They would acknowledge no law nor restraint and seem to have +had _force majeure_ on their side. It was not until long after that the +legislature at Quebec passed strict laws regulating the modes of +fishing. + +Whatever the limitations on the seigneur's authority he had the +undoubted right of control over fishing in rivers and lakes until the +adjacent lands were conceded to occupiers. It was important, therefore, +not to grant lands which carried with them the best fishing and Nairne's +ardent friend Gilchrist kept exhorting him from Scotland on this point. +"There is no place ... I would so willingly and happily pass life in," +he wrote, in 1775, "as in your Neighbourhood and often have I been +seized with the memory of your easy and uncontrolled way of rising, +lying, dancing, drinking, &c., at your habitation.... One hope ... I +wish to be well founded and that is that your Stewart, Factor or +Attorney, has not conceded any lands with the River in front from the +Rapides du Vieux Moulin. If otherwise, you have lost more than the +profits [which] all above Brassar's will yield in our lifetime. The +fishing in that part of the River is alone worth crossing the Atlantic." + +Over trade Nairne and Fraser tried to exercise some real control. Their +grants gave them no right to trade with the Indians and in reality no +authority over trade. But they were guardians of the law and took steps +to check traders from violating it. One Brassard, who lived up the +Murray River, seems to have been a frequent offender. It was easy to +debauch the Indians with drink and then to get their furs for very +little and the seigneurs needed always to be alert. In 1778 we find +Malcolm Fraser making with one Hugh Blackburn a bargain which outlines +what the seigneurs tried to do in regard to trade. Blackburn binds +himself in the sum of L200 to obey certain restrictions: he will not +attempt to debauch the Indians belonging to the King's Posts; in no +circumstances will he sell them liquor; nor will he sell liquor on +credit to anyone. He will obey the lawful orders of Nairne and Fraser +relative to the carrying on of his trade; he will pay his debts, and +will make others pay what they owe him, refusing them credit if accounts +are not paid within six months. In consideration of these pledges by +Blackburn Fraser guarantees his credit with the Quebec merchants. The +difficulty in regard to trade with the Indians settled itself by the +tragic remedy of their gradual extinction. In 1800 Nairne says that the +Micmacs, once a great nuisance, are now rarely seen. + +Nairne was a good farmer and his letters contain many references to +farming operations. At Murray Bay, he says, plowing goes on for seven +months in the year, from the middle of April to the middle of November. +But the Canadians do not plough well; they do not understand how to +preserve the crops when cut; and, on the whole, are backward in +agriculture. He himself preserved for a domain more land than he could +ever get cleared, for this clearing was heavy work. Some of the soil at +Murray Bay is very good. Gilchrist writes indeed to say that he has been +talking in Scotland about Nairne's land. "On my mentioning that you had +lime, without digging for it, it was acknowledged that you possessed all +the advantages possible and that anything might be done with ground such +as yours which is dry; and I verily believe would you thoroughly lime +your land you may keep it in crops as long as you please and have +prodigious returns." Good farming, he says, Nairne may have and he +should preserve good fishing; then Murray Bay will be perfect. "If I +have the pleasure of seeing your sisters, I'll represent Mal Bay as the +counterpart of Paradise before the fall." He adds some local +characterizations. "Catish will do for Eve, La Grange for Adam, and +Dufour for the Devil." + +Nairne was married in 1766 to Christiana Emery. Of her history I know +nothing, except that she was born in Edinburgh and married in Canada. +Soon after marriage Nairne paid a long visit to Scotland and there in +1767 the freedom of the borough of Sterling was conferred upon him. Mrs. +Nairne must have been considerably younger than her husband, for though +he lived to ripe old age, she survived him by twenty-six years, dying at +Murray Bay in 1828. Whether she brought any dowry I do not know; Nairne +certainly had had in mind the improvement of his position by marrying. +Nine children were born to them but three died in childhood of an +epidemic fever that broke out at Murray Bay in 1773 while Nairne was in +Scotland. A fourth child, Anne, died of consumption. Five children lived +to grow up--three daughters and two sons. + +Canada seemed so remote that it was not easy for Nairne to keep in touch +with his kin. The scattering of families, one of the penalties Imperial +Britain, with a world wide domain, imposes upon her sons, had taken +Nairne's brother Robert to India. At a time only ten years later than +Clive's great victory of Plassey, Britain's grasp on the country was, as +yet, by no means certain and India was amazingly remote; five years +usually elapsed between the sending of a letter to India from Canada and +the receipt of a reply! On January 5th, 1770, Robert Nairne writes from +Marlborough, India, acknowledging a letter from his brother John, only +recently received, dated April 21, 1767. The brothers discuss family +news and family plans, their old father's health, the desirability of +settling down at home in Scotland, the life each is living, remote from +that home. Though an officer, Robert engaged in trade and made some +money. "The Company's pay is hardly subsistence," he says, "and here we +have not, as on t'other side of India the spoils of plundered provinces +to grow fat on. I keep my health very well and if I want the +satisfaction, I am also free from many Anxietys, people are subject to +who are more in the glare of life." He was in a retired place, where +there were few people and perennial summer, with "no variety of seasons +nor of anything else." Time passes insensibly, he says; "in India years +are like months in Europe ... I write, read, walk and go in company the +same round nearly throughout the year. Here we have little company; yet +everyone wants to go to out settlements where they are quite alone. I +cannot account for it. Mal Bay is your out settlement. Do you like that +as well as Quebec?" + +Robert Nairne was something of a philosopher. "Have you ever so much +philosophy," he writes to the seigneur of Murray Bay in 1767, "as to +think everything that happens is for the best? I am so far of that mind +that content and discontent I think arises [_sic_] rather from the cast +of our own thoughts than from outward accidents and that there is nearly +an equal distribution of the means of happiness to all men, and that +they are the happiest that improve their means the most." He felt the +weariness of exile, the Scot's longing for his own land. "Certainly to a +person of a right tone of mind if there are enjoyments in life, it must +be in our own country amongst our friends and relations. With such +conditions the bare necessaries of life are better than riches without +them.... Death is but a limited absence and you and I are much in that +state with regard to our friends at home." + +It was not long before Robert Nairne's letters ceased altogether. In +1776, John Nairne received at Murray Bay the sad news that, in November +or December, 1774, his brother had been killed in a petty expedition +against some local tribesmen. A native chieftain had murdered, cooked +and eaten a rival who was friendly to the East India Company and Robert +Nairne with some natives, and only three Europeans, went up country, +through woods and bogs, to seize the offender. When there was fighting +his natives fled, and he was shot through the body. It was a pity, says +John Nairne's correspondent, Hepburn, to lose his life "in so silly a +manner." He would soon have been governor of Bencoolen and was in a way +to make "a great figure in life." Of his fortune of L6,000 John Nairne +received a part. Twenty-five years after his brother's death Nairne was +to get at Murray Bay similar news of the loss of his own son in distant +India. It has levied a heavy tribute of Britain's best blood. + +In 1774 Nairne again revisited Scotland. Though no politician, he must +have heard much about the Quebec Act, then before the Imperial +Parliament. The Governor of Canada, Sir Guy Carleton, after careful +consideration of the whole question, had reached the conclusion, not +belied by subsequent history, as far as the Province of Quebec is +concerned, that Canada would always be French and that, with some slight +modifications, the French system found there by Britain should be given +final and legal status under British supremacy. So the Quebec Act was +passed in 1774. While the British criminal law was introduced, the +French civil law, including the land system under which Nairne held +Murray Bay, was left unchanged. The Bill gave the Church the same +privileged position that it had enjoyed under Catholic sovereigns. The +tithe could be collected by legal process; taxation for church purposes +voted by the parochial authority called the _fabrique_ was as compulsory +as civil taxes, unless the person taxed declared that he was not a Roman +Catholic; and the whole ecclesiastical system of New France was +supported and encouraged. The Bill caused much irritation in Protestant +New England, which saw some malicious design in the establishment of +Roman Catholicism on its borders. The Continental Congress of 1775 +denounced the Quebec Act, and even the Declaration of Independence has +something to say about it. + +It is obvious that Nairne disliked the Bill. His irrepressible friend, +Gilchrist, wrote giving a picture of its probable dire social results, +upsetting all domestic relations between the two races. The Bill, says +Gilchrist, "is the most pernicious [that] could have been devised. Judge +of the Fetes now that the fools have got the sanction of the British +Parliament to their beggaring principles. It is not clear that your +Protestant servants will [even] be allowed to work upon their [the Roman +Catholic] idle days. What would you and I think on being told by these +black rascals [the priests are meant of course] that our people, I mean +Protestants, durst not obey our orders without a dispensation from +them?" + +The social consequences of the Quebec Act did not prove as revolutionary +as Nairne's animated correspondent feared. Less than is usually supposed +did the habitant like it since it placed him again under the priest's +and the seigneur's authority, suspended since the British conquest. To +the English colonies it added one to other causes of friction that boded +trouble to the British Empire. In the previous year the people of Boston +had defied Britain, by throwing into their harbour cargoes of tea upon +which the owners proposed to pay a hated duty, levied by outside +authority. The Quebec Act brought a final rupture a step nearer and at +last there was open war. "The colonists have brought things to a crisis +now, indeed;" wrote Gilchrist; "the consequences must be dreadful to +them soon and I am afraid in the end to our country." To Great Britain +indeed disastrous they were to be and soon the seigneur of Murray Bay +was busy with his share in preparing for the conflict. + +[Footnote 7: The Lake is no doubt Lake Nairne, the present Grand Lac.] + + + + +CHAPTER IV + +JOHN NAIRNE IN THE AMERICAN REVOLUTION + + Nairne's work among the French Canadians.--He becomes Major of the + Royal Highland Emigrants.--Arnold's march through the wilderness to + Quebec.--Quebec during the Siege, 1775-76.--The habitants and the + Americans.--Montgomery's plans.--The assault on December 31st, + 1775.--Malcolm Fraser gives the alarm in Quebec.--Montgomery's + death.--Arnold's attack.--Nairne's heroism.--Arnold's failure.--The + American fire-ship.--The arrival of a British fleet.--The retreat + of the Americans.--Nairne's later service in the War.--Isle aux + Noix and Carleton Island.--Sir John Johnson and the desolation of + New York.--Nairne and the American prisoners at Murray Bay.--Their + escape and capture.--Nairne and the Loyalists.--The end of the + War.--Nairne's retirement to Murray Bay. + + +When war with the revolted colonies grew imminent, it was obvious that a +man of Nairne's experience in military matters would soon be needed. One +aim of the government was to keep the French Canadians quiet by +disarming their prejudices and impressing upon them their duty to George +III. From Quebec, on July 13th, 1775, Nairne was given instructions to +undertake this work for his district. Self-control and cool +persuasiveness fitted him for his task, he was told; his work would be +to visit all the parishes on the north shore, with the aim of winning +the loyal support of the French Canadians during the coming struggle. +Though fifteen years of tranquility under the mild British sway had made +the habitants prosperous and averse to war, it was still possible to get +from them useful military service, under the leadership of British +officers. Nairne was to tell them that the Americans would borrow their +dollars, take their provisions, pay for them only in worthless letters +of credit upon the Congress, and even make free with their lands. He was +to show, also, how bitterly the Protestant English colonies hated the +Roman Catholic faith of the Canadians. A British fleet, he was to add, +would soon arrive and, if the Canadians joined the revolt, the second +British conquest would be shorter and not quite so gentle as the first; +for "a fair and open enemy is a different thing from a rebel and a +traitor." + +Fifteen years earlier the Canadians had borne a heavy part in defending +their country against the British assailant; now they were to fight in +his interests. Whenever possible Nairne was to employ the same old +Captains of militia who had fought the battles of France against the +British; he was to make a roll of those fit to bear arms, and to report +the number of discharged soldiers in his district. To him were entrusted +commissions for Captains whom he might select; the inferior officers he +might also name. The Church aided his work as much as possible, the +Vicar-General sending to the priests instructions to this effect. + +On taking up his task Nairne found that at Murray Bay there were +thirty-two men between the ages of 16 and 55. When summoned to meet him +they were respectful, but showed fear of having to serve in the army and +pleaded that they were only a new settlement. Had there been, as is so +generally supposed, many disbanded soldiers among them we should have +had a different tale but, already, in 1775, most of the people at Murray +Bay were French. Neither they nor their neighbours showed any zeal for +the upholding of British rule in Canada. At Les Eboulements and Baie St. +Paul, whither Nairne went, the inhabitants were respectful, as at Murray +Bay, but also objected to military service. At Isle aux Coudres they +disregarded Nairne's summons to meet him, while at St. Anne de Beaupre +they made open manifestations of hostility. + +In the actual fighting, now imminent, Nairne was eager to take part, +and, on August 12th, he wrote to Sir Guy Carleton offering himself for +any service and applying for a vacant captaincy. On the 9th of September +he received an urgent summons to Quebec, and, from that time, for six or +seven years, he was engaged in the great fratricidal struggle. + +Again, in a time of crisis, Great Britain made special use of the +Highlanders. Many of those who had served during the conquest of Canada +had become settlers in the New World. Now at the call to arms some of +them--between one and two hundred--rallied again to fight Britain's +battles. They were formed into a regiment known as the Royal Highland +Emigrants. It was not a regular corps but was organized for this special +campaign only. Nairne's rank in the regular army was that of Captain; +now he was given the duty of Major, though this promotion was not yet +permanent. Malcolm Fraser served in the same corps as Captain and +Paymaster. The commanding officer, Colonel Allan McLean, was brave and +indefatigable and he and his Highlanders played a creditable part in the +work of saving Canada for Britain. + +When the American colonies saw that the war was inevitable they saw too +that Quebec was the key of the situation. Washington himself declared +that in favour of the holders of Quebec would the balance turn in the +great conflict. From the outset there was an eager desire to attack the +Canadian capital. Washington believed--with some truth, indeed,--that +its defences were ridiculous. He thought, too, that the Governor, Sir +Guy Carleton, had no money to buy even provisions, that the Canadians +were eager to throw off the yoke of Great Britain and to co-operate with +the revolted colonies, and that some even of the few regulars to be +found in Quebec would join the colonial army. To take Quebec seemed, +therefore, comparatively easy, and the task was undertaken by a man with +a sinister name for posterity as a traitor to the young republic, but a +vigorous and able officer,--Colonel Benedict Arnold. Wolfe's role Arnold +essayed to play and Wolfe's fame he fondly hoped would be his. + +A fundamental difference existed, however, between Arnold's task and +that of Wolfe. Wolfe's army had been carried to Quebec in ships; +Arnold's was to advance by land. He chose the shortest route to Quebec +from the New England seaboard. It lay through the untrodden wilderness +and its difficulties were terrible. Half of it was up the Kennebec river +along whose shallow upper reaches the men would have to drag their boats +on chill autumn days in water sometimes to their waists; then they must +take them over the steep watershed dividing the waters flowing northward +to the St. Lawrence from those flowing southward to the Atlantic. Even +when they embarked on the upper waters of the Chaudiere, which flows +into the St. Lawrence near Quebec, the hardships were killing. The +numerous rapids and falls on that swift and turbulent river would wreck +their boats. At the time no fleet defended Quebec. If, instead of +advancing by this land route, the Americans had been able to bring, by +sea, an adequate force as Wolfe had done, the later history of Canada +might indeed have been different. + +Arnold set out in the middle of September with 1100 or 1200 men,--"the +very flower of the colonial youth" they have been called. Many were +hardy frontier men trained in Indian wars, who knew well the +difficulties of the wilderness. But now they were face to face with +something more difficult than they had ever before encountered. When one +Parson Emerson had committed the enterprise to the divine care in a +prayer that, tradition says, lasted for one hour and three-quarters, the +army began its struggle across the dreadful three hundred miles of +forest. The swollen rivers swept away much ammunition and food, until +upon the army settled down the horror of starvation. The boats proved to +be badly built; their crews were always wet and shivering. At night the +men had sometimes to gather on a narrow footing of dry land in the midst +of a swamp and huddled over a fire that at any moment rain might +extinguish. The cold became terrible. Many lay down by the trail to die. +When the journey was half over, Colonel Enos, deeming it useless to lead +the force farther amid such conditions, turned back. With him went some +hundreds of men; but Arnold held on grimly. He pushed ahead to get +succour for his starving force from the Canadian settlements near +Quebec. With a few boats and canoes his party committed themselves to +the Chaudiere river. In two hours Arnold was swept down twenty miles, +steering as best he could through the rapids, and avoiding the rocks, in +the angry river. At one place all his boats and canoes were carried over +a fall and capsized, the occupants struggling to land. But this reckless +courage did wonders. By October 30th, after more than a month of +unspeakable hardship, Arnold had reached the borderland of civilization +in Canada, and was sending back provisions to his men. It is little +short of marvellous that at Point Levi on November 9th he could muster +six hundred men, five hundred of whom were fit for duty. + +The Canadians and Indians had been very friendly; without their aid the +greater part of Arnold's force would have perished. Even before Quebec +he was dependent on their kindly offices. Its defenders, among whom were +Nairne and Fraser, moved every boat to the north side of the St. +Lawrence; the frigate _Lizard_ and the sloop-of-war _Hunter_, pigmy +representatives at Quebec of Britain's might upon the sea, lay near +Wolfe's Cove ready to attack him if he tried to cross. But the Indians +brought canoes and on the night of November 13th, silently and +unobserved, they carried Arnold's force across the river almost under +the bows of the ships watching for them. The Americans landed where +Wolfe had landed sixteen years earlier. On the morning of the 14th, to +the surprise of Quebec's garrison, a body of Americans appeared on the +Plains of Abraham, not eight hundred yards from the walls, and gave +three loud huzzas. The British answered with three cheers and with the +more effective retort of cannon, loaded with grape and canister shot, +and the hardy pioneers of Arnold's attacking force retired. + +Quebec was not in a happy situation. Montreal had already fallen to the +Americans advancing by Lake Champlain, and to force the final surrender +of Canada General Montgomery was hurrying to join Arnold at Quebec. For +a time its defenders were uncertain whether Carleton himself, absent at +Montreal, had not fallen into the hands of the enemy. A miraculous +escape he indeed had. Leaving Montreal on a dark night, when the +Americans were already within the town, Carleton went in a skiff down +the river, both shores of which were already occupied by the enemy for +fifty miles below Montreal. At the narrows at Berthier their blazing +camp fires sent light far out over the surface of the water. Carleton's +party could hear the sentry's shout of "All's Well," and the barking of +dogs. But they let the boat float down with the current so that it might +look like drifting timber, and, when they could, impelled it silently +with their hands. At Three Rivers they thought themselves safe and +Carleton lay down in a house to sleep. But, while he was resting, some +American soldiers entered the house. His disguise as a peasant saved +him; he passed out unchecked. The skiff soon carried him to an armed +brig, the _Fell_, which lay at the foot of the Richelieu Rapids. He +hastened on to Quebec, which showed joy unspeakable when he arrived on +November 19th. Meanwhile Montgomery pursued his rival down the river and +on December 1st he joined Arnold before Quebec. + +Now the siege began in earnest. Carleton had 1800 men; Arnold and +Montgomery can hardly have had more than a thousand, and these were +badly equipped. For the Americans the prospects of success were, at no +time, very great, unless they could secure help from the Canadians. +This, indeed, was not wholly wanting. Montgomery's march along the north +shore of the St. Lawrence to Quebec was a veritable triumph. He promised +to the habitants liberty, freedom from heavy taxes, the abolition of the +seigneurs' rights and other good things. Some of the Canadians hoped +that, in joining the Americans, they were hastening the restoration of +France's power in Canada--an argument however of little weight with +many, who remembered grim days of hard service and starvation when, +without appreciation or reward, they had fought France's battle. The +habitants were, in truth, friendly enough to the Americans; but they +would not fight for them. The invaders tried to arouse the fear of the +peasantry by a tale that when the British caught sixty rebel Canadians, +they had hanged them over the ramparts of Quebec, without time even to +say "Lord, have mercy upon me," and had thrown their bodies to the dogs. +But this only made the habitants think it as well perhaps not to take +arms openly against such stern masters. The Church's weight was wholly +on the British side. Canadians who joined the rebel Americans died +without her last rites. Only one priest, M. de Lotbiniere, a man, it is +said, of profligate character, espoused the cause of the invaders. For +doing so he was promised a bishopric: to see Puritan New Englanders +offering a bishopric in the Roman Catholic Church as a reward for +service, is not without its humour. + +As December wore on Montgomery grew eager to seize his prey. Carleton +sat unmoved behind his walls and allowed the enemy to invest the town. +He would hold no communication with the rebel army. When Montgomery sent +messengers to the gates, under a flag of truce, Carleton would not +receive them; the only message he would take, he said, would be an +appeal to the mercy of the King, against whom they were in rebellion. +Montgomery, too, showed for his foe lofty scorn, in words at least. On +December 15th in General Orders he spoke of "the wretched garrison" +posted behind the walls of Quebec, "consisting of sailors unacquainted +with the use of arms, of citizens incapable of the soldier's duty and +[a gibe at the corps in which Nairne served] a few miserable emigrants." +He went on to promise his troops that when they took Quebec "the effects +of the Governor, garrison, and of such as have been active in misleading +the inhabitants and distressing the friends of liberty" should be +equally divided among the victors. The opposing sides showed, in truth, +the bitterness and exasperation of family quarrels and abandoned the +usual courtesies of war. The Americans lay in wait to shoot sentries; +they fired on single persons walking on the ramparts. It was reported to +the British that Montgomery had said "he would dine in Quebec or in Hell +on Christmas"--gossip probably untrue, as a British diarist of the time +is fair enough to note, since it is not in accord with the dignity and +sobriety of Montgomery's character. + +He did what he could to make possible this Christmas festivity within +Quebec's walls. His men got together some five hundred scaling ladders. +Then heavy snow came and the defenders jeered at such preparations: "Can +they think it possible that they can approach the walls laden with +ladders, sinking to the middle every step in snow? Where shall we be +then? Shall we be looking on cross-armed?" The clear and inconceivably +cold weather was also one of Quebec's defences for, as one diarist puts +it, no man, after being exposed to it for ten minutes, could hold arms +in his half-frozen hands firmly enough to do any execution. But by +nothing short of death itself was Montgomery to be daunted; steadily he +made his plans to assault the town. + +Meanwhile Quebec was ready. Carleton ordered out of the town all who +could not assist to the best of their power in the defence. Some shammed +illness to escape their tasks. But this was the exception. Well-to-do +citizens worked zealously, took their share of sentry duty on the +bitterly cold nights, and submitted to the commands of officers in the +militia, their inferiors in education and fortune. On the loftiest point +of Cape Diamond Carleton erected a mast, thirty feet high, with a sentry +box at its top. From this he could command a bird's eye view of the +enemy's operations, to a point as distant as Ste. Foy Church. When one +of the besiegers asked a loyalist Canadian what the queer-looking object +on the pole really was he answered, "It is a wooden horse with a bundle +of hay before him." A second remark capped this one: "General Carleton +has said that he will not give up the town till the horse has ate all +the hay; and the General is a man of his word." + +Although Montgomery did not eat his Christmas dinner in Quebec a few +days later he was ready for an assault. The crisis came on the last day +of the year 1775. Early on that day, between four and five in the +morning, Captain Malcolm Fraser, in command of the main guard, was +going his rounds in Quebec when he saw a signal thrown by the enemy from +the heights outside the walls near Cape Diamond. Fraser knew at once +that it meant an attack. He sent word to the other guards in Quebec and +ordered the ringing of the alarm bell, and the drum-beat to arms. He +himself ran down St. Louis street, shouting to the guards to "Turn out" +as loudly and often as he could, and with such effect that he was heard +even by General Carleton, lodged at the Recollet convent. It was a +boisterous night and the elements themselves raged so fiercely that some +of the alarms were not heard. But, in time, all Quebec was aroused and +the guards stood at their posts. + +The alarm was completed when to its din was added the menacing sound of +cannon. The besiegers began to ply the town with shells, and those who +looked out over the ramparts could see in the darkness the flash of +guns. Soon began from behind ridges of snow, within eighty yards of the +walls of Cape Diamond, the patter of musketry. The Americans were +seeking to lead the defenders of Quebec to believe that an assault on +the walls of the Upper Town on the side of the Plains of Abraham was +imminent and to hold the defence to this point. In fact the real danger +was far away. + +[Illustration: THE MANOR HOUSE AT MURRAY BAY + +(The upper view from the West, the lower from the East)] + +Montgomery's was a hazardous plan. He had resolved to try to seize the +Lower Town first and then to get his troops into the Upper Town by +way of the steep Mountain Street, thus taking the defenders of the walls +in the rear. It was a desperate venture, depending for its success +largely upon the surprise of the garrison which Malcolm Fraser's +thorough-going alarm had prevented. Montgomery himself, with a force of +several hundred men, marched to the Lower Town from Wolfe's Cove along +the narrow path under the cliffs, a distance of nearly two miles, with +progress impeded by darkness, by heavy snow-drifts, and by blocks of ice +which the tide had strewn along the shore. His men struggled on in the +dark hoping to surprise the post which guarded the road below Cape +Diamond at a point called Pres de Ville. Here were some fifty defenders +and the tale of what happened is soon told. The guardians of the post +were on the alert, for at it, too, Malcolm Fraser's warning had been +effective. As Montgomery bravely advanced, at the head of his men, there +was a flash and a roar in the darkness and the blinding snow storm, and, +a moment after, Montgomery lay dead in the snow with a bullet through +his head. Two or three other officers were struck down. The British +heard groans and then there was silence. As daylight came they saw hands +and arms protruding from the snow, but only slowly did they realize that +the chief of their foes was killed. + +Nairne was on duty elsewhere but he did not miss severe fighting. Arnold +was to advance on the Lower Town from the north-eastern suburb, St. +Roch's, to meet at the foot of Mountain Street Montgomery coming from +the west. At first he was more fortunate than Montgomery. When the +rocket from Cape Diamond went up he set out. The storm was frightful but +it served to conceal Arnold's force from Quebec's sentries. The +Americans passed under the height where stands the Hotel Dieu. Here +Nairne was stationed with a small guard. They spied the Americans in the +darkness and kept up as effective a fire as the dim light permitted. But +the assailants were able to advance along the whole east side of Quebec +and to reach the entrance to the Sault au Matelot, a short and narrow +street opening into the steep Mountain Street, by which alone the Upper +Town could be reached. Here fortune favoured them for, apparently, in +spite of Fraser's alarm, they surprised the guard at the first barrier +by which the street was closed. The street itself they secured but when +they reached the second barrier at its farther end, commanding the road +to the Upper Town, it was well defended by an alert garrison. Arnold had +already been wounded and taken to the rear and Morgan, an intrepid +leader, was in command of the assailing force. Every moment he expected +that Montgomery would arrive to attack the second barrier on the Sault +au Matelot from the West as he attacked it from the East. But +Montgomery was dead and Morgan waited in vain. + +While the Americans were checked by the second barrier, Carleton was not +idle. There was an excellent chance to send a force out of the Palace +Gate near the Hotel Dieu, by which the assailants had passed, and to +attack them in the rear. For this duty Colonel Caldwell was told off and +he took with him Nairne and his picket of about thirty men. The force +plodded through the deep snow in the tracks of the enemy who, about +daybreak, were astonished to find themselves shut in by British forces +at each end of the Sault au Matelot. A hand to hand fight followed. The +Americans took refuge in the houses of the street and it was the task of +the British to drive them out. In this Nairne distinguished himself. +"Major Nairne of the Royal Emigrants and M. Dambourges of the same corps +by their gallant behaviour attracted the attention of every body," +writes an English officer.[8] By ladders, taken from the enemy, they +mounted to a window of one of the houses, from which came a destructive +fire, and at the point of the bayonet drove the foe out by the door into +the street. In the end, to the number of more than four hundred, the +Americans were forced to surrender. The casualties included thirty +killed and forty-two wounded. By eight o'clock all was over. "It was +the first time I ever happened to be so closely engaged," Nairne wrote +to his sister on May 14th, 1776, "as we were obliged to push our +bayonets. It is certainly a disagreeable necessity to be obliged to put +one another to death, especially those speaking the same language and +dressed in the same manner with ourselves.... These mad people had a +large piece of white linen or paper upon their foreheads with the words +"Liberty or Death" wrote upon it." Nairne's account is modest enough. +One would not gather from it that his own conspicuous courage had +obtained general recognition.[9] + +Even with Montgomery killed, Arnold wounded, and quite one-quarter of +their force dead or captured, those grim men who wished "Liberty or +Death" had no thought of raising the siege. Ere long Arnold was again +active and, for four months longer, the Americans kept Carleton shut up +within Quebec. So deep lay the snow that to walk into the ditch from the +embrasures in the walls was easy; buried in the snow were the muzzles of +guns thirty feet from the bottom of the ditch. Sometimes Nairne was +actively engaged in scouting work. In February we find him leading a +party to take possession of the English burying ground in the suburbs; +on March 19th, he went out into the open from Cape Diamond to the +height overlooking the Anse de Mer. But nothing happened; a diarist +expresses, on April 21st, his contempt for the American attack by +writing: "Hitherto they have killed a boy, wounded a soldier, and broke +the leg of a turkey."[10] + +The assailants were, in truth, impotent before the masterly inactivity +of Carleton, who waited patiently behind his walls for the arrival in +the spring of a British fleet. Counting upon this expectancy the +Americans tried an old-time ruse. Between nine and ten o'clock in the +evening of May 3rd, with the moon shining brightly and the tide flowing +in and nearly high, a ship under full sail came into view from the +direction of the Island of Orleans. With the wind behind her she swung +in at a good rate of speed. Those who watched were, for a moment, sure +that the long expected rescue had come. But, as she bore down to the +_cul de sac_ where lay the shipping at Quebec, she made no response to +signals. At last, the British, after three vain efforts to draw a +response, warned her to reply or they should fire. When this threat was +carried out she was only some two hundred yards away. Then suddenly +flames burst out on the ship, followed by random explosions; a boat left +her side rowed very swiftly, and it was now apparent that she was sent +to burn, if possible, the British shipping. It must have been an +anxious moment when she was so near and heading straight for her prey. +But, showing a natural prudence, those who steered left her too soon +and, with no hand at the helm, her head came up quickly in the wind. By +this time all Quebec had been alarmed and, as attack from the landward +side was also expected, every man was soon at his post. The ship was a +striking sight as, with sails and rigging on fire, she drifted +helplessly before the town. When the tide turned she floated down, a +mass of fire, with explosions shaking her from time to time, to the +shallows off Beauport where she soon lay stranded, a blackened ruin of +half-burnt timbers. + +Quebec still waited for rescue, and not in vain. At day break, on the +6th of May, a frigate appeared round Point Levi. Again went forth the +cry of "A ship," "A ship." "The news," we are told, "soon reached every +pillow in town." Men half dressed rushed to the Grand Battery, which was +quickly crowded with spectators, who indulged in much shaking of hands, +and in the exchange of compliments, as the character of the ship became +clear. She was the British frigate _Surprise_, and, with much +difficulty, had forced her way, under full sail, through the great +fields of ice which still blocked the river. Following her closely were +the _Isis_ and a sloop the _Martin_. Quebec went wild with joy. But +there was still serious business on hand. The _Surprise_ brought a part +of the 29th regiment and a good many marines. They were landed at once. +Carleton lost not a moment and, by twelve o'clock of the same day, the +gates of Quebec were thrown open and he marched out to attack the +Americans. + +It was only a thin red line that stretched across the Plains of Abraham. +But the Americans dared not face it. The newly arrived ships might, they +feared, carry a force up the river and cut off retreat; so, after some +desultory skirmishing, the investing army fled. It was now commanded by +General Wooster, for Arnold had gone to Montreal. The flight soon became +a panic. Arms, clothes, food, private letters and papers were thrown +away. Nairne was in command of a portion of the Highland Emigrants, who +were the vanguard of the British pursuing force, and was among the first +to occupy the American batteries. On that very ground he had fought, +victorious in 1759, woefully beaten in 1760; now, a victor again, he +helped to drive back a force, some of whose members had been his +companions in those earlier campaigns. That night the relieved British +slept secure in Quebec, while the bedraggled American force was making +its distressful way towards Montreal. + +Though the American army soon withdrew from Montreal and from Canada, +the war was still to drag on for many weary years. Throughout the whole +of it Nairne remained on active service. In September, 1776, we find +him in command of the garrison at Montreal. In 1777 he was sent to +command the post at Isle aux Noix which guarded the route into Canada by +way of Lake Champlain. Here Fraser was serving under him as Captain; the +two friends were usually together throughout the war. At Isle aux Noix +Nairne remained until June, 1779. We get glimpses from his letters of +the defects in the service at this time. There were involuntary evils, +such as scurvy, caused by want of fresh meat and vegetables, but +relieved by drinking a decoction of hemlock spruce. Moral evils there +were too, such as gambling and drunkenness; in 1778 the commanding +officer gave warning that he had heard of losses at play, and that those +taking part in such practises would be excluded from promotion. + +The British officers showed sometimes a fool-hardy recklessness. On +March 9th, 1778, one Lieutenant Mackinnon, with forty-five volunteers, +set out from Pointe au Fer, near Isle aux Noix, to surprise an American +post at Parsons' House, no less than sixty miles distant, and in the +heart of the enemy's country. A few days later two of the volunteers +returned with news that the attack had wholly failed, that six of the +party were killed and six wounded, and that Lieutenant Mackinnon and +four others were missing. So reckless an attack was bad enough and, in +the General Orders, it was condemned as "a presumptuous disregard of +military discipline"; only vigilance and watchfulness were required of +the picket at Pointe au Fer, so that the enemy might not invade the +province. At the incident the Commander-in-Chief was very angry. "I +never saw the General in such a passion in my life," wrote an officer to +Nairne. Mackinnon had surrounded the house in the darkness and both he +and his men, as far as is known, had done their best. Though wounded and +for a time missing, in the end Mackinnon got back crippled to Isle aux +Noix. But he had failed, and whispers soon began that he showed +cowardice in the attack; an absurd charge, as Nairne said, for he had +given proof of rather too much, than of too little, courage. The +accusation gave Nairne infinite trouble. The subalterns in the Royal +Highland Emigrants refused to do duty with Mackinnon, and General +Haldimand, who succeeded Carleton in the summer of 1778, would not take +the matter seriously enough to grant a Court Martial, that Mackinnon +might clear himself. For quite a year and a half the affair dragged on. +In the end, at a Court of Enquiry, Mackinnon was acquitted. Haldimand +told Nairne to rebuke the officers sternly for combining to subvert +authority, for disrespect to their superiors, and for refusing, on the +basis of futile reports and hearsays, to serve with Mackinnon. "I much +mistake his character," wrote Nairne of Mackinnon, "if he can ... be +prevented from calling one or two of those gentlemen to a severe +account." + +A part of Nairne's duty was to watch the French Canadians and check +sedition. In spite of the failure of Arnold's expedition many of them +were still favourable to the American cause. They harboured deserters in +the remoter parishes, gave protection and assistance to rebels, and +threw as many difficulties as possible in the path of loyalists. Nairne +found two men issuing papers from a printing press to foment sedition +and sent them down to Quebec to stand their trial for treason. + +From Isle aux Noix Nairne was sent, in the summer of 1779, with fifty of +his Royal Highland Emigrants, to command at Carleton Island, near +Kingston where Lake Ontario flows into the St. Lawrence; some +thirty-five years later his only surviving son held a military command +at the same place. Here there was much to do in strengthening the +fortifications and in keeping up communications with Niagara and other +points in the interior. The situation was not without its +embarrassments. Prisoners were sent in from Niagara and he had no prison +in which to keep them. For want of fresh meat and vegetables there was +much sickness. But the Indians were his greatest trial. Through him came +their supplies and, to hold them at all, he had sometimes to serve out +the rum for which such savages are always greedy. On July 4th, Nairne +made a speech to these Mississaga Indians and said pretty plainly what +he thought of them. Against the American scouts they had proved no +defence; at night they fired off guns in the neighbouring woods and +created false alarms, which prevented Nairne's men from getting their +proper sleep. "My men work hard in the day," he said, "and I will have +them to sleep sound at night," and he warned the Indians that he would +fire upon them if their noise disturbed him further. The savages, he +wrote to Haldimand, are "almost unbearable, greedy and importunate." +They behaved more like rebels than friends and their talk ended always +in the demand for rum, "the cause of all bad behaviour in Indians." + +On the remoter frontiers the war was ruthless beyond measure. Sir John +Johnson devastated the Mohawk valley, in the present State of New York, +and some of his prisoners were received at Carleton Island. Of this +inglorious warfare Haldimand's secretary, Captain Matthews, wrote to +Nairne a little later [17th June, 1780], "You will have heard that Sir +John Johnson has executed the purpose of his enterprise without the loss +of a man, having destroyed upwards of an hundred dwelling houses, barns, +mills, stock, &c., and brought off 150 Loyalists, besides Women and +Children." The worst outrages came from the Indian allies, of whom +Nairne thought so badly. From Niagara, on March 1st, 1779, Captain John +MacDonnell wrote to Nairne of the terrible massacre at Cherry Valley, on +the New York frontier, which excited horror throughout the colonies, and +did much to inflame the hatred of the Americans for England. Not, +however, the English but the Indians were really guilty. "There has +nothing appeared," wrote Captain MacDonnell, "on the theatre of the war +of near so tragical or rather barbarous a hue; the reflection never +represents itself to my view but when accompanyed with the greatest +horrors; both Sexes, young and old Tomahawked, Speared and Scalped +indiscriminately in the most inhuman and cruel manner. But that there +was all possible care and precaution taken to prevent them is +undenyable. Captain Butler, who had command of the expedition, was +indefatigable in his endeavours and exertions to restrain and mitigate +the fury and ferocity of the savages often at the risk of the Tomahawk +being made use of against himself as well as the Indian officers.... Out +of a hundred and seventy scalps three-fourths were those of Women and +Children." Butler's name is still looked upon in the United States as +that of a fiend incarnate, but the testimony of his fellow officer seems +to free him from blame for the worst of the horrors. Both sides were +bitter, but Nairne himself never shows any vehemence of passion. In his +view the war was a painful necessity, to be fought to the end without +anger. + +Late in 1779, Nairne was recalled from Carleton Island. He reached +Montreal on the 5th of December, and, two days later, secured leave of +absence to look after his private affairs. At this time General +Haldimand had matured a plan to take advantage of the remote position of +Murray Bay to confine there some of his American prisoners. At Murray +Bay they seemed particularly safe. There was as yet no road over Cap +Tourmente; in any case to go in the direction of Quebec would mean +seizure sooner or later; to go in the opposite direction would be to +perish in the wilderness; and the only outlet was by water across a +wintry river some twelve miles broad. On the 26th of January, 1780, +Haldimand wrote to Nairne at Murray Bay that he was to erect buildings +for rebel and other prisoners, and that, to do the work, some men were +being sent down; he was to employ in addition as many of the inhabitants +as he might think necessary. + +Nairne stayed on at Murray Bay in 1780 much longer than the two months +for which he had originally asked. A part of his duty was to watch that +American colony, so different in station and situation from the many +Americans who now visit the spot. As yet there were no barracks in which +to confine the poor fellows, and the climate of Murray Bay is not too +hospitable in winter. Some kind of rough quarters must have been +prepared for the prisoners, in the winter of 1779-80, and they were kept +busy in helping to build the houses intended for their occupation. They +seemed contented. One of them Nairne kept about his person. He knew +where everything was placed and all the men were used, Nairne says, in +the best manner he could think of. But liberty is sweet and they longed +for their own land. So, early in May, 1780, when the ice was out of the +river and there was a chance to get away, eight of them made a dash for +liberty.[11] No doubt under cover of night, they stole a boat and put +out boldly into the great river across which, in so small a craft, few +ever venture, even in mild summer weather. Almost wonderful to relate, +they reached the south shore in safety. Nairne was uncertain whether +they had gone up, down, or across the river. He hurried to Tadousac, +crossed to Cacouna and then went up the south shore. At St. Roch he +found that the men, rowing a boat, had been seen to pass. On May 14th +this boat was found abandoned. On the 15th the men were seen on the +highway carrying their packs. We are almost sorry to learn that the poor +fellows were in the end captured and taken to Quebec. Nairne reported +the flight of these men on the 14th of May. Their example was contagious +for, on the 18th, while he was absent in their pursuit, four others +made off, found a small boat on the shore some nine miles from Malbaie, +and put out into the river, where their tiny craft was seen heading for +Kamouraska on the south shore. A few days later two others also escaped. +These had not courage to strike out into the river, and one of them was +caught at Baie St. Paul. Nairne offered a reward of four dollars for +each of the prisoners and probably all were taken. A sequel of the +incident was that a non-commissioned officer and eight men of the +Anhalt-Zerbst Regiment were sent to guard the remaining prisoners at +Murray Bay--a task apparently beyond Nairne's local militia. This guard +was, no doubt, composed of Germans; one wonders to what extent they +fraternized with the French Canadians. It is amusing to read that, when +one of them deserted, he was brought back by a habitant. + +In 1781 we find Nairne stationed at Vercheres on the south side of the +St. Lawrence, nearly opposite Montreal. He was now in charge of the +expatriated Loyalists who had found refuge in that part of Canada. A +whole corps of them were billeted in the two parishes of Vercheres and +Contrecoeur--the officers chiefly at Contrecoeur. They lived, of +course, in the cottages with the habitants. On December 16th, 1781, +Nairne writes to General Riedesel, a German officer who played a +conspicuous part on the British side in the Revolutionary war and was +now in command at Sorel, that the Canadians do not mind supplying +firewood for the loyalist officers but that they rather object to having +the same people quartered upon them for two years at a time. Though an +occasional officer had said that the Loyalists were not obedient, he +adds that they were quiet and orderly people. Some of them had large +families and must have crowded uncomfortably their involuntary hosts. +These colonial English living in the households of their old-time +enemies, the French Canadians, make a somewhat pathetic picture. We see +what domestic suffering the Revolutionary War involved. Some were very +old; one "genteel sort of woman," a widow, had four children, the +youngest but four months old; there was another whose husband had been +hanged at Saratoga as a spy. Very large sums passed through Nairne's +hands in behalf of the Loyalists. One account which he renders amounts +to about L20,000.[12] + +Nairne's regiment, the Royal Highland Emigrants, had been put upon the +permanent establishment in 1779. Sometimes he complained that his own +promotion was slow; not until the spring of 1783 was he given the rank +of Lieutenant-Colonel. Having reached this goal he intended, as soon as +he decently could, to sell out and retire. Late in 1782 we find him +again in command at Isle aux Noix and not sure but that he may at any +time be surprised by the Americans. It seems odd that, though Cornwallis +had already surrendered at Yorktown, and the war was really over, Nairne +was still hoping for final victory for Great Britain; on February 8th, +1783, he writes: "It is to be hoped that affairs will at last take a +favourable turn to Great Britain; her cause is really a just one." In +fact preliminary articles of the most disastrous peace Great Britain has +ever made had already been signed. + +Nairne was now anxious to go home. But even in June, 1783, he could not +get leave of absence from Isle aux Noix for even a fortnight. Conditions +were still unsettled. American traders were now pressing into Canada but +Nairne sent back any that he caught; the cessation of arms was, he said, +no warrant as yet for commercial intercourse and many suspicious +characters were about. The troops from Europe were returning home. +General Riedesel, about to leave for Germany, wrote from Sorel on July +6th, 1783, a warm letter of thanks to Nairne for the attention, +readiness, and punctuality of his services. Not long after, in the same +year, Nairne was at last free. He now sold his commission, receiving for +it L3,000. With the sale he renounced all claim to half-pay, pension, or +other consideration for past services and the sum he received was, +therefore, no very great final reward for his long services. There had +been some competition for this commission and its final disposal throws +some light on promotion in the army under the purchase system. General +Haldimand insisted that Captain Matthews, who appears to have been his +relative, should get it, since the General "must provide for his own +family." At this time Malcolm Fraser too thought of selling out but he +made difficulties about terms and the opportunity passed; Fraser was, +indeed, to live to see recruiting service in the war of 1812. When the +war was over, Nairne hurried to Murray Bay and to the country life in +which he delighted, and in his correspondence we soon find him +discussing not high questions of national defence but the qualities of +"a well-bred bull calf" and of an improved plough. "I have more +satisfaction," he says, perhaps with a touch of irony, "in a country +life and [in] cultivating a farm than even [in] being employed as first +major of the Quebec militia." Henceforth his heart is wholly at Murray +Bay and in his interests there. + +[Footnote 8: Diary of an English Officer. Proceedings of the Literary +and Historical Society of Quebec, 1871-72, p. 61.] + +[Footnote 9: See Appendix C., p. 273, for the text of his letter to his +sister describing the operations of the winter at Quebec. It is an able +review of the campaign.] + +[Footnote 10: Proceedings of the Literary and Historical Society of +Quebec, 7th Series, 1905, p. 75; "Blockade of Quebec," etc.] + +[Footnote 11: The men's names were Peter Ferris, Squir Ferris, Claudius +Brittle (Sr.), Claudius Brittle (Jr.), Nathan Smith, Marshal Smith, +Justice Sturdevant, John Ward.] + +[Footnote 12: The book in which Nairne kept the accounts, with the names +of the recipients of the king's bounty, is still at Murray Bay.] + + + + +CHAPTER V + +THE LAST DAYS OF JOHN NAIRNE + + Nairne's careful education of his children.--His son John enters + the army.--Nairne's counsels to his son.--John Nairne goes to + India.--His death.--Nairne's declining years.--His activities at + Murray Bay.--His income.--His daughter Christine and Quebec + society.--The isolation of Murray Bay in Winter.--Signals across + the river.--Nairne's reading.--His notes about current events.--The + fear of a French invasion of England.--Thoughts of flight from + Scotland to Murray Bay.--Nairne's last letter, April 20th, + 1802.--His death and burial at Quebec. + + +Colonel Nairne's life was troubled with many sorrows. In 1773, when he +was on a visit to Scotland, Malcolm Fraser had had the painful duty of +writing to tell him of the death of three of his infant children at +Murray Bay from a prevailing epidemic. His daughter, Anne, born in 1784, +was sent to Scotland to be educated. She contracted consumption and +after a prolonged illness died there in 1796. "This event gave me great +affliction," wrote Nairne, "she was always a most amiable child." There +now remained two sons and three daughters,[13] and Nairne may well have +been certain that his name would go down to an abundant posterity. One +of the chief interests of his life was their training and education. All +in turn were sent to Scotland for their chief schooling. The eldest son, +John, born in 1777, and his sister Christine, some three years older, +lived in Edinburgh with aunts who showed exhaustless kindness and +interest. Nairne was grateful, and writing from Malbaie on August 27th, +1791, he says: "[I] am glad of an opportunity, my dear Christine and +Jack, to remind you both in the strongest manner I am able of the +gratitude and assiduous Duty you owe to your Aunts and other Relations +for admitting you into their family and also for the attention they are +pleased to bestow on your education." Upon his children he imposes +indeed counsels of perfection not easy to fulfil; "Remember it's my +injunctions and absolute orders to you both to have always an obedient +temper to your superiors ... to receive every reprimand with submission +and attention as it can only be intended for your benefit in order to +give you a valuable character which of all things is the greatest +blessing both for this world and the next; besides you must consider +that you are never to indulge yourselves in any sort of indolence or +laziness but to rise early in the morning to be the more able to fulfil +your Duty.... As to you, Jack, I expect to see you a Gallant and +honourable fellow that will always scorn to tell the least lie in your +life. It was well done to answer Captain Fraser [Malcolm Fraser, a +Lieutenant in 1762, is still only a Captain in 1791!] with which he was +well pleased.... Both of you have I think improved in your writing which +gives me pleasure." He adds regretfully to Christine: "I cannot send you +a muff this year but perhaps I may do so next year." The letter closes +with a modest list of purchases to be sent out from Edinburgh for +Malbaie: "one piece of Calico for two gowns; one piece of calico for +children; three pieces of linen (for shirts), two of which coarse and +the other a little finer; one yard of cambrick; five yards of muslin +(for caps and Handkerchiefs); six yards of lace (for caps); twelve yards +of different ribbons, three pairs of worsted stockings and three pairs +of cotton stockings for myself." + +Jack was to follow a military career, and he entered the army when a +youth of sixteen or seventeen. His first active service was in the West +Indies, after war with revolutionary France broke out, and the dangers +of that climate gave his father some anxiety; all will be well, he +hopes, if Jack continues to take a certain "powder of the Jesuits' +Bark"; above all "the best rules are temperance and sobriety"; then "the +same gracious Power who protected me in many dangers through the course +of three Wars will also vouchsafe protection to you through this one." +In 1795, when Jack was only eighteen, his corps was back in England +and, through the influence of a distant relative, General Graeme, with +the Duke of York, Commander in Chief of the Army and all powerful in +days when promotion went avowedly by favour and purchase rather than by +merit, Jack secured a Lieutenancy in the 19th Regiment. His father was +delighted: "I wish you much joy with all my heart of your quick rise in +being at your age already a Lieutenant in an old Regiment whereas I was +past twenty-six years of age before I obtained a Lieutenancy in the +British service and that only in a young corps." At the time, with +Britain warring on the French Directory, service in Europe for Jack was +not unlikely, and was desired by Nairne. But in the end Jack's regiment +was ordered to India. Nairne was sorely disappointed, but writing to +Jack he laid down a great guiding principle: "we must suppose that +Providence orders everything aright and that, provided we are always +active and diligent in doing our duty, there is reason to be satisfied." +In view of what was to happen, his anxiety for the success of his son is +pathetic. He exhorts him in regard to every detail of conduct. He is to +avoid drink and gambling; to pay his accounts promptly; to be punctual +and scrupulously exact whenever duty or business is concerned. The +father is particularly anxious about his son's capacity to express +himself in good English and lays down the sound maxim that "writing a +correct and easy style is undoubtedly of all education the most +necessary and requisite." To acquire this he "ought to write and read a +great deal with intense labour, attention and application"; to write +several hours a day is not too much and to get time he must go to bed +early and rise early. It is wise to keep a grammar and dictionary always +at hand to correct possible errors. He should also translate from French +into English. The father himself undertakes the duty of the complete +letter writer, drawing up for Jack a model on which his letters may be +based. "In writing ordinary letters (as in conversation) a large scope +may be taken, as of News, all sorts of information, adventures, +descriptions, remarks, enquirys, compliments, &c., &c., but in a letter +upon business one is commonly confined only to what is necessary to be +said on the subject and to civilitys and politeness." Certainly Jack did +not lack admonition and when he does well his father writes that it +makes him "very happy." When in one letter Jack mentions the practise of +smoking his father is severe: "All our family have ever been temperate +not [practising] even the Debauchery of smoking tobacco, a nasty Dutch, +Damn'd custom, a forerunner of idleness and drunkenness; therefore Jack, +my lad, let us hear no more of your handling your Pipe, but handle well +your fuzee, your sword, your pen and your Books." + +Certainly the pictures sometimes drawn of the brutality, violent manners +and ignorance of the British officer at this period find no confirmation +in Nairne's monitions to his son, or in the account of his own military +experience which dates from the mid-eighteenth century. He says to Jack: +"Say your Prayers regularly to God Almighty and trust entirely to His +Will and Pleasure for your own preservation.... If you should happen to +be in an engagement attend to your men, encourage them to act with +spirit in such a manner as most effectually to destroy their +enemy's."[14] When Jack is a little too free in his demands for money +the Colonel, writing on Nov. 22nd, 1795, tells him of his own +experience: + + I have done wrong in having given you so much money since you went + into the Army which might have served you almost without any pay + from the King and which by the bye I can little afford. You + obtained it easily; for which reason I suppose you have spent it + easily: you have no right to expect more than I had at your age yet + you seem to regard twenty pounds as I would have done twenty + shillings. But you must now understand that twenty pounds is a + considerable sum to my circumstances they being straitened for the + Rank and the family which I have to support; therefore I have to + inform you that you are to draw no more Bills upon Mr. Ker nor upon + me without first obtaining his or my consent in writing for so + doing. It is no disgrace nor does it hurt the service (but quite + the contrary) for every officer and soldier to live within the + limits of the pay which Government has thought proper to allow + them. They are thereby more led to temperance, to improve + themselves by study, to mind their duty and how best to promote the + service of their country. I served sixteen years as a subaltern + officer in the army, made long sea voyages with the Regiment, + furnished myself with sea stores, camp equipage and every other + necessary equipments [and] my Father nor any Relation during that + time was never [put to] one farthing's expense upon my account. + Altho' I sometimes lost money in the Recruiting service I repayed + it by stoppages from my pay, was always present with the men + whether in camp or in Garrison and punctually attending on my Duty. + I endeavoured to be in a good mess for my Dinner, drank small Beer + or Water when it was good; when the Water was bad qualified it with + a mixture of Wine or Ginger or Milk or Vinegar but no grog or + smoking tobacco. I was always an enemy to suppers, never engaged + myself in the Evenings, but on particular occasions or to be + Complaisant to Strangers. Nor [did I] ask Company to see me when on + Guard; nor show a Vanity to treat people. By which means I had a + great deal of quiet and sober time to myself, to read and to write, + &c., &c., especially as I always rose early in the Mornings. You + may believe also that I was always far from being concerned in any + sort of Gaming so as to risk losing any of my money or to have a + desire to gain any from others. By such a Conduct I received more + favour and regard sometimes from my Commanding officers even than I + thought I was entitled to. + +These monitions to Jack were written while his father was in Scotland in +1795. There they separated, the father to return to Canada with +Christine whose schooldays were now ended, Jack to go with his regiment +to India. In parting from his son the father pronounced a solemn +benediction: "that God may preserve you and assist you in following +always that which is good and virtuous shall ever be my most earnest +prayer." They never met again. Jack continued to draw rather freely upon +his father for funds, and Nairne wrote to the Colonel of the regiment to +ask for information about the young man. Before an answer came Scottish +relatives learned in 1800 of Jack's fate and wrote of it to Murray Bay. +A friend of the family in India had noticed in the newspaper that some +one was promoted to John Nairne's place. This led to enquiry, when it +was found that he had died in August, 1799. Not until six months after +his death, and then only in reply to the enquiry as to Jack's demands +for money, did his commanding officer write the following letter to +Colonel Nairne: + + _Colonel Dalrymple to Colonel Nairne_ + + _From Columbo [India], 1st Feb., 1800._ + + I received your letter dated October, 1798, but a short time ago + but too late, had there been any occasion to have spoken to your + son upon the subject it contained for, Poor fellow, it is with pain + I'm to inform you of his death. He died upon the 7th of August, + 1799, in the Coimbalore country upon the return from the capture of + Seringapatam. Never did a young man die more regretted nor never + was an officer more beloved by his corps. He was an honour to his + profession. An involuntary tear starts in my eye on thus being + obliged to give you this painful information. + + The cause of his having drawn for so much money from Bombay was + unfortunately his ship parted from us and they did not join at + Columbo for some months, where I understand he had been induced to + play by some designing people. But I assure you, from the moment he + joined here, his life was exemplary for all young men. He was + beloved by every description of people. From the very sudden way he + took the field and the very expensive mode of campaigning in this + country he was in debt to the paymaster. He was not singular; they + were all in the same predicament. The first division of the prize + money which was one thousand ster. Pagodas, about your hundred + pounds, will only clear him with the Regiment. + +Long before this letter arrived the news was known at Murray Bay. +Malcolm Fraser, the tried family friend, writes on September 1st, 1800, +that he has just discharged the most painful task of telling the sad +news to Jack's sister and companion, Christine, who was visiting in +Quebec. In his grief Nairne gives an exceeding bitter cry, "Lord, help +me. I shall lose all my children before I go myself." His sister +Magdalen wrote from Edinburgh on March 17th, 1800, to offer comfort and +to hope that he bears the trial "with Christian fortitude, and that God +will reward him by sparing those that remain to be a blessing to him," +Nairne's sisters now had with them in Edinburgh the two remaining +children, Tom and Mary, called "Polly." John is gone but Tom is left, +says the fond aunt, and to console Nairne she tells of Tom's virtues: +"Never was father blessed with a more promising son than our little +Tom, and though I used to dread he was too faultless and too good to +live, I would now persuade myself he is intended by Providence to +compensate you for the losses you have sustained." On Tom now centred +the hopes of the Nairne family. + +[Illustration: VIEW FROM POINTE AU PIC UP MURRAY BAY] + +The sands of Nairne's own life were running out. As he looked around him +he could see much to make his heart content. He was never unmindful of +the singular beauty of the place. "I wish I could send you a landscape +of this place," he wrote to a friend, John Clark, in 1798; "Was you here +your pencil might be employed in drawing a beautiful one which this Bay +affords, as the views and different objects are remarkably various and +entertaining." This is, no doubt, a mild account of the beauties of a +very striking scene, but the 18th century had not developed our +appreciation for nature. Nairne tells of his delight in tramping through +the woods, and over the mountains, with a gun on his shoulder. The +increase of settlement, and the burning of the woods, had driven the +wild animals farther back into the wilderness, but partridges and water +fowl were still abundant. There was salmon fishing almost at his door +and "Lake Nairne," the present Grand Lac, had famous trout fishing. The +thick woods, which at his coming extended all round the bay, were now +cleared away. Much land had been enclosed and brought under cultivation +and to do this had been a laborious and expensive task. Now he had +three farms of his own, each with a hundred acres of arable land and +with proper buildings. There was also a smaller farm for hay and +pasture. "I have been employed lately," he writes in 1798, "making paths +into our woods and marking the trees in straight lines thro' tracts of +pretty good land in order to encourage the young men to take lots of +land." He tells how the successive ridges, representing, no doubt, +different water levels in remote ages, were numbered. In the highest, +Number 7, the lakes are all situated; the elevated land was generally +the best but as yet settlement was chiefly in Flats 1, 2, and 3. His +great aim had always been to get people on the land and he denounced +obstacles put in their way. "For God's sake let them pitch away, and if +they have not good titles give them better." The Manor House had become +a warm and comfortable residence well finished and well furnished. In +1801 Nairne wrote to his sister, with some natural exultation, that +where he had at first found an untrodden wilderness were now order, +neatness, good buildings, a garden and plenty of flowers, fruits and +humming birds. In the winter one might often say "O, it's cold," but +means of warming oneself were always available. His wife had proved +always a useful helper and was indeed a motherly, practical woman, +beloved by the people. These came to pay their compliments on the first +day of the year, when there was much drinking of whiskey and eating of +cakes, all costing a pretty penny. There were 100 young men in the +parish composing a complete company of militia. The children grew up so +fast that he could not distinguish the half of them. + +On the commercial side also Murray Bay was developing. In 1800 a man +came through the district buying up wheat at "9 livers a Bushel," but +since the population was increasing very rapidly, and the people were +accustomed to eat a great deal of bread, there was not much wheat for +export. The total exports of all commodities amounted in 1800 to +L1500:--oil, timber, grain, oxen and a few furs being the chief items. +Oil was the most important product; it came from the "porpoise" fishery. +What Nairne calls a porpoise, is really the beluga, a small white whale. +The fishery is an ancient industry on the St. Lawrence.[15] The creature +has become timid and is now not readily caught so that the industry +survives at only a few points. At Malbaie it has wholly ceased; but in +the summer of 1796 sixty-two porpoises were killed at "Pointe au Pique." +In the summer of 1800, which was hot and dry, no less than three hundred +were "catched." Malbaie must have had bustling activity on its shores +when such numbers of these huge creatures were taken in a single +season. We can picture the many fires necessary for boiling the blubber. +The oil of each beluga was worth L5 and the skin L1. Nairne's own share +in a single year from this source of revenue was L70, but even then the +industry was declining. + +We have Nairne's statement of income in 1798 and it indicates simple +living at Malbaie. We must remember that in addition, he had received a +number of bequests which brought in a considerable income and that he +had sold out of the army for L3000. Perhaps, too, 1798 was a bad year. + +"Porpoise" fishery L20 +Income from four farms at L20 each 80 +Profits from mills 20 + ----- + L120 + +The rent from the land granted to the habitants was scarcely worth +reckoning, as the people paid nothing until the land was productive, a +condition that could apparently be postponed indefinitely. Since under +the seigniorial tenure, the farmers must use the seigneur's grist mill, +Nairne had his mill in operation and Fraser was building one in 1798. +Nairne had also one or more mills for sawing timber. "I hope there are a +great many loggs brought and to be brought to your and my saw mills," +Fraser wrote in 1797, but an income of only L20 a year from the mills +does not indicate any extortionate exercise of seigniorial rights. + +Already some of the city people were beginning to find Murray Bay a +delightful place in which to spend the summer. In 1799 Nairne writes to +a friend, Richard Dobie, in Montreal, that it is the best place in the +world for the recovery of strength. "You shall drink the best of wheys +and breathe the purest sea air in the world and, although luxuries will +be wanting, our friendship and the best things the place can afford to +you, I know, will make ample amends:"--a simple standard of living that +subsequent generations would do well to remember. In 1801 the manor +house must have been the scene of some gaiety for there and at Malcolm +Fraser's were half a score of visitors. Christine, Nairne's second +daughter, who preferred Quebec to the paternal roof, had come home for a +visit and other visitors were the Hon. G. Taschereau and his son, Mr. +Usburn, Mr. Masson, Mrs. Langan and Mrs. Bleakley, Fraser's daughters, +described as "rich ladies from Montreal," the last with three children. +No doubt they drove and walked, rowed and fished, much as people from +New York and Baltimore and Boston and Toronto and Montreal do still on +the same scene, when they are not pursuing golf balls. The coming of +people with more luxurious habits made improvements necessary and also, +Nairne says, increased the expense of living--a complaint that +successive generations have continued with justice to make. + +With Tom and Mary Nairne absent at school in Edinburgh, the family at +Murray Bay during Nairne's last days consisted of but four persons--of +himself and his wife and the two daughters Magdalen and Christine. +Christine, a fashionable young lady, disliked Murray Bay as a place of +residence, tolerated Quebec, but preferred Scotland where she had been +educated. "Christine does not like to stay at Murray Bay and Madie her +sister does not like to stay anywhere else," wrote Nairne in 1800. In +the manner of the eighteenth century he was extremely anxious that his +children should be "genteel". Christine's Quebec friends pleased him. "I +saw her dance at a ball at the Lieutenant-Governor's and she seemed at +no loss for Genteel partners but does not prepare to find one for life. +I am well pleased with her and do not in the least grudge her so long as +she is esteemed by the best company in the place." It was not easy to +find at Quebec proper accommodation for unmarried young women living +away from home. Nairne writes in August, 1797, that he and Christine +each paid $1.00 a day in Quebec where they lodged, although they mostly +dined and drank tea abroad. "The town gentry of Quebec are vastly +hospitable Civil and well-bred but no such a thing as an invitation to +stay in any of their houses." At length a Mr. Stewart opened his doors. +He must, Nairne wrote, be paid tactfully for the accommodation he +furnishes. Things went better when later Miss Mabane, the daughter of a +high official of the Government, kept Christine with her at Quebec all +the winter of 1799-1800; no doubt Christine was pleased when Miss Mabane +would not allow her to go to Murray Bay even for the summer. Her elder +sister, Madie, appears to have been hoydenish and somewhat uncongenial +to a young lady so determined to be "genteel." + +In the winter time communication with the outside world was almost +entirely suspended. In case of emergency it was possible indeed to pass +on snow shoes by Cap Tourmente, over which there was still no road, and +so reach Quebec by the north shore. But this was a severe journey to be +undertaken only for grave cause. Partly frozen over, and often with +great floes of ice sweeping up and down with the tide, the river was +dangerous; the south shore, lying so well in sight, was really very +remote. Yet news passed across the river. On February 12th, 1797, +Malcolm Fraser, who was on the south shore, found some means of sending +a letter to Nairne. Anxious to get word in return he planned a signal. +He said that on March 6th he would go to Kamouraska, just opposite +Murray Bay, and build a fire. If Nairne answered by one fire Fraser +would be satisfied that nothing unusual had happened; if two fires were +made he would understand that there was serious news and would wish as +soon as possible to learn details. Signalling across the St. Lawrence +attained a much higher development than is found in Fraser's crude plan. +Philippe Aubert de Gaspe tells how the people on the south shore could +read what had happened on the north shore from Cap Tourmente to Malbaie. +On St. John's eve, December 26th, the season of Christmas festivities, +there was a general illumination. Looking then across the river to a +line of blazing fires the news was easily understood. "At Les +Eboulements eleven adults have died since the autumn, three of whom were +in one house, that of Dufour. All are well at the Tremblays; but at +Bonneau's some one is ill. At Belairs a child is dead,"--and so on. The +key is simple enough. The situation of the fire would indicate the +family to which it related. A fire lighted and kept burning for a long +time meant good news; when a fire burned with a half smothered flame it +meant sickness; the sudden extinguishing of the fire was a sign of +death; as many times as it was extinguished so many were the deaths; a +large blaze meant an adult, a small one a child. Before the days of post +and telegraph these signals were used winter and summer; so great an +obstacle to communication was the mighty tide of the St. Lawrence.[16] + +At all seasons but especially in winter the news that reached Malbaie +was of a very fragmentary character. With his kin in Scotland Nairne +exchanged only an annual letter but since each side took time and pains +to prepare it, the letter told more, probably, than would a year's bulk +of our hurried epistles. Newspapers were few and dear and only at +intervals did any come. Books too were scarce. Occasionally Nairne notes +those that he thought of buying--St. Simon's "Memoirs;" an account of +the Court of Louis XIV; "A Comparative View of the State and Facultys of +Man with those of the Animal World;" "Elegant Extracts or Useful and +Entertaining passages in prose," a companion volume to a similar one in +poetry, and so on. He writes gratefully, in 1799, to a friend in Quebec, +who had sent newspapers and sermons, both of which remotely different +classes of literature had furnished "great entertainment." From Europe +he is receiving the volumes of the new edition of the Encyclopaedia +Britannica, still on the shelves at Murray Bay, and is thankful that +they were not captured by the French. "The older I grow the fonder I am +of reading and that book is a great resource." Our degenerate age gets +little "entertainment" out of sermons and usually keeps an encyclopaedia +strictly for "reference"; obviously Nairne read it. + +The old soldier watched and commented upon developments which were the +fruit of seed he himself had helped to sow. He had fought to win Canada +for Britain; he had fought to crush the American Revolution. By 1800 he +sees how great Canada may become and is convinced that yielding +independence to the United States has not proved very injurious to Great +Britain. Though, in a short time, the United States was to secure the +great West by purchasing Louisiana from France, when Nairne died it had +not done so and in 1800 he could say that the United States "are small +in comparison of the whole of North America. They are bounded upon all +sides and will be filled up with people in no very great number of +years. Our share of North America is yet unknown in its extent. +Enterprising people in quest of furs travel for years towards the north +and towards the west through vast countries of good soil uninhabited as +yet ... [except] for hunting, and watered with innumerable lakes and +rivers, stored with fish, besides every other convenience for the use of +man, and certainly destined to be filled with people in some future +time. We have only [now] heard of one named Mackenzie[17] who is +reported to have been as far as the Southern Ocean (from Canada) across +this continent to the West." Long before Canada stretched from the +Atlantic to the Pacific Nairne was thus dreaming of what we now see. + +Of war, then raging, Nairne took a philosophic view. "War may be +necessary," he writes in 1798, "for some very Populous countrys as any +crop when too thick is the better of being thinned." But it occurred to +him that the problem of over-population in Europe might have been solved +in a less crude manner. "It is strange," he says, "that there should be +so much of the best part of the globe still unoccupied, where the foot +of man never trod, and in Europe such destruction of people. It is +however for some purpose we do not, as yet, comprehend." Those were the +days when Napoleon Bonaparte's star was rising and when, in defiance of +England, led by Pitt, he smote state after state which stood in the path +of his ambition. Nairne's friend and business agent James Ker, an +Edinburgh banker, was obviously no admirer of Pitt, for he writes on +July 20th, 1797, of the struggle with revolutionary France which, though +it was to endure for more than twenty years, had already, he thought, +lasted too long: + + After a four years' war undertaken for the attainment of objects + which were unattainable, in which we have been gradually deserted + by every one of our allies except Portugal, ... too weak to leave + us; and after a most shameless extravagance and Waste of the public + money which all feel severely by the imposition of new and + unthought of taxes, we have again sent an ambassador to France to + try to procure us Peace.... If our next crop be as bad as our two + last ones God knows what will become of us. If it were not for the + unexampled Bounty and Charity of the richer classes the Poor must + have literally starved, but we have been favoured with a very mild + winter. + +In 1798 when Napoleon led his forces to Egypt and disappeared from the +ken of Europe, Nairne hopes devoutly that "he has gone to the Devil, or, +which is much the same thing, among the Turks and Tartars where he and +his army may be destroyed." After Nelson succeeded in his attack on the +French fleet at the Battle of the Nile Nairne rejoices that his country +is supreme on the sea, "By ruling the waves she will rule the wealth of +the world not by plunder and conquest but by wisdom and commerce and +increasing riches everywhere to the happiness of mankind." On March +20th, 1801, when Austria had just made with France the Peace of +Luneville, Ker writes again to Nairne: + + We live in the age of wonders, sudden changes and Revolutions. The + French have now completely turned the tables on us. They have + forced Austria to a disastrous peace and Russia, Prussia, Denmark + and Sweden from being our friends and Allies are now uniting with + our bitter foes for our destruction, so that from having almost all + Europe on our side against France we have now the contest to + support _alone_ against her _and almost all Europe_ and nothing + prevents the ambitious French Republic from being conquerors of the + world but our little Islands and our invincible fleets. + Notwithstanding all this we do not seem afraid of invasion and a + large fleet under Sir Hide Parker and Lord Nelson is preparing to + sail for the Baltic to bring the northern powers to a sense of + their duty, and to break in pieces the unnatural coalition with our + inveterate foes, the foes of Religion, Property, true Liberty, + which but for our strenuous efforts would soon nowhere exist on + this Globe. + +In spite of what Ker says as to no fear of invasion, such a fear grew +really very strong in 1801, and, for a brief period, it seemed as if +Murray Bay might become a refuge for Nairne's kindred in the distressed +mother land. One of his sisters writes in an undated letter: + + We are much obliged to you for the kind of reception you say we + should have met with at Mal Bay had we fled there from the French + and I do assure you ... it was for some time a very great comfort + and relief to think we had resources to trust to. I for one, I am + sure, was almost frightened out of my wits, for a visit from these + monsters, even the attempt, tho' they had been subdued after + landing, was fearsome. I suspect you might have had more of your + friends than your own family to have provided for. The Hepburns I + know turned their thoughts toward you and all of us determined to + work for our bread the best way we could. But you might have no + small addition to your settlers; some of us poor old creatures + would have settled heavy enough I fear upon yourself and family. It + is a fine place Mal Bay turned by your account. What a deal of + respectable company. I am glad of it on your account. A very great + piece of good fortune to get Col. Fraser so near; I wonder he does + not marry Maidy, but she will think him too old. I think Christine + may do a great deal worse than spend the summer if not more at Mal + Bay. You are most amazingly indulgent to her. I wish she would make + a grateful return by bestowing more of her company on her friends + at home in a situation it would appear so pleasant. But she is a + good kind-hearted Lassie after all and I suppose when she has got + her full swing of Quebec she will be very well pleased to return + home. + +A legislature now sat at Quebec, the result of the new Constitutional +Act passed in 1791, and Nairne might have become a member. Murray Bay +then formed a part of what, with little fitness, had been called by the +English conquerors the County of Northumberland, no doubt because it lay +in the far north of Canada as Northumberland lies in the far north of +England. Two members sat in the legislature for this county. "I never +had any idea of trying to be one of them," writes Nairne in 1800, "but +succeeded in procuring that honour for a friend Dr. Fisher, who resides +in Quebec. He is rich and much flattered with it and is ready on all +occasions to speak." + +To Nairne, contrary to a general impression, the climate of Canada did +not seem to grow milder as the land was cleared. In any case the blood +of old age runs less hotly. Formerly the winter had its delights of +hunting excursions but now, he writes, these are all over. "The passion +I had formerly for hunting and fishing and wandering through the woods +is abated.... What with the cold hand of old age my former Winter +excursions into the woods seem impossible and no more now of fishing +and hunting which formerly I esteemed so interesting a business." He +writes again: "My employment is more in the sedentary way than formerly +and what from calls in my own affairs and calls from people here in +theirs, accounts to settle, &c., [I have] ... plenty of occupation. +Besides being a Justice of the Peace and Colonel of Militia ... I employ +myself without doors in farming, gardening, clearing and manuring land." +If we may credit the words of Bishop Hubert of Quebec written just at +this time (in 1794) the new liberties gained by the habitants did not +make the seigneur's task easier. The good bishop makes sweeping charges +of general dishonesty; of attempts to defraud the church of her tithe +and the seigneurs of their dues; of bitter feuds between families and +innumerable law suits. In such conditions Nairne, as a justice of the +peace, would have his hands full. + +His end was drawing very near. One of his sisters died in 1798. This +brought sad thoughts but he wrote: "I am very thankful to have found in +the world connexions who have produced such regards and sympathys. Time +seems not to be going slowly now-a-days but running fast. I hope we are +to have other times and to know one another hereafter." "I must make +haste now," he wrote later, in 1801, "to finish all improvements here +that may be possible as I will soon be finished myself. Crushed already +under a load of years of 7 times 10 really I find the last 2 years ... +heavier than 20 before that time." "The scenes of this life," he had +written to his old friend and neighbour Malcolm Fraser "are continually +varying like the elements, sometimes cloudy, sometimes sun shine; [it] +never lasts long one way or the other till night soon comes and we must +then lie down and die. Therefore all is vanity and vexation of spirit, +but God will help us and most certainly some time or other bless and +reward the friendly honest man." + +His last letter to his Scottish relations was intended to be a farewell: + + _Colonel Nairne to his Sister Miss M. Nairne From Murray Bay, 20th + April, 1802._ + + My Dear Madie,-- + + I shall see our friends in the world of spirits probably before any + of you; whatever darkness we are in here I have always convinced + myself that we shall meet again in a better place hereafter. + + Although I have enjoyed good health till past 70 years of age, the + agues of Holland and sometimes excessive fatigue have probably + weakened parts of my inward machinery that they are now wore out + and must soon finish their functions. I can have no reason to + expect to live longer than our father; I am chiefly uneasy that the + event may occasion grief to my sisters, yet it ought to be less + felt my being at a distance; a poor affair to grieve when it must + be all your fates to follow. I am happy that Mr. Ker understands my + circumstances and my last will, and that he will be so good and so + able to assist in settling it properly; I wish to follow his ideas + therein in case of any difficulty, and I am likewise perfectly + satisfied with all Mr. Ker's accounts with me. I write this letter + to you to go by the first ship in case I should not be able to + write later; I do not expect to be able to write to Robie Hepburn + nor to Mr. Ker; nothing I can tell now from this country can + entertain them; my mind is taken up with nothing but the + Friendship, which they know.... So soon as the weather is warmer I + intend to go to Quebec in order to obtain the best advice: I shall + not personally be so conveniently situated there, as here. I am + able yet to go out as far as a bank before the Door and to walk + through the rooms; indeed the arrangements and conveniences of this + house with the attendance and attention I receive are all in the + best manner I can possibly desire; ... it's enough to say that were + you here I think you would approve of them. Industry and neatness + prevail and everything nesessary [is] foreseen and provided for. No + wonder my wife and I agree so well now these thirty-five years as + she happens to be equal in every moral attribute which I pretend + to.... We are in friendship with everybody, because we do justice + impartially and really without vanity have assisted many persons in + forming farms and providing for the support of familys; although + thereby not in the way of enriching ourselves it affords perhaps as + much Satisfaction. + + This place certainly thrives exceedingly; although we may by such + exertions be recommending ourselves to the Father of all things, + how poor they appear in my eyes having read lately the Newspapers. + Most unreasonable are some men in Parliament to find fault with the + ministry of Pitt and Dundass who have steered the Vessel of the + State so successfully through such dangerous times and threatening + appearances. Every Briton I think has reason to be proud of his + Country which is raised higher than ever before not only in + national Character but in its prospects of Commerce and Wealth by + the Peace [the brief Peace of Amiens signed in March, 1802]. What + prodigious honour and glory has been acquired and bestowed upon our + Army of Egypt, exertions indeed on the most conspicuous theatre of + the World and at the most conspicuous period of the world. We + formerly thought ourselves sort of heroes by conquering Louisbourg + and Quebec but nothing must be compared to that of Egypt.... The + French troops have fought much better under their Diacal + Republican government than under their King's and our troops not + only fight equally well as formerly, but our Generals and Officers + are much better writers; never have I read better wrote letters + than those describing these renown'd events. + + But pray allow me to sink into poetry to help to fill up this + paper; ... let me transcribe a letter in verse which is handed me + now by an old Soldier residing near us.[18] He received it from an + acquaintance of his who is only a private soldier in the 26th + Regiment. That Regt. is now gone home; ... should it be at + Edinburgh pray invite James Stevenson to a dram of Whiskey for my + sake; though I do not know the man we had served together in the + American War and he shows the idea the private men had of me and + how a man of a slender education (I believe from Glasgow) can make + verses. The Canadians here, I believe, have the same opinion though + they are very far from making verses upon any subject whatever; it + is much more useful here to cut down trees which they can do with + great dexterity. + + Quebec, 25th April, 1800. + + My worthy conty, gude Jock Warren, + Thou's still jocose and ay auld farren, + Gentle and kind, blythe, frank and free, + And always unco' gude to me. + And now thou's sold thy country ware + And towards hame mean to repair.[19] + Accept these lines although but weak + And read them for thy Comrade's sake. + May plenty still around thee smile + And God's great help thy foes beguile, + In Wisdom's path be sure to tread + And her fair daughter Virtue wed. + My compliments and love sincere + To all our friends both here and there, + But in particular to him + That's tall in body, long in limb, + Auld faithful Loyal, Johny Nairne, + Lang may he count you his ain bairne; + By his example still be sway'd; + Be his good precepts still obeyed; + Revere this good and worthy man + And always do the best you can. + This is my wish and expectation, + God granting you and me salvation. + We ance were young but now we're auld, + Oour blood from heat commences cauld, + A drop of whiskey warms the whole, + Renews the body, cheers the soul; + Observing still due moderation, + In order to prevent vexation, + Proceeding on with cautious care + Till Death with his grim face appear; + Then with a conscience, just and true + See Heaven's Glory, in your View. + + My neighbour, Mr. Fraser, tells me that by my looks and speaking he + cannot think me so ill as imagined. You will think the same by my + writing the above. My distemper is owing to Gravelly Ulcers and it + is a great chance at my time of life to recover, so [we] should be + prepared for the worst. + + It is a satisfaction to me to have been able to write this letter, + such as it is. My thoughts are every day and every night with my + sisters and [I] figure myself frequently at your fireside. Remember + I am not to write any more unless I get a great deal better. [I] + shall refer you to Christine to correspond and to tell you all you + would wish to know from this country. And now I have nothing but + Compts. and love to send to all my friends--to Robie Hepburn as my + oldest and nearest my heart--my blessings to his family, as to the + Kers and Congaltons. And once more to Anny you and Mary and Mrs. + Ker and my Polly and Tom. God bless you all. I am truly my dear + Madie with much affection, + + Yours for aye, + + JOHN NAIRNE. + +Nairne was not mistaken in his view that the end was near. He writes +about this time to his physician at Quebec (there was no practitioner at +Murray Bay) describing his symptoms and ends: "Now, dear Doctor, I dare +say you think some apologies necessary for my troubling you so +particularly with the complaints of an old man of 71, as his inward +machinery is probably wore out and irreparable." In a last vain hope +they took him to Quebec for medical care. But the machinery was, indeed, +"wore out," and at Quebec, on July 14th, 1802, he closed his eyes on a +world which, though it brought him labour and sorrow, he thought to be +very good. + +Among his own letters is preserved the printed invitation to his +funeral: + + Quebec, _Wednesday, 14th July, 1802._ + + Sir,-- + + The favour of your company is requested to attend the Funeral of + the late Colonel Nairne, from No. 1 Grison Street, on Cape Diamond, + to the place of interment, on Friday next at one o'clock in the + afternoon. + +All that was most worthy in Quebec attended to do honour to his memory. +He was buried in the Protestant cemetery; long after his body was +removed to Mount Hermon Cemetery, to lie beside his son and +grandson--the last of his race. + +Nairne played his part with high purpose and integrity. Among his papers +at Murray Bay is a prayer, intended apparently for daily use, in which +he asks that he may be vigilant in conduct and immovable in all good +purposes; that he may show courage in danger, patience in adversity, +humility in prosperity. He asks, too, to be made sensible "how little is +this world, how great [are] thy Heavens, and how long will be thy +blessed eternity." It is the prayer of a strong soul facing humbly and +reverently the tasks of life.[20] He would have wished to found a +community English speaking and Protestant. But the forces of nature were +against him. The few English speaking people who came in (and they were +but a few scattered individuals) for the most part married French +wives. The children held the faith and spoke the tongue which they +learned at their mothers' knees. It was the course of nature, and always +we are foolish to quarrel with nature. A granite monument marks the +resting place where the good old man sleeps in the cemetery at Quebec, +but some memorial might well stand at Murray Bay, that those who look +out upon the majestic river, the blue mountains, the smiling valley +should have before them a reminder of the "friendly, honest man" who, a +century and a half ago, began to win their heritage from the +wilderness.[21] + +[Footnote 13: It may be convenient to state at once the dates of the +births and deaths of each of these children: + +Magdalen (Madie) (Mrs. McNicol) born 1767 died 1839. +Christine Nairne " 1774 " 1817. +John Nairne " 1777 " 1799. +Mary (Polly) Nairne " 1782 " 1821. +Thomas Nairne " 1787 " 1813. +] + +[Footnote 14: See Appendix D., p. 277., for a formal memorandum drawn up +by Nairne for his son's guidance.] + +[Footnote 15: See Appendix E., p. 279. "The 'Porpoise' (Beluga or White +Whale) Fishery on the St. Lawrence."] + +[Footnote 16: "Les Anciens Canadiens," Chapter IV.] + +[Footnote 17: Sir Alexander Mackenzie who accomplished in 1793 what was +then the astonishing feat of crossing the Rocky Mountains to the Pacific +Ocean and whose book, "Voyages from Montreal on the River St. Lawrence, +through the Continent of North America, to the Frozen and Pacific +Oceans," first published in 1801, attracted general attention, including +even that of Napoleon Bonaparte.] + +[Footnote 18: John Warren, the ancestor of the numerous family at Murray +Bay of that name.] + +[Footnote 19: Warren, Nairne's neighbour, had been visiting Quebec +apparently for business reasons.] + +[Footnote 20: See Appendix F., p. 286, for this Prayer of Colonel +Nairne.] + +[Footnote 21: The inscription to be placed on Nairne's tomb was long a +subject of debate in the family. Two drafts remain at Murray Bay, both +copious in length, and neither like the inscription now to be found at +Mount Hermon Cemetery. (See p. 221.) In the taste of the time +inscriptions were expected to give a full account of the career of the +dead man. One of these inscriptions speaks of Nairne's "enjoying as a +reward of his services a gift of Land on the River St. Lawrence. He had +alike the merit and the happiness of converting a wild and uninhabited +desert into a flourishing colony of above 1000 inhabitants, who regarded +him as their Tender Friend and Patriarch. He died honoured with the +esteem of all who knew him." The other inscription mentions what, +otherwise, we should not have known, that Nairne received a wound on the +Plains of Abraham. It goes on in verse: + + "Though 'gainst the Foe a dauntless Front he reared, + Ne'er from his lips was aught assuming heard; + Modest, though brave; though firm, in manners mild, + Strong in resolve, though guileless as a child; + To honor true, in probity correct; + To falsehood [stern] and urgent to detect; + To party strange, to calumny a foe; + The good Samaritan to sons of woe; + At a late hour he heard the fatal call, + Obeyed and died, wept and deplored by all." +] + + + + +CHAPTER VI + +THOMAS NAIRNE, SEIGNEUR OF MURRAY BAY + + His Education in Scotland.--His winning character.--He enters the + army.--Malcolm Fraser's counsels to a young soldier.--Thomas + Nairne's life at Gibraltar.--His desire to retire from the + army.--His return to Canada in 1810-11.--His life at Quebec.--His + summer at Murray Bay, 1811.--His resolve to remain in the + army.--Beginning of the War of 1812.--Captain Nairne on Lake + Ontario.--Quebec Society and the proposed flight from danger to + Murray Bay.--Anxiety at Murray Bay.--The progress of the War.--An + American attack on Kingston.--Captain Nairne on the Niagara + frontier.--Naval War on Lake Ontario.--Nairne's description of a + naval engagement.--Sense of impending disaster at Murray Bay.--The + American advance on Montreal by the St. Lawrence.--Nairne's + regiment a part of the opposing British force.--The Battle of + Crysler's Farm.--Nairne's death.--His body taken to Quebec.--The + grief of the family at Murray Bay.--The funeral. + + +At his father's death Thomas Nairne was the only surviving son. In 1791 +the father had written of this boy, born in 1787 and thus only four +years old: "Tom continues very stout but not easy to manage and [I] am +afraid it will be difficult to separate [him] from his mother. He does +not speak a word of English; neither do your sisters Mary (now called +Polly) or Anny speak any other language than French; but I intend to +send them all to Quebec next summer, where it's to be hoped they will +soon learn to understand a little English." So to Quebec Tom was sent to +begin his education. By 1798, when only eleven years old, he had gone to +the relatives in Scotland and Nairne's friend, Ker, writes of him: "I +think Tommie one of the sweetest tempered fine boys I ever saw and he +will, I doubt not, be the comfort and delight of you all." Polly was +there too--"a very good girl ... of great use to her Aunts to whom she +pays every attention." Tom, like his brother John, was carefully +instructed by his father. He must look after himself, dress, care for +his clothes, and keep clean, without troubling others. Especially must +he try to think clearly and speak distinctly--truly a sound beginning of +education. His brother's death in 1799 made him an important person, the +pride of his house. "There are many Tams now in this parish," wrote his +father in 1801, "even a part of it is named St. Thomas, all in +compliment to our Tom." At the time of his father's death in 1802, a boy +of fifteen, Tom was attending the Edinburgh High School. Before me lies +a coverless account book of octavo size in which are written by some +careful person, in clear round-hand, recipes, scraps of poetry, problems +in arithmetic and geometry, and among other things, "Tom's Expenses, +1796." A quarter at the High School costs 10/6, "Lattin books," 4/-, +school money is 3/-, a ferret 3d., and so on. His sister Polly's +expenses are entered in the same book and that young lady's outlay was +more formidable. Items for the milliner such as "making up a Bonnet. +3/6," (young ladies still wore bonnets) are frequent. Miss Polly spent +6/- on ear-rings. Once when she took a "Shaise" it cost her 2/-, while +"Chair Hire" is sometimes 1/6 and sometimes reduced to the modest +proportions of 9d. No doubt for her health's sake she bought for 1/- a +"Sacred Tincture" which, we may hope, did her good. + +Thomas Nairne was an attractive boy. He lived with his father's executor +and friend, James Ker, an Edinburgh banker, a wise, prudent, far-seeing, +man. Mr. Ker was married to Colonel Nairne's niece and he received Tom +as his own child. The boy was the inseparable companion of Ker's son +Alick. Tom won praises on all sides. An Aunt wrote seriously that she +had feared he was too good to live; and she comforted Nairne's grief at +his son John's death by the thought of what Tom will be to him. He is "a +happy chearful pleased little fellow always quiet at home"--but also +"happy and at home wherever he goes." So thoughtful, she adds, is he +that, entirely on his own motion, he deems it proper to write to his +mother; one of these letters is before me--beautifully written in a +large but well-formed schoolboy hand. "A very promising sweet young +man," was the renewed judgment of his business-like guardian upon Tom +in 1803, when he was a boy of only sixteen. By that time, it was thought +that Tom had exhausted the advantages of the Edinburgh High School. The +Edinburgh accent of the day did not suit the taste of his fastidious +guardian, who hoped that in an English school a better manner of speech +might be acquired. Tom's cousin and companion, Alick Ker, a boy a few +years older, was going to school at Durham and thither also went Tom. +The lads "are the greatest friends in the world," wrote his watchful +aunt; "Alick does not know how to exist without Tom but Tom is more +independent of Alick, for he is not so shy." In an aunt's, perhaps +partial, view Tom was quicker and showed more application than Alick. +"Tom advances with great deliberation in his height," she writes, which +was very convenient, for, since Alick was older, Tom came in for Alick's +out-grown clothes and this saved expense. + +When the boy's school days were drawing to an end his future course was +the topic of much discussion. Tom's father had wished him to study law, +though not to practice it: in Canada, he thought, there was no lucrative +opening for any one trained in the law unless he was made a judge. Old +Malcolm Fraser, Tom's adviser after his father's death, would have had +him, for safety's sake, adopt a civilian life; he was the last male of +his house and therefore ought not to be exposed to a soldier's dangers. +Tom's Edinburgh friends wished him to become a Writer to the Signet or, +at any rate, to learn something about business since, as a landed +proprietor, he must be a man of affairs. But the youth took the matter +in his own hands. For his father's character and career he had always a +great reverence; soldier's blood was in his veins, and nature had her +way. Tom became a soldier and, when the school days are ended, we find +the boy, not yet eighteen, Lieutenant in the 10th Regiment of Foot. +Fraser wrote to Tom protesting against what he had done and from Maldon +Barracks, in Essex, on April 5th, 1805, Tom answers his godfather's +objections. Perhaps to add solemnity to his argument the old man had +assumed the tone of a valetudinarian and Tom replies: "I would fain hope +you had no reason for saying you would soon follow my dear Father. I +hope God will spare you to us since he has thought proper to take my +Father to Himself. Your loss would be irreparable, I having no other +person to protect my mother and sisters as I have chosen a line of life +in which I may never have the fortune of being near them." In spite of +Fraser's appeal, Tom's resolution to remain in the army was unshaken. + +It was an amazing era in Europe and well may Fraser have feared for the +young Lieutenant's safety. While the boy was writing, Napoleon +Bonaparte, with the lustre fresh upon him of a recent gorgeous +coronation at Paris as Emperor of the French, was gathering at Boulogne +a great army and hundreds of small boats with which this army might, he +hoped, be thrown across into England within twenty-four hours. That +country was very nervous but, for some reason, Tom's regiment, instead +of being kept at home to meet the invader, was sent to Gibraltar. Here +he remained inactive while world-shaking events were happening, while +Trafalgar and Austerlitz and Jena were fought, and Pitt stricken with +"the noblest of all sorrows," grief for the seeming ruin of his country, +told those about him to "roll up the map of Europe," and died +heartbroken. Not unnaturally at such a time Gibraltar seemed dull; a +miserable place, Tom thought, a prison on a large scale. His friends +wrote him letters containing an abundance of good advice, all of which +he took with becoming modesty. A letter from Fraser of this character is +still excellent reading; his counsels to the young soldier have added +weight when we remember that the author was with Wolfe at Louisbourg and +Quebec and now, nearly fifty years later, was still active in the +militia forces of Canada. + + _Malcolm Fraser to Lieut. Thomas Nairne_ + + _From Murray Bay, 7th October, 1805._ + + My Dear Godson,-- + + I had the very great pleasure of receiving yours of the 5th April + last at this place on the 15th September and as your sister Miss + Christine has wrote you I must refer you to her for the news of + Murray Bay. She left this for Quebec a few days ago and every thing + continues to go well here and I hope will do so. Your mother + improves your estate daily and if she lives ten years I am + convinced that she will make it worth double what it was ten years + ago and if after a peace, when I hope you will have a company, you + can get exchanged into a Regiment serving in this Country without + losing rank, you will by that means have an opportunity of + examining your own affairs here and it will give the greatest + pleasure to your mother and other relations and friends within your + native country, and particularly to me, should I happen to live so + long. Christine has I suppose wrote that you are now an uncle, your + sister Madie having been delivered of a fine boy about two months + ago, and I have the pleasure to tell you that she and her husband + seem to be very happy and, tho' I did not at first approve of the + match, that I am now quite reconciled to it as are all her friends + here, as well as those in Scotland as far as I can learn. + + Now as to yourself: tho' I had some objections to your going into + the army so very young, yet now that you have become a soldier, I + hope you will continue to follow the military life with ardour and + Emulation as far as lays in your power and that you will endeavour + to employ your spare time in acquiring the various accomplishments + necessary to become a good officer. I would by no means advise you + to avoid such innocent pleasures and amusements as are suitable to + your age and rank. But I pray you beware of being led astray or + going into any excess. I am very glad to find that the army is now + in general much less addicted to (what was falsely called) the + pleasures of the bottle than in former times, but you may still + meet with temptations in that way which I hope you'll guard + against. Try to resemble your late worthy father in temperance and + moderation as well as in punctuality and exactness in doing your + duty with strict subordination to your superiors, particularly to + the commanding officer of your corps, as it is by his + recommendation, commonly, that those under his immediate command + may expect promotion. You must by all means avoid getting into any + parties or factions against him, which I have known sometimes to + have unfortunately happened to others; but there can be hardly + anything more detrimental to the service as well as dishonourable + to the corps wherein it takes place. I would also recommend to you + ..., in case you are engaged in any action, to beware of passing + judgment on the conduct of your Commanders, till at least you are + of an age and have acquired experience to entitle you to give your + opinion, as it is very common for a young man to be mistaken. You + must also avoid any dispute or difference with your brother + officers, for tho' there are unhappily some cases where a gentleman + _must_ vindicate his honour yet where I have known such things + happen they might have been prevented _with honour_ if the parties + had not allowed their passions to get the better of their reason; + and you must remember there is never honour to be acquired by being + quarrelsome, but the reverse, and that your life ought now to be + devoted to the service of your King and country. I know you will + not be sparing of it when occasion requires. + + I would also recommend to you to read useful books when you have + time and to acquire a competent knowledge of History, both Ancient + and Modern, especially that of the country in whose service you + are engaged, as also such books as treat of your profession; and to + pay particular attention to the lives and actions of those who have + distinguished themselves in its service, who you will find to have + been in general as remarkable for their moral, as for their + military characters; and I hope you will endeavour to imitate them + and, tho' you may not acquire the rank, you must remember that you + cannot become a _good general_ or even a good officer without first + acquiring a competent knowledge of your profession. For this + purpose (tho' I never had any proper knowledge of those matters + myself yet I am sensible of my deficiency) I would have you study + and read such books as treat of fortification and encampments; and + as you are still very young I imagine you may soon acquire a + competent knowledge by such reading, suitable to avail yourself of + it on any emergency. + + I must now recommend you to keep those who may be under your + command in that degree of subordination and obedience which the + service requires. But you must never forget that your inferiors, + even the Private Man who serves in the ranks, is your fellow + soldier and fellow-man, and that you are bound to show him every + attention and humanity in your power. This was one of the many good + qualities for which your father was remarkable, for which he was + beloved by all ranks; and I hope you will imitate him. I must now + conclude by recommending to you to let me hear from you once a + year, at least, or oftener if an opportunity offers. Nothing can + give more pleasure than to hear good accounts of you to + + Your affectionate godfather, + + MALCOLM FFRASER. + + In short you must never forget that you may at times become + responsible for the lives and honour of those under your command as + well as for your own, and, it may even happen, for that of your + King and Country, in some degree, and that you are to act + accordingly. All this with more and much better you may read or + hear from others; but I flatter myself that you will not think the + less of it as coming from _me_. + +It must be admitted that the soldier's ideal in that age for the British +army was as high as our own. We are accustomed to think that a hundred +years ago drunkenness was hardly accounted a vice. Perhaps it was not in +civil life, but in the army, in young Nairne's time, sobriety was the +rule. Writing on May 20th, 1807, he says that few in the army resort to +drink, as a pleasure, even at Gibraltar, where wine is cheap and +plentiful; the allowance in the regiment after dinner is but one-third +of a bottle, and only now and then when there are guests is it usual to +depart from this allowance. The deadly dullness and idleness of +Gibraltar were its chief defects, the young officer thought. + +There had been futile talk of peace. On August 13th, 1806, Ker wrote to +Murray Bay from Edinburgh: "We expect to hear of Peace between this +country and France. The Earl of Lauderdale has been sent to Paris to +treat. But what sort of peace can we make with Bona Parte?" What sort +indeed? Peace was not to come during Tom Nairne's lifetime. He was +getting ready meanwhile for an enlarged career. At Gibraltar he pressed +his guardian to purchase him a captaincy. Those were the bad old days +when promotion in the army went largely by purchase and Tom had been +Lieutenant for little more than a year when, at a cost of L1,000, Ker +bought for him the desired rank; he attained to this dignity at the age +of nineteen. The purchase strained his resources severely but his family +got some comfort out of the thought that he was advancing. There was an +excellent library at Gibraltar and he had good opportunities for +self-improvement of which he promised to avail himself. But the promise +was hardly realized. At any rate Tom gave a very poor account of his own +doings for, after he had returned to England, he wrote to his mother +(from Chelmsford Barracks on March 19th, 1808) a not very flattering +account of himself at Gibraltar: + + Only figure to yourself a rock, about two miles and a half in + length and scarcely the fifth part of that in breadth, and then + most likely you will not be so much astonished at my making the + above comparison [of Gibraltar to a prison], from which you may + wisely suppose that those unfortunate beings who had the misfortune + of being shut up in it led a most inactive and stupid life.... + However, to give the Devil his due, I must not omit to observe that + it contained a most excellent Library, by which means officers + might improve themselves greatly and spend their leisure hours to + their credit, provided they were desirous of doing so; particularly + as nothing existed in that place to take off their attention from + study; and I make no doubt but some young men had the sense to + profit by that favourable opportunity. At the same time [I] am + extremely sorry to inform you your promising son did not, in any + shape whatever, and am much concerned to add that he spent a very + idle life whilst there, doing nothing else the live-long day than + riding or lounging; which I presume you will think was a complete + disgrace to any man of a liberal education, in which I perfectly + agree with you.... I sincerely hope and trust that he [your son] + will mend as he becomes older and wiser. + +Tom confesses himself at this time "a complete idle, good for nothing +fellow," but he disarms his mother's reproaches when he adds that he is +chiefly occupied in thinking of her and of his large estate in Canada +where he longs to be. It had for him a new attraction, since his cousin +Alick Ker was just going out to Canada, a Captain on the staff of Sir +James Craig, the new Governor, who was related to the Kers. For the time +Tom's family was content that he should be at Gibraltar, where he was +safe, and where, too, as Ker prudently says, "he lives cheaper than he +could in England, has a genteel [how the age loved that word!] society +and the use of a large Library." He rode on the sandy beach; sometimes, +until the coming of the French troops, the British officers were allowed +to ride into Spain. + +These diversions all came to an end on August 26th, 1807, when Tom +turned his back on Gibraltar for good. Incredible as it may now seem, +the voyage to England took nearly a month; he arrived on the 24th of +September. The young man had been turning over seriously his future +prospects. In a letter to his mother he makes some enquiry about his +own probable income from his estate. While protesting that he is himself +"a Devilish ugly fellow" he has some thought of getting his mother to +choose a "rib" for him and, presumptuous as it may seem, she must be +handsome. He was thinking now of a civilian career. At Gibraltar he had +found that he was short-sighted, and long sight seemed a necessity to a +soldier. But Fraser, to whom he poured out his woe, answered that +short-sightedness need not interfere with his efficiency; Colonel Nairne +had been short-sighted and yet, withal, a successful officer; the +question of sight would matter only if he was in command, in face of the +enemy, and, even then, he could get assistance. Fraser advised him to +stay in the army until he attained the rank of a field officer, when he +might retire on half pay to his estate at Murray Bay, "extensive but not +valuable in proportion." In truth Tom, tired of the army, was home-sick. +He says to Fraser that he is "feeling an indescribable degree of anxiety +to see my dearest mother, sisters, and yourself, not forgetting to +include my estate, where I often figure myself, strutting about like +unto a mighty Bashaw; which peaceful idea I sincerely hope will be +realized, some day or other, if it pleases God to spare me so long; ... +my only desire is now that blessed time may be near at hand or even that +I could afford to set out to Murray Bay without any further delay. +However it is proper to drown that wish, for the present, amongst the +noise of arms, as the whole world is up against us, and my assistance, +though little enough, God knows, may be of some use. At all events it +would be tasting the sweets of this life before I had ever felt the +miseries of it." He ends by asking that nothing of which he is possessed +may be spared "towards making Alick Ker pass a pleasant time in Canada." + +The fear which the old aunt had ingenuously expressed that Tom might +prove too good to live was happily belied, for he appears to have been a +sufficiently idle young fellow, though, as his watchful guardian wrote, +"a good economist"; the same guardian thought this extremely opportune, +since "Bona Parte," with all Europe under his heel, was making it lively +for the fortunate islands, and forcing them to levy a tax of 10% on +incomes. "This tax," writes the indignant banker, "is one of the many +blessed fruits of the French Revolution, and of the horrible tyranny and +perfidy of their rascally Emperor." + +Not long did Tom remain in England. Soon he was off with his regiment to +Sicily, at this period garrisoned by British troops, and saved by a +strip of inviolate sea from the grasp of the master of Italy. The +sojourn in Sicily must have been dull. He was stationed at Syracuse, but +his school training had not gone deep enough to interest him in +Thucydides's marvellous story of the siege of that place or in the +antiquities of Sicily. The chief surviving record of his sojourn in +Sicily is an account from his washerwoman, "Mrs. De Lass," dated at +Syracuse the 8th of March, 1809. His distaste for the army was now +complete. His sister Polly had ended her school days and, by a fortunate +circumstance, had gone out to Canada "under the protection of Sir +William Johnstone's lady" and to Canada Tom was himself resolved to go. +Early in 1810, he was back in Edinburgh, taking a few weeks' holiday +with the Kers, resolved to go on half pay at once, if possible, or, +failing this, to sell out, and after a delay of fourteen or fifteen +months, to go home to Murray Bay. The intervening time he intended to +spend in the study of farming; he had almost completed a plan for going +into Berwickshire to reside with a farmer and thus equip himself as a +land owner. His friends thought him changeable. "The Captain," wrote Ker +on the 30th of March, 1810, "is a sweet tempered good young man but he +wants steadiness.... I fear that after trying to be a farmer at Murray +Bay he may tire and want to return to the army." So serious was Tom +about his future bucolic life that he wrote to his sister Christine, as +he had written before to his mother, to ask whether she did not think he +should look round for a wife; such a companion would be necessary, he +thought, if he settled down as a farmer in Canada. We can imagine that +the proposition, from a youth of twenty-three, caused some dismay among +the occupants of the Manor House at Murray Bay; but Tom was soon +professing himself something of a woman hater and he never married. + +His return to Murray Bay followed quickly. By a fortunate, or perhaps, +in view of the tragic fate awaiting poor Tom, unfortunate, chance, +instead of going on half-pay, he was able to exchange from the 10th +Regiment of Foot to the Newfoundland Regiment. The chief reason for the +exchange was that the Newfoundland Regiment was ordered to Canada, where +Tom could get leave of absence to pay a long visit to Murray Bay and +learn how its life would suit him. So, in the autumn of 1810, the young +man was in Canada, which he had not seen since childhood. To Murray Bay +he soon paid a flying visit; the longer leave of absence would come +later. His competent, busy, prudent and affectionate old mother welcomed +him with open arms. He had thought of himself as a young Bashaw +strutting round among the people of his seigniory. No doubt they were +much interested to see the young Captain; but his duties soon called him +back to Quebec, from which place on December 3rd, 1810, he writes to his +mother: + + I have this moment finished drinking tea, all alone.... You have + totally spoiled my relish for anything except for Murray Bay; my + notions of things in general appear to be entirely changed. Murray + Bay while viewed only in perspective afforded me a sort of pleasing + reflection; but now that I have a nearer view and enjoyed its + comforts my ideas have experienced a complete revolution. So you + see what your society and most kind loving treatment have effected. + You may therefore rest assured that no stone will be left unturned + to try to get back in order that we may remain together in this + world as long as it may please the Almighty to permit us. On my + arrival here at 2 o'clock p.m. I proceeded to the Upper Town in + order to look out for a bed, concerning the getting of which I had + entertained my doubts being, _tout ensemble_, a queer figure, + having on my covered handkerchief, thick great coat, Canadian + boots, and round hat; in short at the first essay I was refused by + a "No room in the house, Sir," a common reply given to those whose + unfortunate appearance happens not exactly to please the harsh and + scrutinizing eye of the lord of the mansion. I then turned my + frozen steps towards this house of hospitality where after + explaining _mon besoin_ to the waiter he scrupulously and + critically eyed me from top to toe, from head to foot, then turned + on his heel to go to his master and report accordingly. During his + absence I commenced a serious inspection of self to find if + possible what had attracted his attention so pointedly towards my + toes, when I observed the cause to be the silver chain of my + over-alls peeping out from under my great-coat; which, no doubt, + was the reason of having received a favourable answer; for on his + re-entrance he asked me to sit down and I finally engaged a room. + +On January 9th, 1811, Tom wrote to say that a man had arrived from +Murray Bay but without letters: + + "What the Devil has come over those sisters of mine? Pray are they + still behind the stove patching their old stockings? No time + forsooth--Rediculous--Could not the lazy wretches have only wrote + me the scratch of a pen merely to wish me a good New Year? Mr. + McCord to be sure mumbles something about time; it is highly + diverting to have country lasses talk about want of time, + particularly those I am now speaking of, unless they have greatly + altered for the better since I saw them last, and turned their + hands to cow-keeping, tending of poultry, or something of that + description; but I'll be bound for it they still employ themselves + with nothing else except perching behind the stove, growling, and + driving carriols." + +He exhorts his sisters to take long walks in the fine cold weather. Then +he dips into politics. There is to be an election at Murray Bay for the +county of Northumberland and Mr. Bouchette, a Canadian, had asked for +the interest of Tom as seigneur. He regrets that he cannot himself offer +to stand since he is unsettled in plans, "and totally unacquainted with +the language of the country"; a strange comment on the fact that in +early youth he had known only French. The habitant had recently secured +the right to vote but already pleased himself in exercising it. Though, +as Tom says, "Dr. La Terriere of the adjacent seigniory of Les +Eboulements, the Cures, and the Devil knows who" all wished Bouchette +elected and Tom was himself anxious that a habitant should not be +chosen, Bouchette failed and a habitant was sent to Quebec to represent +the district in the Legislature. + +Tom's letters written during the winter of 1810-1811 are full of the +gossip and events of the time in Quebec. He is now obviously keen for +self-improvement, and, in the manner of his father, for the improvement +of others also; while congratulating Polly on the better style of her +letters which are now "sprightly", he corrects her spelling. Among other +things he is trying to complete a proper inscription for his father's +tomb. He sends for the title deeds of his property in order that he may +do homage to the governor Sir James Craig, and shows a lively interest +in the management of his estate. His father's old friend, Colonel +Fraser, was visiting Quebec which, more than fifty years earlier, he had +helped to win for Britain but where now, it is somewhat sad to think, he +has, as Tom says, very few acquaintances. So the young Captain spends +two or three hours daily with the Colonel and finds that he has many +interesting subjects to talk with him about. He drives with him into the +country. He enquires about a house in Quebec which his mother had some +thought of buying and talks of a trip to Montreal to buy a horse to send +to Murray Bay. In the letters home Christine, "Rusty" is the special +object of his teasing. She has been accustomed to spend the winters at +Quebec, but is now at Murray Bay, and he asks how she likes the dull +country at this season. "She never says anything about it, which is in +her favour.... I trust that through the means of Picquet you contrive to +keep her rusty dollars moving." Tom's absence from Murray Bay was soon +to end. On March, 23rd, 1811, he wrote joyously that he has got leave of +absence for six months, and is coming "to my own dear Murray Bay." +Christine had been dangerously ill and he is naturally anxious to be at +home. + +So behold the young seigneur disporting himself at Murray Bay in the +spring of 1811. Old Malcolm Fraser, at the manor of Mount Murray just +across the bay, kept a watchful eye on the godson who, he had begun to +fear, was not proving wholly satisfactory. The cause of Fraser's +misgiving is not clear but he lectured Tom with tactful insight. Of his +own career the young officer was now beginning to take a new view. +During the long holiday at Murray Bay he had time to taste its pleasures +and to learn its chief interests. He went out fishing and shooting; he +sailed and rowed on the river; he occupied himself in the daily business +of the seigniory, for which his competent mother had so long cared; she +was now building a mill which would probably add to Tom's revenues. He +made friends with the cure Mr. Le Courtois. This gentleman, a French +emigre, who found a refuge in Canada, had thrown himself with great +devotion into the rough life of a missionary among the scattered +peoples, Canadians and Indians alike, of his remote parish. He was a man +of culture and remained always a valued counsellor of the Protestant +family in the Manor House.[22] But, in spite of all the interests and +friendships at Murray Bay, Tom soon found that the little community +hardly needed him. Every thing was well looked after, prosperous and +promising. He would be only a fifth wheel to the coach and, before long, +he had made up his mind that he had better stick to his military career. + +Without doubt Tom was a young man of winning character. Malcolm Fraser, +having studied him and lectured him, reconsidered his unfavourable +estimate, and wrote to Ker on the 10th of October, 1811: "I think him +incapable of any immoral or mean action; ... he seems to hearken to the +lectures of his old Godfather tho' not perhaps always delivered in the +most delicate Style." To his mother he was a tender son, and for his +father's memory he showed a filial reverence. One of his first acts on +arriving in Canada had been to arrange for the erection in Quebec of a +proper monument in his memory--something that others had long talked +about and which Tom brought to completion, but which has, alas, long +since disappeared. Tom was in truth a man of action, and to action in +the larger world he now turned. Towards the end of September, 1811, at +the time when, to-day, Murray Bay's summer sojourners turn reluctantly +homeward from the crisp autumn air and from the mountain sides beginning +to show the season's glowing tints, Captain Nairne set out from the +Manor House to join his regiment at Quebec. He had in mind a plan to go +back to Europe and to get to Spain or Portugal for a share in the +Peninsular War then raging. Fraser, now in his 79th year, writes on +October 10th, 1811, his advice that the young man "should continue on +full pay till he attains the rank of Major, by brevet or otherwise, and +then, if he chooses, he may exchange and retire on the half of whatever +full pay he holds at the time, and as soon as such exchange can be +accomplished with decency and propriety." War with the United States was +now impending, hardly a fitting time for a young man to withdraw from +the army, and Fraser points out that "in the present situation of public +affairs and at his age and fitness for service" Tom's retirement would +be hardly decent. "Next to my own nearest connections," he continues, +"my chief attention will be paid to Captain Nairne and the other +connections of his late Father with whom I had the happiness to live in +Friendship and intimacy from our first meeting (1757) till his Decease +(1802) and I trust we shall meet again in a future state." + +The young man thus returned to his military duties with his old friend's +benediction and restored confidence. But to the family the plan for a +military career was a sore disappointment. His sister Christine, its +woman of the world, and the one most in touch with the Canadian society +of the time, was keen that Tom should live at Murray Bay. To her +entreaties he answers on October 6th, 1811, that there is no earthly use +for him at Murray Bay where everything is so well looked after that his +presence would do more harm than good. Time would hang heavy on his +hands if he were always employed in fishing, shooting and navigating the +river. It is better, he says, that he should continue in his present +position and he intends to withdraw his application for half pay. When +Christine returns to the charge and urges that Murray Bay is not to be +despised the young man retorts that he never said it was and answers her +with some dignity: + + It will ill become me to despise the favourite residence of a + person for whom I have at all times testified the greatest love + esteem and respect. Indeed I think my behaviour hitherto might have + spared me such a severe remark.... You charge me with being + inconsistent and changeable, in which opinion you are not, I + believe, singular; but until you point out to me where I have been + so, I shall till then, plead not guilty in my own mind. + +War was now brooding over Canada--the fratricidal War of 1812. But for +the time Quebec was gay. There was hardly a week without a private ball, +Tom wrote in February, 1812; and the assemblies, dinners and suppers +were innumerable. He chaffs his sister Christine, whose rheumatic pains +had apparently become a kind of family joke, and says that, since they +are the enemies of high kicking, her inability longer for this pastime +"is partly the cause of her sounding a retreat to the peaceful shades +and grottoes of Murray Bay." Polly, the other unmarried sister, was more +content to be at Murray Bay, with results that led to a family tragedy +as we shall see later. Her brother pictures her driving his nag with her +carriole through the country; so reckless is she that she is sure to run +down some one. "Does she, proud and high, still continue hopping away to +the country weddings?" His request that Pope's Works and _The Spectator_ +be sent to him seems to indicate a serious turn of mind. He is sending +to Murray Bay _The Lady of the Lake_ and _The Lay of the Last Minstrel_ +whose middle-aged author was just turning from poetry to win +unprecedented success as a writer of fiction. In the spring he goes out +shooting for snipe nearly every day; and he sends to Murray Bay for his +fishing tackle. When a fellow officer falls ill he sends him down to +Murray Bay for a month. + +Soon came a more active life. War with the United States was near and +Canada was getting ready. In May, 1812, Malcolm Fraser, led to Quebec +from Murray Bay and the intervening parishes what militia he could +muster. At the same time, he was made a commissioner to administer the +oaths of allegiance: in extreme old age the veteran was ready again to +do what he could. The Newfoundland regiment, to which Tom belonged, was +ordered to the interior. The storm cloud drew near and burst on June +19th, 1812, in the form of a declaration of war by the United States on +Great Britain. The Americans intended to pour troops into Upper Canada, +but sparsely settled at that time, and quickly to occupy it. The +frontier on the Niagara River was the chief danger point and the +Newfoundland Regiment was sent up to Lake Ontario to aid in the defence. +On July 3rd, 1812, Tom writes from Kingston in Upper Canada. The news +has reached him that war has been declared; and already, busy with the +task of placing men and supplies where they will be most needed, he has +been the length of Lake Ontario in the _Royal George_; staying two days +at York, now Toronto; going thence to Niagara and then sailing back to +Kingston. At Kingston there are 1,000 militia and Carleton Island, +(where Tom's father had commanded in the War of the American Revolution) +has been taken by the British--an inglorious success for its garrison +consisted of but three veterans and some women. The adjacent Indians, +says the young Captain, "are anxious to be at the Yankees with their +Toma-hawks." Altogether some exciting campaigns were in prospect and Tom +was glad that his family was "snug at Murray Bay." + +[Illustration: SKETCH MAP OF LAKE ONTARIO AND R. ST. LAWRENCE TO +ILLUSTRATE WAR OF 1812] + +There, remote and isolated, they seemed indeed safe--so safe that, to +share the security, a general descent of their friends seemed imminent. +At Quebec there was, for a time, something like a panic. "Every one +here," wrote Mrs. Hale to Miss Nairne "is in a complete state of anxiety +and suspense, not at all knowing whether we shall be attacked, or what +may become of us. I have just now seen Colonel Fraser, who assures me I +shall be welcome at your mother's house, in case we should be obliged to +leave Quebec. [He] advised my writing for fear you should have +applications from other quarters.... Many ladies are going to +England.... My spirits are so depressed that I cannot pretend to amuse +you with any anecdotes." Murray Bay offered its hospitality with great +heartiness and Mr. Hale wrote, "I believe all Quebec mean to move +towards you if necessary, so you must prepare." + +Quebec was in a flutter of successive excitements, now certain that it +was invulnerable, now fearing an immediate descent of the enemy, and +always longing for peace. In England the Orders in Council which +provoked the war were now revoked, and Malcolm Fraser wrote that this +must soon bring peace in America, especially since New England and New +York were against the war. Miss Nairne's friend in Quebec, Judge +Bowen[23], wrote to her in November, 1812, announcing the armistice for +six months, arranged some time before, and assuring the ladies at Murray +Bay that all cause for anxiety was now past,--an illusive hope for the +armistice was not ratified by President Madison and the war went on. We +get echoes of social jealousies that may now amuse us. Sir James Craig, +the late Governor, had repressed sternly the aspirations of the French +element and had been specially friendly with the Nairne circle; he was +indeed a cousin of the Nairnes' relative by marriage, James Ker. But now +with Sir George Prevost as Governor things were changed. Sir George came +from Halifax and Quebec society looked with green-eyed jealousy upon his +"Halifax people." "They are not the right sort," Judge Bowen wrote to +Christine Nairne: + + It will be long before we meet a staff like Sir James Craig's + gentlemanly men.... The castle affords no delight but to the + Halifax people. They are all Gods, the Quebecers all Devils. As for + me I have no desire to be deified.... Would you believe it Pierre + Bedard [a French Canadian leader whom Sir James Craig had clapped + into prison] is now Judge of the Court of King's Bench at Three + Rivers. Would that poor Sir James[24] could raise his head to take + a view of the strange scenes daily occurring here; but it is better + he should be spared the Loathsome sight. What it will end in I dare + scarcely express. + +In these days there was ceaseless anxiety at Murray Bay. "We are all +here in a complete state of suspense," wrote Christine Nairne, "... My +brother is now in Upper Canada doing duty as a marine officer on board +the _Royal George_. We are in the utmost anxiety about him but on the +Almighty we rely for preservation in these horrid times." Echoes came of +stirring events. Tom wrote of General Brock's succeeds in capturing +Detroit and with it the American General Hull and his whole army. A +little later the Detroit garrison was sent to Montreal and Captain +Nairne, doing duty on the _Royal George_, carried General Hull--"the +extirpating General" he called him in view of dire threats that Hull had +made as to what he should do--with 200 prisoners from Niagara to +Kingston and then in batteaux down the River St. Lawrence on the way to +Montreal, through whose streets the Canadian militia marched their +prisoners to the strains of "Yankee Doodle." Elated with the success +against General Hull, Tom now expected to hear any day that the American +fort at the mouth of the Niagara River had been taken by General Brock. +He heard a much sadder tale. Instead of awaiting attack the Americans +became the aggressors and crossed the river into Canada. In a successful +attempt to dislodge them from Queenston Heights the gallant Brock was +slain. The invaders were driven back; but all Canada mourned for Brock. +Mrs. Bowen wrote to Christine Nairne, "I am sure you will have deeply +felt the loss of poor General Brock. He was always a great favourite of +yours as well as mine. Salter Mountain spoke in the highest terms of him +in his sermon last Sunday." + +As the war became more grim in character Captain Nairne formed a fixed +resolve to see it through to the end. On October 5th, 1812, he writes +from Kingston that in response to his former request he had just +received notice of having been put on half pay. With this release he +might now have retired to the serenity of Murray Bay. But, even though +he had not changed his mind, this would have been to turn his back on +fighting when men were most needed. So when Captain Wall of the 49th +Regiment broke his leg, and was thus rendered unfit for service, with +him Nairne effected an exchange. "I could not reconcile myself to the +idea of sneaking down to Murray Bay and forsaking my post at the present +critical period," he wrote to Fraser. That old soldier was delighted at +Tom's spirit and made this note at the foot of the letter which +announced this action: + + Point Fraser, [Murray Bay], Oct. 23rd, 1812: I do hereby certify + that my Godson Captain Thomas Nairne has, as I think, acted as + becomes him and very much to my satisfaction--Malcolm ffraser. + +From Prescott on the 29th of October, 1812, Tom wrote to his mother of +his delight at being once more a regular "in that distinguished old +corps the 49th." It was indeed a fine regiment. Brock had led it in +North Holland and in 1801 it had been on board the fleet at Copenhagen +with Hyde Parker and Nelson; it is now the Berkshire Regiment and the +name "Queenston" where its commander, Brock, fell, is on its flag. +Though a soldier not a sailor, Tom had now one gunboat and three armed +batteaux under his command, and, when writing, he had just arrived at +Prescott with the American prisoners taken in the gallant action at +Queenston where Brock was killed. His tone is serious and tender. "When +the war is over I trust in God we shall all have a happy meeting again +at Murray Bay, perhaps never more to part during our stay in this +world." It was now his plan that if he should outlive the war he would +go to Edinburgh, find a wife and settle himself on his property without +loss of time. A few days later, on November 15th, he writes from +Kingston of a lively incident in which he has taken part. With six +schooners and an armed tug, the _Oneida_, of 18 guns, all full of +troops, the Americans had appeared before the place. At 4 o'clock on the +morning of the 10th the adjutant of the 49th came into Tom's barrack +room to arouse him with the news that the enemy was thought to be +landing a force five or six miles above the town. "He lit my candle," +says Tom, "and left. I immediately jumped out of bed, dressed myself in +a devil of a hurry and sallied forth to the Barrack yard where I found +three Companies of the 49th under arms, Gunners preparing matches and +artillery horses scampering out of the yards with field pieces." He was +soon sent to hold a bridge about three miles west of the town. The ships +kept up a fierce cannonade for some time but it was so briskly returned +that in the end they drew away having lost four men. But they had +command of the lake, a supremacy not to be challenged until a British +Commodore, Sir James Yeo, arrived in the following summer. + +In his letters at this time Nairne speaks of his heavy expenses and says +that even if the opportunity came to visit Murray Bay he could not go +for lack of money. So he begs his mother to build all the mills and +houses she can, and thus to make the profits which he sorely needs. He +complains of hearing from home so rarely: "You have only wrote once, I +believe, since I came to the Upper Country. What in the name of wonder +are you all about? I hope Yankey Doodle has not run off with you. I am +sure there can be no complaints of my being negligent in this way." + +The scene changed rapidly. Early in February, 1813, Nairne was sent to +Niagara. Here for a time he was stationed at Fort George. The Americans +were now menacing Fort Erie on the Canadian side of the Niagara River. +But things were looking well for the British. On January 22nd the +British Colonel Procter defeated the American General Winchester at +Frenchtown near Detroit and made him and 500 of his men prisoners. Now +young Nairne talked even of "extirpating" General Harrison whom the +English were attacking in what is now the state of Ohio. But again high +hopes were dashed. General Harrison succeeded in forcing the British to +evacuate Detroit; then he invaded Canada, and before the campaign of +1813 was over he defeated the British badly at the river Thames in what +is now Western Ontario. Meanwhile about Niagara there was some lively +campaigning. In March Nairne describes an exciting night journey in +sleighs from Fort George to Chippewa near Niagara Falls where an +American landing was feared. Echoes of more distant wars reach this +remote frontier. This was the winter of Napoleon's terrible retreat from +Moscow and word comes, "glorious news certainly if true," that 140,000 +French have been captured by the Russians. + +Nearer home the chronicle was less glorious. The American fleet appeared +before York (Toronto), burned the Parliament Buildings and public +records, and carried off even the church plate, and the books from the +library, of Upper Canada's capital, acts avenged by the burning of +Washington later in the war. Flushed with success, the Americans now +prepared to attack Fort George in overwhelming force. The 49th, Nairne's +regiment, were the chief defenders. The attack came on May 27th, 1813. +There was sharp and bloody fighting. Greatly outnumbered, the British +were beaten; so hastily did they evacuate the fort that Nairne and +others lost their personal effects. He writes, somewhat ruefully, that +he has now only the clothes on his back and his watch, a purse, a family +ring, and some trinkets. But this had its compensations; now he could +carry everything in a haversack and blanket. Even paper, pens and ink +are hardly to be got; he is writing on the last bit of paper he is +likely to have for some time. + +For many weeks the young man took his share in this campaigning in the +Niagara peninsula. The British headquarters were by this time at +Burlington Heights at the head of Lake Ontario, half way between Fort +George and York, the ruined capital. By June the British had turned on +the foe with vigour. On June 6th they rather stumbled into victory at +Stoney Creek, capturing two American Generals, Winder and Chandler. On +June 7th a British squadron, under Sir James Yeo, appeared off +Burlington Heights, bombarded the American camp on the shore at Forty +Mile Creek and compelled a retreat towards Fort George. Soon the British +were menacing the enemy in Fort George itself. Nairne's letters, watched +for, we may be sure, at Murray Bay with breathless interest, recount the +incidents of the campaign. At Beaver Dam, only a dozen miles or so from +Fort George, Lieutenant Fitzgibbon of Nairne's regiment, the 49th, +entrapped an advancing party of Americans and, by the clever use of 200 +Indian allies, filled them with such dread of being surrounded and +massacred by the savages that nearly 600 Americans surrendered to little +more than one-third of their number. These same wild Indians in their +war paint were enough, Nairne thought, "to frighten the Black Deil +himsel'," and their proximity in the campaign is one of many causes for +which he thanks Heaven that the plague of war is so far removed from +Murray Bay; even if it lasted for years, it would still not reach that +remote haven, he says. Meanwhile Murray Bay can help him. Two pairs of +socks, one flannel and one linen shirt, have been the modest increases +to his wardrobe since the hasty exit from Fort George many weeks before. +He begs his sisters to make him some shirts and socks, but not many, +since on the marches, usually made at night, he has to carry all his +belongings on his own back. The charge of a too elaborate transport +service sometimes brought against the British army in modern campaigns +seems to have no place in the War of 1812. The British, few in number +and defending an immense area, had to do killing work. Nairne says that +his men were able only rarely even to take off their accoutrements. + +With the arrival of Yeo's squadron the war was again half military, half +naval. Yeo was a brilliant young officer and the remote waters of Lake +Ontario witnessed some clever naval tactics. The small fleets were +evenly matched. Chauncey, the American commander, was very cautious and +would not fight unless he could get the advantage of his longer range of +guns, while Yeo, if he fought at all, preferred to fight at close +quarters; so they manoeuvred for position, each declaring that the +other could not be brought to bay. On August 3rd, 1813, Nairne wrote +from Burlington Heights to Malcolm Fraser. In an earlier letter that +veteran had expressed the desire of dancing at Tom's wedding and Tom had +told him, with the prophetic saving clause "should I outlive this war," +that to see his friend of eighty years dancing would be a considerable +inducement to marry. He hopes that they may soon discuss the war "over a +good bottle of your Madeira at Mount Murray." + +He calls Burlington Heights the stronghold of Upper Canada. "The +situation we have chosen is by nature a strong position being bounded on +the east by Burlington bay, on the south by a commanding battery, ditch +and parapet, this being the only side bounded by the mainland; on the +west by a morass and creek; on the north by the continuation of this +same creek, which here discharges itself into Burlington bay. The height +of the land above the level of the water all round is upwards of 100 +feet and the only side therefore necessary to fortify is the south, +which I assure you is pretty strongly so." Here was the chief British +supply depot and Nairne had just been sent thither to aid in repelling a +menace from the American fleet. He had brought his force from Ten Mile +Creek, in boats, on the open lake, and the journey, lasting all day, was +ticklish enough. All the time the American fleet was in pursuit and it +reached the narrow gateway to Burlington Bay only an hour and a half +after Captain Nairne entered. The enemy intended to storm the heights, +and landed 800 men for that purpose; but finding the position too +strong, they re-embarked their force at daylight on August 1st, and bore +away for York (Toronto) where they wrought new havoc in that undefended +and "much to be pitied town." + +On August 20th Nairne writes, still from Burlington Heights. This, his +last letter, gives a dramatic account of a running fight between the +rival fleets, in the dark, illuminated, however, by the flashes from +their cannon: + + It was a moment of great anxiety with us when the two fleets lay in + sight of each other, the one wishing to avoid coming to hard knocks + and the other straining every nerve to be at it. I rode 20 miles to + see the hostile squadrons, and, for nearly two days, had the + pleasure of observing their movements from the mountain at Forty + Mile Creek, and I must confess I never saw a more gratifying or + more interesting sight. At 11 o'clock on the night of the last day + that I was there (the 10th inst.) Sir James Yeo contrived to bring + them [the Americans] to a partial engagement and for an hour and a + half the Lake opposite the _Leo_ appeared to be in a continual + blaze. I remained in a state of uncertainty as to the result till + daylight when I observed the Yanky fleet steering for Fort George + with two Schooners less than they had the evening before, and our + fleet steering towards York with two additional sail. [They were + the _Julia_ and the _Growler_.] The Americans have besides lost two + of their largest Schooners, which upset from carrying a press of + sail, when our fleet was in chase of them. + +While this dramatic fighting is going on before his eyes Nairne's one +regret is that his present quarters are "completely out of the way of +broken heads." + +Meanwhile at Murray Bay events were happening. Colonel Fraser was kept +busy. Some of the French Canadians already showed a restiveness that +ended in open rebellion in 1837 and these misguided people now dreamed +of using the war with the United States as an opportunity for throwing +off the British yoke. At Murray Bay traitorous meetings were held. +Fraser watched them closely and caused a number of the habitants to be +imprisoned for a time on a charge of treason. For an old man of eighty +he showed amazing vigour. His neighbours of the Nairne household were +now in great trouble. Tom's elder sister by five years, Mary, the +sprightly "Polly" of his letters, had brought grief to her family. She +made a clandestine marriage with a habitant, the news of which, the +young man, in his last letter preserved to us, wrote, "nearly bereft me +of my senses." In those anxious days of domestic difficulty and of war +the old mother and her two remaining daughters at the Manor House had +assuredly enough to think of. Then came Fate's sharpest blow. The +tradition is still preserved at Murray Bay that on November 11th, 1813, +Mrs. Nairne, the Captain's mother, was in the kitchen at Murray Bay, +when suddenly a sound like the report of a gun came up as it were from +the cellar. She put her hands to her head, cried "Tom is killed," and +sank fainting into a chair. The day and the hour were, it is said, noted +by those about her. + +By this time Thomas Nairne's regiment had passed from Burlington Heights +to Kingston, at the opposite end of Lake Ontario, some two hundred miles +away. The St. Lawrence River had now become the chief danger point for +Canada. On October 21st the American General Wilkinson, with 8,000 men, +left Sackett's Harbour near the east end of Lake Ontario, opposite +Kingston, in boats, to descend the St. Lawrence and attack Montreal--the +identical plan that the British had found so successful in 1760. In +addition, as fifty years earlier, another American force was to advance +through the country bordering on Lake Champlain so that the two armies +might unite before Montreal. From the first the American plans went ill. +The more easterly force met with ignominious defeat by a handful of +French Canadians at Chateauguay. Wilkinson did little better. British +troops, among them Nairne's regiment, were hurried down the river under +Colonel Morrison to harass, if possible, Wilkinson's rear and to fire +upon his 300 boats from the points of vantage on the shore. After a slow +descent, day after day, on the night of November 10th the rear of the +American force, under General Boyd, landed and encamped near Crysler's +farm, a short distance above the beginning of the Long Sault Rapids on +the St. Lawrence, to descend which needed caution. As the American rear +was some distance from the vanguard, the British, though much inferior +in numbers, thought the time favourable for attack. On the morning of +the 11th when General Boyd was about to begin his day's march forward, +the British, some 800 against a force of 1800, advanced in line. Their +right was on the river and the line extended to a wood about 700 yards +to the left. The American general did not refuse the gage of battle and +a sharp fight followed. Boyd tried to outflank the British left and +Nairne's company was sent forward to charge for one of the enemy's guns. +When well in advance it was checked by a deep ravine lying between the +two armies and the American cavalry made a movement to cut off the +advancing party. The pause was fatal to Thomas Nairne. A musket ball +entered his head just above the left ear; he died instantly and without +pain. The British won the day. After a fierce fight the enemy fled to +their boats, embarked in great disorder and fled down the river. Their +generals, when they could hold a council, decided that the attack on +Montreal must be abandoned. + +Meanwhile dead on the field of battle lay Thomas Nairne. When the action +was over and the enemy had retired, his fellow officers bethought them +of the body of their companion lying stark where he fell. Already some +sinister visitor had been upon the spot for his watch was stolen--"as +was not unusual on such occasions," wrote Nairne's Commanding-officer, +Colonel Plenderleath, grimly. They dug a grave; Colonel Plenderleath +stooped over the body to cut off for those who loved him a lock of hair +falling over the dead face, and then, without a coffin, they laid him in +the earth. But before the grave was filled a member of the Canadian +militia stepped forward. He said that he had known Nairne's father, and +begged that, for the esteem and veneration which he bore that gallant +soldier, he might be allowed time to provide a coffin for his son. A +rough box was hastily prepared. In this the body was placed and once +more lowered into the grave and there, a few yards from where he fell, +the mortal remains of Thomas Nairne were committed to the earth with the +solemn rites of the Anglican Church. + +The next day Colonel Plenderleath, who was not two yards away when +Captain Nairne fell, wrote to Judge Bowen what words of comfort he could +for Nairne's friends: + + He was a gallant officer of most amiable Manners and + Disposition.... It may be of some comfort to his family that he has + fallen in the honourable service of his country. We obtained a + complete victory, having beaten a force greatly superior to ours, + driven him from the field of battle, and captured one Gun and + several Prisoners. + +If Nairne fell Canada was saved and the gallant young officer did not +die in vain. + +News travelled slowly in those days but bad news has swifter wings than +good; a week after Thomas Nairne fell the particulars of his death had +reached Quebec. It was Judge Bowen's painful duty to send to Murray Bay +the intelligence he had received from Nairne's Colonel. He wrote to Mr. +Le Courtois, the cure, giving the sad news and adding "I understand that +the enemy have since crossed over to their own side.... Would to God +their visit had fallen upon any other head than that of our poor +friends." He begged Mr. Le Courtois, who, himself an exile from France +because of the Revolution, had witnessed many sad days, to be the +minister of consolation at this time. "You will, I am sure be the friend +of the distressed and instil into their bosoms that peace which, I am +afraid, nothing but your assistance and time can restore to them." Mr. +Le Courtois was to hand to Miss Nairne a touching and wise letter from +Bowen. "Do not, my dear Miss Nairne," he wrote, "give way to feelings +but too natural upon a trying moment like this but rather exert +yourself to speak comfort and consolation to your dear Mother. Recall to +her that we are all but sojourners here on earth and that he is but gone +before to those blessed mansions of eternal peace and happiness where +she will one day meet him never to part again." Old Malcolm Fraser sent +the sad news to Tom's friends in Scotland. "I am not fit to write much," +he said, but he found comfort in the thought that the young Captain died +gallantly and that the enemy "must have suffered great loss of men, as +they were entirely drove off the Field and they lost a piece of cannon. +But, alas! all this can afford little consolation to his good and +afflicted mother." + +Nairne's body was not allowed to remain where he had fallen. Judge Bowen +thought he ought to lie at Quebec beside his soldier father and this was +also in accord with Mrs. Nairne's wishes. Colonel Morrison, the officer +in command on the field where Nairne fell, had already been transferred +to the garrison at Quebec and every attention was paid to the task. +Bowen ordered a strong oak coffin, large enough to contain that in which +Nairne was buried, and with this itself in an outer box a man was sent +to bring back the body. He bore a letter from the Bishop of Quebec to +the clergyman who had buried Nairne. All was carried out as arranged. A +second time Nairne's body was taken from the grave where it had been +laid and its bearer began his long winter journey to Quebec. The sleigh +with its sad burden, a moving dark speck on a white background, made its +slow way along the wintry roads and by the shores of the ice bound St. +Lawrence. We can picture the awed solemnity with which the French +Canadian peasants heard the story of Nairne's fall as his body rested +for the night in inn or farm yard. On January 20th, 1814, Bowen wrote to +Mr. Le Courtois that the body would arrive by Saturday as it was at +Berthier on the previous day when the stage passed. + +The funeral took place at one o'clock on the 26th of January, 1814. Of +the people of Murray Bay a single unnamed habitant was present, a man +detained by Bowen in Quebec that he might witness the ceremony and carry +back an account of it to his home. "I examined the body," wrote Bowen +briefly of what must have been a grim task, "with the assistance of my +friend Buchanan and there cannot now be the smallest doubt as to the +identity of it. He was buried poor Fellow in the Cloathes he wore when +killed. His Regimental Jackit and shoes which were put into his coffin I +found in it upon opening it and have taken them out and will preserve +them for his poor friends if so melancholy a Remembrance of him should +be desired by them." The lock of hair cut off by Colonel Plenderleath at +the funeral was brought to Quebec by young Sewell, one of Nairne's +companions; the remainder of his effects, sent forward in a box, seem +to have been lost on the way. At the funeral the six senior Captains in +Quebec were his pall bearers and the mourners were fellow officers of +the 49th and Quebec friends of his family--well-known names--Caldwell, +McCord, Stewart, Hale, Mountain, Dunn and Bowen himself. A great crowd +was present. "Never," wrote Bowen to Miss Nairne, "was a funeral at +Quebec more generally attended." The death of the young officer was too +tragic not to call forth the sympathy of a wide circle. Eulogies were +pronounced upon him and they said only what was true--that a soldier, +brave, lovable and promising had fallen on the field of honour. + +[Footnote 22: See Appendix G., p. 287. "The Cures of Malbaie".] + +[Footnote 23: Bowen's career was remarkable. He continued on the bench +until 1866, having held the office of a Judge in Canada for well nigh +sixty years.] + +[Footnote 24: He had recently died, and it did not diminish the Nairnes' +interest in him that he left L5,000 to their relative Ker.] + + + + +CHAPTER VII + +A FRENCH CANADIAN VILLAGE + + Life at Murray Bay after Captain Nairne's death.--Letters from + Europe.--Death of Malcolm Fraser.--Death of Colonel Nairne's widow + and children.--His grandson John Nairne, seigneur.--Village + life.--The Church's influence.--The habitant's tenacity.--His + cottage.--His labours.--His amusements.--The Church's missionary + work in the villages.--The powers of the bishop.--His + visitations.--The organization of the parish.--The powers of the + _fabrique_.--Lay control of Church finance.--The cure's tithe.--The + best intellects enter the Church.--A native Canadian clergy.--The + cure's social life.--The Church and Temperance Reform.--The + diligence of the cures.--The habitant's taste for the + supernatural.--The belief in goblins.--Prayer in the family.--The + habitant as voter.--The office of Churchwarden.--The Church's + influence in elections.--The seigneur's position,--The habitant's + obligations to him.--Rent day and New Year's Day.--The seigneur's + social rank.--The growth of discontent in the villages.--The evils + of Seigniorial Tenure.--Agitation against the system.--Its + abolition in 1854.--The last of the Nairnes.--The Nairne tomb in + Quebec. + + +With the death of Thomas Nairne almost end the dramatic events in the +history of the family. It remains briefly to bring this to its +conclusion, and to add to it some general account of a village of French +Canada in the past and in the present. Captain Nairne's mother was now +the owner of the property and it continued in her competent hands until +her death in 1828. "Polly's" marriage had taken that daughter away and, +though there was a reconciliation, no longer was the Manor House her +home. Mrs. McNicol (with her husband and children) and Christine Nairne +still lived there with the widow of Colonel Nairne, and life went on +much as before, save that its interests were now narrowed to Murray Bay; +no more was there an outside career, such as the young Captain's, to +watch. + +When Thomas Nairne was killed the struggle against Napoleon in Europe +had reached a supreme crisis. Occasional letters to Murray Bay give +glimpses of great events. On March 16th, 1814, an Edinburgh friend +writes to Christine: "The Castle was fired to-day in honour of the +successes of our allies in France who have again routed Bonaparte, who +has retreated to Paris. His enemies are within twenty-five miles of that +capital so we must hope that the Tyrant's fate is at the Crisis and that +we shall soon enjoy the blessings of a permanent peace; much has Bony to +answer for." Ker wrote a little later from Edinburgh to say that +Bonaparte "is now a prisoner on board of one of our 74 gun ships," and +to express the hope that by his fall Britons will soon get quit of the +property tax. + +On March 17th, 1815, we hear from another correspondent of the renewed +firing of the Castle guns at Edinburgh, this time to announce the +arrival from America of the ratification of Peace with the United +States. "We only regret this had not been settled before the disastrous +affair at New Orleans where we have lost so many brave men and able +generals, but such are the horrors of war." Just as this peace came in +America renewed war broke out in Europe. "That monster Bonaparte a +fortnight since landed and raised the standard of rebellion in the south +of France. The accounts from there are very contradictory." On March +22nd the news seems better. "Troops are assembling in defence of France +and the traitor does not seem to have any adherents, so we would fain +hope all may go well." The writer, a Miss Beck, sends, for the amusement +of Murray Bay, the book "Guy Mannering," which is "in very high +repute ... the author unknown, but very generally thought to be Walter +Scott, the Poet." + +The hope that all would go well in regard to Bonaparte was soon +dissipated. Ker wrote on April 10th, 1815, a bitter letter: + + We were flattering ourselves with being at Peace with the whole + world when like a thunderbolt, the tremendous news of the monster + Buonaparte's Escape from Elba, his landing and rapid progress + through France, and the second Expulsion of the unhappy Bourbons + burst upon us!... We have the immediate prospect of being involved + in a bloody and interminable war, the consequences of which no man + can foretell. The French army, Marshalls, and Generals have covered + themselves with indelible Disgrace and shewn themselves, what I + always thought them, the most perfidious and perjured traitors and + miscreants that the world ever produced, and the rest of the French + Nation are a set of the most unprincipled Knaves and Cowards that + ever were recorded in history. I trust however that their + punishment is at hand and that the Almighty will speedily hurl + vengeance on their guilty heads. Among other evils, a new tax on + Property, with additions, is said to be in immediate contemplation + and God knows how we shall bear all the accumulating Burdens to + which this Country must be subjected. + +Just at this time came old Malcolm Fraser's end. At the age of 82 he +died on June 17th, 1815, the day before the battle of Waterloo. He had +entered the army in 1757 and apparently was still serving in the +Canadian militia at the time of his death so that his military career +covered well nigh sixty years. One instruction given in his will is +characteristic; it is that his body might "be committed to the earth or +water, as it may happen, and with as little ceremony and expense as may +be consistent with decency." His removal was a heavy blow to the family +at the Manor House. It was Christine who kept most in touch with the +outside world and to her the letters of the period are nearly all +addressed. They contained the gossip of Quebec,--how in December, 1814, +a Mr. Lyman--"a bad name for a true story to come from,"--had brought +word of peace negotiations at Ghent; news of General Procter's Court +Martial and of a fee of L500 paid to Andrew Stuart, one of the lawyers +in the case. The letters are few and in 1817 they cease altogether. +During the spring of the year Christine had been ailing. On a June day +she drove out for an airing and, as she alighted from the carriage, +expired instantly. The feeling of the Protestant family towards the +Roman Catholic Church is shown in the fact that she left a small legacy +to the cure, Mr. Le Courtois. + +There now remained but two daughters. In May, 1821, "Polly" died in +Quebec at Judge Bowen's house. Her old mother followed in 1828. Of +Colonel Nairne's large family but one child remained, Mrs. McNicol. Her +husband, Peter McNicol, appears to have been a quiet and retiring man +and of him we hear little. He was an officer in the local militia and, +in 1830, became a Captain in the second Battalion of the County of +Saguenay. There were two sons, Thomas and John. Thomas, the elder, was +to get the estate at Murray Bay; for John India was talked of; but his +mother could not let him go--"our family has been too unlucky by going +there." In 1826, when a youth of twenty, Thomas made a tour in Europe. +Then, or later, the young man fell into dissipated habits and he died in +early manhood. There remained only John. When he came of age in 1829 he +too travelled in Europe; in April he was at Rome and there saw the +newly-elected Pope, Pius VIII. He returned to Canada quite a man of the +world and for a time lived in Quebec, engaged in business. But in 1834 +when his father Peter McNicol died[25] John's prospects changed. The +seigniory belonged to his mother, during her lifetime, but he was the +heir. It seemed desirable that the name of the first seigneur should be +continued and, in 1834, by royal warrant, John McNicol adopted the name +and arms of Nairne. Once more was there a John Nairne. In 1837 we find +him empowered to take the oath of allegiance from the habitants--to show +that they were not in sympathy with the rebel Papineau. His mother, the +old Colonel's last surviving child, died in 1839. She was a kindly +woman, of genial temper, with a fine faculty for friendship; so intimate +was she with Malcolm Fraser's daughter that she wrote "I do believe, nay +am sure, she has not a thought with which I am not made acquainted." She +never lost her sympathy with young people and her delight in their +"innocent gaiety." + +As in 1762, so now again in 1839, a John Nairne ruled at Murray Bay. The +young seigneur soon took a wife. In 1841 he married Miss Catherine +Leslie, of a well known Canadian family, a bride of only seventeen, and +then settled down at Murray Bay to live the life of a country gentleman. +He became Colonel in the militia, took some part in politics on the +Conservative side, and studied agriculture. He was resolved to keep up +the dignity of his position and set about rebuilding the manor house. +The work was begun in 1845 and completed by the autumn of 1847; the new +structure with little change is the present Manor. It is of stone +covered with wood, a capacious dwelling with some fine rooms, and +admirably suited to its purpose. To John Nairne an heir was born in 1842 +and named John Leslie Nairne and the prospect seemed excellent for the +final establishment of a Nairne dynasty in the seigniory. But, alas, +this was not to be. The child died in his third year and the last of the +Nairnes ruled at Murray Bay knowing that with himself the family should +become extinct. + +We must turn now to study the type of community of which he was the +chief. A singular type it is, French in speech, Roman Catholic in faith, +half feudal in organization, in a land British in allegiance, if not in +origin. Long the determined rival of the Briton in America the French +Canadian, though worsted in the struggle, remains still unconquered in +his determination to live his own separate life and pursue his own +separate ideals. When the British took Canada they fondly imagined that +in a few years a little pressure would bring the French Canadians into +the Protestant fold.[26] Immediately after the conquest preparations +for this gradual absorption were made. The Roman Catholics were to be +undisturbed but, as soon as a majority in any parish was Protestant, a +clergyman of that faith would be appointed and the parish church would +be given over to the Protestant worship. The minority would, it was +hoped, acquiesce, and, in time, adopt the creed of the majority. The +most illuminating comment upon these expectations is the fact that, +during the half century after the conquest, Protestantism made probably +not more than half a dozen converts among the Canadians, while of +Protestants coming to the country during that time hundreds went over to +the Church of Rome. In other ways too the type in French Canada has +proved curiously persistent. A Lowland Scot of twenty-five married an +Irish woman of twenty-three and went to live in a French Canadian +parish. Hitherto they had spoken only English but after twenty-five +years they could not even understand it when heard. They explained that +at first they spoke English to each other but when the children went to +school they used only French. So the parents yielded "_C'etait les +enfants, M'sieu!_" + +A modern critic of France[27] has announced, as a sounding paradox, that +the French, even of present-day anti-clerical France, are a profoundly +religious people. Certainly this appears in France's efforts in Canada. +When the Roman Catholic faith was first planted there the ground was +watered with the blood of martyrs, done to death by brutal savages. At +the very time when in France Pascal's satire and scorn were making the +spiritual sincerity of the Jesuits more than doubtful, in Canada these +same Jesuits were dying for their faith almost with a light heart. They +and others, like-minded, won New France for the Catholic Church and to +that Church the conquered habitant has since clung with a tenacity +really heroic. He accepts its creed, he believes in its clergy. Whatever +license of conduct marked the clergy of France in the bad days before +the Revolution, the clergy in Canada during the 300 years of its history +have been notable for a severity in morals so austere that hardly once +in that long period has there been a whisper of scandal. In consequence, +they have always retained the respect of the people and to-day, in every +village, the cure commands extraordinary influence. + +It may be that to the Church chiefly does the habitant owe the +preservation of his identity. Inferior to the heretic conqueror in +social status, the habitant yet retained in religion the sense of his +own superiority. Was he not a member of an ancient body, in the presence +of which Protestantism represented a mushroom growth of yesterday? The +Church taught him that wealth, honour, and worldly power were not always +given to the faithful; they had the truer riches of spiritual +privileges and spiritual hopes. What mattered the pride of life in the +face of these eternal treasures? So the habitant went his way. Led by +his teachers he showed striking tenacity of character. He would not +follow the customs of the English. He looked with suspicion upon their +methods. Even in agriculture, where he had everything to learn, he would +not imitate him. Their language he would not learn, their religion he +abhorred; so he remained, and he remains still, true to his own +traditions, a Gallic island in the vast Anglo-Saxon sea of North +America. + +The habitant has not proved a pliable person. The very name shows his +sense of his own dignity. Though he held his land under feudal tenure he +would not accept a designation that carried with it some sense of the +servile status of the feudal vassal in old France. So the Canadian +peasant, a feudal tenant _en censive_ or _en roture_, yet wished not to +be called _censitaire_ or _roturier_, names which he thought degrading; +he preferred to be called a habitant, an inhabitant of the country, a +free man, not a vassal. The designation obtained official recognition in +New France and has come to be the characteristic word for the French +Canadian farmer among English-speaking people. + +In other respects too the Canadian has been hardly less assertive. +Earlier writers, while they call him obliging, honest and courteous, +speak also of his self-conceit, boastfulness, fondness for drink. At +Malbaie Nairne found him defiant when his spirit was aroused. Not less +tenacious than the men were the women. Malcolm Fraser tells how when he +was stationed at Beaumont, near Quebec, in January, 1761, he sent one of +his men to cut wood on the property of a certain habitant, the man +himself consenting. But Madame, his wife, was not pleased. She abused +Fraser, called him opprobrious names, and, in a war of words, remained, +he admits, mistress of the field. The wrathful virago carried her appeal +to Murray in Quebec, who, she said, had passed many officers under the +rod and Fraser found himself called upon to explain the matter. In a +petition he humbly begs that some "recompence" (of punishment of course) +may be made to the woman for "the insolent expressions used by her as +well against the general, as the officers, who have the honour to serve +under His Excellency." + +Even when he knows only rude frontier life the French Canadian often +retains something of the politeness and deference in manner of the +nation from which he springs. But, unlike them, he has retained little +sense of what is artistic. No thought of beauty of situation seems to +determine his choice of the site for his dwelling. What he has in mind +is protection from the prevailing wind, if this is possible, and, for +the rest, convenience. So he puts his house close to the highway, in +many cases even abutting upon it. He shows no taste in grouping his +farm buildings. He plants few trees and his house stands bare and +unattractive by the road side. The absence of trees near his dwelling is +sometimes accounted for by the need, in earlier times, of clearing away +everything that might offer a chance of ambush to his Indian enemies. If +this is the true origin of the habit, an instinct survives long after +the need which developed it has disappeared. The houses are persistent +in type and nearly always of wood. The principle doorway opens into the +living room, usually of a good size. It is kitchen, diningroom, parlour, +often even workshop. In this chamber cooking, sewing, repairing of +tools, all the varied family activities, take place. One large guest +chamber or two small bedrooms open off it. In the corner there is a rude +staircase and up under the sloping roof are two more rooms; one a +bed-room probably with three or four beds, the other a general lumber +room. Often there are two families in a household. As always with the +French, family feeling is very strong. As soon as they are old enough +the elder sons may go out into the world; it is usually a younger son +whom the father selects to remain with him on the family property. This +son is free to marry and to him, when the old father dies, the land goes +on condition that he will always keep the door open to members of the +family who may seek its refuge. It is not easy to see how so small a +cottage can discharge these hospitable functions; in addition to adults +there are often, in a French Canadian family, from ten to fifteen, +sometimes twenty or twenty-five children. Through the long winters, +doors and windows remain closed. The family gets on without fresh air +and it gets on also without baths. + +Since there are often many hands to do the work habitant farming is +greatly diversified. But improvements come only slowly. Some of the most +fertile areas in Quebec have been half ruined because the habitant would +not learn the proper rotation of crops. Of the value of fertilizing he +has had only a slight idea. His domestic animals are usually of an +inferior breed, except perhaps the horses. Of these he is proud and, no +matter how poor, usually keeps two, an extravagance for which he was +rebuked by successive Intendants under the French regime. In recent +times the French Canadian farmer has been making great progress. He is +pre-eminently a handy man. Though his versatility is lessening, to this +day, in some of the remoter villages, he buys almost nothing; he is +carpenter, farmer, blacksmith, shoemaker; and, if not he, his wife is +weaver and tailor. The waggon he drives is his handiwork; so is the +harness; the home-spun cloth of his suit is made by his wife from the +wool of his own sheep: it is an excellent fabric but, alas, the young +people now prefer the machine-made cottons and cloths of commerce and +will no longer wear homespun. Sometimes the habitant makes his own +boots, the excellent _bottes sauvages_ of the country. The women make +not only home-spun cloth, but linen, straw hats, gloves, candles, soap. +When there are maple trees, the habitant provides his own sugar; he +makes even the buckets in which the sap of the maple tree is caught. +Tobacco grows in his garden, for the habitant is an inveterate smoker: +sometimes the boys begin when only five years old or less. The women and +the girls, indeed, do not smoke and an American visitor, who declares +that he saw pretty French Canadian brunettes of sixteen puffing clouds +of smoke as they worked in the harvest field, is solemnly rebuked by a +French Canadian writer; the brunettes must have been Indian women.[28] + +Though nearly all the children now go to school, yet reading can hardly +be considered one of the amusements of the habitant. In the +neighbourhood of Malbaie, at least, rarely does one see other than books +of devotion in a habitant household; the book-shelf is conspicuous by +its absence. Of course newspapers are read but many of the habitants are +still illiterate, or nearly so, and read nothing. Not less gay are they +for this deprivation. They are endless talkers, good story tellers, and +fond of song and dance. They have preserved some of the popular songs of +France,--_Malbrouck s'en va-t-en guerre_, _En roulant ma Boule +roulant_, _A la Claire Fontaine_, and others--and these airs simple, +pleasing, a little sad, have become characteristic of French Canada. +Nearly every house has its violin, often home-made, and though this +music is rude it suffices for dancing. But some of the bishops are as +severe in regard to dancing as is the Methodist "Book of Discipline" and +in their dioceses the practise is allowed only under narrow +restrictions. The short Canadian summer makes that season for the +habitant one of severe labour. Winter, though it has its own labours, +such as cutting wood, is the great season of social intercourse. For a +long time the habitant would not consider a mechanic his social equal; +perhaps, still, the daughters of a farmer would spurn the advances of +the village carpenter. But whatever the social distinctions, baptisms, +marriages, anniversaries, are made the occasions for festivity. There +are _corvees recreatives_, such as parties gathered for taking the husks +off Indian corn, when there is apt to be a good deal of kissing as part +of the game. At New Year, the _jour de l'an_, the feasting lasts for +three days. Hospitality is universal and it is almost a slight not to +call at this time upon any acquaintance living within a distance of +twenty miles. Every habitant has his horse and sleigh and thinks little +of a long drive. + +Often in the foreground of the habitant's life, always in the background +at least, stand the Church and the priest. Malbaie, like a hundred other +populous, present-day Roman Catholic parishes, was nursed in the first +instance by the travelling missionary. In winter he could go on snow +shoes but his usual means of travel in a country, covered by forests, +but with a net-work of lakes and rivers, was by canoe. Malbaie could be +reached either from Tadousac, at the mouth of the Saguenay, one of the +earliest mission stations in Canada, or from Baie St. Paul in the other +direction. The St. Lawrence was oftentimes a perilous route. Its waves +rise at times huge as those of Ocean itself; a frail canoe could only +hug the shore and at times would be storm bound for days. The missionary +travelled usually with an attendant. They carried a portable chapel with +the vessels necessary for the celebration of the mass. We have a +description of the arrival of one of these missionaries, the Abbe Morel, +as long ago as in 1683, at Riviere Ouelle where one now takes the ferry +to cross to Murray Bay. A group of people stand on the shore watching a +small black object round a distant point. As it comes nearer they see it +is a birch bark canoe, paddled by two men. In a short time the bow of +the canoe has touched the sandy beach where stands the waiting group. As +the figure in the bow rises a long black cassock falls down to his +feet; he is the long expected missionary come to celebrate mass. With +the sun sinking behind the mountains of the north shore, a kind of +triumphal procession escorts the missionary to one of the neighbouring +houses. The evening is spent in preparation for the service of the +morrow. The priest hears confessions and imposes penances. At daybreak +on the following morning the people begin to gather, some coming by land +from the neighbouring clearings, others, in birch bark canoes, from +points more distant. Perhaps fifty persons gather before the house. +Meanwhile in its best room the portable altar has been arranged. Silence +falls upon the people as they enter the door. The mass begins; after the +gospel the priest preaches a practical sermon with impressive solemnity. +The mass over, a second service, vespers, soon follows. Then the people +separate. Before the priest leaves he says the office of the dead over a +grave made, it may be, many weeks ago, he baptizes children born since +his last visit, and perhaps marries one or more bashful couples. "How +beautiful upon the mountains," says a Canadian historian of the work of +these devoted men, "are the feet of those who bring the gospel of +peace."[29] Such a scene we may be sure was enacted many a time for the +benefit of the scattered sheep at Malbaie before and after the arrival +of Colonel Nairne. + +It was not until 1797 that these occasional services ceased and Murray +Bay secured a resident priest. Then was fully established in the parish +the imposing church system that to-day probably retains its original +vigour more completely in the Province of Quebec than in any other +country in the world. At its head is the diocesan bishop. Subject only +to the distant authority of the Pope he reigns supreme. With one or two +exceptions, such as that of the cure of Quebec, he appoints and he can +remove any and every priest in his diocese, a right, it is said, almost +never exercised arbitrarily. He fixes the tariff to be paid for masses. +It is he who determines whether such a practise as, for instance, +dancing shall be permitted in the diocese. He watches over the Church's +rights and gives the alarm when a political leader proposes anything +that seems to menace them. If a newspaper adopts a course dangerous to +the Church it has often happened that the bishop gives it one or two +warnings; in case of continued obstinacy his last act is to forbid the +faithful to read the paper; and since most of them will obey, this +involves ruin for the recalcitrant journal. + +The bishop visits each parish at least every third year and sometimes +even annually. A mounted cavalcade will probably meet him as he crosses +its boundary. A procession is formed. The roads have been cleared and +decorated with boughs of ever-green trees stuck in the ground. The +people watch the cavalcade from their doors and all kneel as the +procession passes. The bishop goes at once to the church where he gives +his benediction and holds confirmation. He remains for some days. There +is daily communion and spiritual instruction. He inspects +everything--the church and its furnishings, the registers, the accounts, +the inventory of effects, the cemetery. He has already given notice that +he is ready to hear any complaints or grievances even against the cure. +We may be sure that when he comes there is a general clearing up of +parochial difficulties. A wise bishop is a great peacemaker; an +arbitrary one commands an authority not lightly to be disregarded. + +The church that towers over the humble cottages of a French Canadian +village invariably seems huge. But we need to remember how large are the +parishes and how few in number relatively are the churches; it is +probable that in English-speaking Canada there are half a dozen +churches, or more, to every one in the Province of Quebec. In all +Canada, rural and urban, there is probably not a Protestant parish to +which are attached as many, or perhaps half as many, people as the five +thousand who dwell in the parish of St. Etienne de la Malbaie, one of +secondary importance in the Province of Quebec. In a whole diocese there +are often not more than forty or fifty parishes. In the country the +churches are usually built at intervals of not more than three leagues +(nine miles) so that no one may have to travel more than a league and a +half to mass. The life of the people centres in the Church. In its +registers, kept with great accuracy, is to be found the chief record of +the village drama, the story of its births, marriages and deaths. True +to the tastes of old France the French Canadian has an amazing interest +in family history, and genealogies, based upon these ample records, are +closely studied. In the olden days the habitant brought his savings to +be kept in the Church's strong chest. The church edifice, its pictures +and its other furnishings, are things in which to take pride. Each +village aspires to have its own chime of bells. To chronicle baptisms, +marriages, burials, anniversaries, the chimes are rung for a longer or +shorter time according to the fee paid. Every day one hears them often +and a considerable revenue must come from this source. Whatever the +habitant knows of art, painting, sculpture, music, he learns from the +Church and it is all associated with religious hopes and fears. +"Dwellers in cities," says a French Canadian writer, "have concerts, +theatres, museums; in the rural communities it is the Church that +provides all this. During her services the most fervent among the +faithful taste by anticipation the joys of heaven and murmur, enchanted: +'Since here all is so beautiful in the house of the Lord how much more +so will it be in his paradise!'"[30] + +Thus it happens that here the parish and its church have a significance +not felt where, as now in practically all English speaking countries, +each community represents a variety of religious beliefs. At Malbaie, as +in dozens of other parishes, there is not, except in summer, a single +Protestant. So strong is the pressure of religious and social opinion, +that even persons with no belief in Christianity are constrained to join +outwardly at least in the church services. In the villages, at least, +nearly every one confesses and partakes of the communion many times in +the year; at Easter there are practically no abstentions from the +sacrament. With this unanimity it has been possible to establish by +legislation a most elaborate system providing for the support of the +priests, for keeping up cemeteries and other parish needs. Elsewhere +left largely to voluntary action, in Quebec such duties become a tax on +the community as a whole. Whether a parishioner likes it or not, he +must, if the taxpayers so determine, pay his share for building a church +or for other similar expenditure decided upon. + +We will suppose that a new residence for the priest is desired. A +majority of ratepayers must address to the bishop of the diocese a +petition with a plan of what is proposed. The commission of five +members which exists in every diocese then gives ten days' public notice +in order that objectors may have every opportunity to express their +views. When, in the end, a decision to build is reached, the +commissioners announce this by public proclamation. The next step is for +the ratepayers of the parish to meet and vote the necessary money. +Trustees are then appointed to carry out the work with power to collect +the required funds from the Catholic ratepayers. This assessment is a +first charge on the land; it must be divided into at least twelve equal +instalments and the payments are spread over not less than three, or +more than eight, years. To be quite safe the trustees levy fifteen per +cent. more than the estimated cost. If ready money is not on hand for +the work the church property may be mortgaged. When the building is +completed the trustees render their accounts with vouchers and take oath +that they are correct. All is precise, clearly defined, business-like. + +No expenditure of money can be made for building without the consent of +the people. Always in French Canada a trace of old Gallican liberties +has remained, in the power over Church finances left in the hands of +churchwardens (_marguillers_) elected by the people. But in the old days +when the habitant was more ignorant and less alert than now he is, no +doubt the voice in this respect might be the voice of the churchwarden, +but the hand was the hand of the cure. No doubt, also, it is still true +that any project upon which the cure sets his heart he will in the end +probably get a majority of the parishioners to adopt. But he must +persuade the people. Sometimes they oppose his plan strenuously and +feeling runs high. Then when a churchwarden is elected, as one is +annually, the cure may have his candidate, the opposing party theirs. At +Malbaie recently there was a sharp difference of opinion between the +cure and the people on a question relating to the cemetery. The parties +divided on the choice of a churchwarden and the cure's candidate was +defeated. + +Yet the cure's position is one of great strength and authority. He has +his own income uncontrolled by the _fabrique_, which is master of the +rest of the church finances. The cure's tithe consists of one +twenty-sixth of the cereals produced by the parishioners. A further +tithe he has: the twenty-sixth child born to any pair of his +parishioners is by custom brought to the priest and he rears it; +sometimes, strange to say, this tithe is offered! From his tithe on +cereals the income is not large; at Malbaie it is probably never more +than from $1000 to $1200 a year; sometimes much less. The average income +of a cure is not more than $600. It is the custom for the parishioner to +deliver duly at the priest's house one twenty-sixth of his grain and in +the autumn a great array of vehicles may be seen making their way +thither. Usually there is considerable variety in the grain thus brought +but sometimes the cure is almost overwhelmed by a single product such as +peas; one of their number, thus paid, the neighbouring clergy christened +the "_cure des pois_." The French Canadian farmer is often narrowly +penurious and if he will not pay, as sometimes happens, the cure rarely +presses him or takes steps to recover what the law would allow. In any +case a bad harvest is likely to leave the cure poor. Changes in the type +of farming may also curtail his income. Of the products of dairy farming +he gets no share, yet it is a creditable fact that many priests have +urged their people to adopt this kind of farming. Fees for weddings +which, in Protestant Churches, go usually to the minister, are in the +Province of Quebec handed over to the general church fund. Of course the +priest has sources of income other than the tithe. He receives fees for +masses but the sums chargeable for these ceremonies are determined by +the bishop; the priest himself has no power of undue exaction. There is +indeed no evidence of a desire for such exaction. Whatever personal +differences may arise, the French Canadian cure is usually one in +thought and aim with his people. Wherever he goes he is always +respectfully saluted. To him the needy turn and there are heavy calls +upon his charity. Few cures have any surplus income. They keep up a +large house and have constant need of one or more horses. Most cures, it +is said, die poor. + +It is the complaint in Great Britain and the United States that, rather +than enter the Christian ministry, the best intellects are seeking +secular pursuits. This is not the case in the Province of Quebec. The +cures watch the promising boys in the schools. The Church has many +boarding schools where boys are led on step by step to the final one of +entering the priesthood. A promising boy, if he needs it, is given a +scholarship. When the time comes he is sent to complete his education at +Rome or elsewhere. The Church has selected him, trained him in her +service, and, for the rest of his life, his best powers are at her call. +Every family is ambitious to have a representative in the priesthood and +this becomes the most notable thing not merely in the family but also in +the parish. The Province of Quebec has many parish histories. These +volumes are rather dreary reading, it must be admitted, consisting +chiefly of the record of the building or improvement of the church and +of the coming and the going of the cures. But one chief record is always +found--that of the sons of the parish who have entered the priesthood. +They are its glory. Not merely pride in the success of their offspring +leads parents to wish for a son in the priesthood. He may bring to them +more substantial benefits. He is the interpreter of sacred mysteries, +the intercessor in some respects between God and man, and he will plead +for them in the court of Heaven. + +This ambition to get sons into the priesthood has made it possible now +for the Church to rely wholly upon priests Canadian in origin. Not +always was this the case. After the British conquest it was not easy to +get priests. The British government frowned upon the introduction of +priests from France, still Britain's arch-enemy. Irish priests were +thought of, but they could not speak French and, besides, the Bishop of +Quebec did not find in them the submissive obedience of the Canadian +priest. For a time it was seriously proposed to supply Canada with +priests from Savoy, since of them Britain could have no political fears. +But for the time the French Revolution solved the question. Emigre +priests, driven from France, could be in Canada no political danger to +Great Britain since, like her, they desired the overthrow of the +existing French government. So a good many emigre priests were brought +out, among them Mr. Le Courtois, so long the cure of Malbaie. This +movement soon spent itself. In time the Church in Canada had a number of +seminaries for training priests and it now levies a heavy tithe upon the +best intellects of the country. Recently a new emigration of French +priests to Canada has taken place. But they have not been wholly +welcome; their tone is not quite that of the Canadian priesthood; +sometimes they assume patronizing airs and they are felt to be +foreigners. I have even heard a French Canadian priest say in broken +English to a Protestant from the Province of Ontario: "I feel that I +have more in common with you than I have with the French priests who are +flocking into this country." + +The Canadian cure is the priest always. Unlike the clergy in other parts +of Canada he wears his cassock even when he goes abroad; one sees dozens +of these black robes in the streets, on the steamers and trains. He does +not share in the amusement of other people. In Quebec Anglican clergymen +play golf and tennis; probably if a cure did so he might be called to +account by the bishop. Occasionally priests ride bicycles, but even this +is looked upon with some suspicion. Into general society the priests go +but little. They come together in each other's presbyteries for mutual +counsel and to celebrate anniversaries, such as the 25th year of the +ordination of one of their number. The large presbyteries, which one +sees even in remote parishes, are necessary to house the visiting clergy +on such occasions. They assist each other when their parishes have +special fetes. But their social intercourse is chiefly with each other. +The courtly abbe of old France, a universal guest in salons and at +dinner tables, is hardly found at all in the Province of Quebec. Nor is +the scholar usual. Even in small parishes there are rarely less than 500 +or 600 communicants and the calls upon the cure's time are heavy. There +are, of course, priests of literary tastes; as there are those with a +taste for art, to whom are due the occasional good pictures found in the +parish churches. Some priests interest themselves in agriculture and +give wise guidance to their people. But behind everything is the solemn, +severe, exacting, conception of the priest's high function as the medium +of God's speech to man. He is almost sexless--a being apart consecrated +to an awe-inspiring office. A mother will sometimes quiet an unruly +child by threatening the portentous intervention of the cure. + +Yet he is the universal friend. His relation to his people is not merely +official; it is affectionate, personal. The confessional makes him +familiar with the intimate details of nearly every one's life. On all +the joyous and sad crises, at births, marriages, and deaths, he is at +hand with sympathy, comfort and support. When he goes on a journey he +looks up not merely his own but his parishioners' friends and is welcome +everywhere. He is the general counsellor, the reconciler of family +quarrels, the arbitrator in differences, the guardian of morals. The +seigneur at Malbaie found the priest enquiring as to the manner in which +the male and female servants of the Manor were lodged. + +Colonel Nairne thought that the Church was too willing to see the people +remain ignorant; with her the primary virtue is obedience. But it is +not less true that on moral questions, such as sobriety and purity, the +Church has always shown great vigilance and zeal. In the old days there +was a mighty struggle between the Bishop of Quebec and the governor +Frontenac as to the sale of intoxicating liquors, and the Church is +still keen for temperance. It is due to her that public drinking places +are unknown in most Canadian villages. At Murray Bay it happened +recently that, by some lapse in vigilance, the party favourable to the +granting of licenses got the upper hand. The results were immediate and +deplorable. Summer visitors frequently found their drivers under the +influence of liquor and the habitant, usually courteous and respectful, +was now often rude and quarrelsome. The sudden fall made one realize how +slight might be the strength of virtue due merely to the absence of +temptation. The Church saw the danger. In the following winter she began +a systematic temperance campaign. For some ten days daily services were +held at which eloquent denunciations of intemperance roused the people. +Every effort was made to ensure attendance at these services and the +parish church, a great structure, was well filled daily. Hundreds signed +the pledge and by the next summer all was changed. No one was licensed +to sell liquor and the community was sober. If the relapse had been +rapid it must be admitted that the recovery was not less so. + +The cure and his assistants do their work with the precision and +regularity of a business man in his office. They watch education, and +have their own educational ideals. In the public schools of the +English-speaking world in America, manners and religion receive, alas, +but slight attention. But in Quebec one need only pass along a country +road to see that the children are taught respect and courtesy. The chief +subject of instruction is religion and to prepare the children for the +first communion seems to be the main aim of education. In the parish the +priest is never far away. Nearly always one or other of the clergy is at +the presbytery to answer calls of urgency, and their duties begin at an +early hour. "I am very busy until nine o'clock in the morning," a cure +once said to me. My comment was that most of us are only beginning the +serious duties of the day at that hour. "But I am tired by that time," +he said, rather sadly, "for already, so early in the day, I have heard +much of human sin." The people come early in the morning to confess and +by nine o'clock the cure was weary of the tale of man's frailty. +Thursday is his day of recreation. Only on that day usually does he +leave his parish and then he always arranges that a neighbouring priest +shall be within call. This oversight is not spasmodic; it is persistent, +alert, universal, and hardly varies with the individual cure. In human +society there is no institution more perfectly organized than the Roman +Catholic Church and in Quebec her traditions have a vitality and vigour +lost perhaps in communities more initiated. Of course not every one +accepts or heeds the cure's ministry. Many a _mauvais sujet_ is careless +or even defiant but, when his last moments come, at his bedside stands +the priest to show to the repentant sinner the path of blessedness, and, +when he is gone, his wayward course will give ground to call the living +to earlier obedience. + +In the Canadian parishes faith is simple, with a pronounced taste for +the supernatural. In the year 1907 a Jesuit priest, M. Hudon, published +at Montreal the life of Marie Catherine de Saint Augustin, 1632-1668, a +Quebec nun. This devout lady lived in an atmosphere charged always with +the supernatural. She knew of events before they happened; with demons +who tempted her she had terrific combats; she read the thoughts of +others with divine insight. Perhaps the climax of her experiences is +found when she has regularly, as confessor and mentor, the Jesuit father +and martyr Breboeuf, dead for some years. M. Hudon declared that he +had submitted the evidence for these wonders to all the tests that +modern scientific canons could require and that they were undoubtedly +true. The Archbishop of Quebec, Mgr. Begin, wrote a prefatory note +approving of the teaching of the book, and adding that Mother Marie +Catherine's life could not fail to be an inspiration to young girls to +live nobly. This simple belief in the constant occurrence of the +supernatural is not found only in the remoter parishes of the Province +of Quebec as a French Canadian writer seems to indicate;[31] it appears +everywhere. All Christians believe in a God who shapes human events and +hears and answers prayer. But many, Catholic and Protestant alike, +believe that the energy of God, in response to man's appeal, is applied +through the ordinary machinery of nature's laws. Modern thought is +pervaded with the conception of nature's rigour. I have seen good +Catholics shrug their shoulders at the wonders narrated by Marie +Catherine de Saint Augustin. But others, and these not only the +ignorant, think that this attitude shows the lack of a deeper faith. +Must God and his saints, they ask, be confined within the narrow +framework of nature's laws? Cannot He do all things? + +So it is not strange that the Canadian peasant dwells in a world charged +with the supernatural. Night furnishes the opportunity for goblins to be +abroad; the flickering lights on the marshes are goblin fires. Then, +too, the vagrant dead wander about restlessly, sinful souls refused +entrance to Heaven until they have sought and secured adequate prayers +for their pardon and relief. To cross a cemetery at night might attract +the fatal vengeance of the dead thus disturbed. The grumbling mendicant +at the door may really be an evil spirit bent on mischief. With a few, +magic and the gift of the evil eye are still dreaded forces and it is +well to know some charm by which evil may be averted. Since night is the +time of danger, if abroad then be watchful; if at home close doors and +windows, ere you go to sleep. I was once on a fishing expedition with +habitant guides when we had to share the same _cabane_. The air becoming +insufferable, I got up quietly, opened the door and went back to bed. +Presently I heard one of the guides steal softly to the door and close +it. When I thought he was asleep I opened it again. But in vain; once +more it was closed. In the morning nothing was said about it. Certainly +not cold was what he feared, for the weather was hot. I do not think it +was the mosquitoes. Was it the goblins? + +A simpler and touching faith is common. Every one has noticed in the +Province of Quebec the numerous crosses by the way side. These Calvaires +are of rough wood, usually eight or ten feet high; sometimes with the +cross are the dread implements of Christ's pain--the crown of thorns, +the hammer and nails, the executioner's ladder, the Roman soldier's +spear. Often at the foot is a box for alms to help the forgotten dead +who are in purgatory. As the habitant passes them he usually lifts his +hat. The Calvaires are a kind of domestic altar to which the people +come. In the summer evenings one may see a family grouped about them in +prayer. When there is need for special prayers, several families will +come across the fields to meet at the Calvaire. Dr. Henry, of whom more +later, tells how at Malbaie some eighty years ago he found in the +cottages social family worship night and morning. It is to be feared +that the present generation at Malbaie is less devout, corrupted it may +be by the heretic visitors' bad influence and example. But still the +guide with whom one goes camping rarely neglects his evening devotions. +In some families prayer sanctifies all the actions of the day. There is +prayer at rising, prayer at going to bed. Though here, as in France, +women are spoken of as only _creatures_, the mother is usually better +educated than the father and often leads these devotions, the others +joining in the responses. Before meals is recited a prayer, usually the +_Benedicite_. There is often a family oratory and here at the +appropriate seasons, in the month consecrated to the special family +saint and guardian, in May, the Virgin's month, in June, that of the +Sacred Heart, in November, "the month of the dead," special prayers are +said. On Sunday evenings the family chant the Canticles. The Church's +feasts are marked by festal signs such as the laying of the best rugs +on the floor. If there is drought groups gather frequently at the +Calvaires to pray for rain. Occasionally such supplications have a +curiously commercial basis in frugal minds. A habitant's wife, learning +that a near neighbour had made an offering to the cure for prayers for +rain, declared that she would give nothing, since if rain fell on the +neighbour's farm it would not stop there: "_S'il mouille chez les +Pierrot Benjamin, il mouillera ben icitte_."[32] + +In each year, if he chooses, the habitant has a good many chances to +cast his vote. The Church, the greatest institution of the village has +its annual election--that for a churchwarden; of the three churchwardens +one retires every year. An annual election there is also for the +municipal council, two or three of whose members retire each year. This +body looks after the highways, the granting of licenses to sell +spirituous liquors and so on. Annually also are elected school +commissioners, who have charge of education. The municipal council and +the school commission are comparatively new institutions in the Province +of Quebec. They have been borrowed from the Anglo-Saxon world, but the +habitant takes kindly to the elector's privileges and struggles are +sometimes keen. The innovation of the ballot not having been adopted, as +yet, in municipal elections, the voting is open. Every voter must thus +show his preferences and when a moral question, such as the licensing of +drinking places, is before the electors this open voting aids the +Church's influence. Usually the cure is an ardent temperance man and to +vote for a license against his wishes, made known perhaps from the +pulpit, needs great strength of conviction. It thus happens that a very +large number of parishes in the Province of Quebec have no licensed +drinking places. + +Of offices in the gift of the village voter those in the Church are the +most highly esteemed. To be a municipal councillor or a school +commissioner is indeed all very well. But the village council is not +really very important. It spends only a few hundred dollars a year and +to keep up the roads is not an exciting task. The village council rarely +has even the "town hall" usual in other communities; it meets in the +"salle publique," or the vestry, of the Church, or in the school house. +The school commissioners too have no very dazzling work to do. The cure +is sometimes their chairman and thus in some degree they come under the +control of the Church. The commissioners appoint the teachers in the +schools and keep up the school buildings, but their outlay is also very +small, for the salaries of teachers, usually women, are appallingly low. +The really important elective office in the parish is that of +churchwarden (_marguiller_). In the church the churchwardens have a +special seat of honour assigned to them. They control the temporalities +and may beard even the cure himself. Large sums of money pass through +their hands. They receive the pew rents,--and every habitant has a pew; +they receive the voluntary offerings. It often happens that the Church +accumulates large sums of money and that, if the building of a +_presbytere_ or parish church is decided upon, there is enough on hand +to pay for it outright. The municipal council and the schoolboard, on +the other hand, are always poor. The habitant watches their taxation +with a parsimonious scrutiny and it is a thankless task to carry on +their work. + +Municipal interests represent of course only a part of the village's +political thought. In provincial politics, federal politics, there is +often in Quebec an interest keener even than in other parts of Canada. +It would be too much to say that the habitant has a wide outlook on +public questions; but the village notary and the village doctor are +likely to have political ambitions and rivalry becomes acute; often +indeed the curse of the village is the professional politician. At times +in Quebec politics have been closely associated with religion and always +the bishops are persons to be reckoned with. Their attitude has ever +been that, if the policy of one or the other party seems to be inimical +to the Church, they have the right to direct Catholic electors to vote +against such a party. From the point of view of British supremacy in +French Canada it would be a mistake to say that the bishops in a +political role have always been mischievous. After the conquest they +soon became the most staunch supporters of the authority of George III +and through the Church the British conqueror was able to reach the +people. When the American Revolution began, the bishops were strenuous +for British connection and from the pulpits came solemn warnings against +the Americans. Again in Britain's war on Revolutionary France the +Canadian bishops were with her, heart and soul. They ordered _Te Deums_ +when Nelson destroyed the French fleet at the battle of the Nile, and +over Trafalgar there were great rejoicings. After Waterloo we find in +French Canada perhaps the most curious of all the thanksgivings; at +Malbaie, as elsewhere, a _Te Deum_ was sung and the people were told in +glowing terms of the victory of the "immortal Wellington" which had +covered "our army" with glory and ended a cruel war. Later, in the days +of Papineau, the Church opposed rebellion; she has since opposed +annexation to the United States. She has also helped to preserve order. +If a crime was to be detected, the cure read from the pulpit a demand +that any one, who could give information to further this end, should do +so. Solemn excommunication was pronounced against offenders; to make the +warning impressive the priest would drop to the ground a lighted candle +and put it out with his foot; so would God extinguish the offenders thus +denounced, and those who abetted their crimes. + +Since the Church has aided the state, not unnaturally she expected some +special favours in return. She got them in the days of the early British +governors of Canada. Sir Guy Carleton, afterwards Lord Dorchester, +secured for the Church the legal power to levy the tithe on Catholics +and practically all the other privileges she had enjoyed under the old +regime. The bishops tended to become more and more active in politics +and this reached a climax in 1896. With great heat the bishops threw +themselves into the attack on the Liberal party, because it would not +support the Church's demands for her own separate schools in Manitoba, +supported by taxes levied on Roman Catholics by the state. Some of the +bishops went too far in denunciation; an appeal against their action was +carried by Catholics to the Pope and the offenders were rebuked. The +incident showed that in politics the habitant knows his own mind, for he +gave an overwhelming support to the party on which the bishops were +warring. Since then many a habitant draws a sharp distinction between +the spiritual and the political claims of the bishops. Their full +spiritual authority he does not doubt; in politics he thinks his own +opinion as good as theirs. + +If in spiritual matters the Church led it was intended that in temporal +affairs too the habitants should always have guidance. An old world +flavour seems to pervade the relations between seigneur and vassal in a +French Canadian parish. The seigneur was himself the vassal of the +crown, bound to do humble homage at the capital when he received his +grant. We have a detailed account of the ceremony as performed, perhaps +for the first time under British rule. On December 23rd, 1760, in the +morning one Jacques Noel, a seigneur, accompanied by royal notaries, +proceeded to the government house in Quebec. He knocked at the principal +entrance and, when a servant appeared, Noel asked if His Excellency +James Murray, the Governor, was at home. The servant replied that His +Excellency was within and that he would give him notice. On being +admitted to the presence of the Governor, Noel with head uncovered, and, +to symbolize his humble obedience, wearing neither sword nor spur, fell +on his knees before him and declared that he performed faith and homage +for the seigniory to which, on his father's death, he had become the +heir. He then took an oath on the gospels to be faithful to the king and +to be no party to anything against his interests; to hold his own +vassals to the same obedience; and to perform all other duties required +by the terms of his holding. + +The Crown required very little of the seigneur and so, in truth, did the +seigneur of his tenants. Their annual payment of _cens et rentes_ rarely +amounted to more than a very few dollars. When it fell due in the autumn +they were given abundant notice. Still in the Canadian parishes, when +the Sunday morning mass is over, the crier stands on a raised platform +near the church door, the people gather round, and the announcement is +made of tithes and taxes due, of articles lost or found, of anything +indeed of general interest to the community. It was in this way that as +St. Martin's day, November 11th, approached the people were reminded of +the falling due of the _cens et rentes_. The meaning of the two terms is +somewhat obscure. The _cens_ was a trifling payment by the _censitaire_ +in recognition of the seigneur's position and rights as landowner; while +the _rentes_ represented a real rental based in some degree on the +supposed value of the land. But the rate was usually conventional and +very small. In early Canada the river was the highway and upon it +therefore every settler desired to have a frontage. There was, also, +greater safety from Indian attacks in having the houses close together +at the front of the farms. So these became long narrow strips, with the +houses built so close together that the country side often seems like a +continuous village. The habitant paid usually in _cens et rentes_ twenty +sols (about twenty cents) for each arpent (192 feet) of frontage; +instead of cash usually he might pay in kind--a live capon or a small +measure (demi-minot) of grain for each arpent. He paid also about one +cent of rent for each superficial acre. Thus for a farm of 100 acres, +with two arpents of frontage, a habitant might pay $1.00 in cash and two +capons. If each of 400 such tenants paid for their frontage in capons, +800 of these fowls would he brought to the seigneur's barn-yard each +autumn! + +Though payment was due on November 11th, the habitants usually waited +for the first winter days when the sleighing had become good. In many of +the sleighs, hastening with the merry sound of bells over the wintry +roads to the manor house, there would be one or two captive capons or a +bag or two of grain. M. de Gaspe has described how on such an occasion +the seigneur, or some member of his family for him, would be found by +the tenant "seated majestically in a large arm chair, near a table +covered with green baize cloth." Here he received the payments, or in +many cases only excuses for non-payment. The scene outside was often +animated, for the fowls brought in payment of the rent, with legs tied +but throats free, would not bear their captivity in silence. Rent day +was a festal occasion, but the great day in the year at the manor house +was New Year's Day. Then the people came to offer their respects to the +seigneur and Nairne speaks of the prodigious consumption of whiskey and +cakes at such a time. The seigneur was usually god-father to the +first-born of the children of his tenants. It is a pretty custom among +French Canadians for the children to go on New Year's Day, which is a +great festival, to the chamber of their parents in the early morning and +kneel before the bed for their benediction. To the seigneur as to a +parent came on this day his god-children and we have it from M. de +Gaspe, an eye witness, that on one occasion he saw no less than one +hundred of these come to call upon the seigneur at the manor house! In +the old days the people came also on the first day of May to plant the +May-pole before his door and to dance round it. + +Some of the seigneurs were as poor as their own _censitaires_ and, like +them, toiled with their hands. But usually there was a social gulf +between the cottage and the manor house. Even the Church marked this. +The seigneur had the right to a special pew; he was censed first; he +received the wafer first at the communion; he took precedence in +processions, and was specially recommended from the pulpit to the +prayers of the congregation. Caldwell, who was seigneur of Lauzon +opposite Quebec, used to drive through his great seigniory in state, +half reclining on the cushions of his carriage and with a numerous +following. If on a long drive he stopped at a farm house, even for the +light refreshment of a drink of milk, he never paid the habitant with +anything less than a gold coin. I once asked a habitant, who remembered +the old days, whether the seigneur really was such a very great man in +the village. He replied, with something like awe in his voice, +"_Monsieur, il etait le roi, l'empereur, du village_." + +The ministrations of the manor house were often patriarchical and +beneficent; the seigneur's wife was like the squire's wife in an English +village. In time this relation aroused resentment. Some villager's son +with a taste for business or letters made his way in the world, got into +touch with more advanced thought, and when he came back to the village +was not so willing as formerly to touch his hat to the seigneur and +accept an inferior social status as a matter of course. M. de Gaspe +tells how he often accompanied Madame Tache, in her own right +co-seigneuress of Kamouraska, opposite Malbaie, in her visits to the +people on the seigniory. She took alms to the poor, and wine, cordials, +delicacies to the sick and convalescent. "She reigned as sovereign in +the seigniory," he says, "by the very tender ties of love and of +gratitude." When she left the village church after mass on Sunday the +habitants, most of whom drove to church in their own vehicles, would +wait respectfully for her to start and then follow her in a long +procession, none of them venturing to pass her on the road. At the point +where she turned from the high-way up the avenue leading to the manor +house, each habitant, as he passed, would raise his hat, although only +her back was in view disappearing in the direction of the house. + +But early in the 19th century this spirit was changing: + + One day I was myself witness, says M. de Gaspe, of a violation of + this universal deference. It was St. Louis's day, the festival of + the parish of Kamouraska. As usual Madame Tache, at the close of + mass, was leading the long escort of her _censitaires_, when a + young man, excited by the frequent libations of which in the + country many are accustomed to partake during the parish fetes,--a + young man, I say, breaking from the procession passed the carriage + of the seigneuress as fast as his horse would go. Madame Tache + stopped her carriage and turning round towards those who followed + her cried in a loud voice: + + "What insolent person is this who has passed before me?" + + An old man went up to her, hat in hand, and said with tears in his + voice: + + "Madame, it is my son who unfortunately is tipsy, but be sure that + I shall bring him to make his apologies and meanwhile I beg you to + accept mine for his boorishness." + + I ought to add that the whole parish spoke with indignation of the + conduct of the young man. The delinquent had committed a double + offence. He had been rude to their benefactress, and besides, + violating a French Canadian custom, he had passed a carriage + without asking permission.[33] + +This must have been before 1813 for in that year this good Madame Tache +died: even so early was youth restive under the old traditions of +deference and subordination. Already some even of the seigneurs were +saying that the system retarded settlement. It would have suited the +seigneurs to have their holdings converted into freehold, for then they +could have held the unsettled land as their own property instead of +being under obligation to grant it for a nominal rental to +_censitaires_. But to make this conversion would have been too kind to +the seigneurs; so the matter dragged on for a long time. + +The grievances of the habitant against the seigneurs were numerous, some +of them real, some fanciful. It seemed anomalous that, in a British +colony in the nineteenth century, there should be men holding great +tracts of land with rights over their tenants, as some authors have +seriously claimed, extending from the power of trying them for petty +offences to that of inflicting the death penalty. This last right was, +in any case, only nominal and was never exercised by any seigneur in +Canada; but even the claim that it existed shows how high were the +authority and privilege of the seigneur. A right like the _corvee_ had a +sinister meaning. One of the greatest hardships of the old regime, in +France it meant that, on demand, the peasant must drop his own work to +join in making highways, in carrying from one place to another the +effects of a regiment, and other unwelcome tasks, all without pay. In +Canada it was milder. The seigneur levied a _corvee_ of so many days' +labour, which he employed on the useful task of improving the highway. +Some seigneurs required that at the times they chose, the habitants +should work for them a certain number of days, usually six, in each +year. They could even make the habitants work without pay at building a +manor house; a few of the massive stone mansions still fairly numerous +in the Province of Quebec were constructed by such labour. Not +unnaturally the habitant came to feel it odious and humiliating to be +obliged thus to give his labour at another's order. + +The seigneuries too were often broken up. In Canada there is no law of +primogeniture and, at a seigneur's death, the land went to daughters as +well as to sons. Few of the old seigniorial families remained on their +original estates. In time those who held the property came to think that +a rental of about a cent an acre was not enough. In the days of French +rule they could not have increased it; but the old custom, they claimed, +did not apply under British sovereignty. So these charges were often +increased; in time instead of a penny the habitant had to pay +three-pence, six-pence, and even eight-pence, an acre; the seigneurs, as +a judge put it, showed an excellent knowledge of arithmetical +progression. Thus the _cens et rentes_ began to bring in a real income. +So did the _lods et ventes_, the tax of one-twelfth of the price of +whatever land the habitant sold. In early days land was rarely sold. But +when towns and villages had grown up on seigniorial estates, a good deal +of buying and selling took place and there stood always the seigneur +demanding in every transaction his share of the selling price. If the +land was sold two or three times in a year, as might well happen, each +time the seigneur got his share of one-twelfth. If the occupier had +built on the land a house at his own cost, none the less did the +seigneur, who had done nothing, get his large percentage on the selling +value of these improvements. This was a real grievance. To avoid paying +the seigneur's claim a price, lower than that really paid, was sometimes +named in the deed, and this led to perjury. To protect themselves the +seigneur used his _droit de retrait_ the right for forty days of himself +taking the property at the price named. This involved vexation and delay +and increased discontent. Moreover the seigneur's right to _lods et +ventes_ stood in the way of a ready transfer of property between members +of the same family. + +There were other causes of discontent. The seigneur had the _droit de +banalite_, the banal rights, under which in France the habitant must use +the seigneur's wine-press, his oven and his mill. In Canada no wine was +made, so the seigneur's winepress did not exist. Some attempts were made +to force the habitant to bake his bread in the seigneur's oven but what +would do in a compact French village, where fuel was scarce, became +absurd in Canada; the picture is ludicrous of a habitant carrying a +dozen miles, over rough roads, to the seigneur's oven, unbaked dough +which might be hard frozen _en route_. Moreover new inventions made +ovens common and cheap so that the habitant could afford to have his +own. The seigneur's oven thus caused no grievance. Not so however the +seigneur's mill. In the early days when the seigneur had the sole right +to build a mill this became for him, in truth, a duty sometimes +burdensome; for, whether it would pay or not, the government forced him +to build a mill or else abandon the right. But in time the mill proved +profitable and to it the peasant must bring his wheat. There might be a +good mill near his house, while the seigneur's mill might be a dozen +miles away and even then might give poor service; yet to the seigneur's +mill he must go. If it was a wind-mill, nature, by denying wind, might +cause a long delay before the flour should be ready. As time went on, +some seigneurs claimed or reserved a monopoly in regard to all mills; +grist mills, saw mills, carding mills, factories of every kind. Canada +in time exported flour, but the seigneur's rights stood in the way of +the free grinding of the wheat for this trade. The habitant might have +on his land an excellent mill site with water power convenient, but he +could not use it without the seigneur's consent. More than this the +seigneur often reserved the right to take such a site to the extent of +six arpents for his own use without any compensation to the habitant. + +In many cases the seigneur might freely cut timber on the habitant's +land to erect buildings for public use,--church, presbytery, mill, and +even a manor house. The rights to base metals on the property he also +retained. The eleventh fish caught in the rivers was his. He might +change the course of streams or rivers for manufacturing purposes; he +alone could establish a ferry; his will determined where roads should be +opened. Some seigneurs were even able to force villages and towns to pay +a bonus for the right to carry on the ordinary business of buying and +selling. So it turned out that if the habitant's crop failed he had +little chance to do anything else without the seigneur's consent; he is, +says the report of a Commission of Enquiry in 1843, "kept in a perpetual +state of feebleness and dependence. He can never escape from the tie +that forever binds to the soil him and his progeny; a cultivator he is +born, a mere cultivator he is doomed to die." No doubt this plaint is +pitched in a rather high key. But in time the burden of grievances was +generally felt and then the seigniorial system was doomed. + +In the days of the last John Nairne political agitation became an old +story at Malbaie. We get echoes of meetings held in the village to +support the cause of the idol of habitant radicalism, Louis Joseph +Papineau; in 1836 ninety-two resolutions drawn up by him and attacking +the whole system of government in Canada appear to have met with +clamorous approval from the assembled villagers. Papineau was himself a +seigneur and did not assail the system. But after his unsuccessful +rebellion in 1837-38 the attack on the seigneurs intensified. We know +little of what happened at Malbaie but the end came suddenly. In 1854, +after an election fought largely on this issue, the Parliament of Canada +swept away the seigniorial system. The habitants then became tenants +paying as rent the old _cens et rentes_. They could not be disturbed as +long as this trifling rent was paid. Moreover at any time they might +become simple freeholders by paying to the seigneur a sum of money +representing their annual rent capitalized on a six per cent, basis. The +term seigneur is still used but is now a mere honorary title. No longer +does his position give him the authority of a magistrate; no longer must +the habitants grind their corn at his mill; no longer can he claim _lods +et ventes_ when land is sold. For the loss of these rights he was paid +compensation out of the public treasury.[34] + +With the abolition of the seigniorial system ends too the story of the +Nairne family. In 1861, exactly one hundred years after Colonel Nairne +first visited Malbaie, died his grandson and the last of his +descendants, John McNicol Nairne, son of Colonel Nairne's eldest +daughter Magdalen. This last Nairne left the property absolutely to his +widow, tied only by the condition that it was to go to her male issue if +she had such, even by a second marriage. In 1884, she too died +childless, and bequeathed the property to an old friend, both of herself +and of her husband, Mr. W.E. Duggan. Had Mr. Duggan not survived Mrs. +Nairne the property was to go to St. Matthew's Church, Quebec. Mr. +Duggan occupied it, until his death in 1898, when it passed by will to +his half-brother, Mr. E.J. Duggan, the present seigneur.[35] + +It is a sad story this of the extinction of a family. Both Thomas Nairne +and his father were buried at first in the Protestant cemetery at +Quebec. But not there permanently were they to lie, and many years ago +they found a resting-place in a new tomb in Mount Hermon Cemetery. On a +lovely autumn day in 1907 I made my way in Quebec to the spot where the +Nairnes are interred. In the fresh cool air it was a pleasure to walk +briskly the three miles of the St. Louis road to the cemetery. One +crossed the battle field of the Plains of Abraham where, within a few +months, a century and a half ago, Britain and France grappled in deadly +strife. The elder Nairne saw that field with its harvest of dead on +September 13th, 1759, and, in the following April, he saw its snow +stained with the blood of brave men who fell in Murray's battle with +Levis. In May, 1776, he marched across it in victorious pursuit of the +fleeing American army. At Mount Hermon I readily found the Nairne tomb. +It lies on the slope of the hill towards the river. Through the noble +trees gleamed the mighty tide of the St. Lawrence. A great pine tree +stands near the block of granite that marks the Nairne graves and a +gentle breeze through its countless needles caused that mysterious +sighing which is perhaps nature's softest and saddest note. One's +thoughts went back to the brave old Colonel who wrought so well and had +such high hopes for his posterity to the soldier son, remembered here, +who died in far distant India; and to the other soldier son who fell in +Canada upon the field of battle. He was the last male heir of his line. +The name and the family are now well-nigh forgotten. The inscriptions on +the tomb, reared by a friend, connected with the Nairnes by ties of +friendship only, not of blood, are themselves the memorial of the rise +and extinction of a Canadian family.[36] + +[Footnote 25: He must have been a Roman Catholic for he was buried in +the churchyard at Murray Bay.] + +[Footnote 26: We have seen (_ante_ p. 49) how at Malbaie Colonel Nairne +expected that a Protestant missionary would soon make the community +Protestant.] + +[Footnote 27: Professor Barrett Wendell, France of To-day, New York, +1907.] + +[Footnote 28: Roy, Histoire de la Seigneurie de Lauzon, IV: 169, 170.] + +[Footnote 29: The Abbe H.R. Casgrain: _Une Paroisse Canadienne au XVII. +Siecle_. _Oeuvres_, Vol. I, pp. 483 _sqq._] + +[Footnote 30: Roy, La Seigneurie de Lauzon, IV: 247.] + +[Footnote 31: M. Leon Gerin in "L'Habitant de Saint-Justin", p. 202.] + +[Footnote 32: Roy, La Seigneurie de Lauzon IV: 245.] + +[Footnote 33: De Gaspe, _Memoires_, p. 533, 4.] + +[Footnote 34: Mr. Nairne claimed as compensation for his _lods et +ventes_ L4,560, 9s. 6d., (Halifax currency) and for the banal rights +L3,400. He probably received considerably less. More than 400 dwellers +in the seigniory still pay the annual _cens et rentes_.] + +[Footnote 35: Malcolm Fraser's seigniory, Mount Murray, remained +somewhat longer in the family of its original owner. On Fraser's death +in 1815 his eldest son William, who had become a medical practitioner +and a Roman Catholic, succeeded. He died without issue in 1830 and his +brother, John Malcolm Fraser, then fell heir to the seigniory. When he +died in 1860 the property passed by will to his two daughters, both +married to British officers. The elder, Mrs. Reeve, succeeded to the +manor house. The younger, Mrs. Higham, soon sold her share to the Cimon +family who became prominent in the district and one of whose members sat +in Parliament at Ottawa on the Conservative side. Mrs. Reeve died in +1879 leaving the use of the property to her husband, Colonel Reeve, for +his life. When he died in 1888, his son Mr. John Fraser Reeve, Malcolm +Fraser's great-grandson, became seigneur. In 1902 he sold the property +to the present seigneur, Mr. George T. Bonner, of New York, a Canadian +by birth. Though there are numerous living descendants of Malcolm +Fraser, Murray Bay knows them no more.] + +[Footnote 36: Sacred to the memory of Lieutenant Colonel John Nairne, +First Seigneur of Murray Bay. This Gallant Officer during 38 years +distinguished himself as an able and brave Soldier. For simplicity of +manners as a man, for Intrepidity and humanity as a Soldier, and for the +virtues of a Gentleman, his memory will long be respected and cherished. +Born in Scotland, March 1, 1731. Died at Quebec, July 14, 1802. + +Lieutenant Colonel Nairne first entered the Dutch Service where he +belonged to that distinguished Corps, the Scotch Brigade. He afterwards +entered the British Service where under Wolfe he was present at the +taking of Louisbourg and Quebec. He also served under Murray and +Carleton and distinguished himself in a most gallant manner when Quebec +was attacked by the Americans in the years 1775 and 1776. + +And of his eldest son, Lieutenant John Nairne of the 19th Regiment of +Foot, who fell a victim to the climate of India when returning with the +victorious troops from the capture of Seringapatam in the 21st year of +his age; also of his youngest son, Captain Thomas Nairne, of the 49th +Regiment of Foot who bravely fell at the head of his Company in the +Battle at Chrysler's Farm in Upper Canada November 11, 1813, aged 26 +years. + +Also of John Leslie Nairne, great grandson of Colonel Nairne, born July +23, 1842, died March 18, 1845; and of John Nairne, Esq., Grandson of +Colonel Nairne, born at Murray Bay, March 22nd, 1808, died at Quebec +June 8, 1861; and of his Widow, Maria Katherine Leslie, died at Quebec, +August 25, 1884, deeply regretted by her friends and by the poor of whom +she was the constant benefactress. + +This monument is erected in affectionate remembrance of much kindness by +one who was privileged to enjoy their friendship during the best part of +his life.] + + + + +CHAPTER VIII + +THE COMING OF THE PLEASURE SEEKERS + + Pleasure seeking at Murray Bay.--A fisherman's experience in + 1830.--New visitors.--Fishing in a mountain lake.--Camp life.--The + Upper Murray.--Canoeing.--Running the rapids.--Walks and + drives.--Golf.--A rainy day.--The habitant and his visitors. + + +In the Middle Ages mankind in pursuit of change of air and scene and of +bodily and spiritual health went on pilgrimage to some famous shrine; in +modern times dwellers in cities, in a similar pursuit, go in summer to +some beautiful spot by sea, or lake, or mountain. To many these places +then become as sacred as was the saint's shrine of an earlier age. Busy +men have leisure there to be idle, to read, to enjoy companionship, to +pursue wholesome pleasures. Such a spot has Murray Bay become to many. +Their intrusion was not looked upon with favour by those who wished to +preserve the old simplicity, but it could not be resisted. More than a +hundred years ago Colonel Nairne and Colonel Fraser had parties of +guests in the summer that must have made the two manor houses lively +enough. The beauty of the place, its coolness when Quebec and Montreal +suffered from sweltering heat in the short Canadian summer, the +simplicity and charm of its life, proved alluring. There was also +excellent sport. Salmon and trout abounded. Though time has brought +changes, in some seasons the salmon fishing is still excellent and, in +all the world, probably, there is no better trout fishing than in the +upper waters of the Murray and in some of the lakes. + +Thus it happened that the earliest annals of pleasure seeking at Murray +Bay relate to fishing. It is at least possible that more than two +hundred years ago the Sieur de Comporte tried his fortune as a fisherman +in the lake that bears his name. A hundred and fifty years ago, as we +have seen, Captain Nairne and his guest Gilchrist had such excellent +salmon fishing that Gilchrist thought this sport alone worth a trip +across the Atlantic. Many other fishing expeditions to Malbaie there +must have been and, fortunately, a detailed narrative of one of them, +made in 1830, has been preserved. The fishermen were Major Wingfield and +Dr. Henry--attached to the 66th regiment at Montreal. + +They went by steamer from Montreal to Quebec and an American General on +board jeered at them for travelling three hundred miles to catch fish +which they could buy in the market at their door! When they reached +Quebec they found no steamer for Murray Bay,--hardly strange as then the +steamboat was comparatively new. Three days they waited at Quebec until +at length they bargained with the captain of a coasting schooner bound +for Kamouraska, on the south shore of the St. Lawrence, to land them at +Malbaie. The weather was stormy, the ship nearly foundered, and the +eighty miles of the journey occupied no less than four days and nights. +The fishermen had brought with them a quarter of cold lamb, a loaf, and +a bottle of wine, but, before the journey was over, sheer hunger drove +them to the ship's salt pork and to sausages stuffed with garlic. Rather +than take refuge below among "thirty or forty dirty habitants from +Kamouraska" they stuck to the deck and encamped under the great sail, +but the rain fell so heavily that they could not even keep their cigars +alight. At length "with beards like Jews," cold, wet, half-starved and +miserable, they reached their destination. As they landed at Murray Bay +they saw a salmon floundering in a net, bought it, and carried it with +them to the house of a man named Chaperon where they had engaged +lodgings. Here, says Dr. Henry, the sensation of being clean and +comfortable in their host's "pleasant parlour" was delicious. The tea, +the toast, the dainty prints of fresh butter were all exquisite "after +rancid pork and garlic," and he declares that they ate for two hours and +consumed "some half gallon of thick cream and half a bushel of new laid +eggs." Under their window bloomed a rose bush in full flower. Murray Bay +was at its best. + +On Monday morning, July 5th, 1830, the two fishermen engaged a +_caleche_, and a boy named Louis Panet drove them up the Murray River. +The present village church was already standing, "a respectable church," +says Dr. Henry, "with its long roof and glittering spire and a tall elm +or two"; the elms, alas, have disappeared and now there are only +willows. A wooden bridge crossed the Murray and its large abutments +loaded with great boulders told of formidable spring floods sweeping +down the valley. A recent "eboulement" or land slide had blocked the +road along the river and men were still busy clearing away the rubbish. +Eight or ten miles up the river at the fall known as the Chute, still a +favourite spot for salmon fishing, they had magnificent sport. One Jean +Gros, in a crazy canoe, took them to the best places for casting the +fly. The first salmon weighed twenty-five pounds and they had to play it +for three-quarters of an hour. That evening when they returned to M. +Chaperon's, to feast once more, they had five salmon weighing in all one +hundred and five pounds and forty-five sea trout averaging three pounds +each. No wonder Gilchrist has said such fishing was worth a trip across +the Atlantic! The blot on the day's enjoyment was that in the July +weather they were pestered with flies. + +Excellent sport continued from day to day. Once Jean Gros lost his hold +of the pole by which he controlled the canoe and it drifted helplessly +towards a rapid, Henry all the time playing a salmon. The man was +alarmed and knelt to mumble prayers but Henry caught up a board thrown +from the shore, gave him a whack with it on the back and shouted: +"_Ramez! Sacre! Ramez!_" The effect was electrical. The old fellow +seized the board, paddled with it like mad, steered down the rapid, and +Henry finally landed his salmon. Day after day the two fishermen drove +up to the Chute to fish until, after a fortnight, the river fell and the +salmon ceased to rise; then they went down in a large boat to Riviere +Noire, said never yet to have been fished with a rod, slept at night on +the sandy beach, but had no luck. Henry tells of an annoyance at Malbaie +that still continues; mongrel dogs ran after their _caleche_; sometimes +one would try to seize the horse by the nose and nearly cause a +run-away. Each cur pursued the vehicle and barked himself hoarse, and +then, when he retired, his neighbour would take up the task. At length, +after this experience had been frequently renewed, they decided to +retaliate. One black shaggy beast had made himself specially obnoxious; +with his thick wooly fur he did not mind in the least being struck by +the whip. So one day Dr. Henry got ready the salmon gaff and, as the +brute darted out at them, skilfully hooked him by the side. The driver +whipped up his horse, which seemed to enjoy the punishment of his +enemy, and the vehicle went tearing along the road, the dog yelling +hideously as he was dragged by the hook. The people ran to the doors +holding up their hands in astonishment. The Doctor soon shook off the +dog and he trotted home little the worse. Next day when he saw the +fisherman's caleche coming he limped into the house "as mute as a fish" +with his tail between his legs. + +Dr. Henry thought Murray Bay an earthly paradise. The people in this +"secluded valley" were the most virtuous he had ever seen. Flagrant +crime was unknown,--doors were never locked at night. There was no need +of temperance reform; "whole families pass their lives without any +individual ever having tasted intoxicating fluids." The devout people, +he says, had social family worship, morning and evening; the families +were huge, fifteen to twenty children being not uncommon; when a young +couple married the relations united to build a house for them; and so +on. Unfortunately we know from other sources that conditions were not as +idyllic at Murray Bay as Dr. Henry describes; but it was, no doubt, a +simple and virtuous community. + +In time its isolation was to disappear before invaders like Dr. Henry, +in pursuit of pleasure. So gradual was the change that we hardly know +when it came. By 1850 there was a little summer colony mostly from +Quebec and Montreal. Soon a few came from points more distant. As means +of transport on the St. Lawrence improved a great many travellers passed +Murray Bay on their way to the Saguenay. Tadousac, at its mouth, was +already well known and an occasional stray visitor stopped off at Murray +Bay to see what it was like. The accommodation offered was rude enough, +no doubt, but perhaps less rude than one might suppose. At Pointe au Pic +stood a substantial stone house. This was turned into a hotel and known +some fifty years ago as Duberger's house. There were besides a few other +houses for summer visitors. Thus, long ago, was there tolerable comfort +at Murray Bay. In any case visitors soon found that the place had +abundant compensations even for discomfort. They came and came again. +Friends came to visit them and they too learned to love the spot. Some +Americans from New York chanced to find it out and others of their +countrymen followed; by 1885 already well established was the now +dominant American colony. + +The influx has limited and restricted but has not destroyed the old +diversion of fishing. There are still many hundreds of lakes in the +neighbourhood on which no fisherman has ever yet cast a fly. But nearly +all the good spots within easy range are now leased or owned by private +persons and clubs; no longer may the transient tourist fish almost where +he pleases. All the better for this restriction is the quality of the +fishing. What magnificent sport there is in some of those tiny lakes on +the mountain side and what glorious views as one drives thither! To +reach Lac a Comporte, for instance, one crosses the brawling Murray, +drives up its left bank for a mile or so and then heads straight up the +mountain side. Turning back one can see the silver gleam of the small +river winding through its narrow valley until lost in the enveloping +mountains. From points still higher one looks northwestward upon the +mountain crests worn round ages ago, some of them probably never yet +trodden by the foot of man. Most are wooded to the top but there are +bare crags, a glowing purple sometimes in the afternoon light; but the +prevailing tone is the deep, deep blue, the richest surely that nature +can show anywhere. Along the road where we are driving stretch the +houses of the habitants and sometimes, to survey the passing strangers, +the whole family stands on the rude door-step. They rarely fail in a +courteous greeting, with a touch still of the manners of France. + +Two or three days spent on one of these wild mountain lakes, such as Lac +a Comporte, is as pleasant an experience as any one can have. The walk +is beautiful from the last cottage where the vehicles are left and the +two or three men are secured who shoulder the packs with the necessary +provisions. At first the forest path is hewn broadly in a straight line +but it soon narrows to a trail winding up the mountain side. The way is +rough; one must clamber over occasional boulders and turn aside to avoid +fallen trees. The white stems of birches are conspicuous in the forest +thicket. After a stiff climb we have passed over the shoulder of the +mountain; the path is now trending downward and at length through the +arch of green over the pathway one catches the gleam of the lake. The +pace quickens and in a few minutes we stand upon the shore of a lovely +little sheet of water with a shore line perhaps three miles long, lying +in the mountain hollow. Evening is near and, half an hour later, each +fisherman is in a boat paddled softly by a habitant companion. In a +thousand places the calm water is disturbed by the trout feeding busily; +they often throw themselves quite clear of the water and, when the sport +has well begun, at a single cast one occasionally takes a trout on each +of his three flies. Before it is dark the whole circuit of the lake has +been made and a goodly basket of trout is the result. + +A camp at evening is always delightful. The tired fishermen lie by the +cheery fire while the men prepare the evening meal, to consist chiefly +of the trout just caught. They have the vivacity and readiness of their +race: rough habitants though they are their courtesy is inborn, +inalienable. After the meal is over silence often falls on the group of +three or four by the fire. Every one is tired and at barely nine o'clock +it is time for bed. Before each of the two or three small tents standing +some distance apart by the water's edge the men have built a blazing +fire which throws its light far out over the tiny lake. All round rise +the mountains, now dark and sombre; a sharp wind is blowing and as one +stands alone looking out over the water there comes a sense of chill; +for a moment the mountain solitude seems remote, melancholy and +friendless: with something like a shiver one turns to the cheerful fire +before the tent. Here blankets are spread on sweet scented boughs of +_sapin_; the bed is hard, but not too hard for a tired man and one +quickly falls asleep. + +Other fishing expeditions at Murray Bay take one farther afield and into +more varied scenes. In its upper stretches, three thousand feet above +the sea, the Murray River flows through a level country before it +plunges into mountain fastnesses, almost impregnable in summer, for a +long and troubled detour, to emerge at length into this last valley. To +reach this flat upland one must drive through a beautiful mountain pass +with great heights towering on either side of the winding roadway. In +the upper river the fishing is still unsurpassed. Of small trout there +are vast numbers, excellent for the table, but in the deep pools are +also huge trout, ranging in weight from three to eight pounds. The +surrounding country is open; there are only clumps of scrubby timber; +and the plain is covered with deep moss readily beaten into a hard path +upon which the foot treads silently. Here the bears come to feed upon +the berries and the Canadians have called the plain prettily the "Jardin +des Ours." Other sport than trout fishing there is. In season the +caribou and the moose are abundant--but that is a sportsman's tale by +itself. + +Fishing and hunting are not the sole diversions. As long ago as in 1811, +when young Captain Nairne came here fresh from Europe, the boating +attracted him and he spent much time on the bay and the river. No doubt +the young seigneur was soon skilful in the art of paddling a canoe. In +those days there were real Indians and no other canoes than those of +birch bark; now these have well-nigh disappeared and, indeed, few +visitors at Murray Bay, use any kind of a canoe. The pastime is thought +too dangerous for all but the initiated. Amid these mountains, winds +rise quickly and beat up a sea, and it is well to keep near the shore. +The rising tide sweeps like a mill race over the bar at the mouth of the +bay and when one has passed out to the great river it is like being +afloat on the open sea. On perfectly calm days we may go far out to be +swept up with the tide; but it is both safer and pleasanter to glide +along close to shore under the shadow of the cliffs, around sharp +corners, dodging in and out among boulders submerged, or now being +submerged, by the rising tide. The successive sandy beaches are each +backed by high cliffs. The river is a shining, spangled, surface of +light blue and white, reflecting the sky sprinkled with fleecy clouds. +Here a chattering stream, the Petit Ruisseau, falls over white rocks to +lose itself in the sand. Far ahead now one can see the Church of Ste. +Irenee perched on a level table-land, two or three hundred feet above +the river. Soon a dark green line on the high birch-clad shore marks the +gorge by which the Grand Ruisseau flows to the St. Lawrence. At its +mouth is a good place to land and make tea. The canoes are drawn up on a +sandy beach under the shadow of cliffs, a medley of red and grey and +brown. Near by, the Grand Ruisseau, a fair sized brook, babbles in its +bed crowded with great boulders. A wild path, part of it including steps +from rock to rock in the bed of the stream itself, leads to a lovely +little cascade where, in white foam, the water falls into a deep dark +pool. One hurries to visit it and then, with the evening shadows falling +and the narrow gorge becoming sombre, it is wise to hasten back. As one +steps out from the wooded path to the shore of the great river the scene +is enchanting. The river's shining surface is perfectly smooth. Far +across it is a dark-blue serried line of mountains. Houses, twenty miles +distant, stand out white in the last light of the sun. From the +tin-covered spire of a church far away, the flash of the rays comes back +like the glow of fire. Standing in shadow we look out on a realm of +light: + + "As when the sun prepared for rest + Hath gained the precincts of the West, + Though his departing radiance fail + To illuminate the hollow vale, + A lingering light he fondly throws + On the fair hills, where first he rose." + +The shore is strangely silent; one hears only the occasional puffing of +the white whale or the sad cry of the loon. + +A thrilling diversion is that of running the rapids in the Murray River. +The canoe is sent up by _charette_ and after luncheon it is a walk or +drive of eight or nine miles up the river to the starting point--a deep, +dark-brown pool, which soon narrows into a swift rapid, the worst in all +the stretches to the river's mouth. Formerly a procession of half a +dozen canoes would go through the rapid with light hearts, but, long +ago, when the river was very high, a canoe upset here and one of its +occupants was never seen alive again. As one paddles out into the pool +and is drawn into the dark current moving silently and swiftly to the +rapid the heart certainly beats a little faster. The water's surface is +an inclined plane as it flows over the ledge of rock. Straight ahead the +current breaks on a huge black rock in a cloud of white foam. One must +sweep off to the right, with the great volume of the water, and need +catch only a little spray in swinging safely past the danger point. +Then, in the waves caused by the current, before the canoe is quite +turned "head-on" a wave may curl over the bow and leave the occupants +kneeling in half an inch of water. In such a case it is wise to land and +empty the canoe. In the next rapid, a tangled maze, the water is shallow +and skill is required to wind in and out among the rocks and find water +enough to keep afloat. Then the canoe slips over a ledge with plenty of +water and the only care is to curve sharply to the left with the current +before it strikes the bank straight ahead. The whole trip down the river +occupies two glorious hours. There are short stretches of smooth and +deep water; then the river contracts and pours with impetuous swiftness +down a rocky slope. Sometimes trees stand close to the river; then there +are bare grey banks of clay; then smiling fields sloping gently up to +the high land; at times the canoe is in shade, then in the flashing +sunlight. The river grows milder as it nears its mouth but the +excitement does not end until we float under the bridge at Malbaie +village and lift the canoe over the boom fastened there to catch logs in +their descent. To paddle home in calm water across the bay seems tame +after dancing for two hours on that tossing current. + +Of course there are many walks and drives--on the whole the most +delightful of Malbaie's diversions. The favourite walk is to "Beulah." A +generation that does not read its Bible as it should may need to be told +that Beulah is the name of the land no more desolate in which the Lord +delighteth; some Bible reader so named a spot on the mountain where one +looks out far, far, afield in every direction for immense distances. It +may be reached by a forest path straight up the mountain side from +Pointe au Pic. We go through spruce and birch woods till we reach an +opening where we look out northward on rounded mountain tops blue, +silent, immeasurable, spreading away, one might almost fancy to the +North Pole itself, so endless seems their mass. On beautiful turf +through woods, then by a cow path across a bog, the path leads until a +bare hill top lies full in view. This is Beulah. Standing there one +seems to have the whole world at one's feet. When Petrarch had climbed +Mount Ventoux, near Avignon, the first man for half a century to do so, +the scene overwhelmed him; thoughts of the deeper meaning of life rose +before his mind; he drew from his pocket St. Augustine and read: "Men go +about to wonder at the height of the mountains and the mighty waves of +the sea, and the wide sweep of rivers and the circuit of the ocean and +the revolution of the stars, but themselves they consider not." I never +stand on "Beulah" without thinking of this passage. Far away to the +distant south shore, and up and down the river we can survey a stretch +of eighty or ninety miles. We stand in the midst of a sea of mountains +and look landward across deep valleys in all directions with the ranges +rising tier on tier beyond. + +[Illustration: THE GOLF LINKS AT MURRAY BAY] + +Among diversions for men golf, in spite of a certain reaction, has still +the chief place. The club house is on the west shore of the bay. One +plays out northward. The players zigzag here and there among curious +earth mounds formed by the eddying swirl of water when the river's +current held high carnival over these level stretches. Then the course +leads up to the higher slope and mounts steadily, until, at the farthest +hole, a considerable height has been reached. As one turns back towards +the river he faces a wonder scene of changing grey and blue and green +and white. The smoke of passing steamers floats lazily in the air; they +take the deep channel by the south shore and are a dozen miles away. It +is usually a silent world that one looks out upon; but when there is a +north-east wind great green waves come rolling in upon the sandy shore +of the bay and fill the air with their undertone. + +Even the rainy days have their own pleasures. One is glad of its excuse +to sit before a crackling fire of birch wood and read. When the rain has +ceased and the sun comes out, looking across to Cap a l'Aigle and up +the river valley one sees new beauties. The mist disperses slowly. First +it leaves bare the rounded mountain tops; they stand out dark, massive, +with bases shrouded still in fleecy white. When the sun grows strong, +river and valley are soon clear again, though the outlines are still a +little softened. Up over the sand and boulders of the bay comes the +rising tide changing sombre brown to shining blue. It rushes noisily +across the bar at the bay's mouth a few hundred yards away. + +The visitors to this beautiful scene gather year by year from places +widely separated and form in this remote village a society singularly +cosmopolitan. English, French, Americans, Canadians, all mingle here +with leisure to meet and play together. For a time far away seems the +hard world of competition. Rarely do newspapers arrive until at least +the day after publication; the telegraph is used only under urgent +necessity; as far as possible business is excluded. The cottages are +spacious enough but quite simple, with rooms usually divided off only by +boards of pine or spruce. Very little decoration makes them pretty. +Gardening has a good many devotees; the long day of sunshine and in some +seasons the abundant rain of this northern region help to make +vegetation luxurious. If one drives he may take a _planche_--the +convenient serviceable "buck-board,"--still unsurpassed for a country +of hills and rough roads. But to me at least the _caleche_ is the more +enjoyable. It comes here from old France, a two-wheeled vehicle, with +the seat hung on stout leather straps reaching from front to back on +each side of the wooden frame. It is not a vehicle for those sensitive +to slight jars. The driver sits in a tiny seat in front and one is +amazed at the agility with which even old men spring from this perch to +walk up and down the steep hills. Their ponies are beautiful little +animals, specially fitted by a long development for work in this hilly +country. So well do they mount its heights that travellers repeat an +unconfirmed tradition of their having been known to climb trees! + +It is not strange that in our happy summer days we acquire a deep +affection for this northern region, its brilliant colouring, its crisp +air. Not its least charm is in the cheerful and kindly people. One would +not have them speak any other tongue than their French, preserving here +archaic usages, with new words for new things, influenced of course by +English, but still the beautiful language of an older France than the +France of to-day. The people have their own tragedies. One sees pale +women, over-worked. The physician's skill is too little sought; the +country ranges are very remote; it is difficult and expensive to get +medical aid; and there are deformed cripples who might have been made +whole by skill applied in time. Consumption too is here a dread +scourge, though against it a strenuous campaign has now begun. Many +children are born but too many die. Still, most of the people live in +comfort and they enjoy life--enjoy it probably much more than would an +Anglo-Saxon community of the same type. + +We who are among them in the summer are citizens of another and an +unknown world. New York and Chicago, Boston and Washington, Toronto and +Montreal are to us realities with one or other of which, in some way, +each of us is linked. To this simple people they are all merely that +outer world whence come their fleeting visitors of summer, as out of the +unknown come the migrant birds to pause and rest awhile. We bring with +us substantial material benefits; but it is not clear that our moral +influence is good. Leaving his farm the habitant brings to the village +his horse and caleche to become a hired _charretier_. He often gets good +fares but there is much idle waiting. Bad habits are formed and regular +industry is discouraged. The cure finds Malbaie a difficult sphere. We +alone get unmixed benefit from this fair scene, its days of glad +serenity, and of almost solemn stillness, when even a bird's note is +heard but rarely. + +Because all that concerns it interests us I have tried to put together +from scattered fragments the story long forgotten of the past of +Malbaie. In it there is abundance of the tragedy never remote from +man's life: if the telling of the tale has been a pleasure it has proved +not less a sad pleasure. But the story adds only a deeper meaning to our +beautiful playground. After all it is man and his activities which give +to nature's scenes their deepest interest; Quebec's chief charm is due +to Wolfe and Montcalm, St. Helena's to Napoleon. The shaggy mountain +crests which we view from our valley, the glistening blue river, the +strong north-east wind which clouds the sky, turns the river to grey, +and sprinkles its surface with white caps,--all are full for us of +joyous beauty. But how much less of interest would there be did the +white spire of the village church not peep out above the green trees up +the bay to tell of man's weakness and his hopes! The story of the brave +old soldier who peopled this valley, the pathetic tragedy of his +successor's fate, add something here to the bloom of nature. It may be +that the chief service of the chequered and half-forgotten past when it +speaks is to show how vain and transient is all we think and +plan,--"what shadows we are and what shadows we pursue." But be it so. +One would not miss from life this last joy of knowing what it really +means. + + + + +AUTHORITIES + + +CHAPTER I.--For Jacques Cartier see his Voyages of 1535-36, in +French (Ed. D'Avezac) Paris, 1863, translated into English (Ed. Baxter), +New York, 1906. For Champlain see his Oeuvres (Ed. Laverdiere) Quebec, +1870. Bourdon's Act of Faith and Homage is in Canadian Archives, Series +M., Vol. I, p. 387. M. B. Sulte gives an account of the Carignan +Regiment in the Proc. and Trans. of the Royal Society of Canada for +1902. The account of the Sieur de Comporte in France is in Canadian +Archives Series B., F., 213, p. 46; that of the auction sale of his +property is in a MS. preserved at Murray Bay, while a record of the sale +of Malbaie to the government is in Canadian Archives, Series M., Vol. +LXV, p. 75. "The Jesuit Relations and Allied Documents" (Ed. Thwaites) +(Cleveland, 1900), Vol. LXIX., pp. 80 _sqq._ contains the account of +Malbaie in 1750. The authority for the burning of Malbaie in 1759 is Sir +James M. Le Moine, "The Explorations of Jonathan Oldbuck," Quebec, 1889, +based upon documents printed by "T.C." in _L'Abeille_, Nov. and Dec., +1859. Standard histories of the time such as Parkman's "Montcalm and +Wolfe" give references to authorities for the events of the Seven Years' +War. + +CHAPTER II.--The "Dictionary of National Biography" contains +good articles on Lord Lovat, General Murray, &c., with references to +authorities. Alexander Mackenzie's "History of the Frasers of Lovat" +(Inverness, 1896) is the most recent detailed history of the family. +MacLean, "An Historical Account of the Settlement of Scotch Highlanders +in America," (Cleveland, 1900), contains valuable information. The +portion of the chapter relating to Malbaie is based upon MSS. preserved +there in the Murray Bay Manor House. + +CHAPTER III.--MS. material preserved at Murray Bay. + +CHAPTER IV.--Much original material relating to the Siege of +Quebec in 1775-76 has been published by the Literary and Historical +Society of Quebec. To be specially noted are the two volumes of +documents on the "Blockade of Quebec in 1775-76 by the American +Revolutionists, (Les Bostonnais)" Edited by F.C. Wuertele (Quebec, 1905 +and 1906). Two or three works have been written recently on the episode +from the American point of view: Codman, "Arnold's Expedition to Quebec" +(New York, 1901); Justin H. Smith, "Arnold's March from Cambridge to +Quebec, a critical study, together with a reprint of Arnold's Journal," +(New York, 1903); Justin H. Smith, "Our Struggle for the Fourteenth +Colony," 2 Vols. (New York, 1907). The story of Nairne's part in the war +is based chiefly upon MS. material preserved at Murray Bay. The incident +of the escaped prisoners is told in Nairne's reports; to Captain +Matthews, Secretary to Haldimand, on the 14th of May, 1780, and to Major +Le Maistre, on the 5th of June. These are at Murray Bay. A further +report to Matthews on the 3rd of June is preserved at Ottawa; Canadian +Archives, Series B, Vol. 73, p. 130. Mr. James Thompson was in charge of +the building of the houses for the prisoners and tells of their escape +in his MS. Diary. + +CHAPTER V. and CHAPTER VI. are based upon MSS. at +Murray Bay. + +CHAPTER VII.--M. Leon Gerin has given an exhaustive analysis of +the life of the habitant in "L'Habitant de Saint Justin," published in +the Proc. and Trans, of the Royal Society of Canada for 1898 (Ottawa, +1898). M. J.-E. Roy's "Histoire de la Seigneurie de Lauzon," of which +five volumes have been published (the last, Levis, Quebec, 1904) is the +most detailed and authoritative account of a Canadian Seigniory. Vol. IV +deals especially with the life of the habitants. Philippe Aubert de +Gaspe's "Les anciens Canadiens," (Quebec, 1863), and his "Memoires" +(Ottawa, 1866), contain much that is interesting on the life of a +Canadian manor. So also do H.R. Casgrain's "Une Paroisse Canadienne au +XVIIe Siecle," Oeuvres Completes, Vol. I (Montreal, 1884), and +Parkman's "The Old Regime in Canada," (Boston, 1893). W. Bennett Munro's +"The Seigniorial System in Canada," (New York, 1907), and his "Documents +relating to Seigniorial Tenure in Canada," (Toronto, 1908), cover +adequately the whole subject, and contain, in addition, abundant +references to further authorities. The "Mandements des Eveques de +Quebec," (Ed. Tetu and Gagnon), in six volumes, the first published in +1887, contain much of interest in regard to the attitude of the Church +to the people. The Second Part of "The Report of the Commission charged +with revising and consolidating the General Statutes of the Province of +Quebec," (Quebec, 1907), outlines the legal aspects of the school and +Church systems. M. Andre Seigfried's "Le Canada, Les Deux Races," +(Paris, 1906), translated into English under the title of "The Race +Question in Canada," (London, 1907), is a passionless analysis of +religious and political thought in the Province of Quebec. + +CHAPTER VIII.--The account of fishing at Murray Bay in 1830 is +by Walter Henry; "Events of a Military Life," 2 Vols. (London, 1843). +The chapter is based chiefly upon personal observation. + + + + +APPENDICES + + + + +APPENDIX A (p. 31) + +THE JOURNAL OF MALCOM FRASER, FIRST SEIGNEUR OF MOUNT MURRAY, +MALBAIE + + +Malcolm Fraser was a young man of about twenty-six when he kept his +diary of Wolfe's campaign against Quebec. It shows that already he had +considerable powers of observation and very definite opinions. No doubt +Fraser preserved a record of events in the campaign earlier than those +of 1759; and it seems likely that the habit of recording his experiences +would also have been kept up in later life. When, some time before 1860, +were made the extracts from Fraser's Journal upon which the present +notes are based, the original remained in the possession of his son the +Hon. John Malcolm Fraser. The extracts were published by the Literary +and Historical Society of Quebec in 1868 and have been used by Parkman +and other historians, who usually, however, confuse Fraser with his +commanding officer Colonel Simon Fraser. The extracts have long been out +of print. I have not been able to trace the original MS. or any other +Journal of Fraser, except a brief and quite valueless one preserved at +Mount Murray. In one of his later letters, written fifty years after +this Journal, Fraser speaks of his reluctance to handle the pen. But +this did not keep him from writing in a beautiful round hand many long +letters and making also copies for his own use. + +Early in the spring of 1859 a great British fleet had arrived in America +from England and a squadron under Admiral Holmes had gone to New York to +embark the Highlanders and other regiments wintering there to proceed +to Quebec. The place of rendezvous was Louisbourg. Fraser's Journal +begins on May 8th, 1759, with the departure of the regiments from Sandy +Hook, the fleet consisting of about twenty-eight sail. The Highlanders +had taken part in the siege and capture of Louisbourg in the previous +year but had gone to New York for the winter. On May 17th the fleet +sailed into Louisbourg Harbour after "a very agreeable and quick +passage" of nine days. Patches of snow lay still on the ground and on +the 29th of May Louisbourg Harbour was so full of ice that boats could +not pass from the ships to shore. "I suppose," says Fraser, "the ice +comes from the Gulf and river of St. Lawrence," regions he was in time +to be very familiar with. He hears that a Lieutenant has shot himself on +one of the men of war "for fear I suppose the French should do it. If he +was wearied of life, he might soon get out of it in a more honourable +way." + +On Monday, June 4th, after much bustle of preparation, the fleet set +sail for Quebec. "I take it to consist of about 150 sail," says Fraser; +so great was the array that to count the ships was almost impossible. +They numbered in fact nearly 300, a huge force. On June 13th the fleet +anchored at Bic in the St. Lawrence River. As they came up the river +Fraser noted that the north shore was but little inhabited, a defect +which, within a few years, he was himself to try to remedy in part. On +June 23rd a whole division of the fleet anchored near Isle aux Coudres +as Jacques Cartier had done more than two hundred years earlier. + +Arrived before Quebec the Highlanders were sent to Point Levi where, on +July 1st, they pitched their tents. The next day Fraser's company +established itself in the Church of St. Joseph there. The Canadians were +carrying on guerilla warfare, firing on the British from the woods and +Fraser was shocked at the horrid practise of scalping. He writes on July +2nd: + +"While we were out, I observed several dead bodies on the road, not far +from our Camp; they were all scalped and mangled in a shocking manner. I +dare say no human creature but an Indian or Canadian could be guilty of +such inhumanity as to insult a dead body." + +He was to see worse atrocities committed on his own side. On July 10th, +still at Point Levi, he writes of the doings of a company of the +colonial scouting force, the Rangers, commanded by Captain Gorham, who +soon after desolated Malbaie. + +"A party of our Rangers having been sent out on this side of the river +(the south), on the 9th they took one man prisoner and two boys (his +children) having followed him a little way, making a great noise, were +in a most inhuman manner murdered by those worse than savage Rangers, +for fear, as they pretend, they should be discovered by the noise of the +children. I wish this story was not fact, but I'm afraid there is little +reason to doubt it:--the wretches having boasted of it on their return, +tho' they now pretend to vindicate themselves by the necessity they were +under; but, I believe, this barbarous action proceeded from that +cowardice and barbarity which seems so natural to a native of America, +whether of Indian or European extraction. In other instances, those +Rangers have hitherto been of some use, and showed in general a better +spirit than usual. They are for the most part raised in New England." + +On Friday, July 13th, the scene changed. Wolfe was planning an attack on +Montcalm's camp and Fraser writes: "I was sent orderly officer to the +Camp, at Montmorency, where I had an opportunity of seeing our own, and +the French posts nigh the Fall. The river is fordable below the Fall at +low water." On July 24th, 350 of the Highlanders under Col. Simon Fraser +were sent down the river to bring in prisoners and cattle. The Highland +leader met with misfortune. On July 26th Fraser writes: "Lieut. +Alexander Fraser, Junior, returned to camp from the detachment which +marched with the Col. on the 24th. He brings news of the Colonel's +having been wounded in the thigh, by an unlucky shot from a small party +of Canadians who lay in ambush and fired on the detachment out of a +bush, and then retired. In the evening, the Col. came to camp with Capt. +McPherson, who was wounded by the same shot, and the ball lodged in his +thigh; but it is thought neither of their wounds are (_sic_) dangerous. +There was not another man of the detachment touched." Next day the rest +of the detachment "returned with three women and one man prisoners, and +above two hundred head of cattle." + +On the following night July 28th, the French tried to destroy the +British fleet by a fire ship. "This night the French sent down a large +fire raft which they did not set fire to till they were fired on by some +of the boats who are every night on the watch for them above the +shipping. Our boats immediately grappled it, and tho' it burnt with +great violence, they towed it past all the shipping without any damage." +We know from other sources that one of the sailors engaged in dragging +away the fireship likened it to having "hell-fire in tow." + +Fraser records on Tuesday, July 31st, the disastrous attempt by the +British to carry by a frontal attack Montcalm's entrenchments along the +Beauport shore. The attack failed partly through the rashness of the +Grenadiers who dashed forward prematurely. For this Wolfe rebuked them +but he commended the cool steadiness of the Highlanders. Some 700 +British casualties were the results of the attack. When the British drew +off they left many of their men fallen on the shore. Fraser says: "I +observed some men coming down from the trenches where some of our people +lay killed; we imagined they were Indians who were sent to scalp them, +after the whole had retreated." + +At once after the disaster, the Highlanders were moved back to their old +camp at Point Levi. Some idle days followed. But, on August 15th, a +detachment which included Fraser was sent to the Island of Orleans. It +was bent on the work of desolating the Canadian parishes, the people of +which still persisted in warring on the British. On Thursday, August +16th, the detachment, consisting of about 170 officers and men, marched +the length of the Island of Orleans and on the 17th it crossed to St. +Joachim--the fertile flats lying almost under the shadow of Cap +Tourmente: Fraser was drawing near to the Malbaie country. He writes: +"Friday, 17th August.--Crossed from the Isle of Orleans to St. Joachim. +Before we landed we observed some men walking along the fences, as if +they intended to oppose us and on our march up to the Church of St. +Joachim, we were fired on by some party's of the Enemy from behind the +houses and fences, but upon our advancing they betook themselves to the +woods, from whence they continued popping at us, till towards evening, +when they thought proper to retire, and we kept possession of the +Priest's house, which we set about fortifying in the best manner we +could." They remained quietly at St. Joachim for some days. But they +were getting ready for the grim task of desolating the parishes lying +between St. Joachim and Montmorency. Fraser tells the story with +soldier-like brevity, but obviously he hated the work. + +"Thursday, 23rd.--We were reinforced by a party of about one hundred and +forty Light Infantry, and a Company of Rangers, under the command of +Captain Montgomery of Kennedy's or forty-third Regiment, who likewise +took the command of our detachment, and we all marched to attack the +village to the west of St. Joachim, which was occupied by a party of the +enemy to the number of about two hundred, as we supposed, Canadians and +Indians. When we came pretty near the village, they fired on us from +the houses pretty smartly; we were ordered to lie behind the fences till +the Rangers, who were detached to attack the Enemy from the woods, began +firing on their left flank, when we advanc^d briskly without great +order; and the French abandoned the houses and endeavoured to get into +the woods, our men pursuing close at their heels. There were several of +the enemy killed, and wounded, and a few prisoners taken, all of whom +the barbarous Captain Montgomery, who commanded us, ordered to be +butchered in a most inhuman and cruel manner; particularly two, who I +sent prisoners by a sergeant, after giving them quarter, and engaging +that they should not be killed, were one shot, and the other knocked +down with a Tomahawk (a little hatchet) and both scalped in my absence, +by the rascally sergeant neglecting to acquaint Montgomery that I wanted +them saved, as he, Montgomery, pretended when I questioned him about it; +but even that was no excuse for such an unparalleled piece of barbarity. +However, as the affair could not be remedied, I was obliged to let it +drop. After this skirmish we set about burning the houses with great +success, setting all in flames till we came to the church of St. Anne's, +[the now famous shrine of St. Anne de Beaupre], where we put up for this +night, and were joined by Captain Ross, with about one hundred and +twenty men of his company. + +"Friday, 24th August.--Began to march and burn as yesterday, till we +came to Ange Gardien where our detachment and Captain Ross, who had been +posted for some days at Chateau Richer, joined Colonel Murray with the +three companies of Grenadiers of the 22nd, 40th and 45th Regiments, +where we are posted in four houses which we have fortified so as to be +able, we hope, to stand any attack which we can expect with small arms. + +"Saturday, 25th.--Busy felling the fruit trees, and cutting the wheat to +clear round us. + +"Sunday, 26th.--The same. + +"Monday, 27th August.--I hear Brigadier Murray has returned with his +detachment, having had all the success expected of the detachment. We +received orders to march to-morrow to Chateau Richer. Some men were +observed skulking in the corn, round the houses we possessed; upon +which, some of our people fired from one of the houses, when the whole +took the alarm and continued firing from the windows and loopholes for +about ten minutes. For my own part I can't say I could observe any of +the Enemy, but as we had one man killed, and most of the men affirmed +they saw men in the Corn, I can't doubt but there were a few of the +Enemy near us." + +So the record goes on. On August 30th the detachment was busy fortifying +itself in the Church at Chateau Richer near Quebec. On the next day +orders came to burn the houses there but not the church and return at +once to Montmorency. At Ange Gardien, on the way, General Murray, after +whom Murray Bay is named, joined them with his detachment. As they +marched along the force burned all the houses and was soon back in camp +at Montmorency. They had left a trail black with desolation between that +point and Cap Tourmente. Captain Gorham completed the tale of woe by +destroying Baie St. Paul and Malbaie. Hardly a house was left between +Montmorency and the Saguenay. + +But all this was only side-play. The crisis of the campaign was now +near. On September 3rd Wolfe abandoned the camp at Montmorency. Fraser +writes: "The Army at Montmorency decamped this day, and crossed to the +Island of Orleans, and from thence to Point Levy, without molestation +from the French, tho' they must have known some time ago that we +intended to abandon that post." + +Wolfe was now massing as many troops as possible above Quebec on the +south side of the river. On September 6th, 600 of the Highlanders, +together with the 15th and the 43rd, marched six miles above Point Levi +and there embarked on board the ships. Fraser says: "We are much +crowded; the ship I am in has about six hundred on board, being only +about two hundred and fifty tons." On the 7th and 8th it rained and the +men must have been very uncomfortable in their narrow quarters. For some +days still they remained in this condition. Meanwhile were issued to the +men careful instructions as to what they should do. The army was to drop +down the river in small boats, and to attempt to make a landing on the +north shore. + +On the evening of September 12th came the final effort so carefully +planned. "About nine o'clock, the night of the 12th, we went into the +Boats as ordered." Fraser says that a shore battery began to fire on the +British boats about 4.0 A.M. before they landed and that the landing at +the Foulon to climb to the Heights was made at daybreak. + +"Thursday, 13th September, 1759.--The Light Infantry under the command +of Colonel Howe, immediately landed and mounted the hill. We were fired +on in the Boats by the Enemy who killed and wounded a few. In a short +time, the whole army was landed at a place called 'Le Foulon,' (now +Wolfe's Cove) about a mile and a half above the Town of Quebec, and +immediately followed the Light Infantry up the hill. There was a few +tents and a Picket of the French on the top of the hill whom the Light +Infantry engaged, and took some of their Officers and men prisoners. The +main body of our Army soon got to the upper ground after climbing a hill +or rather a precipice, of about three hundred yards, very steep and +covered with wood and brush. We had several skirmishes with the +Canadians and Savages, till about ten o'clock, when the army was formed +in line of battle, having the great River St. Lawrence on the right with +the precipice which we mounted in the morning; on the left, a few +houses, and at some distance the low ground and wood above the General +Hospital with the River St. Charles; in front, the Town of Quebec, about +a mile distant; in the rear, a wood occupied by the Light Infantry ... +and the third Battalion of the Royal Americans.... The Army was ordered +to march on slowly in line of battle, and halt several times, till about +half an hour after ten, when the French began to appear in great numbers +on the rising ground between us and the Town, and [they] having advanced +several parties to skirmish with us, we did the like. They then got two +Iron field pieces to play against our line. Before eleven o'clock, we +got one brass field piece up the Hill, which being placed in the proper +interval began to play very smartly on the Enemy while forming on the +little eminence. Their advanced parties continued to annoy us and +wounded a great many men. About this time, we observed the Enemy formed, +having a bush of short brush wood on their right, which straitened them +in room, and obliged them to form in columns. About eleven o'clock, the +French Army advanced in columns till they had got past the bush of wood +into the plain, when they endeavoured to form in line of Battle, but +being much galled by our Artillery, which consisted of only one field +piece, very well served, we observed them in some confusion. However +they advanced at a brisk pace till within about thirty or forty yards of +our front, when they gave us their first fire, which did little +execution. We returned it, and continued firing very hot for about six, +or (as some say) eight minutes, when the fire slackening, and the smoke +of the powder vanishing, we observed the main body of the Enemy +retreating in great confusion towards the Town, and the rest towards +the River St. Charles. Our Regiment were then ordered by Brigadier +General Murray to draw their swords and pursue them, which I dare say +increased their panic but saved many of their lives, whereas if the +artillery had been allowed to play, and the army advanced regularly +there would have been many more of the Enemy killed and wounded, as we +never came up with the main body. In advancing, we passed over a great +many dead and wounded, (french regulars mostly) lying in the front of +our Regiment, who,--I mean the Highlanders,--to do them justice, behaved +extremely well all day, as did the whole of the army. After pursuing the +French to the very gates of the Town, our Regiment was ordered to form +fronting the Town, on the ground whereon the French formed first. At +this time the rest of the Army came up in good order. General Murray +having then put himself at the head of our Regiment, ordered them to +face to the left and march thro' the bush of wood, towards the General +Hospital, when they got a great gun or two to play upon us from the +Town, which however did no damage, but we had a few men killed and +Officers wounded by some skulking fellows with small arms, from the +bushes and behind the houses in the suburbs of St. Louis and St. John's. +After marching a short way through the bush, Brigadier Murray thought +proper to order us to return again to the high road leading from Porte +St. Louis, to the heights of Abraham, where the battle was fought, and +after marching till we got clear of the bushes, we were ordered to turn +to the right, and go along the edge of them towards the bank, at the +descent between us and the General Hospital, under which we understood +there was a body of the Enemy who no sooner saw us than they began +firing on us from the bushes and from the bank; we soon dispossessed +them from the bushes and from thence kept firing for about a quarter of +an hour on those under cover of the bank; but as they exceeded us +greatly in numbers, they killed and wounded a great many of our men, +and killed two Officers, which obliged us to retire a little, and form +again, when the 58th Regiment with the 2nd Battalion of Royal Americans +having come up to our assistance, all three making about five hundred +men, advanced against the Enemy and drove them first down to the great +meadow between the Hospital and town and afterwards over the River St. +Charles. It was at this time and while in the bushes that our Regiment +suffered most: Lieutenant Roderick, Mr. Neill of Bana, and Alexander +McDonell, and John McDonell, and John McPherson, volunteer, with many of +our men, were killed before we were reinforced; and Captain Thomas Ross +having gone down with about one hundred men of the 3rd Regiment to the +meadow, after the Enemy, when they were out of reach, ordered me up to +desire those on the height would wait till he would come up and join +them, which I did, but before Mr. Ross could get up, he unfortunately +was mortally wounded in the body, by a cannon ball from the hulks, in +the mouth of the River St. Charles, of which he died in great torment, +but with great resolution, in about two hours thereafter. + +"In the afternoon, Mons. Bougainville, with the French Grenadiers and +some Canadians, to the number of two thousand who had been detached to +oppose our landing at Cap Rouge, appeared between our rear and the +village St. Foy, formed in a line as if he intended to attack us; but +the 48th Regiment with the Light Infantry and 3rd Battalion Royal +Americans being ordered against him, with some field pieces, they fired +a few cannon shot at him when he thought proper to retire. + +"Thus ended the battle of Quebec, the first regular engagement that we +... fought in North America, which has made the king of Great Britain +master of the capital of Canada, and it is hoped ere long will be the +means of subjecting the whole country to the British Dominion; and if +so, this has been a greater acquisition to the British Empire than all +that England has acquired by Conquest since it was a nation, if I may +except the conquest of Ireland, in the reign of Henry the 2nd. + +"The Enemy's numbers I have never been able to get an exact account of. +We imagined them seven or eight thousand: this has been disputed since. +However, I am certain they were greatly superior to us in numbers, as +their line was equal to ours in length, tho' they were in some places +nine deep, whereas ours was no more than three deep. Add to this, their +advanced parties and those in the bushes, on all hands, I think they +must exceed five thousand. + +"Our strength at the utmost did not exceed the thousand men in the line, +exclusive of the 15th Regiment and 2nd Battalion Royal Americans, who +were drawn up on our left, fronting the River St. Charles, with the 3rd +Battalion Royal Americans and Light Infantry in the rear, and the 48th +Regiment, who were drawn up between our main body and the Light Infantry +as a Corps of Reserve. So that I am pretty certain our numbers did not +exceed four thousand men, the Regiments being very weak, most of them +under three hundred men each. + +"We had only about five hundred men of our Army killed and wounded, but +we suffered an irreparable loss in the death of our commander the brave +Major General James Wolfe, who was killed in the beginning of the +general action; we had the good fortune not to hear of it till all was +over. + +"The French were supposed to have about one thousand men killed and +wounded, of whom five hundred killed during the whole day, and amongst +these Monsieur le Lieutenant General Montcalm, the commander in chief of +the French Army in Canada, one Brigadier General, one Colonel and +several other Officers. I imagined there had been many more killed and +wounded on both sides, as there was a heavy fire for some minutes, +especially from us. + +"We had of our Regiment three officers killed and ten wounded, one of +whom Captain Simon Fraser, afterwards died. Lieutenant Archibald +Campbell was thought to have been mortally wounded, but to the surprise +of most people recovered; Captain John McDonell thro' both thighs; +Lieut. Ronald McDonell thro' the knee; Lieutenant Alexander Campbell +thro' the leg; Lieutenant Douglas thro' the arm, who died of this wound +soon afterwards; Ensign Gregorson, Ensign McKenzie and Lieutenant +Alexander Fraser, all slightly. I received a contusion in the right +shoulder or rather breast, before the action became general, which +pained me a good deal, but it did not disable me from my duty then, or +afterwards. + +"The detachment of our Regiment consisted, at our marching from Point +Levi, of six hundred men, besides commissioned and non-commissioned +Officers; but of these, two Officers and about sixty men were left on +board for want of boats, and an Officer and about thirty men left at the +landing place; besides a few left sick on board, so that we had about +five hundred men in the action. We suffered in men and Officers more +than any three Regiments in the field. We were commanded by Captain John +Campbell; the Colonel and Captain McPherson having been unfortunately +wounded on the 25th July, of which they were not yet fully recovered. + +"We lay on our Arms all the night of the 13th September. + +"Friday, 14th September.--We got ashore our tents and encamped our +Regiment on the ground where they fought the battle yesterday. He[re] we +are within reach of the guns of the town. + +"Saturday, 15th September.--We were ordered to move our Camp nigh the +wood, at a greater distance from the Town. We are making advanced +redoubts within five hundred yards of the town." + +Such is Fraser's account of the struggle on the Plains of Abraham and of +the conduct of the Highlanders in their first pitched battle in North +America. The resolute preparations to attack Quebec produced their +effect. On September 18th the fortress surrendered. A little later the +army broke up the camp outside the walls and marched into the town. The +outlook was certainly not cheerful: "Most of the houses are destroyed +and we have but a very dismal prospect for seven or eight months, as +fresh provisions are very scarce, and every other thing exorbitantly +dear." A little later the fleet sailed away and General Murray with a +small force was left in a hostile country to hold Quebec through a long +and bitterly cold winter. He established two out-posts, one at Ste. Foy, +the other at Lorette, and then the army bent all its energies to meet +the foes, cold, disease and the French. Fighting the cold was terrible +work. Fraser writes: + +"December 1st.--The Governor ordered two weeks wood to be issued to the +Garrison. It is thought we shall have a great deal of difficulty in +supplying ourselves with fuel this winter. The winter is now very +severe. + +"December 20th.--The winter is become almost insupportably cold. The men +are notwithstanding obliged to drag all the wood used in the Garrison on +sledges from St. Foy, about four miles distance. This is a very severe +duty; the poor fellows do it however with great spirit, tho' several of +them have already lost the use of their fingers and toes by the +incredible severity of the frost, and the country people tell us it is +not yet at the worst. Some men on sentry have been deprived of speech +and sensation in a few minutes, but hitherto, no person has lost his +life, as care is taken to relieve them every half hour or oftener when +the weather is very severe. The Garrison in general are but +indifferently cloathed, but our regiment in particular is in a pitiful +situation having no breeches, and the Philibeg is not all calculated for +this terrible climate. Colonel Fraser is doing all in his power to +provide trowsers for them, and we hope soon to be on a footing with +other Regiments in that respect. + +"January, 1760.--Nothing remarkable during this month. The duty is very +severe on the poor men; we mount every day a guard of about one hundred +men, and the whole off duty with a subaltern officer from each Regiment +are employed in dragging fire wood; tho' the weather is such that they +are obliged to have all covered but their eyes, and nothing but the last +necessity obliged any men to go out of doors." + +Early in February the St. Lawrence froze over. On February 13th the +British established a force in the Church at St. Joseph at Point Levi +but it was attacked by the French and then, on February 24th, Murray +sent a rescue party. The Highlanders and the 28th went across on the ice +and nearly intercepted the retreat of the French force, which was driven +off. The kilted Highlanders marching on the ice in the bitter winter +weather make an interesting picture. But by this time, no doubt, they +were not bare-legged! + +Towards the end of March there was much illness and Fraser writes: "The +Scurvy, occasioned by salt provisions and cold, has begun to make fierce +havock in the garrison, and it becomes every day more general. In short, +I believe there is scarce a man of the Army entirely free from it." On +the 24th of April he writes again: "Great havock amongst the Garrison +occasioned by the Scurvy, &c.; this is the more alarming, as the General +seems certain that the French are preparing to come and attack the +place, and will he says, be here in a very few days." + +Of the garrison of 5653 no less than 2312 were on the sick list, when, +on the 26th, came the great crisis of the defence of Quebec: + +"On the night of the 26th April, a man of the French army who, with some +others had been cast away in a boat that night, came down the river on a +piece of ice, and being taken up next morning at the Town, gave the +General information that the chevalier de Levi [Levis] was within twenty +miles of us, with an army of about twelve thousand men, made up of +regulars, Canadians and savages. + +"27th April, 1760.--The Governor marched out, with the Grenadiers and +Piquets of the garrison, to support the Light Infantry which had taken +post some days before near Cap Rouge. By the time he got out, the +vanguard of the French army appeared; upon which, he thought it +adviseable to withdraw the Light Infantry, and all the other outposts, +and retire to Town; and for that purpose he sent orders to the 28th, +47th and 58th and Colonel Fraser's Regiment to march out to St. Foy and +cover his retreat; the 35th Regiment, 2nd Battalion Royal Americans +having been detached in the morning to prevent the enemy, in case they +attempted to land at Sillery or any other place near the Town. The +retreat was accordingly effected without any loss, tho' the enemy were +so nigh as to skirmish with our rear till we got within half a league of +the Ramparts. + +"On the 28th April, 1760, about eight o'clock in the morning, the whole +Garrison, exclusive of the Guards, was drawn up on the parade, and about +nine o'clock we marched out of Town with twenty pieces of Field +Artillery, that is, two to each Regiment. The men were likewise ordered +to carry a pick axe or spade each. When we had marched a little way out +of Town, we saw the advanced parties of the Enemy nigh the woods, about +half a league distant from us. When we were about three-quarters of a +mile out of Town, the General ordered the whole to draw up in line of +Battle, two deep, and take up as much room as possible. Soon thereafter, +he ordered the men to throw down the intrenching tools, and the whole +Army to advance slowly, dressing by the right, having drawn up the 35th +Regiment and 3rd Battalion Royal Americans in our rear as a corps of +reserve, with one hundred men (in a redoubt which was begun by us a few +days preceding) to cover our retreat in case of necessity. In this +order, we advanced, about one hundred paces, when the canonading began +on our side, and we observed the French advanced parties retiring, and +their main body forming in order of Battle at the edge of the wood, +about three hundred paces distant we continued canonading and advancing +for some minutes. The enemy, on their side, played against the left of +our army, where our Regiment happened to be, with two pieces of cannon +and killed and wounded us some men. The affair begun now to turn +serious, when the General ordered the Light Infantry, who were posted on +the right of our army, to attack five companies of French Grenadiers who +they obliged to retire, but they being supported by a large column of +the enemy, the Light Infantry were in their turn obliged to give way, +which they doing along the front of our line on the right (as I am told) +hindered our men on the right from firing for some minutes which gave +the enemy full time to form. On the left, matters were in a worse +situation. The company of Volunteers of the garrison, commanded by +Captain Donald McDonald of our Regiment, and Captain Hazen's company of +Rangers who covered the left flank of our army having been almost +entirely destroyed, were obliged to give way; by this means the left of +the 28th Regiment was exposed, and this obliged them to give ground +after an obstinate resistance; Colonel Fraser's Regiment was next them +to the right, and being in danger of being surrounded, and at the same +time extremely galled by a fire from the Bushes in front and flank, +were under a necessity of falling back instantly, when Colonel Fraser +who commanded the Left Brigade consisting of the 28th, 47th and his own +Regiment, sent orders to the 47th to retire; they were drawn up with a +small rising ground in their front, which till then covered them pretty +much from the enemy's fire, but as most of the Regiment to the right, as +well as the two Regiments to the left of them, had by this time retired, +it was absolutely necessary for the 47th to quit that ground, otherwise +they must inevitably have been surrounded in a few minutes. Most of the +Regiments attempted to carry off their artillery, but the ground was so +bad with wreaths of snow in the hollows, that they were obliged to +abandon them, after nailing them up, as well as the intrenching tools. +Every Regiment made the best of their way to Town, but retired however +in such a manner that the enemy did not think proper to pursue very +briskly, otherwise they must have killed or made prisoners many more +than they did. Our loss was about three hundred killed, and about seven +hundred wounded, and a few Officers and men made prisoners. We had about +three thousand in the field, one-third of whom had that very day, come +voluntarily out of the Hospitals; of these, about five hundred were +employed in dragging the cannon, and five hundred more in reserve, so +that we could have no more than two thousand in the line of battle, +whereas the enemy must have had at least four times as many, beside a +large body in reserve, and notwithstanding their great superiority we +suffered very little in the retreat; some Regiments attempted to rally, +but it was impossible to form in any sort of order with the whole, till +we got within the walls. + +"Our Regiment had about four hundred men in the field near one half of +whom had that day come out of the Hospital, out of their own accord. We +had about sixty killed and forty wounded, and of thirty-nine officers, +Captain Donald McDonald who commanded the volunteer company of the army, +and Lieutenant Cosmo Gordon who commanded the Light Infantry company of +our Regiment, were both killed in the field; Lieutenant Hector McDonald +and Ensign Malcolm Fraser died of their wounds, all very much regretted +by every one who knew them. We had twenty-three more Officers wounded; +of this number was Colonel [Simon] Fraser, who commanded the left wing +of the army, and it was with great pleasure we observed his behaviour +during the action, when he gave his orders with great coolness and +deliberation. He was touched at two different times; the first took him +in the right breast but having his cartouche box slung, it luckily +struck against the star of it and did not penetrate tho', otherways, +must infallibly have done his business. The second, he got in the +retreat, but striking against the cue of his hair, he received no other +damage than a stiffness in his neck for some days. [Fraser then adds +this tribute to Lord Lovat's son:] Here I cannot help observing that if +any unlucky accident had befallen our Colonel, not only his Regiment +must have suffered an irreparable loss, but I think I can, without any +partiality say, it would be a loss to his Country. His behaviour this +winter in particular to his Regiment has been such, as to make him not +only esteemed by them, but by the Garrison in general. Captain Alexander +Fraser of our Regiment, was wounded in the right temple, and thought +very dangerous, the rest are mostly flesh wounds. I received a musket +ball in the right groin, which was thought dangerous for three or four +days, as the ball was supposed to be lodged, but whether it has wrought +out in walking into Town, or did not penetrate far enough at first to +lodge, or is still in, I cannot say, but in twenty days I was entirely +cured, and the wound which was at first but small was entirely closed +up. + +"When we marched out, we thought the General did not intend to give the +French battle; and as he ordered the Army to carry out intrenching +tools, we thought he meant to throw up works on the rising ground, +before the Town, if the Enemy should not choose to attack him that day; +but, it seems he changed his mind on seeing their situation, which gave +him all the advantage he could desire with such an inferior Army and +where, if the Enemy ventured to attack him, he could use his Artillery, +on which was his chief dependence, to the best purpose: having a rising +ground, whereon he might form his Army and plant his Cannon, so as to +play on the Enemy as they advanced for about four hundred or five +hundred yards, with round shot, and when they came within a proper +distance the grape shot must have cut them to pieces. However, it seems +he observed the enemy, some formed at the edge of the wood, some +forming, and the rest marching from St. Foy. The bait was too tempting, +and his passion for glory getting the better of his reason he ordered +the Army to march and attack the enemy, as he thought, before they could +form, in a situation the most desired by them and ought to be avoided by +us, as the Canadians and Savages could be used against us to the +greatest advantage in their beloved (if I may say element) woods. It +would give me great pleasure to relate something more to the advantage +of this gentleman who is, in many respects, possessed of several +virtues, and particularly all the military ones, except prudence, and +entirely free of all mercenary principles; but, as his conduct on this +occasion is universally condemned by all those who are not immediately +dependent on him, truth obliges me to state matters as I believe, they +really stood; more especially as it is not said he advised with any of +those who had a right to be consulted before such a step should be +taken. Nay, it is said: that the preceding night, at a meeting with the +different Commandants of the Corps, he declared his intention of +fortifying himself on the heights and not to attack the Enemy, unless he +should be forced to it, which we were persuaded of by his orders to +carry out intrenching tools. We had very little chance of beating an +Army four times our number [an exaggeration: they were not twice as +numerous] in a situation where we could scarce act; and if the Enemy had +made a proper use of their advantage, the consequences must have proved +fatal to us, as they might have got betwixt us and the Town, cut off our +retreat, and by that means ruined us to all intents." [It will hardly be +denied that the young officer is rather severe upon his future friend +and patron, General Murray.] + +"Our situation became now extremely critical: we were beat in the field, +by an army greatly superior in numbers, and obliged to rely on what +defence we could make within the walls of Quebec, which were hitherto +reckoned of very little consequence against a superior army. + +"The French that very night after the Battle opened trenches within six +hundred yards of the walls, and went on next, 29th April, with their +works pretty briskly. For the first two days after the battle there was +very little done by us; and on the 1st of May, the largest of our block +houses (small square redoubts of Logs musquet proof) was blown up by +accident, and Captain Cameron of our Regiment and a subaltern of the +48th with several men, dangerously burnt and bruised. On the 3rd day +after the battle, the General set about to strengthen or (I may say) +fortify the Town, and the men worked with the greatest alacrity. In a +few days there were about one hundred additional guns mounted, with +which our people kept an incessant fire on the enemy, and retarded their +works very much. + +"On the 9th May, the Leostaff Frigate, Captain Dean, arrived from +England, and brought us news from thence, and informed us that there +was a squadron in the River, which might be expected every tide to our +assistance. This added greatly to the spirits of the Garrison, and our +works were carried on briskly. The General seemed resolved from the +first to defend the place to the last. This, nobody doubted, and every +one seemed to forget their late misfortune, and to place entire +confidence in the General's conduct, which all must acknowledge very +resolute, when reduced almost to an extremity. + +"On the 11th May, the French opened two Batteries mounting thirteen +guns, and one or two mortars. Their heavy metal consisted of one +twenty-four and two eighteen pounders, the rest were all light. They did +not seem to confine their fire entirely to any particular part of the +Walls, otherwise I believe they might in time have made a breach, and +their fire was not very smart. We were masters of a much superior fire, +and annoyed the besiegers at their batteries very much. Their fire +became every day more and more faint, and it was generally believed they +intended to raise the seige. + +"On the 16th May, in the evening the Vanguard, commodore Swanton, and +Diana Frigate, Captain Schomberg, arrived from England, and next +morning, 17th May, 1760, they and the Leostaff attacked the two French +Frigates that lay at anchor in the Bay, above Cape Diamond; which when +they first observed, they made as if they intended to engage, but on our +ships approaching nearer, they set sail up the river; but one of them +ran ashore immediately, and our Frigates soon got up with theirs, and +obliged them also to run aground and thereafter destroyed them. One ship +however escaped out of their reach, and unluckily, the Leostaff, after +all was over, ran on a rock, sunk and was entirely lost. + +"That very night several deserters came into the Town, and informed that +most part of the French army had marched, the Trenches being guarded by +their Grenadiers only. About twelve o'clock at night, the General sent +out a party who found the Trenches entirely abandoned and next morning, +18th May, 1760, we found ourselves entirely freed of very disagreeable +neighbours, having left behind all their artillery, with a great part of +their ammunition, Camp equipage and baggage. What made them retreat with +such precipitation we could not guess; but, it seems they were seized +with a panic. It appears they allowed the savages to scalp all the +killed and most part of the wounded, as we found a great many scalps on +the bushes. + +"I have been since informed by Lieutenant McGregor, of our Regiment, who +was left on the field wounded, and narrowly escaped being killed, having +received two stabs of a bayonet from two French Regulars, that he saw +the savages murdering the wounded and scalping them on all sides, and +expected every moment to share the same fate, but was saved by a French +Officer, who luckily spoke a little English." + +Thus ends Fraser's narrative of the two sieges of Quebec. He served in +the third siege, that of 1775-76, and was still alive in 1812-15 to give +counsel when Quebec was again menaced by the Americans. + + + + +APPENDIX B (p. 38) + +TITLE-DEED OF THE SEIGNIORY OF MURRAY BAY GRANTED TO CAPTAIN JOHN +NAIRNE OF THE 78th REGIMENT, APRIL 27th, 1762 + + +By the Honourable James Murray, Esquire, Governor of Quebec, &c. + +Whereas it is a national advantage and tends to promote the cultivation +of lands within the province to encourage His Majesty's natural-born +subjects settling within the same: + +For these purposes, and in consideration of the faithful services +rendered by John Nairne, Esquire, Captain in the 78th Regiment of Foot, +unto His Majesty, I do hereby give, grant, and concede unto the said +Captain John Nairne, his heirs, executors, and administrators for ever, +all that extent of land lying on the north side of the river St. +Lawrence from the Cap aux Oyes, limit of the parish of Eboulemens, to +the south side of the river of Malbaie, and for three leagues back, to +be known hereafter, at the special request of said John Nairne, by the +name of Murray's Bay; firmly to hold the same to himself, his heirs, +executors, and administrators for ever, or until His Majesty's pleasure +is further known, for and in consideration of the possessor's paying +liege homage to His Majesty, his heirs and successors, at his castle of +St. Lewis in Quebec on each mutation of property, and, by way of +acknowledgment, a piece of gold of the value of ten shillings, with one +year's rent of the domain reserved, as customary in this country, +together with the woods and rivers, or other appurtenances within the +said extent, right of fishing or fowling on the same therein included +without hindrance or molestation; all kind of traffic with the Indians +of the back country hereby specially excepted. + +Given under my hand and seal at Quebec, this 27th day of April, 1762. + +(Signed) JAS. MURRAY. + + + + +APPENDIX C (p. 78) + +THE SIEGE OF QUEBEC IN 1775-76 + +COLONEL NAIRNE TO MISS M. NAIRNE + + +_Quebec, 14th May, 1776._ + +The New England rebels were very successful on their first arrival in +this Province having got most of the Canadians in their interest. They +took the two Regiments (which were all the regular troops in the +Province) prisoners, made themselves masters of the Town of Montreal and +all the Forts and the whole open country. Flushed with this success they +came before our Capital (Quebec) where their main army was joined by a +reinforcement of six hundred men who had marched straight through the +Woods from Boston where scarcely any body had ever passed before and +thought utterly impracticable for a body of men. The suburbs about +Quebec which were extensive (now in ruins) were not all destroyed at the +first arrival of the enemy so that in two places they annoyed us with +their Riflemen though they only killed a very few. They also (though in +the Winter) got a Battery of five guns against the Town but [it] was +silenced by a superior fire from our Ramparts. They also bombarded the +Town in the night with small shell till the 31st December when about two +hours before day they made a general attack with their whole force upon +the Ramparts, their two principal attacks being against the two +extremitys of the low Town. Their General (Montgomery) an Irish +gentleman who had been a Captain in our army possessing extraordinary +qualifications fitting him for such a Command led the attack against a +very strong post in the low town. Our Cannon (six pieces) loaded with +grape shot, did not begin to fire till the enemy was within the distance +of twenty yards, which with the musketry of the guard at the same time +made terrible havoc. Their General with four of his officers lay slain +in one heap within twenty and others within ten yards of our +fortifications by which that attack was wholly frustrated and all that +part of their army retired in confusion. The attack upon the other +extremity of the low Town was made with six hundred men. At first they +had success though that turned out at last to their ruin. They forced +our advanced post where we had four pieces of cannon, afterward got +possession of another barrier and forced their way through a narrow +street to the last barrier, which if they had gained they would have +been in the low Town. At the same time the Governor ordered a sally out +at a Gate they had passed to follow their track in the snow (that was +then deep) and fall upon them behind. That we should open a Gate and +attack them when attacked ourselves was a thing very unexpected so that +finding they were stopped at the last barrier and thus attacked behind +they were obliged to take shelter in the houses of the narrow street and +at last gave themselves up prisoners to the number of about four hundred +and fifty amongst whom were thirty-two officers of all ranks from +Colonels to Ensigns. The morning of the attack I happened to have the +Piquet and guessing by the flashes in the air (in the dark) that it was +musketry at the other side of the town, tho' we heard no report, had the +Piquet drawn out upon the Ramparts at our alarm post, before the firing +came round that length, which it soon did and we fired away upon these +people as they passed along that way, which they were obliged to do to +get to the low Town. About break of day Major Caldwell came round with +some men, and took me with part of the Piquet along with him to the low +Town. When we got there the enemy had got on as far as the inner Barrier +and [had] a Ladder on both sides of it. There the Battle raged till the +Enemy falling back got into Houses. Some time after the Sorti coming +behind them put an end to the affair. It was the first time I ever +happened to be so closely engaged as we were obliged to push our +bayonets. It is certainly a disagreeable necessity to be obliged to put +one another to death especially those speaking the same language and +dressed in the same manner with ourselves. Only these mad people had a +large piece of white linen or paper upon their foreheads with the words +"Liberty or Death" wrote upon it. The Garrison in general behaved +remarkably well consisting in all of about 1400 men, mostly the town +Militia and sailors with 200 of Maclean's corps which were only raised +last summer. They certainly did their duty with much patience during a +severe winter of six months. In the day time we wrought a great deal at +the fortifications and shovelling the snow and in the night even those +not upon duty durst not sleep but with Clothes and accoutrements on and +by whole Companys in one House to be the more ready, for, upon our +vigilance, everything depended. For the last month the Enemy had two +Batterys of four Guns each, playing on the Town with red hot Balls, in +hope to set it on fire but luckily did very little harm. They also made +use of a fire ship in order to burn our shipping in the Harbour, which +would have communicated the flames to the Town, at the same time +intending to escalade the Walls, for which purpose they laid numbers of +ladders all round in our sight which had the effect to keep us more upon +our Guard. This fire ship got very near the Harbour but a Cannon being +fired that was well directed the men that were in her left her a little +too soon so that the tide carried her clear past the town without doing +the least harm and disappointed them of their attack for which their +whole army was prepared. Thus from the 14th of November last we passed +one dreary night after another either watching or making Rounds and +Patrole upon an extent of works of upwards of three miles round, till +the 6th of May when we had the agreeable sight of Commodore Douglass +with a Ship of War and two Frigates arriving in the Bason with part of +the 29th Regiment on board. And the same day with only the reinforcement +of about 300 Regular Troops the Gates were thrown open and the whole +garrison (except those on Guard) poured out, drove off the Enemy's +advanced Guards and marched forward near two miles clear out upon the +plain (our former field of Battles last war) with three pieces of cannon +in our front that fired away at some partys of men at a distance. This +Sally, so unexpected and the two Frigates [being] under sail at the same +time up the River; [and the enemy] being ignorant of our numbers and +suspecting probably that there was a force on board the Frigates which +might by taking possession of a strong post above cut off their retreat, +their whole army took to their heels (it is said about 3000 men) leaving +all their Artillery stores, baggage and provisions which fell into our +hands. I suppose they will retreat to Montreal where they expect strong +reinforcements from New England. We will probably soon follow them +though our Corps may possibly be left to garrison Quebec. General +Carleton has gained honour by his behaviour this winter. He showed +himself a brave steady officer careful not to expose rashly the lives of +his men, in short a chief whom we esteem and cheerfully obey. Lieut. +Colonel Maclean has likewise great merit in having contributed much to +the preservation of this place by his forwarding the reparations of the +fortifications and his indefatigable care and trouble in the directing +the duty of the Garrison, together with his management in every shape as +a good officer. He was here the second in Command and seemed the fittest +man in the world for the place he occupied. There were also several old +Officers who happened to be here and were of great service as Major +Caldwell who distinguished himself very much, Major Cox, two Captain +Frasers and several others. + +Mr. Wauchope who you will wish to hear of is very well. He has done +Lieutenant's duty this winter in Maclean's Regiment, is a good officer +and went through some severe Duty with great perseverance. + + +Yours, &c., &c., + +J.N. + + + + + +APPENDIX D (p. 98) + +MEMORANDUM FOR ENSIGN JOHN NAIRNE, 5TH APRIL, 1795 + + +1st. You ought to read the Articles of War. + +2nd. To pay the greatest attention to all orders from your Superior +Officers. + +3rd. Take care to have your own Orders strictly obeyed by those who are +under your Command but before you give any Order, be sure it is right +and necessary. + +4th. Attend the Parades, and learn without delay the different motions +and words of Command and every part of the Duty of a Subaltern officer +when upon guard; also when under Arms with the whole Battalion, or +otherwise. + +5th. Be always ready and willing to go upon every military duty that may +be ordered. Never think you do too much in that way; the more the better +and the more honourable. + +6th. Be careful in doing the Company Duty, in such a manner, that the +Soldiers may be kept in excellent Order and everything belonging to +them; as their Arms, Accoutrements, Ammunition, Necessarys, Dress, +Messing, etc., according as may be regulated by the standing Orders of +the Regiment, or that may be most agreeable to your Captain or +Lieutenant Commanding the Company; also not only to know every man of +the Company by Name, but, as soon as possible, to know their several +Characters and Dispositions that each may be encouraged, cherished, or +punished, as he deserves. You ought every day, or very frequently to +wait on your Captain, or Lieutenant Commanding the Company, in order to +report to him upon these matters, and to know if he has any directions +or Commands for you. + +7th. Endeavour all you can to learn the Adjutant's Duty: To be able to +Exercise the Company (or even the Battalion) in the Manual, their +Manoeuvres and the firings. + +8th. Make yourself fit for paying the Company, and to be exact in +keeping Accounts, so that you may be capable of even being paymaster to +a Regiment. + +9th. You ought to practice writing Court-Martials, Returns, and Reports +of all sorts, Acquittance Rolls, Muster Rolls, and Letter Writing; +taking always great pains to have a good hand of writ and to spell well. + +10th. It is also recommended to you to study Engineering and Drawing; To +read Military Books, The occurrences and news of the time and History, +etc.; Never to leave anything undone which you think ought to be done; +in short, not to lose or misspend time, but constantly [to] endeavour to +gain knowledge, and improvement, and to exert yourself in being always +steady and diligent in the Execution of every part of your Duty. + +11th. No doubt you will soon get Acquainted with all the officers of the +Regiment, and to know the Companys the Subaltern Officers belong to, +likewise to know the Names and Characters of all the non-Commissioned +officers, and the Companys they belong to, even most of the private men +and what Companys they are in. You ought to have a Book of Quarters (or +List of the Army) and learn the Number, and any thing else Remarkable of +each Regiment; also concerning the Generals, and Field Officers, and the +Rules and Regulations of the Army. + +N.B.--Never be ashamed to ask questions at any of your Brother Officers +in order to gain information. The Sergeants of your Company will furnish +you with any Rolls, Lists or Returns you may have occasion for +respecting the Regt. + + + + +APPENDIX E (p. 104) + +THE "PORPOISE" (BELUGA OR WHITE WHALE) FISHERY ON THE ST. +LAWRENCE + + +The so-called "porpoise" of the St. Lawrence is in reality the French +_marsouin_, the English beluga, a word of Russian origin, signifying +white. The Beluga (_Delphinapterus leucas_), is a real whale with its +most striking characteristic the white, or rather cream-coloured, skin +described by some writers as very beautiful. Like the narwhal it has no +dorsal fin. Though the smallest member of the whale family it is +sometimes more than twenty feet long; but usually ranges from thirteen +to sixteen feet. The young are bluish black in colour and may be seen +swimming beside their mother who feeds them with a very thick milk. +These young grow rapidly and become mottled and then white as they grow +older. The beluga is peculiar to northern regions where the water is +cold: when one is seen at the mouth of an English river it is a subject +of special note. There are numbers in Hudson Bay and they have been +found in the Yukon River, it is said, 700 miles from its mouth, whither +they went no doubt after salmon or other fish. + +Jacques Cartier saw the beluga disporting itself off Malbaie nearly 400 +years ago and in summer it is still to be seen there almost daily. It is +never alone. One sees the creatures swimming rapidly in single file. +They come to the surface with a prolonged sigh accompanied by the +throwing of a small jet of water; the perfectly white bodies writhe into +view as the small round heads disappear. Sometimes the beluga makes a +noise like the half suppressed lowing of oxen and, since the aquatic +world is so silent, sailors have christened the beluga, for this slender +achievement, the "sea canary." It is a playful creature and is +apparently attracted by man's presence. Before its confidence in him was +shaken it used to linger about wharves and ships. But, in spite of the +extremely small aperture of its ear, it is very sensitive to sound and +modern man with his fire arms and clatter of machinery frightens it +away. In 1752 the Intendant Bigot issued special instructions to check +the use of firearms on the point at Riviere Ouelle, in order that the +beluga might not be frightened, to the ruin of the extensive fishery +that has existed there for more than two hundred years. Its sight, touch +and taste are also well developed but it has no olfactory nerve and is +apparently without the sense of smell. The creature has qualities that +we should hardly expect. It has been tamed and almost domesticated. The +enterprising Barnum exhibited in New York a beluga which drew a boat +about in his aquarium. At Boston another beluga from the St. Lawrence +drew about a floating car carrying a woman performer. It knew its keeper +and at the proper time would appear and put its head from the water to +be harnessed or to take food. This beluga would take in its mouth a +sturgeon and a small shark confined in the same tank, play with them and +allow them to go unharmed. It would also pick up and toss stones with +its mouth. + +The beluga is greedy. In the early spring, when he is thin and half +starved, capelin and smelt in great numbers come to spawn along the +north and south shores of the St. Lawrence. With high tide comes the +beluga's chance to feed on the spawning fish and he will rush in quite +near to shore for his favourite food. So voracious is he that with the +fish he takes quantities of sand into his stomach. In eight or ten days +he will eat enough to form from five to eight inches of fat over his +whole body. "The facility with which he thus grows fat is explained," +says the Abbe Casgrain, "by the easy assimilation of such food and by +the considerable development of his digestive apparatus." + +No doubt the beluga enjoys himself hugely. But Nemesis awaits him. His +fish diet has a soporific effect; gorged with food he becomes stupid and +is easily taken. Man's trap for him is simple and ingenious. A century +and a half ago it was to be seen at Pointe au Pic and to-day it is in +operation at Riviere Ouelle on the south side of the river. The weir or +fishery for the beluga must be on a large scale and is expensive to keep +up; it is for this reason that when the number of these creatures +declined it was no longer possible to maintain the fishery at Pointe au +Pic. At Riviere Ouelle annually more than 7000 stakes, from 18 to 20 +feet long, are necessary to keep in repair the fishery which is almost +entirely destroyed each year by ice. Beginning at the shore a line of +stakes is carried out into the river placed perhaps a foot apart to form +a rough semi-circle about a mile and a third long. The stakes curve back +to the shore leaving however a passage of perhaps 1000 feet open between +the farther end and the shore. This outer end of the weir is completed +by a smaller circle of stakes, so arranged as to make entrance easy by +following within the line of stakes, but exit difficult. The distance +between high and low water mark at Riviere Ouelle is about a mile and a +half and along this great stretch of beach the small fish come in great +numbers to spawn. There is a considerable point at the mouth of the +little Riviere Ouelle. The wide beach, bare at low water, and this point +furnish an admirable combination for the beluga fishery. At high tide +the beluga comes rushing in near to shore after his prey, sometimes in +water so shallow that his whole body comes into view. In his progress +along the shore he is checked by the stakes reaching out from the point, +so close together that he cannot get through. The stakes sway with the +current and sometimes strike together making considerable noise. Early +whalers thought the beluga would try to pass by squeezing between the +stakes and to prevent this they fastened the stakes together with ropes. +But this was not necessary. Frightened by the noise the timid beluga's +instinct leads him to make for the open water. He dashes across the +semi-circle of the fishery only to be checked by the line of stakes on +its outer edge. The line like a wall he follows, looking for an opening, +and may be led insensibly into the labyrinthine circle at its end from +which he will hardly escape. If he heads back towards shore where he +came in, he is frightened by the shallow water which he disregarded only +when in pursuit of his prey. Where was shallow water indeed he may now +find dry land for the tide is running out. So the creature becomes +bewildered. He swims about slowly, as it were feeling his way, or +disappears at the bottom, to be stranded when the tide goes out and thus +becomes the prey of his enemy, man. + +Some old belugas are very cunning; they are called by the French +Canadian the _savants_, the knowing ones, and seem to understand the +wiles of the fisherman. They warn off the others and so foil the design +against them. But greediness proves often their destruction. From +over-feeding year after year they become fat and stupid and they too are +likely in time to be taken. The less knowing beluga has usually slight +chance of escape when once he encounters the line of stakes stretching +out from the point and, since they follow each other blindly, if one is +taken a whole troop is likely to meet the same fate. + +The Abbe Casgrain, who, since his childhood was spent at the Manor House +at Riviere Ouelle, was long familiar with the "porpoise" fishery, +describes the scene witnessed there by him on May 1st, 1873. It was a +glorious day and the belugas appeared in greater numbers than for many +years. They swarmed off the mouth of the Riviere Ouelle. At high tide +they came in, skirting the rocks within a stone's throw of shore and +devouring greedily the innumerable small fish. The surface of the +shallow water in which they swam was white with their gleaming bodies. +When they puffed they spurted jets of water into the air which fell in +spray that sparkled in the sunlight. The Abbe then describes how the +creatures became entrapped in the fishery. Instances of the mother's +devotion are recorded. They have been known to wait outside the stakes +for their young, caught within, and to allow themselves to be stranded +and killed rather than leave their offspring. + +When the tide is low the slaughter begins. In the season of the spring +tide the water at Riviere Ouelle retreats so far that the entrapped +"porpoises" are left high and dry in the fishery and are readily killed. +But in the season of neap tides enough water is left for them to swim +about within the semi-circle of stakes. Boats are taken into the fishery +through the outer line of stakes and then begins a regular whale hunt +within a very circumscribed area. If the belugas are numerous their +captors have not a moment to lose for the creatures may escape with the +next tide. And numerous they sometimes are; 500 have been taken in a +single tide; at Riviere Ouelle, about 1870, 101 were killed in one night +by only four men. They had not expected such a host and had no time to +send for help before the tide should rise again. + +The captors are armed with barbed harpoons and with spears. The harpoon +is sometimes thrown at the beluga from a considerable distance. When +struck the creature rushes to the surface, plunges and rolls to get +free. He never defends himself but thinks only of flight. It is an +accident if a boat is upset by the stroke of its tail; such accidents +sometimes happen but the victim gets little more than a soaking, much to +the merriment of his companions. The harpooned beluga will make off at +full speed dragging in his wake the assailant's boat which flies over +the face of the water, boiling with the mighty strokes of the monster's +tail. Soon the water is red for each beluga sheds eight or ten gallons +of blood. When he is tired the boat is drawn in closer by the rope +fastened to the animal. As opportunity offers the spear is used and, +driven home by a strong hand, it sometimes goes clear through the body. +A skilful man will quickly strike some vital spot; otherwise the beluga +struggles long. + +"Picture if possible," says the Abbe, "the animation of the beluga hunt +when a hundred of them are in the weir, when twenty-five or thirty men +are pursuing them, when five or six boats dragged by the creatures are +ploughing the enclosed waters in every direction, when the spears are +hurled from all sides and the men are covered with the blood which +gushes out in streams. Some years ago the passengers of a passing +steamer from Europe were witnesses of such a scene and showed their keen +interest by firing a salvo of cannon." + +When the belugas have been killed the next task is to get them to shore. +The work must be done quickly for the next tide will stop all work and +may sweep the animals away. Horses are brought and the bodies are +dragged ashore or partly floated with the aid of the rising tide. The +task of cutting up and boiling follows immediately. Workmen with long +knives take off the skin and separate the blubber from the flesh. The +Abbe Casgrain describes the process in detail. In the end the blubber is +cut up into small pieces and boiled in huge caldrons. The poor never +fail to come for their share of the catch and, with proverbial charity, +the Company carrying on the operations never send them away empty. "The +share-holders" says the Abbe Casgrain, "are convinced that the success +of their labours depends upon the gifts which they make to God, and +their generosity merits His benediction," Many a habitant goes home with +a mass of blubber in his pot or hooked to the end of a stout branch. + +The fishery is old and has been very profitable. La Potherie describes +the industry as it existed at Kamouraska in 1701: that at Riviere Ouelle +is found in 1707 and it remained in the hands of the heirs of the +original promoters until, in 1870, it was found necessary to form them +into an incorporated company. The oil is highly valued. It is very clear +and has good lubricating qualities. Before the universal sway of +petroleum it was much used for lighting purposes; an ordinary lamp would +burn for 72 hours without going out. The Abbe Casgrain says that a +barrel of the oil is worth from 100 to 200 dollars and since each beluga +would yield not less than a barrel the value of the fishery in a good +season is evident. The skin is very thick and of extraordinary strength. +It has no grain and will take a beautiful polish. + +[Beddard, "A Book of Whales" (London, 1900), pp. 244 _sqq._ + +Sir Harry Johnston, "British Mammals," (London, 1903), pp. 22 _sqq._ + +La Potherie, "Histoire de l'Amerique Septentrionale," (Paris, 1703), +Vol. 1, Lettre X., pp. 273 _sqq._ + +Casgrain, "Une Paroisse Canadienne au XVIIe Siecle," Oeuvres, Vol. 1, +pp. 530 _sqq._ + +Casgrain, "Eclaircissements sur La Peche aux Marsouins," Ib. p. 563 +_sqq._] + + + + +APPENDIX F (p. 122) + +THE PRAYER OF COLONEL NAIRNE + + +(There are several versions of parts of the Prayer. It is, I think, +partly copied from some other source, partly Nairne's own composition.) + +We believe in Thee our God; do thou strengthen our faith; We hope in +thee; confirm our hope; we repent of all our Sins; but do thou increase +our repentance. As our first beginning we worship thee; as our +benefactor we praise thee; and as our supreme protector we pray unto +thee that it may please thee, O God, to guide and lead us by thy +Providence, to keep us in obedience to thy justice, to comfort us by thy +mercie, and to protect us by thy Almighty power. We submit to thee all +our thoughts, words, and deeds, as well as our afflictions, pains, and +sufferings, and in thy name and for thy sake [we desire] to bear all +adversity with patience. We will nothing but what thou Willest, because +it is agreeable to thee. Give us grace that we may be attentive in +prayer, vigilant in our Conduct, and immovable in all good purposes. +Grant, most merciful Lord, that we may be true and just to those who put +their trust in us, that we may be Courteous and kind to all men, and +that in both our words and actions we may show them a good example. +Dispose our hearts to admire and adore thy goodness, to hate all errours +and evil ways. Assist us, most gracious God, in subduing our passions, +covetousness by liberality, anger by mildness, and lukewarmness by zeal +and fervency. Enable us to Conduct ourselves with prudence in all +transactions, to show courage in danger, patience in adversity, in +prosperity an humble will. Let thy Grace illuminate our understanding. +Direct our will and bless our souls. Make us diligent in curbing all +irregular affections and Zealous in imploring thy Grace, careful in +keeping thy Commandments and constant in working out our own salvation. + +We humbly beseech thee, O Lord, to assist us in keeping our temper and +passions under due restraint to reason and to virtue, so as not only to +contribute to our internal peace of mind, honour, and reputation in this +life, but also to our eternal Comfort and happiness in the life to come; +and to defend us, O Lord, from the arts and subtilties which designing +men may work against us in order to lead us into evil or idle purposes. +Finally, O God, make us sensible how little is this world, how great thy +Heavens and how long will be thy blessed eternity. O! that we may well +prepare ourselves for Death and obtain of thee, O God, eternal life +through the merits of Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen. + + + + +APPENDIX G (p. 144) + +THE CURES OF MALBAIE + + +Of the early missionaries I have found no record, though no doubt one +could be compiled from the episcopal archives. The registers at Malbaie +do not begin until 1790 but I find a note that in 1784 there were +sixty-five communicants. Isle aux Coudres, Les Eboulements and Malbaie +were then united under one cure, M. Compain, who lived at Isle aux +Coudres. He served Malbaie from 1775 to 1788. This cure has a share in +the legend of Pere de La Brosse, which, since it is characteristic of +the region, is worth repeating. + +Pere de La Brosse was a much loved and saintly missionary priest, +dwelling in his later years at Tadousac. On the evening of April 11th, +1872, he played cards at Tadousac at the house of one of the officers of +the post. Rising to go at about nine o'clock he said to the company: + +"I wish you good night, my dear friends, for the last time; for at +midnight I shall be a dead man. At that hour you will hear the bell of +my chapel ring. I beg you not to touch my body. To-morrow you will send +for M. Compain at Isle aux Coudres. He will be waiting for you at the +lower end of the island. Do not be afraid if a storm comes. I will +answer for those whom you shall send." + +At first the company thought the good father was joking. None the less +did they become anxious to see what should happen. Watch in hand they +waited for the hour named. Exactly at midnight the bell of the chapel +rang three times. They ran to the chapel and there found Pere de La +Brosse upon his _prie-dieu_ dead. + +The next day, Sunday, a south-east wind blew with violence. Huge +white-capped waves made the great river so dangerous that the employes +of the post refused to undertake the journey to Isle aux Coudres of +forty or fifty miles in a canoe over a raging sea. But the chief clerk +at the post said to them: "You know well that the Father never deceived +you. You ought to have confidence in his word. Is there no one among you +who will carry out his last wish?" + +Then three or four men agreed to go. When they put their canoe in the +water, behold a wonder! To the great surprise of every one the sea +subsided so that before them lay a pathway of calm water. To their +further amazement, they made the journey to Isle aux Coudres with +incredible rapidity. As they neared the shore they could see M. Compain +walking up and down, a book in his hand. When they were within hearing +distance he called out "Pere de La Brosse is dead. You come to get me to +bury him. I have been waiting an hour for you." When the canoe touched +the shore M. Compain embarked and they carried him to Tadousac. At Isle +aux Coudres the bell of the chapel had distinctly sounded three times +at midnight as at Tadousac. M. Compain knew what it meant for Pere de La +Brosse had told him what he told his friends at Tadousac. Other church +bells in the neighbourhood also rang miraculously on that night. Pere de +La Brosse had said while cure at Isle Verte, "If I die elsewhere than +here, you will have certain knowledge of the fact at the moment of my +death." + +The legend, the rather obscure motive of which is to emphasize the +saintly virtues of Pere de La Brosse, is believed even to this day by +many simple people, hundreds of whom know it by heart. But some are +skeptical. "I should have been able to give more certainty to this +tradition," says M. Mailloux, the historian of Isle aux Coudres and also +its cure, "had I been able to make more extended investigation. +Meanwhile," he adds naively, "my investigations suffice to give a high +idea of the virtues of this admirable missionary." + +There is little to record of the careers of cures at Malbaie subsequent +to M. Compain. Often the annals of the good are not exciting and this is +eminently true of these virtuous teachers. M. Charles Duchouquet was +cure of Isle aux Coudres and served Malbaie in 1790. In 1791 he was +succeeded by M. Raphael Paquet who lived at Les Eboulements. The first +cure resident at Malbaie was M. Keller who came in 1797. When he went +away in 1799 M. J.-B.-A. Marcheteau who was cure of Les Eboulements and +lived there, served Malbaie. In 1807 M. Marcheteau was succeeded by M. +Le Courtois, the second resident cure, a French emigre who remained at +Malbaie until 1822 and was, as we have seen, an intimate friend of the +Nairne family. For a long time M. Le Courtois carried on missionary work +among the Indians. In 1822 M. Duguay became cure; he went to Malbaie +after being cure at Isle aux Coudres. In 1832 he was succeeded by M. +Zepherin Leveque who, in 1840, was followed by M. Alexis Bourret. This +cure was something of a scholar. He read the Greek fathers in the +original which is, I fancy, very unusual among the priests of Canada. In +1847 M. Beaudry became cure and in 1862 he was followed by M. Narcisse +Doucet. It was under M. Doucet that the great influx of summer visitors +began. Naturally they desired to have their own Protestant service on +Sunday and M. Doucet did all he could to prevent their getting a place +of worship. Protestantism having disappeared from Malbaie the cure was +not anxious to see it revived. But the last Mrs. Nairne, a Protestant, +then ruled at the Manor House, and she gave for the purpose of +Protestant worship the admirable site of the present Union Church. M. +Doucet was a man of considerable culture. The parish church, first built +in 1806, was remodelled in his time as also was the _presbytere_; he +built, too, the convent for girls. In 1891 M. B.-E. Leclercq became +cure--a good man of the peasant type, who retired in 1906 and died at +Malbaie in the following year. The present energetic cure is M. Hudon. + +[For Pere de La Brosse, see Casgrain, Oeuvres, Vol. 1, "Une Excursion +a L'Ile aux Coudres"; Mailloux, "Histoire de L'Isle aux Coudres" +(Montreal, 1879). M. Mailloux has particulars about some of the cures +named above. The dates for the successive cures are found in the +registers at Malbaie.] + + + + +INDEX + + +Abraham, Plains of, 30, 69, 74, 81, 123, 258, 262. + +Amherst, General, 34. + +Amiens, Peace of, 119. + +Ange Gardien, 254, 255. + +Arnold, Colonel Benedict, 66-70, 76, 78, 81. + +Augustine, St., 236. + +Austerlitz, Battle of, 129. + +Avignon, 213. + + +Baie St. Paul, 2, 9, 16, 20, 64, 89, 183, 255. + +Barnum, P.T., 280. + +Baxter, J.P., 243. + +Bazire, Marie, 11. + +Beaudry, Pere, 290. + +Beauport, 252. + +Beaupre, 16. + +Beaver Dam, 156. + +Beck, Miss, 170. + +Bedard, Pierre, 150. + +Begin, Mgr., 198. + +Begon, M., Intendant, 14. + +Belairs, 109. + +Belmont Seigniory, 36. + +Beluga Fishery on the St. Lawrence, 279-285. + +Bencoolen, India, 59. + +Berthier, 9, 69. + +Bic, 250. + +Bigot F., Intendant, 18, 280. + +Blackburn, Hugh, 54, 55. + +Bleakley, Mrs., 106. + +Bonaparte, Napoleon, 112, 129, 133, 155, 169. + +Bonneau, 10, 11, 109. + +Bonner, G.T., 219. + +Boucher, Pierre, 9. + +Bouchette, Mr., 141. + +Bougainville, Col., 29, 51, 259. + +Boulogne, 129. + +Bourdon, Jean, 8, 243. + +Bourret, Pere Alexis, 290. + +Bowen, Judge E., 149, 150, 163-7. + +Bowen, Mrs. E., 151. + +Boyd, General, 162. + +Brassard, 54. + +Breboeuf, 198. + +Brock, Gen. Sir I., 151, 153. + +Brosse, Pere de la, 287-9. + +Buchanan. Mr., 166. + +Burlington Heights, 156, 158, 161. + +Burlington Bay, 158, 159. + +Butler, Captain, 86. + + +Cacouna, 88. + +Caldwell, Colonel, 84, 85, 87, 148. + +Cameron, Captain, 269. + +Campbell, Lieut. Alex., 261. + +Campbell, Lieut. Archibald, 261. + +Campbell, Capt John, 261. + +Cap a l'Aigle, 2, 11, 21, 238. + +Cap aux Oies, 2, 11. + +Cap Rouge, 259, 264. + +Cap Tourmente, 2, 87, 108, 109, 253, 255. + +Cape Diamond, 73-78, 270. + +Carignan Regiment, 9, 34, 243. + +Carleton, Sir Guy (Lord Dorchester) 22, 59, 64, 65, 69-78, 83, 206, 276. + +Carleton Island, 84-7, 148. + +Cartier, Jacques, 56, 244, 250, 279. + +Casgrain, Abbe H.R., 245, 281-285. + +Castle Dounie, 24. + +Chambly, 9. + +Champlain, Samuel de, 6, 7, 243. + +Chandler, General, 156. + +Chaperon, M., 224, 225. + +Chateau, Richer, 254-5. + +Chateauguay, Battle of, 161. + +Chaudiere River, 66. + +Chauncey, Commodore, 158. + +Chelmsford, 134. + +Cherry Valley, 86. + +Chicoutimi, 15. + +Chippewa, 155. + +Cimon family, 219. + +Clark, John, 102. + +Clive, Lord, 57. + +Colbert, 8. + +Columbo, India, 100, 101. + +Compain, Pere, 287-9. + +Company of New France, 7, 8. + +Comporte, Philippe Gaultier, Sieur de, 9-14, 223, 243. + +Comporte, La, 15, 16. + +Comporte, Lac a, 12, 229. + +Continental Congress, 60, 63. + +Contrecoeur, 89. + +Cook, Captain, 22. + +Coquart, Father Claude Godefroi, 16-18. + +Cornwallis, General, 91. + +Cox, Major, 276. + +Craig, Sir James, 135, 142, 150. + +Crysler's Farm, Battle of, 162. + +Culloden, Battle of, 23, 33, 48. + + +Dalrymple, Col., 100. + +Dambourges, M., 77. + +D'Avezac, Editor of Cartier's Works, 243. + +Dean, Captain, 269. + +De Lass, 138. + +Detroit, 151, 155. + +_Diana_, the, 270. + +Dobie, Richard, 106. + +Dorchester, Lord, (See Carleton, Sir Guy). + +Doucet, Pere Narcisse, 290. + +Douglas, Lieut., 261. + +Douglass, Commodore, 276. + +Duchouquet, Pere C., 289. + +Dufour, Joseph, 16-18, 20, 56, 109. + +Duggan, E.J., 219. + +Duggan, W.E., 219. + +Duguay, Pere, 289. + +Dundass, 118. + +Durham, 127. + + +East India Co'y, 57, 58. + +Edinburgh, 94, 95, 101, 119, 125, 127, 128, 133. + +Edinburgh Castle, 26, 169, 170. + +Elibank, Lord, 35. + +Emerson, Parson, 67. + +Emery, Christiana, (Mrs. Nairne), 56. + +Enos, Colonel, 67. + + +_Fell_, the, 70. + +Fisher, Dr., 115. + +Fitzgibbon, Lieut, 156. + +Forbes, Duncan, of Culloden, 23. + +Fort Erie, 154. + +Fort George, 154-157, 160. + +Forty Mile Creek, 156, 159. + +Foucault, Seigniory of, 36. + +Foulon, Anse de, 256. + +Fraser, Alex., Jr., 252, 261, 267. + +Fraser, John Malcolm, 219, 249. + +Fraser, Malcolm, Seigneur of Mount Murray, 21, 28, 30-41, 49, 54, 55, + 65, 74, 75, 82, 92, 93, 95, 101, 105, 106, 108, 114, 117, 120, + 127-132, 136, 142-147, 149, 152, 158, 160, 165, 171, 178, 219, + 222, "Journal," 249-271, 276. + +Fraser, Ensign Malcolm, killed, 267. + +Fraser, Simon, Lord Lovat, 24-26, 243, 267. + +Fraser, Colonel Simon, Commander of the 78th Regiment, 25, 26, 31, 32, + 249, 251, 252, 261, 264-267. + +Fraser, Simon, Explorer, 26. + +Fraser, Simon, Captain, 261. + +Fraser, William, 219. + +Fraserville, Seigniory of, 39. + +Frenchtown, 154. + +Frontenac, 196. + + +Gagnon, Mgr., 245. + +Gaspe, Philippe Aubert de, 109, 209-212, 245. + +Gaultier, Philippe, (See Comporte). + +Gerin, Leon, 244. + +Gibraltar, 129, 133, 134, 135, 136. + +Gilchrist, Mr., 47, 53, 55, 60, 61, 223, 225. + +Glasgow, 119. + +Goose, Cape, 2. + +Gordon, Lieut. Cosmo, 267. + +Gorham, Captain, 20, 34, 36, 251, 255. + +Graeme, General, 96. + +Gregorson, Ensign, 261. + +Gros, Jean, 225. + +"_Growler_", the, 160. + + +Haldimand, General, 46, 83, 85, 87, 92. + +Hale, Mr. and Mrs., 149. + +Halifax, 150. + +Harrison, General, 155. + +Hazen, Captain, 265. + +Hazeur, Francois, 12, 13, 14. + +Hazeur, J.T., 15. + +Hazeur, P. de l'Orme, 15. + +Henry, Dr., 201, 223-227, 245. + +Hepburn, 42, 59, 114, 118, 121. + +Higham, Mrs., 219. + +Holmes, Admiral, 249. + +Hubert, Bishop of Quebec, 46 + +Hudon, M., Jesuit, 198. + +Hudon, Pere, 290. + +Hudson Bay, 14, 279. + +Hull, General, 151. + + +India, 96, 99, 100, 172. + +Isle aux Coudres, 2, 6, 46, 64, 250, 287-289. + +Isle aux Noix, 82, 83, 84, 91. + +Isle Verte, 289. + + +Jena, Battle of, 129. + +Jervis, John, Lord St. Vincent, 22. + +Johnson, Dr. Samuel, 35. + +Johnston, Sir John, 85. + +Johnston, Sir William, 138. + +_Julia_, the, 160. + + +Kamouraska, 89, 108, 211, 212, 224, 285. + +Keller, Pere, 289. + +Kennebec, River, 66. + +Ker, Alick, 126, 127, 135, 137. + +Ker, James, 98, 112, 114, 117, 118, 121, 125, 126, 133, 134, 137, 138, + 144, 150, 169, 170. + +Ker, Mrs., 121. + +Kingston, 148, 151, 152, 153, 161. + + +La Fouille, 10. + +La Grange, 56. + +La Motte-Saint-Heray, 10. + +La Potherie, 285. + +La Terriere, Dr., 141. + +Lake Champlain, 36, 82, 161. + +Lake Ontario, 9, 84, 148, 156, 161. + +Lake St. John, 15. + +Langan, Mrs., 106. + +Lanoraye, 10. + +Lauderdale, Earl of, 133. + +Lauzon, Seigniory of, 36, 210. + +Laverdiere, Editor of Champlain's Works, 243. + +Le Courtois, Pere, 143, 164, 166, 172, 193, 289. + +Leclercq, Pere, B.-E, 290. + +Le Maistre, Major, 244. + +Le Moine, Sir J.M., 243. + +Les Eboulements, 2, 14, 37, 46, 64, 109, 141, 287, 289. + +_Leo_, the, 159. + +_Leostoff_, the, 269, 270. + +Leslie, Miss C., 173, 221. + +Leveque, Pere, 289. + +Levis, 36. + +Levis, Marquis de, 32, 220, 264. + +Longueuil, 9. + +Lorette, 262. + +Lotbiniere, Pere de, 71. + +Louisbourg, 29, 42, 119, 129, 221, 250. + +Lovat, Baroness, 24. + +Lovat, Lord, (See Fraser, Simon). + +Lyman, Mr., 171. + + +Mabane, Miss, 108. + +McCord, Mr., 141. + +McDonald, Capt. Donald, 265, 267. + +McDonald, Lieut. Hector, 267. + +McDonnell, Alex., 259. + +MacDonnell, Capt. John, 86, 259, 261. + +MacDonnell, Lieut. Ronald, 261. + +McGregor, Lieut., 271. + +MacKenzie, Sir Alex., 111. + +MacKenzie, Alex., author, 243. + +MacKenzie, Ensign, 261. + +MacKinnon, Lieut., 82-4. + +McLean, Col. Allan, 65, 275, 276. + +McNicol, John, (See Nairne, John McNicol). + +McNicol, Peter, 172, 173. + +McNicol, Mrs. Peter, 93, 107, 114, 130, 169, 172, 173, 219, 221, 290. + +McNicol, Thomas, 172. + +McPherson, Capt., 252, 259, 261. + +Madawaska, Seigniory of, 36. + +Madison, President, 150. + +Mailloux, Pere, 289. + +Maldon, 128. + +Malteste, notary, 52. + +Marchand, Louis, 12. + +Marcheteau, Pere, 289. + +Marie, Catherine de St. Augustin, 198, 199. + +Marlboro', India, 57. + +Masson, Mr., 106. + +Matthews, Captain, 85, 92, 244. + +Micmac Indians, 55. + +Mingan seigniory, 14. + +Mississaga Indians, 85. + +Mistassini, 15. + +Mohawk Valley, 85. + +Montcalm, Marquis de, 19, 241, 251, 252, 260. + +Montgomery, General R., 69-78, 273. + +Montgomery, Capt., 253, 254. + +Montmorency, 251, 253, 255. + +Morel, Abbe, 183. + +Morgan, 76. + +Morrison, Colonel, 162, 165. + +Mount Hermon Cemetery, 122, 123, 220. + +Mount Murray Seigniory, 21, 38. + +Mount Ventoux, 236. + +Mountain, Salter, 152. + +Munro, W. Bennett, 245. + +Murray, Alex., 35. + +Murray, Admiral George, 35. + +Murray, General James, 30-38, 42, 43, 51, 178, 207, 243, 254, 255, 258, + 262, 272. + + +Nairne, Anne, 56, 94, 125. + +Nairne, Baron, 27. + +Nairne, Christine, 93, 94, 99, 101, 106-108, 114, 121, 130, 138, 142, + 145, 146, 150, 151, 164, 169, 171, 172. + +Nairne, John, First Seigneur of Murray Bay, Chap's. I-V., 178, 184, 195, + 209, 219-223. + +Nairne, John, Mrs., 56, 149, 161, 165, 168, 172. + +Nairne, John, Captain, 93, 94, 95-101, 221, 277-279. + +Nairne, John Leslie, 174, 221. + +Nairne, John McNicol, 172-174, 218, 219. + +Nairne, Magdalen (See McNicol, Mrs. Peter). + +Nairne, Mary (Polly), 93, 101, 107, 121, 124, 126, 138, 142, 147, 160, + 169, 172. + +Nairne, Miss, 27, 101, 117, 273. + +Nairne, Robert, 57-59. + +Nairne, Captain Thomas, 93, 101, 102, 107, 121, 124-167, 220, 221, 232. + +Neill, Mr., of Bana, 259. + +Nelson, Lord, 114, 153, 205. + +Newfoundland Regiment, 139, 147, 143. + +New Orleans, Battle at, 170. + +Niagara, 148, 151, 154-156. + +Niagara Falls, 155. + +Niagara River, 148, 154. + +Noel, Jacques, 207. + +Northumberland County, 115, 141. + + +_Oneida_, the, 153. + +Orleans, Island of, 1, 253, 255. + + +Panet, Louis, 225. + +Papineau, L.J., 205, 218. + +Paquet, Pere Raphael, 289. + +Parker, Sir Hyde, 114, 153. + +Parsons' House, 82. + +Pitt, William, Earl of Chatham, 23, 26, 34. + +Pitt, William, 112, 118. + +Pius VIII., Pope, 172. + +Plassey, Battle of, 57. + +Plenderleath, Colonel, 163, 166. + +Point Levi, 80, 250, 251, 253, 255, 256, 261, 263. + +Pointe au Fer, 82, 83. + +Pointe au Pic, 47, 104, 228, 236, 281. + +Pointe aux Trembles, 15. + +"Porpoise" Fishery (See Beluga). + +Pres de Ville Barrier, 75. + +Prescott, 152, 153. + +Prevost, Sir George, 150. + +Procter, General, 154, 171. + + +Quebec Act, 59-61. + +Quebec, Protestant Bishop of, 48, 50, 165. + +Quebec, Roman Catholic Bishop of, 45, 51. + +Queenston Heights, 151, 153. + + +Reeve, Colonel, 219. + +Reeve, John Fraser, 219. + +Reeve, Mrs., 219. + +Richelieu, Robert, 70. + +Riedesel, General, 89, 91. + +Riverin, 13. + +Riviere du Loup, 36, 39. + +Riviere Noire, 37, 226. + +Riviere Ouelle, 183, 280, 281, 283, 285. + +Roderick, Lieut., 259. + +Ross, Mr., 43. + +Ross, Captain, 254, 259. + +Roy, J.E., 244. + +_Royal George_, the, 148, 151. + + +Sackett's Harbour, 161. + +Saguenay River, 5, 183, 228, 255. + +Saguenay County, 172. + +Saint Anne de Beaupre, 64, 254. + +Saint Charles River, 257, 258, 259, 260. + +Sainte Foy, 73, 259, 262, 264. + +Sainte Irenee, 233. + +Saint Jean Seigniory, 36. + +Saint Joachim, 253. + +Saint Matthew's Church, Quebec, 219. + +St. Roch's, Quebec, 76, 88. + +St. Roch, 88. + +Sans Bruit Seigniory, 36. + +Sault au Matelot, 76, 77. + +Schomberg, Capt., 270. + +Scott, Sir Walter, 27, 170. + +Sewell, Mr., 166. + +Sicily, 137, 138. + +Siegfried, Andre, 245. + +Sillery, 264. + +Smith, Justin H., 244. + +Sorel, 9, 90, 91. + +Soumande, Pierre, 12. + +Stadacona, 5. + +Sterling, 56. + +Stevenson, James, 119. + +Stewart, Andrew, 172. + +Stewart, Lieut Chas., 33. + +Stewart, Mr., 107. + +Stoney Creek, 156. + +Stuart, Prince Charles, 22, 27. + +Sulte, B., 243. + +Swanton, Capt, 270. + +Syracuse, 137, 138. + + +Tache, Madame, 211, 212. + +Tadousac, 6, 7, 14, 15, 19, 88, 183, 228, 287-289. + +Talon, Jean, 8, 11. + +Taschereau, Hon G., 106. + +Ten Mile Creek, 159. + +Tetu, Mgr. H., 15, 245. + +Thames River, Ontario, 155. + +Thompson, James, 244. + +Three Rivers, 69, 150. + +Toronto, 148, 155, 159. + +Trafalgar, Battle of, 129, 205. + +Tremblay, 109. + + +Usburn, Mr., 106. + + +_Vanguard_, the, 270. + +Vaudreuil, Marquis de, 34. + +Vercheres, 9, 89. + +Villeneuve, Joseph, 53. + + +Wall, Captain, 152. + +Walpole, Sir R., 23. + +Warren, John, 119. + +Washington, 155. + +Washington, George, 65. + +Waterloo, Battle of, 205. + +Wauchope, Mr., 277. + +Wellington, Duke of, 205. + +West Indies, 95. + +Wilkes, John, 35. + +Wilkinson, General, 156. + +Winchester, General, 154. + +Winder, General, 156. + +Wingfield, Major, 223. + +Wolfe, General James, 19, 20, 22, 23, 28, 29, 31, 66, 241, 252, 260. + +Wolfe's Cove, 29, 68, 75, 256. + +Wooster, General, 81. + +Wuertele, F.C., 244. + + +Yeo, Sir James, 154, 156-159. + +York, Duke of, 96. + +York (Toronto), 148, 155, 156, 159, 160. + +Yorktown, 91. + +Yukon River, 279. + + + + + + +End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of A Canadian Manor and Its Seigneurs +by George M. Wrong + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A CANADIAN MANOR AND ITS SEIGNEURS *** + +***** This file should be named 16747.txt or 16747.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + https://www.gutenberg.org/1/6/7/4/16747/ + +Produced by Juliet Sutherland, Taavi Kalju and the Online +Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net. +Produced from page scans provided by Internet +Archive/Toronto Collection. + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at +https://gutenberg.org/license). + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org. + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at +https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at +809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email +business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact +information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official +page at https://pglaf.org + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit https://pglaf.org + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including including checks, online payments and credit card +donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + https://www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. + +*** END: FULL LICENSE *** + diff --git a/16747.zip b/16747.zip Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..4a35da7 --- /dev/null +++ b/16747.zip diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6312041 --- /dev/null +++ b/LICENSE.txt @@ -0,0 +1,11 @@ +This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements, +metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be +in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES. + +Procedures for determining public domain status are described in +the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org. + +No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in +jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize +this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright +status under the laws that apply to them. diff --git a/README.md b/README.md new file mode 100644 index 0000000..84e1f6b --- /dev/null +++ b/README.md @@ -0,0 +1,2 @@ +Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for +eBook #16747 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/16747) |
